Skip to main content

Full text of "Napoleon's campaign in Poland, 1806-7 : a military history of Napoleon's first war with Russia, verified from unpublished official documents, with maps and plans"

See other formats


OLEON'S  CAMPAIGN 
IN  POLAND 
1806-1807 


F.  LORAINE  PETRE 


ERRATA. 

Page  59,    line  1,  for"  en  "  read  "  eu." 

1  12.     „    22,  for  "  Beschofswerder  "  read  "  Bfechofew*  -rder." 
148      „    6,  for  "comrades"  read  "cossacks." 
244,     „   25,  for  "  on  the  other  "  read  "  in  the  other." 
258,     „   7  of  text,  for  "Plessis"  read  "Pleas." 
Map,  Sheet  II.  (1).— Insert  the  name  "Strzegoczin"  against  the 
indicating   dot    about   2\  miles   north   of  Kowalavice  and 
2  miles  south-west  of  Gonsiorowo. 


KAPOIEON'8    i  AMI'AK.N    IN    i 


Napoleon's  Campaign  in 
Poland 


Napoleon's  Campaign 
in  Poland 


1806=7 


A  MILITAEY  HISTORY  OF  NAPOLEON'S  FIRST 
WAR   WITH   RUSSIA 

VERIFIED  FROM  UNPUBLISHED  OFFICIAL  DOCUMENTS 


BY 


F.    LORAINE    PETRE 


LATE  OF  THE  INDIAN  CIVIL  SERVICE 


WITH  MAPS  AND   PLANS 


LONDON                       I        ^ 
Sampson    Low,   Marston  and    Company 

LIMITED 

£t.  IBunstan'g  #?ou$c 
Fetter  Lane,  Fleet  Street,  E.C. 

1901 

V 

DATE    ^Tr? 

PBINTED  BY 

WILLIAM  CLOWES  AMD  SONS,  LIMITED, 

LONDON  AND  BECCLE8. 


PREFACE. 


THIS  volume  owes  its  inception  to  the  difficulty 
experienced  by  its  author  in  finding,  in  English,  any 
satisfactory  history  of  a  campaign  which  he  felt  could  not  be 
less  interesting  than  its  predecessors  of  Austerlitz  and  Jena. 

There  is,  it  is  true,  an  outline  of  it  in  Alison's  History  of 
Europe;  but  that  is  hardly  sufficient  for  the  student  of 
military  history,  and  there  is  no  good  general  map  attached 
to  it.  Sir  Kobert  Wilson's  account  of  it  is  not  available  in 
every  library,  and  it  is  not  very  accurate  in  many  respects. 

The  English  text-books  on  military  history,  as  a  rule, 
scarcely  allude  to  the  campaign.  The  brief  sketch  of  it  in 
Adams's  Great  Campaigns  is,  unfortunately,  marred  by 
inaccuracies  and  misprints. 

In  French,  the  best  history  of  the  campaign  is  contained 
in  vols,  xvii.-xix.  of  Comte  Mathieu  Dumas'  admirable 
Precis  des  Evenements  Militaires,  etc.  It  was,  however, 
written  at  a  time  (1826)  when  many  sources  of  information, 
now  easily  accessible,  were  closed  to  most  writers. 

Thiers'  Histoire  du  Consulat  et  de  V  Empire  is  not  more 

reliable  in  regard  to  1806-7  than  it  is  in  the  case  of  Waterloo. 

The  memoirs  of  Rapp,  Savary,  de  Fezensac,   Massena, 


VI  PREFACE. 

Marbot,  and  Baron  de  Comeau  do  not  profess  to  be  histories 
of  the  wars  in  which  the  writers  were  engaged,  except 
in  so  far  as  the  operations  came  within  their  personal 
cognizance. 

Probably  the  best  history  of  the  campaign  in  Poland  is 
that  of  General  von  Hospfner,  published  in  1855,  and  based 
upon  Prussian  and,  to  some  extent,  on  Eussian  and  French 
official  documents.  The  work  is  fully  illustrated  by  numerous 
excellent  maps  and  plans.  As  far  as  can  be  ascertained,  this 
book  has  not  been  translated  from  the  German.  Nor  has  the 
diary  of  Carl  von  Plotho,  which  is  a  good  account  of  such 
parts  of  the  campaign  as  came  under  the  writer's  view. 

In  Eussian,  there  is  a  history  by  Danilewski,  which  the 
present  writer  has  been  prevented  from  quoting,  except  where 
it  is  referred  to  by  Hcepfner,  owing  to  his  ignorance  of  the 
language  in  which  it  is  written. 

A  list  of  the  published  works,  and  the  unpublished 
documents,  which  the  author  has  consulted  is  appended  to 
this  preface.  He  takes  this  opportunity  of  acknowledging 
the  great  courtesy  and  assistance  which  he  received  from  the 
officials  of  the  Historical  Section  of  the  General  Staff  of  the 
French  Army,  in  his  search  for  information  in  their  admirably 
kept  and  arranged  records.  Thanks  to  these  records,  it  has 
been  found  possible  to  clear  up,  beyond  all  reasonable  doubt, 
many  disputed  and  obscure  points.  Amongst  these  are  the 
question  whether  Napoleon  intended  to  storm  the  village  of 
Eylau  on  the  7th  February,  1807 ;  the  course  of  events  in  the 
village  of  Schloditten  during  the  night  of  the  8th  February ; 
the  exact  extent  of  Ney's  disobedience  in  pushing  towards 
Koenigsberg  in  January,  1807  ;  and  the  history  of  the  famous 
captured   despatch    to    Bernadotte,   of    the    31st    January. 


PREFACE.  VI 1 

References  to  documents  supporting  these  conclusions  are 
made  in  the  footnotes,  which,  it  is  hoped,  will  be  found 
to  give  chapter  and  verse  for  almost  every  disputable  or 
doubtful  statement  in  the  text. 

Is  the  campaign  worth  the  attention  of  the  military 
student  ?  It  is  hoped  that  a  perusal  of  this  history  of  it  may 
show  that  it  is  so.  The  campaign  in  Poland  was  the  first 
occasion  on  which  Napoleon  found  himself  pitted  against 
Paissia  as  his  principal  opponent ;  for,  before  it  commenced, 
Prussia,  as  a  military  power,  had  been  practically  obliterated. 
The  small  corps  which  she  was  able  to  put  into  the  field,  in 
support  of  Eussia,  covered  itself,  and  Lestocq  its  leader,  with 
glory,  and  was  able,  on  one  memorable  occasion  at  least,  to 
play  an  all-important  part.  Still  its  numbers  were  too  small 
o  render  it  more  than  a  secondary  factor  in  the  great  events 
of  the  war. 

The  glamour  of  the  campaigns  of  Austerlitz  and  Jena  has 
eclipsed  that  of  their  successor.  Yet  Napoleon's  great  scheme 
for  the  destruction  of  Bennigsen  in  February,  1807,  though 
it  failed,  largely  in  consequence  of  the  capture  of  a  single 
despatch,  is  hardly  inferior,  as  a  strategic  combination,  to  the 
marches  upon  Ulm  and  Jena.  As  a  tactician,  he  perhaps 
never  exhibited  to  greater  advantage  his  appreciation  of  the 
features  of  a  battlefield  than  at  Friedland.  Modern  weapons 
have,  no  doubt,  rendered  the  interest  of  the  tactics  of  1807 
merely  academic ;  but  it  is  not  so  with  the  strategy.  So 
long  as  campaigns  are  conducted  on  the  surface  of  the  earth, 
the  principles  of  strategy  which  have  guided  Alexander,  Caesar, 
Turenne,  Marlborough,  Frederick,  Wellington,  Napoleon,  and 
every  other  great  general  of  the  past,  will  hold  equally  good. 
If  ever  the  perfection  of  aerial  navigation  should  introduce  a 


Vlll  PREFACE. 

third  dimension  into  the  operations  of  war,  a  new  theory  of 
strategy,  as  well  as  of  tactics,  may  become  necessary ;  nnless, 
indeed,  war  should  then  become  so  destructive  as  to  be 
impossible. 

In  organising  his  armies,  his  supplies,  his  finances,  and 
his  lines  of  communication,  Napoleon  never  surpassed  his 
efforts  in  1806  and  1807. 

It  is  of  the  military  aspect  of  the  war  in  Poland  that 
this  history  mainly  treats.  The  politics  of  the  time  are  dealt 
with  only  in  so  far  as  they  directly  affected  the  course 
of  military  events.  The  campaign  marks  the  zenith  of 
Napoleon's  power  in  Europe.  In  the  beginning  of  October, 
1806,  he  still  had  to  oppose  him  three  great  powers— Prussia, 
Kussia,  and  England.  By  July,  1807,  one  only  was  left- 
England.  Europe  had  her  chance,  in  the  three  eventful 
years  1805-7,  of  throwing  off  the  yoke  of  the  tyrant.  The 
campaign  of  1807  is  the  record  of  her  failure.  Had  its  issue 
been  different,  Leipzig  and  Waterloo  might  have  been 
anticipated  by  several  years.  Napoleon's  military  talents 
had,  in  1805  and  1806,  shone  forth  in  their  greatest  glory, 
his  army  had  scarcely  begun  to  decline  or  to  be  composed 
largely  of  allies.  Was  it  likely  that  the  next  campaign 
would  show  any  falling  off  in  either  respect  ? 

Another  fact  which  adds  interest  to  the  campaign  is  that 
in  it  Napoleon  first  had  a  foretaste  of  the  difficulties  of 
campaigning  in  winter  in  Northern  Europe.  Even  in  1806 
he  considered  the  campaign  he  was  entering  on  to  be  the 
greatest  enterprise  he  had  ever  undertaken.  He  had  yet  to 
learn  the  value  of  the  Kussian  troops.  It  is  impossible  to 
doubt  that  he  stored  up  in  his  memory  all  the  trials  of 
1807  when  he  was  preparing  for  his  fatal  enterprise  of  1812. 


PREFACE.  IX 

His  enormous  preparations  for  the  invasion  of  Russia,  in 
the  latter  year,  show  how  he  had  learnt  to  appreciate  the 
difficulties  of  his  task.  It  was  only  at  Moscow  that  his 
troubles  of  1807  seem  to  have  faded  from  his  recollection. 

A  few  words  on  the  maps  attached  to  this  volume.  They 
have  been  prepared  with  great  care  from  many  sources.  The 
requisites  of  a  good  map  for  the  study  of  a  campaign,  the 
writer  thinks,  are  (1)  that  it  should  show  the  name  of  every 
place  mentioned  in  the  text,  and  (2)  that  it  should  not  be 
encumbered  or  confused  by  names  not  alluded  to.  With 
these  requirements,  save  in  the  omission  of  a  very  few 
unimportant  villages,  it  is  believed  the  maps  comply. 

If  his  work  succeeds  in  attracting  some  attention  to  an 
episode  in  Napoleon's  military  career  which  seems  hitherto 
to  have  been  unduly  neglected,  the  writer's  object  will  have 
been  attained. 

F.  L.  P. 


27,  Gledhow  Gardens, 
London,  S.W., 

llth  September,  1901. 


LIST   OF  WORKS  AND   DOCUMENTS    CONSULTED 
AND   REFERRED  TO  IN  THE  FOOTNOTES. 


/. — Published  Works. 

ABBREVIATED    REFERENCE.  DESCRIPTION. 

Adams (Major).     Great   Campaigns   in    Europe,    1796- 

1870.     London,  1877. 
Alison (Sir   A.).     History    of   Modern    Europe,    1789- 

1815.     Edinburgh  and  London,  1849. 
Annual  Register   .     .     Summary  of  Events  for  1807. 
Biog.  Gen Nouvelle   Biographie   Generale.     (Firmin   Didot.) 

Paris,  1859. 
Brialmont    ....    (General).     Life  of  Wellington.     Translated  by 

Gleig. 
Comeau (Baron  de).     Souvenirs  des  Guerres  d'Alleraagne 

pendant  la  Revolution  et  TEmpire.    Paris,  1900 
Gust (Lieut.-Gen.  Sir  E.).    Annals  of  the  Wars  of  the 

XlXth  Century,  1800-1809.     London,  1862. 
Davout (Marshal).    Operations  du  3e  Corps  en  1806-1807.  * 

Paris,  1896. 
Dumas (Comte   Mathieu).     Precis  des  Evenements  M?li- 

taires,  etc.,  1799-1814.  Vols,  xvii.-xix.     Paris, 

1826.; 
Fezensac (Due  de).    Souvenirs  Militaires  de  1804  a   1814.  - 

Paris,  1863. 
Hcepfner (Gen.  E.  von).     Der  Krieg  von  1806  und  1807.  « 

Berlin,  1855. 
Houssaye     ....     (H.).     1815— Waterloo.     Paris,  1899. 
Jomini,  Vie  de  Nap.       (Baron).     Vie  Politique  et  Militaire  de  Napoleon, 

racontee  par  lui-meme.     Paris,  1827. 
Jomini Art  of  War.    English  translation.     Philadelphia 

and  London,  1875. 
Kausler Atlas  (avec  texte)  des  Plus  Memorables  BataQles, 

Sieges,  etc.    Merseburg,  1839. 


Xll  LIST  OF   WORKS  CONSULTED. 

ABBREVIATED  REFERENCE.  DESCRIPTION. 

Kirgener     ....     (Gen.  de  brigade).     Prdcis  du  Siege  de  Dantzfck. 

Paris,  1807. 

Lanfrey Histoire  de  Napoleon  I.    Paris,  1867-75. 

Larrey (Baron).     M&noires  de    Chirurgie    Militaire    et 

Campagnes,  Paris,  1812. 
Levasseur     ....    Commentaries  de  Napoleon.     Paris,  1851. 
Marbot (Baron).    Memoirs.   English  translation.   London, 

1892. 
Massena Memoires      du      Marechal      Massena      (Prince 

d'Essling).  Par  le  General  Koch.  Paris,  1848-50. 
Memorial  du  Depot  \     Memorial  du  Depot  de  la  Guerre   (Ministere  de 

de  la  Guerre      )        la  Guerre).    Paris,  1851-52. 
Napoleon  I.  ( Works) : — 
Corr (followed  by  a  serial  number).  Correspondence  de 

Napoleon  I.  Publiee  par  Ordre  de  TEmpereur 

Napoleon  III.     Paris,  1858-69. 
Corr.  with  Joseph  .    Confidential    Correspondence  of   Napoleon  with 

his  Brother  Joseph.    London,  1855. 
Mdmoires  pour  servir  Me*moires   pour    servir   a.    l'Histoire  de  France 

sous  le  Kegne  de  Napoleon  I.,  ecrits  sous  sa 

dictee,    a    Ste.    Helene,    par    Montholon    et 

Gourgaud.    Paris,  1823-25. 
Mem.  de  Ste.  H.     .    Memorial    de     Ste.       Helene    par    Las    Cases. 

Paris,  1823. 
Nation  in  Arms   .     .     The  Nation  in  Arms.     By  Gen.  von  der  Goltz. 

English  translation.     London,  1894. 

Perin Vie  Militaire  de  Jean  Lannes,  Due  de  Montebello.    • 

Peuchet (Jacques).     Campagnes  des  Arme*es  Francais  en 

Prusse,  en  Saxe,  en  Pologne,  etc.    Paris,  1817. 
Plotho (Carl    von).      Tagebuch  wahrend    des    Krieges  , 

zwischen,  etc.,  1806-7.    Berlin,  1811. 

Rapp (Gen.).  Memoires  Merits  par  lui-meme.  Paris,  1823. 

Rustow Strate*gie  ;  Histoire  Militaire.    French  translation. 

Paris,  1882. 
Savary (Due    de    Rovigo).      Me*moires    sur   l'Empereur    \ 

Napoleon.     Paris,  1828. 
Segur (Comte    Philippe    de).     An     Aide-de-camp     of 

Napoleon.    English  translation.    London,  1896. 
Tactical  Problems  set  i 

by     Baron    von  I  English  translation.   London,  1894. 
Moltke,  1858-82.  J 
TJiiers (A.).       Histoire    du    Consulat    et    de    PEmpire.  ^ 

London,  1847. 


LIST  OF   WORKS   CONSULTED,  XUl 

RUB   IHIUMl.  DBBCUII'II-jN. 

Temoin  Oculaire.    .    La  Bataille  de   Pr.  Eylau  gagne"e  par  la  Grande 

Arme*e,  etc.     Relation   d'un  Temoin  Oculaire. 

Paris,  1807. 
Victoiresy  conquetes    .     Victoires,  conquetes,   etc.,   1792-1815.     Par  une 

Society  de  Militaires   et  de  Gens  de  Lettres. 

Paris,  1818. 
Wilson (Sir  Robert).    Remarks  on  the  Russian  Army,  etc. 

London,  1810. 
WoUeley (Viscount).     Decline    and    Fall    of    Napoleon. 

London,  1895. 

II. — Unpublished  Documents. 

Arch.  Hist.  Archives  Historiques.  Records  in  the  historical  section 
of  the  Office  of  the  General  Staff  of  the  French  Army  at  Paris,  con- 
sisting of  the  following  classes  : — 

(1)  Statements  of  the  periodical  strength  of  army  corps,  divisions,  etc. 

(2)  Reports  of  the  operations  of  the  various  corps,  divisions,  etc., 
in  1806-7,  prepared,  under  orders  of  Napoleon,  by  commanding 
officers.  The  report  on  those  of  the  3rd  corps  has  been  published. 
(See  list  of  published  works  above.)  Lannes  prepared  no  report  on 
his  command  apparently. 

(3)  Daily  correspondence  during  the  war  between  corps  commanders 
and  headquarters,  and  between  divisional  and  corps  commanders. 

(4)  Berthier's  letters  to  corps  and  divisional  commanders,  separately 
collected  from  (3).  Most,  but  not  all,  of  Berthier's  despatches  are 
printed  as  appendices  in  Dumas'  work. 

III. — Maps  and  Plans. 

The  basis  of  the  general  maps  on  Sheet  II.  is  the  Map  of  Central  Europe 
(scale  1:  300,000),  published  in  Vienna  in  1881.  The  forests  have 
been  marked  in  accordance  with  this  map,  which  has  been  supplemented 
by  reference  to  the  copies  of  portions  of  the  larger  Staff  Map  published 
with  Moltke's  Tactical  Problems,  and  to  various  district  maps  in  the 
British  Museum. 

The  map  on  Sheet  I.  has  been  prepared  from  that  of  Thiers  and  the 
Vienna  map. 

The  battle  plans  are  based  on  those  of  Alison,  Thiers,  Kausler,  Hcepfner, 
Davout,  the  Temoin  Oculaire,  etc.  The  positions  of  troops  have,  in  all 
cases,  been  marked  in  accordance  with  conclusions  arrived  at  in  the  text. 

The  spelling  of  Polish  names  varies  much,  both  in  works  and  documents. 
The  spelling  used  in  the  Vienna  map  has  been  generally  accepted,  both 
in  the  maps  and  in  the  text.  Simplicity  of  identification  has  been  aimed 
at,  rather  than  absolute  correctness  of  spelling. 


TABLE   OF    CONTENTS. 

PART  I. 
THE  SITUATION  AND   THE   CONTENDING   ARMIES. 

CHAPTER  I. 

The  State  of  Europe. 

PAGE 

Napoleon  crowned  Emperor 3 

Projected  invasion  of  England    ........  4 

Campaign  against  Austria          ........  5 

Prussia's  tortuous  policy 6 

Destruction  of  her  armies  at  Jena        .......  7 

The  Berlin  decree     . 8 

Napoleon's  precautions  against  Austria  and  England  ....  9 

His  desire  for  a  Russian  alliance 12 

His  policy  in  Turkey,  Persia,  and  Poland  .         .         .         .         .         .12 

CHAPTER  II. 
The  Armies  and  the  Leaders. 

(a)  The  French  Army. 

Napoleon's  expedients  for  increasing  his  army  after -Jena       .  .17 

Increase  of  cavalry  required 21 

Strength  of  army  for  advance  on  Warsaw 'I'l 

Napoleon's  war  contributions,  and  provision  for  supplies,  commissariat, 

hospitals,  etc.      ..........     23 

Organisation  and  quality  of  his  army .26 


XVI 


TABLE   OF  CONTENTS. 


(b)  TJie  Iiu88tan  Army.  pAGE 

The  infantry,  its  character  and  qualifications 28 

Cavalry  and  artillery         .........     32 

Cossacks  and  Bashkirs 33 

The  ofiicers,  staff,  commissariat,  hospitals,  etc.     .  34 

Strength  and  distribution  of  the  army         ....                  .37 
The  Prussian  corps 38 

(c)  The  Generals. 

Marshal  Berthier 39 

Marshal  Murat,  Grand  Duke  of  Berg 40 

Marshal  Bernadotte,  Prince  of  Ponte  Corvo 41 

Marshal  Davout .41 

Marshal  Ney 42 

Marshals  Lannes,  Soult,  and  Massena  ......     43 

Marshals  Mortier,  Bessieres,  Augereau,  and  Lefebvre  .         .  .44 

Other  French  generals — Ages  of  leaders     .         .         .  .         .45 

Marshal  Kamenskoi  and  Count  Bennigsen  ......     45 

Barclay  de  Tolly,  Bagration,  Plato w,  and  others  .  ...     46 

Lestocq  and  Kalkreuth      .........     47 

CHAPTER  III. 

The  Theatre  op  War. 

General  description  .  48 

Lakes,  forests,  and  rivers    .  .         .  ...     49 

Communications .51 

The  populations,  economic  conditions,  and  climate  .         .         .52 

Diary  of  weather,  1806-7 53,  n. 

Fortresses         ...........     54 


PART  II. 

THE  FIB  ST   CAMPAIGN—  PULTUSK  AND    GOLYMIN 


CHAPTER  I. 
The  Plan  of  Campaign,  and  the  Passages  of  the  Vistula  and  Bug. 


Gradual  development  of  Napoleon's  plans 

Advance  to  Posen  and  Warsaw  . 

Negotiations  with  Prussia 

Occupation  of  Warsaw 

Napoleon's  proclamation  to  his  army  . 

Russian  and  Prussian  retreat  from  the  Vistula 


59 
62 
64 
66 
67 
68 


TABLE   OF  CONTENTS.  xvii 

fAGE 

French  passages  of  the  Vistula  at  Warsaw,  Thorn,  and  between  them  .  68 

Allies  advance  again 70 

Davout's  passage  of  the  Bug    ........  71 

Napoleon's  orders  for  advance  beyond  the  Vistula      ....  73 

He  reaches  Warsaw  in  person  ........  75 

Russian  positions 76 


CHAPTER  II. 

Passage  op  the  Ukra,  and  Operations  op  the  24th  and  25th 
December. 

Napoleon  passes  the  Ukra  with  Davout's  corps 78 

Augereau's  passage  at  Kolozomb  and  Sochoczin  ....  83 

Positions  of  other  French  corps 84 

Operations  against  the  Prussians  from  Thorn,  and  action  of  Soldau       .  85 


CHAPTER  IH. 

The  Battles  op  Pultusk  and  Golymin,  26th  December,  1806. 

(a)  Pultush. 

Description  of  the  battle-field 89 

Bennigsen's  position 90 

Arrival  of  Lannes  on  the  field,  and  his  dispositions     ....  92 

The  French  attack  from  11  a.m.  till  2  p.m 95 

Arrival  of  d'Aultanne's  division  on  Lannes'  left          ....  98 

The  battle  from  2  p.m.  till  its  close 99 

Bennigsen  retreats  in  the  night                  101 

Remarks  on  the  battle 102 

(b)  Golymin. 

Gallitzin  is  compelled  to  fight 105 

His  first  dispositions,  and  Augereau's  attack  on  him  ....  106 

Murat  drives  in  the  Russian  cavalry 108 

Arrival  of  Davout's  two  divisions,  and  his  attack        ....  109 

Retreat  of  the  Russians HO 

Remarks  on  the  battle HI 

CHAPTER  IV. 

The  Fib8T  Winter  Quarters,  and  Events  outside  Poland. 

(a)  Winter  Quarters. 

Napoleon  stops  his  advance 114 

Russian  movements 115 


XV1U  TABLE   OF  CONTENTS. 

PAGE 

Napoleon's  orders  for  winter  quarters 115 

Orders  for  fortification  of  bridge  heads,  and  sieges  of  Danzig,  Colberg, 

and  Graudenz 119 

(b)  Silesia. 

Siege  and  fall  of  Glogau  and  Breslau,  and  defeat  of  the  Prince  of 

AnhaltPless 120 

(c)  Pomerania. 
Mortier's  operations  in  December  and  January 122 

(d)  Turlcey  and  Persia. 

Sebastiani's  mission  to  the  Porte — He  involves  Turkey  in  war  with 

Russia 123 


PART  III. 

TEE    CAMPAIGN    OF  EYLAU. 

CHAPTER  I. 

The  Movements  up  to  the  Battle  of  Eylau. 

Bennigsen  becomes  commander-in-chief    ......  127 

Lestocq's  movements  in  January       .......  128 

Ney's  unauthorised  advance  on  Koenigsberg      .....  128 

Napoleon  realises  Bennigsen's  scheme       ......  132 

His  plan  for  the  destruction  of  the  Russians      .....  133 

Ney's  narrow  escape  and  retreat        . 136 

Advance  of  Russians  and  Prussians  against  Ney  and  Bernadotte.         .  136 

Bernadotte's  escape,  and  battle  at  Mohrungen 138 

His  retreat,  and  end  of  Russian  advance    ......  142 

Situations  of  the  armies  on  the  31st  January      .....  143 

Napoleon's  scheme  disclosed  by  capture  of  a  despatch  to  Bernadotte    .  145 

Bennigsen  moves  on  Jonkowo  .         . 147 

Actions  at  Bergfried  and  Jonkowo     . 149 

Retreat  of  allies,  constantly  fighting 151 

Action  of  Hof 154 

Ney  and  Lestocq 157 

Bennigsen  retreats  on  Eylau 157 


TABLE   OF  CONTENTS. 

(  H apt KR  II. 
The  Battle  of  Eylau. 

(a)  The  A'-tinu  of  ike  ~th  February, 

Description  of  the  battle-field  ........  158 

Position  of  Bennigsen's  rearguard     .......  161 

Arrival  of  Soult  and  Murnt,  followed  by  Augereau,  and  failure  of  first 

attack 162 

Russian  rearguard  driven  on  Eylau 163 

Assault    on    Eylau,    eventually    successful,    though    not    intended 

originally  by  Napoleon .         .164 

Positions  of  the  armies  during  the  night  of  the  7tli-8th  February        .  167 

Their  strength 172 

(b)  The  Battle  of  the  Sth  February. 

Alterations  in  positions  in  the  early  morning      .         .         .         .         .174 

Commencement  of  the  battle,  at  8  a.m.,  in  bad  weather        .         .         .  176 

Repulse  of  Legrand  on  the  French  left 176 

Advance  of  Augereau  and  St.  Hilaire        ......  177 

Destruction  of  Augereau's  corps,  and  repulse  of  St.  Hilaire  .         .         .  178 

Narrow  escape  of  Napoleon  from  capture  or  death      ....  179 

Critical  situation  of  the  French  centre 180 

Murat's  great  cavalry  charge 181 

Arrival,  in  force,  of  Davout  about  noon     ......  184 

His  corps  gradually  crushes  in  the  Russian  left           ....  185 

Captures  Kutschitten  and  Anklappen 188 

Critical  position  of  Bennigsen 188 

March  of  Ney  and  Lestocq  towards  the  field  of  battle  .         .         .189 

Lestocq  arrives,  and  moves  to  support  the  Russian  left        .         .         .192 
Re-capture  of  Kutschitten  and  Anklappen  .         .         .         .         .192 

Davout,  driven  back  a  considerable  distance,  with  difficulty  maintains 

himself  in  front  of  Klein  Sausgarten  ......  194 

Ney  storms  Schloditten 195 

Repulses  a  counter-attack,  but  eventually  evacuates  the  village  .         195,  n. 

The  night  after  the  battle — Bennigsen  decides  on  retreat    .         .         .  196 

Feeble  pursuit  by  French 199 

Losses  in  the  battle          .........  200 

(c)  Strategy  and  Tactic*  of  the  Eylau  Campaign. 

The  tactics  at  Eylau 201 

The  strategy  of  the  campaign 206 

CHAPTER  III. 

Events  on  the  Narew  in  January  and  February. 

Savary  placed  in  command  of  Lannes'  corps — His  instructions  from 

Napoleon 108 

His  movements— Battle  of  Ostrolenka 209 


XX  TABLE   OF  CONTENTS. 

PART  IV. 

WINTER    QUARTERS,   AND  DANZIQ. 

CHAPTER  I. 

The  Return  to  Winter  Quarters,  and  the  Recruitment 
op  the  Armies. 

(a)  The  Return  to  Winter  Quarters. 

Napoleon  remains  some  days  near  Eylau,  making  small  demonstrations 

towards  Koenigsberg         .... 
Issues  orders  for  retirement  towards  the  Vistula 

Successful  retreat 

Napoleon's  and  Bennigsen's  proclamations 
Napoleon's  arrangement  of  his  new  winter  quarters 


PAGE 

215 
218 
219 
220 
221 


(b)  Napoleon's  Measures  for  Increasing  his  Force. 

Various  schemes  for  reinforcements — Demand  for  conscripts  of  1808,  etc.  224 

Strength  of  the  French  armies 228 

Napoleon's  energy 299 

(c)  Events  on  the  Main  Front  in  February,  March,  and  April. 

Operations  on  Bernadotte'sjront       .......  230 

Events  on  the  right — Ney  at  Guttstadt     .         .....  232 

The  armies  settle  into  winter  quarters 233 


CHAPTER  II. 
The  Siege  op  Danzig. 

10th  Corps,  under  Lefebvre,  detailed  for  siege 237 

Description  of  Danzig  and  its  garrison 238 

Completion  of  its  investment 241 

Operations  on  the  Nehrung 241 

First  parallel  opened 242 

Second  parallel  commenced 243 

Progress  of  works,  and  vigorous  defence  by  garrison  ....  243 

Capture |of  Holm  Island 247 

Kamenskoi's  attempt  to  relieve  Danzig  from  the  sea — He  is  defeated  .  249 

Capitulation  of  Danzig 255 


TABLE   OF  CONTENTS.  xxi 


CHAPTER  III. 

0PEBATI0N8  IN  SlLE8IA    AND  POMEBANIA,   ON  THE   NABEW, 
AND   ON   THE   VISTULA. 

(a)  Silesia. 

PAGE 

Sieges  of  Brieg,  Kosel,  Neisse,  Schweidnitz,  and  Glatz       .         .         .     258 

(b)  Pomerania. 

Blockade  of  Stralsund 259 

Operations  in  April,  and  armistice  with  Sweden         ....     260 

(c)  On  the  Vistula  and  the  Narexe. 

Desultory  operations  in  Napoleon's  front 261 

Massena's  command  on  the  Narew — Napoleon's  instructions  to  him       .    263 


PART  V. 

THE  FINAL    TRIUMPH— HEILSBERG,  FRIEDLAND, 
TILSIT. 

CHAPTER  I. 
The  Renewal  op  the  Campaign,  and  its  Progress  to  the  9th  June. 

(a)  The  Russian  Advance. 

Napoleon  ready  to  advance  on  the  10th  June 267 

Strength  of  the  armies .  268 

Bennigsen's  plan  for  cutting  off  Ney 270 

Lestocq's  attack  on  Bernadotte  at  Spanden 272 

Dochtorow's  attempt  against  Soult 274 

Operations  against  Ney— His  masterly  retreat — Collapse  of  the  Russian 

offensive 275 

(b)  Napoleon's  Resumption  of  the  Offensive. 

Concentration  towards  Osterode         .  278 

Bennigsen  decides  on  retreat    ........     281 

General  advance  of  the  French  right  and  centre         .         .         .         .281 

Passage  of  the  Passarge,  and  occupation  of  Guttstadt— Bennigsen  falls 

back  on  Heilsberg 282 


XX11  TABLE   OF  CONTENTS. 


CHAPTER  II. 

The  Battle  op  Heilsberg,  and  Operations  of  the  11th  to 
13th  June. 

PACK 

Description  of  the  entrenched  camp  at  Heilsberg        ....  285 

Bennigsen's  preparations  for  battle   ......  .  287 

Murat's  and    Soult's    actions  with  the  rear-guard    at  Lannau  and 

Bewerniok 288 

The  battle  on  the  plain,  up  to  7  p.m. 288 

Temporary  success,  and  eventual  repulse,  of  Soult  from  the  Russian 

main  front        .         .         .         .         .         .         .         .         .         .  292 

Lannes'  night  attack  repulsed  ...  .  .  295 

Disgraceful  scenes  during  the  night 295 

The  losses  and  the  tactics  of  the  battle      ......  296 

Operations  of  the  armies  on  the  11th  to  13th  June — Retreat  of  the 

Russians 300 


CHAPTER  III. 

The  Battle  op  Fbiedland. 

(a)  Lannes'  Action — 3  a.m.  to  noon. 

Description  of  the  battlefield 304 

Bennigsen  seizes  Friedland,  and  proposes  to  destroy  Lannes'  corps       .  305 

Lannes  hurries  forward  to  Posthenen         ......  306 

His  waiting  action  against  superior  forces  .....  306 

Bennigsen  passes  the  Alle,  and  marshals  his  army      ....  309 

(b)  Napoleon's  Arrival  on  the  Scene. 

He  reaches  Posthenen  about  noon      .         .         .         .         .         .         .311 

His  orders  for  the  battle  .         .  .  .         .         .312 

Desultory  fighting,  noon  till  5  p.m 313 


(c)  The  Renewed  Battle. 

Ney's  advance  on  Friedland  at  5  p.m. 

He  crushes  the  Russian  left  into  Friedland 

Advance  of  the  French  left       .... 

Disastrous  retreat  of  the  Russians 

Positions  on  the  night  of  the  14th-15th  June 


315 
315 
318 
320 
320 


(d)  Tactics  at  Friedland,  and  Strategy  of  the  Campaign. 

Bennigsen's  mistake  in  fighting  at  Friedland     .....  321 

Tactics  of  both  sides  in  the  battle 322 

Napoleon's  strategy  in  the  campaign 326 


TABLE  OF  CONTENTS.  xxiii 

CHAPTER  IV. 
K0EN108BERG  and  TnnT. 

PAGE 

Detaohment    of    Murat,   Soult,  and    Davout,  against    Lestocq    and 

Kamenskoi,  towards  Koenigsberg        ......  330 

Russians  and  Prussians  driven  into  the  fortress           ....  331 

Murat  and  Davout  march  for  Friedland .331 

Lestocq  evacuates,  and  Soult  occupies,  Koenigsberg    ....  332 

BennigBen's  retreat,  and  Napoleon's  advance  to  the  Niemen                   .  332 

Massena's  operations  on  the  Narew  .......  333 

Armistice  of  Tilsit 334 

Napoleon's  proclamation  to  his  army 335 

Positions  of  the  armies 336 

Negotiations  and  Treaty  of  Tilsit 337 

MAPS  AND  PLANS  (at  end  of  volume). 

Sheet  I.— General  Map  of  Theatre  of  War. 

Sheet  II. — Enlarged  General  Maps  of  part  of  the  above. 

Sheet  III. — Plans  :  (1)  Illustrating  the  Passages  of  the  Bug  and  the  Ukra ; 
(2)  Battle  of  Pultusk ;  (3)  Battle  of  Golymin ;  (4)  Battle  of  Eylau ; 
(5)  Siege  of  Danzig ;  (6)  Battle  of  Heilsberg ;  (7)  Battle  of  Friedland. 


PART   I. 

THE  SITUATION  AND  THE  CONTENDING  ARMIES. 


NAPOLEON'S 
CAMPAIGN   IN   POLAND 

1806-7. 

CHAPTER  I. 

The  State  of  Europe. 

SHORTLY  after  the  tragic  death  of  the  due  d'Enghien,  on 
the  21st  March,  1804,  Napoleon,  then  first  consul  for 
life,  took  measures  to  induce  the  French  senate  to  propose 
his  elevation  to  the  Imperial  dignity.  With  the  senate  he 
found  no  difficulty.  On  the  18th  May,  that  subservient 
body  declared  him  Emperor  of  the  French.  With  regard  to 
his  wish  to  make  the  title  hereditary,  he  had  recourse  to  a 
plebiscite,  the  result  of  which  was  an  overwhelming  majority 
in  his  favour.  On  the  2nd  December,  1804,  he  was  crowned, 
or  rather  crowned  himself,  amidst  a  scene  of  unrivalled 
pomp,  surrounded  by  a  brilliant  court  and  by  the  marshals 
whom  he  had  recently  appointed.  The  Pope  himself  had 
been  induced,  or  compelled,  to  attend  the  ceremony  and 
confer  his  benediction  on  the  new  sovereign. 

If  this  revival  of  the  sovereignty  was  received  with 
resignation,  rather  than  with  enthusiasm,  by  the  bulk  of  the 
populace,  such  was  not  the  case  with  the  army.  It  was  by 
his  matchless  military  talents,  and  by  the  brilliant  victories 

b  2 


4  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

to  which  he  had  so  often  led  the  soldiers  of  the  republic,  that 
Napoleon  had  become  their  idol  and,  with  them  at  his  back, 
had  risen  from  a  humble  lieutenant  of  artillery  to  be  the 
greatest  personality  in  France  and  in  Europe. 

It  was  as  much  by  the  necessity  for  retaining  the  favour 
of  the  army  as  by  his  own  boundless  ambition,  and  his 
schemes  for  an  universal  empire,  that  the  Emperor  was 
impelled  to  enter  upon  a  continued  career  of  conquest. 
His  designs  he  cloaked  by  pretended  overtures  to  England, 
with  whom  he  had  been  again  at  war  since  May,  1803.  He 
neither  believed  nor  hoped  that  peace  would  follow,  but  the 
negotiations  served  to  reveal  to  him  the  existence  of  an 
alliance  between  England  and  Kussia.  Austria  too,  he  knew, 
was  labouring  to  repair  the  losses  she  had  suffered  in  recent 
campaigns.  Prussia,  confident  in  the  strength  of  an  army 
which  was  believed  to  be  as  invincible  as  those  of  the  great 
Frederick,  was  bent  on  playing  her  own  game  rather  than 
that  of  Europe  generally.  She  offered  a  splendid  opportunity 
for  the  exercise  of  the  diplomatic  talents  of  Talleyrand  and 
his  master  who  soon  saw  that,  by  judicious  treatment,  she 
could  be  kept  out  of  the  field,  until  it  was  too  late  for  her 
to  enter  it  with  powerful  allies. 

Whether  Napoleon  really  ever  intended  seriously  to 
attempt  the  invasion  of  England  or  not,  his  avowed  inten- 
tions enabled  him  to  train,  on  his  northern  coasts,  the  finest 
army  he  ever  commanded.  At  that  distance,  his  preparations 
were  far  removed  from  the  view  of  Austria,  who  little 
thought  that  an  army  collected  at  a  point  so  remote  from  her 
frontier  could  be  used  against  her  with  such  rapidity  and 
deadly  effect  as  it  presently  was. 

At  the  same  time,  the  Emperor  was  busy  strengthening 
himself  on  his  continental  frontier.  Holland,  soon  to  be 
erected  into  a  monarchy  for  bestowal  on  his  brother  Louis, 
was  brought  under  French  control.  The  Italian  republic 
was  induced  to  declare  Napoleon  king  of  Italy. 

It  was  now  time  for  him  to  precipitate  matters.     His 


THE   STAT/:    OF    EUROPE.  5 

iation  at  Milan  with  the  iron  crown  of  Lombardy,  the 
incorporation  of  the  republics  of  Genoa  and  Lucca,  as  well 
as  other  northern  Italian  states,  his  military  celebration  on 
ilif  field  of  Marengo,  were  so  many  insults  calculated  to 
excite  the  anger  and  the  fear  of  Austria.  It  was  on  Austria 
that  the  Emperor  had  resolved  to  fall  first.  In  August,  1805, 
that  power  joined  the  coalition  of  England  and  Russia.  To 
the i n  was  added  Sweden.  Prussia  alone,  refusing  to  join 
them,  allowed  herself  to  be  led  astray  by  the  bait  of  Hanover 
which  she  coveted,  and  which  Napoleon  insidiously  dangled 
before  her  greedy  eyes.  He  had  already  occupied  it  in 
pursuance  of  his  war  with  England.  On  his  south-western 
frontier,  his  alliance  with  Spain  and  Portugal  left  him  free 
from  anxiety. 

In  the  end  of  July,  1805,  Sir  R.  Calder's  naval  action 
convinced  Napoleon  that  all  hope  of  an  invasion  of  England 
was,  for  the  present,  at  an  end.  He  had  no  longer  any 
motive  for  delaying  his  meditated  attack  on  Austria. 

That  power,  which  had  long  seen  that  war  was  inevitable 
sooner  or  later,  hoping  to  steal  a  march  on  her  wakeful 
adversary  whilst  he  was  occupied  with  his  schemes  for  the 
invasion  of  England,  moved,  early  in  September,  into  Bavaria, 
a  state  allied  to  France.  In  doing  so  she,  notwithstanding 
her  previous  experience  of  him,  underrated  Napoleon  and, 
moreover,  moved  at  least  two  months  before  she  could  expect 
the  arrival  of  the  Russian  army  advancing  to  her  assistance. 
The  Emperor's  decision  to  hurl  upon  Austria  the  army  of 
England  was  taken  at  once.  Every  necessary  order  for  the 
march  from  Boulogne  to  the  Danube  had  already  been 
prepared.  It  was  executed  with  unparalleled  rapidity  and 
exactness.  On  the  20th  October,  the  unhappy  Austrian 
general  Mack,  surrounded  in  Ulm  on  all  sides  by  the  French, 
capitulated  with  30,000  men,  all  that  remained  under  his 
command  of  the  80,000  with  whom  he  had  invaded  Bavaria 
six  weeks  before.  The  very  next  day,  Napoleon's  power  at 
sea  was  for  ever  destroyed  by  Nelson  at  Trafalgar.     A  tew 


6  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

days  later,  the  Austrian  forces  in  Italy,  under  the  Archduke 
Charles,  were  compelled  to  retreat  before  Massena  in  the 
hope  of  covering  Vienna,  now  threatened  by  Napoleon's 
advance.  Negotiations  for  an  armistice  failed,  owing  to 
Napoleon's  excessive  demands. 

Prussia  had,  at  last,  come  to  a  sense  of  the  false  position 
she  was  occupying.  She  attempted  no  resistance  to  the 
invasion  of  Hanover,  now  almost  entirely  clear  of  French 
soldiers,  by  the  allied  troops  of  Eussia,  Sweden,  and  England. 
The  Prussian  cabinet  had  taken  offence  at  the  violation  of 
Anspach  territory,  by  the  march  through  it  of  French  troops 
on  their  way  to  the  Danube.  So  strong  was  the  feeling 
against  France  that  Duroc,  Napoleon's  ambassador,  left 
Berlin  whilst  the  King  and  the  Czar,  who  had  arrived  there, 
solemnly  swore  to  rearrange  Europe  on  the  lines  of  the 
treaty  of  Luneville.  Haugwitz  was  despatched  to  inform 
Napoleon  of  this  intention  and,  in  the  event  of  its  non- 
acceptance  by  him,  to  declare  war  against  him  on  the  part 
of  Prussia.  On  the  15th  December,  Prussia  had  decided  on 
a  course  which,  if  she  had  followed  it  two  months  earlier, 
placed  as  she  was  on  the  flank  of  the  line  of  march  from 
Boulogne  to  the  Danube,  would  have  frustrated  the  Emperor's 
whole  plan.  Whilst  she  was  making  up  her  mind  to  an 
honest  course,  Napoleon  had  entered  Vienna,  had  moved  to 
Briinn,  and  had  finally,  on  the  anniversary  of  his  coronation, 
inflicted  on  the  Austrians  and  their  Kussian  allies  the 
decisive  defeat  of  Austerlitz.  Haugwitz,  arriving  at  the 
French  headquarters  with  the  Prussian  ultimatum  in  his 
pocket,  was  put  off  till  after  the  impending  battle.  Its 
result  caused  him  to  take  a  very  different  course,  to  suppress 
the  ultimatum,  the  terms  of  which  Napoleon  could  guess, 
to  offer  Prussia's  congratulations  on  the  victory,  and  to  con- 
clude a  disgraceful  treaty  by  which  his  master  bartered  the 
honour  of  Prussia  for  the  cession  of  Hanover. 

Austria  defeated,  not  crushed,  agreed  to  the  terms  of  the 
treaty  of  Presburg,  to  cede  territory  to  Italy  and  to  Bavaria, 


THE   STATE   OF  EUROPE.  7 

to  pay  an  indemnity,  to  recognise  the  recent  changes  in 
Italy,  and  the  elevation  of  Bavaria  and  Wurtemburg  from 
electorates  to  kingdoms. 

Everything  prospered  for  Napoleon.  The  allied  invaders 
withdrew  from  Hanover;  Naples,  attacked  by  the  French, 
shortly  came  under  the  rule  of  Joseph  Buonaparte. 

Having  disposed,  for  the  time  being,  of  Austria,  the 
Emperor  turned  upon  Prussia.  He  had  always  intended  to 
do  so ;  her  perfidious  conduct  had  rendered  him  more  deter- 
mined than  ever  to  destroy  her.  He  could  not  trust  her, 
even  had  he  wished  to.  Prussia  had  embroiled  herself  with 
England  by  accepting  from  Napoleon  the  cession  of  Hanover. 
Under  pretext  of  defending  his  new  ally  against  Great  Britain, 
he  heaped  insults  on  her,  the  last  being  the  creation  of  the 
Confederation  of  the  Khine  as  a  standing  threat  against  her, 
and  a  great  base  for  French  operations,  whether  against 
Prussia  or  against  Austria. 

After  Austerlitz,  the  Kussian  troops  had  retired ;  but  the 
Czar  had  not  been  a  party  to  the  negotiations  at  Presburg, 
and  his  hand  was  still  free.  Negotiations  between  Napoleon 
and  Kussia  and  England,  during  the  early  months  of  1806, 
broke  down.  Prussia  had  been  lashed  to  fury  by  the  dis- 
covery that  Napoleon  had  attempted  to  bribe  England  with 
Hanover,  which  he  had  so  recently  ceded  to  Prussia. 

Wishing  to  strike  her  before  succour  could  reach  her 
from  distant  Kussia,  the  Emperor  anticipated  her  ultimatum 
by  marching  against  her  towards  the  Elbe. 

The  ultimatum  was  presented  on  the  1st  October,  1806 ; 
fourteen  days  later  the  Prussian  army  had  been  destroyed 
at  the  fatal  double  battle  of  Jena  and  Auerstadt.  The  broken 
remnants  were  pursued  to  the  Baltic  by  Soult,  Murat, 
Bernadotte,  Ney,  and  Lannes.  Bliicher  was  driven  north- 
wards to  the  Danish  frontier,  where  he  surrendered  with 
the  last  of  his  force.  Magdeburg,  with  a  large  garrison, 
capitulated  to  Ney  on  the  8th  November;  Hanover  was 
occupied  by  an  army  under  Louis  Buonaparte  from  Holland  ; 


8  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Saxony,  detached  from  the  Prussian  alliance,  was  eventually 
attached  (12th  December)  to  that  of  Napoleon.  The  Saxon 
Elector's  alliance  was  cemented  by  his  promotion  to  a  king- 
dom. No  considerable  organised  hostile  force  remained  to 
confront  the  Emperor  west  of  the  Oder.  A  small  fraction, 
all  that  remained  to  the  King  of  the  Prussian  army,  alone 
succeeded  in  retiring  to  the  Vistula  and  East  Prussia.  The 
Eussians  were  still  far  off  to  the  east  of  the  Vistula  when, 
on  the  26th  October,  1806,  Napoleon,  preceded  by  Davout, 
the  victor  of  Auerstadt,  entered  Berlin  in  triumph. 

In  less  than  a  year  he  had  disastrously  defeated  Austria, 
had  forced  the  Eussian  army  to  retreat,  and  had  absolutely 
broken  the  power  of  Prussia.  In  all  Europe  there  remained 
but  two  substantial  bulwarks  against  the  tide  of  French 
aggression — Eussia  and  England. 

Against  the  latter,  at  sea,  the  Emperor,  since  the  battle 
of  Trafalgar,  had  been  powerless.  To  ruin  her,  as  he 
thought  possible,  in  her  commerce,  he,  on  the  21st  November, 
issued  from  Berlin  his  famous  decree  declaring  the  British 
islands  in  a  state  of  blockade  and  all  English  subjects,  who 
might  be  found  in  the  countries  under  his  control,  prisoners 
of  war.  British  merchandise  in  those  countries  was  con- 
fiscated, and  all  entry  of  English  vessels  into  continental 
ports  was  prohibited.  Much  as  has  been  said  against  the 
Berlin  decree,  it  must  always  be  remembered  that  it  recited 
some  principles,  such  as  the  necessity  for  a  blockade  being 
efficient  in  order  to  be  valid,  which  have  since  been  accepted 
by  most  of  the  civilised  powers.  Napoleon  did  not  pretend 
to  carry  out  these  principles.  His  argument  was  that,  as 
Britain  refused  to  admit  them,  she  must  be  compelled  to  do 
so  by  other  methods. 

Napoleon's  position  at  Berlin  was  this.  He  was  in 
effective  occupation  of  the  whole  of  Northern  Europe  as  far 
as  Berlin,  his  rear  was  safe  owing  to  his  alliance  with  Spain 
and  Portugal.  In  front  of  him,  at  a  great  distance  still, 
were  the  armies  of  Eussia  which  had,  in  the  first  instance, 


THE  STATE   OF  EURO  Pi:.  9 

been  designed  only  to  support,  as  auxiliaries,  the  great  army 
of  Prussia,  now  destroyed.  Henceforth  they  were  to  bear 
the  whole  brunt  of  Napoleon's  onslaught. 

His  right  flank,  as  he  advanced  against  the  Eussians, 
would  be  threatened  by  Austria,  who,  humiliated  and  sorely 
wounded  by  the  previous  year's  campaign,  was  yet  far  from 
being  a  negligeable  quantity.  Her  finances  were  crippled, 
but,  if  she  threw  in  her  lot  with  England  and  Eussia,  she 
might  well  hope  for  pecuniary  assistance  from  the  former.* 
The  Archduke  Charles  was  reorganising  the  army,  and  had 
already  collected  a  considerable  force  in  Bohemia  and  Silesia. 

If  Austria  should,  however,  decide  to  renew  the  struggle, 
she  would  still  have  to  reckon  with  the  army  which  Napoleon 
maintained  in  Northern  Italy  after  the  conquest  of  Naples.! 
That  army,  as  it  was  drained  of  the  best  French  troops  for 
employment  in  Germany,  consisted,  no  doubt,  largely  of 
inferior  troops.  Nevertheless,  it  was  a  power  to  be  con- 
sidered, and  Austria  would  be  bound  to  defend  her  southern 
frontiers  with  at  least  80,000  or  100,000  men. 

Napoleon's  left  flank  in  Germany,  and  his  rear  in  France, 
were,  now  that  the  control  of  the  sea  had  passed  to  England, 
open  to  a  descent  by  the  English,  the  Swedes,  and  the 
Eussians,  on  the  coasts  of  France,  Holland,  and  Germany. 
The  Swedes  held  a  footing  on  the  German  shore  in  Stralsund 
and  Swedish  Pomerania.     It  was  hardly  likely  at  any  time 

*  Austria's  position  was  analogous  to  that  which  had  been  occupied  by 
Prussia  in  the  preceding  year.  By  throwing  her  weight  into  the  scale  against 
the  Emperor,  if  she  could  not  entirely  prevent  his  farther  advance  for  the  time 
being,  she  could,  at  any  rate,  most  seriously  embarrass  him.  On  the  other  hand, 
she  felt  that  a  renewal  of  the  war  so  soon,  in  violation  of  the  treaty  of  Presburg, 
would  justly  expose  her  to  the  charge  of  perfidy,  whilst,  if  defeated  again, 
she  could  expect  nothing  short  of  annihilation  at  the  hands  of  the  incensed 
Napoleon.  To  assist  Prussia  she  could  hardly  feel  bound,  looking  to  the  selfish 
and  treacherous  policy  pursued  by  the  North  German  'kingdom  in  1805,  when 
Austria  was  herself  in  such  dire  distress.  For  that  conduct  the  debacle  of  Jena 
seemed  to  Austria  little  more  than  a  just  retribution.  The  interests  of  Europe 
called  Austria  again  to  the  breach.  She  was  not  unselfish,  or  far-seeing,  enough 
to  expose  herself  to  the  awful  risk. 

t  This  army  was  entirely  separate  from  that  guarding  the  Neapolitan  kingdom. 


10  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

that  a  descent  would  be  attempted  in  France;  it  became 
more  and  more  unlikely,  as  the  Emperor  succeeded  in  his 
advance  towards  Russia.  The  utmost  expeditionary  force 
which  Napoleon  considered  England  capable  of  landing  was 
about  25,000  men.*  The  attempt  on  Holland,  in  1799,  by 
England  and  Eussia,  had  not  had  an  encouraging  success.  The 
danger  to  the  French  left  and  rear  was  distinctly  less  than  was 
to  be  apprehended  from  a  renewal  of  the  war  by  Austria. 
The  fear  of  this  last  eventuality  hung  perpetually,  during 
the  wars  of  1806-7,  like  the  sword  of  Damocles,  over 
the  head  of  Napoleon,  f  His  correspondence  teems  with 
references  to  the  subject,  and  much  of  the  negotiations  which 
he  carried  on,  during  the  latter  part  of  the  campaign,  was 
mainly  with  a  view  to  avoid  giving  offence  to  Austria, 
whose  mediation  had  been  offered.  On  the  26th  October  % 
he  inquires,  through  his  ambassador  at  Vienna,  as  to  the 
truth  of  reports  that  the  Archduke  Charles  was  collecting 
80,000  men  at  Prague.  If  so,  a  remonstrance  is  to  be 
addressed  to  the  Austrian  Court,  which  is  to  be  told  that 
such  measures  are  unnecessary  for  maintenance  of  the 
neutrality  promised  by  it.  On  the  4th  November,§  he 
writes  to  Eugene  Beauharnais,  explaining  how  he  intends  to 
place  at  the  disposal  of  the  Viceroy  60,000  men,  including 
Marmont's  corps  in  Dalmatia.  That,  he  thinks,  should 
suffice  to  detain  100,000  Austrian  troops  on  the  southern 
frontier,  should  that  power  sufficiently  recover  from  its 
alarm  at  the  fate  of  Prussia  to  assume  a  hostile  attitude. 
Eugene  is  to  be  ready  to  take  the  field  on  the  1st  December. 
To  his  brother  Joseph  the  Emperor  writes,  on  the  same  date, 
in  similar  terms,  ||   remarking  that  Austria  appears    to  be 

*  Corr.  12,135. 

t  Austria  defended  her  armaments  partly  on  the  ground  of  fear  of  a  fresh 
French  invasion.  "  Austria  took  the  opportunity  to  allege  fears  for  her 
neutrality  ;  as  if  we  had  not  enough  to  do  with  the  winter  and  the  Muscovite, 
she  pretended  to  think  that  we  should  pass  the  gorges  of  her  mountains  " 
(Savary,  iii.  2). 

t  Corr.  11,088.  §  Corr.  11,172.  Corr.  11,173. 


THE  STATE   OF  EUROPE.  11 

arming  under  pretext  of  assuring  her  safety  as  a  neutral. 
On  the  7th  November,*  he  again  desires  that  the  Emperor 
of  Austria  be  informed  that  his  neutrality  only  is  required, 
not  his  active  alliance,  but  that  Napoleon  cannot  view  with 
equanimity  the  collection  of  60,000  or  80,000  men  on  his 
flank,  or  regard  such  action  as  evincing  a  genuine  desire  to 
maintain  neutrality.  On  the  14th  March,  1807,t  he  writes 
that  he  already  has  80,000  men  in  Italy,  and  hopes  shortly 
to  have  90,000.  This  should  fully  occupy  120,000  Austrians. 
He  would  really  prefer  the  alliance  of  Russia  to  that  of 
Austria,  but  with  the  latter  he  wants  peace.  On  the  19th 
and  20th  of  the  same  month  J  he  instructs  Talleyrand  to 
inform  Austria  that  her  conduct  has  necessitated  the  increase 
which  he  is  making  to  his  forces,  and  to  say,  unofficially, 
that  Austrian  mediation  can  be  considered  only  on  condition 
of  her  abstention  from  arming.  He  adds  that  he  suspects 
Russia  of  endeavouring  to  draw  Austria  into  the  coalition. 
On  the  9th  April  §  he  calls  Talleyrand's  attention  to  a 
suspicious  correspondence  between  the  Russian  General 
Essen  and  the  Austrian  cordon  on  the  Gallician  frontier. 
On  the  16th  ||  he  agrees  to  accept  the  offer  of  mediation 
tendered  by  the  Austrian  Emperor.  On  the  30th  May  H  he 
writes  to  Brune,  now  commanding  the  army  of  observation 
in  Germany,  pointing  out  that,  should  Austria  move,  that 
marshal  would  be  able  to  meet  her  with  60,000  men  of  his 
own  army,  reinforced  by  20,000  Poles  and  20,000  men,  under 
Jerome  Buonaparte,  in  Silesia. 

These  references  suffice  to  show  how  constantly  Napoleon 
was  harassed  by  the  dread  of  an  Austrian  intervention,  and 
the  means  by  which  he  sought  to  prevent  or  defeat  it. 

He  saw,  from  Berlin,  in  front  of  him  the  Russian  armies 
— now  preparing  to  meet  him  as  his  principal  adversary.  He 
felt  that,  until  he  could  gain  over  or  crush  the  great  Northern 
power,  he  could  never  hope  for  success  in  his  contest  against 

*  Con.  11,194.  t  Corr.  12,028.  J  Corr.  12,082,  and  12,098. 

§  Corr-  12,333.  1|  Corr.  12,391.  1  Corr.  12,704. 


12  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Great  Britain.  He  would  probably  have  preferred  to  gain 
Eussia  to  his  side  without  having  to  embark  on  an  expedition 
against  her  which  he  himself  described  as  the  greatest  project 
which  he  had  ever  undertaken.*  He  told  Talleyrand,  as  has 
just  been  mentioned,  that  he  would  prefer  the  alliance  of 
Eussia  to  that  of  Austria.  But  the  former  power  had  been 
too  honourable  in  her  adherence  to  her  engagements  to  give 
much  hope  of  her  detachment  from  them,  until  she  had  been 
beaten  in  the  field. 

To  embarrass  her  to  the  utmost,  Napoleon  sought,  success- 
fully, to  embroil  her  with  Turkey.  He  incited  Persia  also  to 
wage  war  on  her  rear.  Eussia,  unfortunately  for  Europe  and 
herself,  fell  into  the  trap ;  at  a  time  when  every  available 
man  should  have  been  at  liberty  to  fight  against  Napoleon, 
she  hampered  herself  by  the  detachment  of  a  large  army 
against  the  Turks. 

Throughout  the  war  with  the  French,  the  necessity  for 
carrying  on  this  subsidiary  war  with  Turkey  was  a  serious 
drain  on  Eussian  resources,  whilst  the  assistance  which 
Napoleon  gave,  through  Marmont,  in  Dalmatia,  to  Turkey 
in  no  way  weakened  his  power  in  Germany  or  Italy.f 
He  promised  many  things  to  the  Sultan;  in  the  end,  he 
deserted  the  ally  who  had  served  him  to  such  good 
purpose. 

Before  closing  this  brief  account  of  the  general  political 
situation  in  Europe  towards  the  close  of  1806,  a  few  words 
must  be  said  on  the  subject  of  Poland. 

The  three  partitions,  in  the  latter  half  of  the  preceding 
century,  of  the  Polish  kingdom,  had  finally  resulted  in  the 

»  Corr.  11,292.    Letter  to  Lacuee,  dated  22nd  November,  1806. 

t  Napoleon  (or  rather  Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  336)  at  one  time 
estimated  Michelson's  army  on  the  Danube  at  80,000,  which  was  certainly  m 
excess  of  its  real  strength.  Two  divisions  were  presently  withdrawn  for 
employment  in  Poland,  and  Berthier,  writing  on  the  29th  of  January,  1807, 
to  Marmont,  puts  the  Russian  army  of  Moldavia  at  30,000  (Arch.  Hist.,  Berthier's 
correspondence).  The  prevention  of  such  a  number  from  joining  the  Russian 
army  in  front  of  him  was  of  the  greatest  advantage  to  the  Emperor. 


THE  STATE   OF  EUROPE.  13 

acquisition  by  the  three  partitioning  powers  of  the  following 
shares : — 

Square  leagues.  Population. 

Russia  ...  23,247  5,764,398 

Prussia  ...  6,707  2,596,389 

Austria  ...  8,296  3,600,000* 

The  recollection  of  their  former  independence,  and  the 
hope  of  its  recovery,  were  strong  in  the  hearts  of  the  Polish 
people,  especially  in  those  of  the  nobles.  They  felt  that  from 
the  three  powers  which  had  absorbed  them  they  had  no  hope. 
The  advent  of  Napoleon,  the  effacement  of  Prussia  in  the 
late  campaign,  and  the  defeat  of  Austria  in  1805,  afforded 
them  grounds  of  expectation. 

No  sooner  had  Napoleon's  armies  commenced  their 
eastward  progress  from  Berlin  than  he  was  besieged  with 
deputations  and  petitions  from  the  Poles,  setting  forth  their 
hopes  and  urging  him  to  reconstitute  the  monarchy.! 

His  position  in  regard  to  this  question  was  extremely 
delicate.  It  was  certain  that,  whatever  differences  might 
exist  between  Kussia,  Prussia,  and  Austria  on  other  subjects, 
they  would  be  unanimous  in  their  opposition  to  any  proposal 
for  the  undoing  of  the  partitions  of  Poland.  Prussia's  feel- 
ings, in  her  present  abased  condition,  he  could  afford  to 
disregard.  Austria  he  could  not  treat  in  the  same  way,  for 
her  neutrality  was  all  important  to  him  in  his  advance  against 
Kussia.  The  latter  power  he  was  anxious,  when  he  should 
have  defeated  her,  to  bind  to  his  own  side  in  the  struggle 
against  England.  When,  therefore,  the  Austrian  Cabinet,  in 
reply  to  his  remonstrances  on  the  subject  of  its  assembly  of 
troops  in  Gallicia,  urged  the  danger  of  insurrectionary  m  ove- 
ments  in  Prussian  Poland  extending  to  Gallicia,  Napoleon 
agreed  not  to  allow  his  incitements  of  the  Poles  to  be  extended 

*  Wihon,  p.  67,  note. 

t  De  Fezensac  (p.  125)  says  that  Lannes  and  Augereau,  marching  to  the 
left  of  Posen,  found  the  Polish  country-folk  far  less  enthusiastic  for  revolt 
against  Prussia,  and  that  the  movement  was  mainly  supported  by  the  nobles. 


14  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

to  the  Austrian  portion  *  At  the  same  time,  he  sounded 
that  Government  on  a  proposal  that  it  should  cede  to  him 
its  share  of  Poland  in  exchange  for  Prussian  territory  in 
Silesia,  which  had  been  wrested  by  Frederick  the  Great  from 
Maria  Theresa.!  The  bait  was  tempting.  To  his  own  honour, 
and  the  advantage  of  Europe,  the  Emperor  of  Austria  avoided 
the  snare  which  was  designed  to  embroil  him  with  Prussia. 

For  the  reasons  which  have  above  been  stated,  Napoleon 
also  resolved  not  to  irritate  Kussia  by  inciting  the  Poles 
subject  to  her  to  insurrection,  and  he,  throughout  the  cam- 
paign, restricted  his  operations  in  this  sense  to  the  Prussian 
share  of  Poland. 

To  the  deputations  which  approached  him  at  Berlin 
and  at  Warsaw,  he  replied  vaguely,  "France  has  never 
recognised  the  different  partitions  of  Poland ;  nevertheless,  I 
cannot  proclaim  your  independence  until  you  have  decided 
to  defend  your  rights  as  a  nation  with  arms  in  your  hands 
by  every  sort  of  sacrifice,  even  that  of  life.  You  have  been 
reproached  with  having,  in  your  continued  civil  dissensions, 
lost  sight  of  the  interests  of  your  country.  Instructed  by 
your  misfortunes,  reunite  yourselves  and  prove  to  the  world 
that  one  spirit  animates  the  whole  Polish  nation."  % 

According  to  de  Fezensac,  Napoleon  was  furious  with 
Murat  for  forwarding  one  petition  from  Warsaw,  in  which 
it  was  prayed  that  the  Polish  kingdom  might  be  reconstituted 
under  a  French  general.     The  Emperor  discerned  in  it  the 

*  To  Baron  de  Comeau  the  Emperor  said,  "  Poland  !  so  much  the  worse  for 
them  1  They  have  allowed  themselves  to  be  partitioned.  They  are  no  longer 
a  nation,  they  have  no  public  spirit.  The  nobles  are  too  much,  the  people  too 
little.  It  is  a  dead  body  to  which  life  must  be  restored  before  making  anything 
of  it.  I  will  make  soldiers  and  officers  of  them  ;  afterwards  I  will  see.  I  shall 
take  Prussia's  portion.  I  shall  have  Posen  and  Warsaw,  but  I  will  not  touch 
Cracow,  Gallicia,  or  Wilna  "  {Comeau,  281). 

t  Corr.  11,339.  Instructing  Andreossy,  his  new  Ambassador  at  Vienna,  the 
Emperor  says  he  wishes  to  force  nothing ;  but  if  Austria  would  be  inclined  to 
exchange  Gallicia  for  part  of  Silesia,  he  is  ready  to  treat,  either  openly  or 
secretly.     This  was  early  in  December,  1806. 

t  Corr.  11,279,  dated  19th  November,  1806. 


THE  STATE   OF  EUROPE.  1  j 

handiwork  of  his  ambitious  brother-in-law  and  that  he  was, 
doubtless,  the  French  general  suggested.* 

The  Emperor's  replies,  whilst  making  no  definite  promises, 
were  sufficiently  encouraging  to  assure  to  him  the  moral  and 
material  support  of  the  Poles  in  the  ensuing  campaign,  and  to 
deprive  Prussia  of  all  hope  of  recruiting  her  shattered  army 
by  voluntary  enlistment  in  Poland.  It  was,  however,  most 
desirable  for  the  Emperor  to  support  the  Poles,  in  their 
resistance  to  Prussia,  by  occupying  their  territory,  especially 
Warsaw,  their  ancient  capital,  and  by  conferring  on  their 
representatives  at  least  a  nominal  share  in  the  administration 
of  the  country. 

As  soon,  therefore,  as  he  was  in  possession  of  Warsaw,  he 
constituted  a  provisional  government  of  seven  of  the  chief 
nobles.  The  country  was  parcelled  off  into  six  departments, 
the  boundaries  of  which  were  already  known.f  The  branches 
of  justice,  the  interior,  finance,  war,  and  police,  were  assigned 
to  separate  members  of  the  government,  which  voted  by 
majority  and  was  empowered,  on  the  report  of  the  depart- 
mental director,  to  pass  necessary  laws  and  orders.}: 

In  West  Prussia,  Napoleon  had  already  organised  his 
own  government,  placing  at  the  head  of  the  civil  departments 
Daru,  and  at  that  of  the  military  Clarke.§ 

*  Be  Fezemac,  p.  125. 

t  Warsaw,  Posen,  Kalisch,  Bromberg,  Plock,  Bialystok. 

X  Corr.  11,630,  decree  of  14th  January,  1807. 

§  West  Prussia  was  divided  into  four  departments,  having  their  capitals  at 
Berlin,  Custrin,  Stettin,  and  Magdeburg.  The  existing  local  administrative 
officers  were  generally  retained,  but  the  Emperor  appointed  his  own  men  to  the 
general  financial  control,  and  for  the  collection  of  the  contributions  with  which 
the  towns  and  states  had  been  assessed  (Savary,  iii.  3). 

Napoleon  was  not  seriously  troubled  by  disturbances  in  Germany.  His 
hold  on  the  country  was  too  firm,  and  the  strength  of  the  army  of  occupation 
too  great,  to  encourage  insurrection. 

The  Hessian  troops,  from  which  he  thought  trouble  might  arise,  were  got  out 
of  the  way  in  Holland,  France  and  Naples  (Savary,  iii.  2). 

An  attempted  insurrection  in  Hesse  Cassel,  the  Elector  of  which  had  been 
deprived  by  Napoleon  of  his  territories,  was  put  down  in  a  manner  calculated  to 
discourage  any  further  outbreaks. 


16  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Silesia  was  yet  unconquered,  and  its  great  fortresses 
remained  to  be  subdued. 

Such,  briefly,  was  the  situation  of  Europe  in  November, 
1806.  Napoleon,  holding  all  the  territory  of  France,  Italy, 
Holland,  and  Northern  Germany  up  to  the  Oder,  was  in 
possession  of  immense  resources  in  men,  money,  and  material. 
His  rear  was  safe  from  the  direction  of  Spain,  and  the 
garrison  left  in  France  was  ample  to  repel  any  descent 
likely  to  be  made  by  England  on  her  coasts.  Austria  was  a 
danger  to  his  right  flank  ;  but,  lying,  as  she  did,  between  the 
French  armies  in  Germany,  and  in  Northern  Italy,  and 
crippled  by  her  recent  disasters,  she  could  only  intervene  at 
great  risk  to  herself.  Sweden  was  only  dangerous  as  the 
ally  of  England,  in  the  event  of  a  descent  by  sea  on  the 
Dutch  or  German  coasts.  Turkey  was  in  active  alliance 
with  the  French. 


CHAPTER  II. 

The  Armies  and  the  Leaders. 

(a)  THE  FRENCH  ARMY. 

IT  has  already  been  said  that  the  army  which  Napoleon  led 
against  Austria  in  the  autumn  of  1805  was  the  finest 
he  ever  commanded.  From  that  year  commenced  its  decline, 
slow  at  first,  more  rapid  as  the  youth  of  the  country  was 
exhausted  by  his  overdrafts.  It  was  in  1805  that  he  first 
drew  upon  the  resources  of  the  future,  by  calling  out,  before 
their  time,  the  conscripts  of  1806.  They,  however,  formed 
no  part  of  the  army  which  fought  at  Ulm  and  at  Austerlitz. 
As  in  1805,  so  in  1806,  Napoleon  overdrew  his  account  by 
calling  out,  nearly  a  year  before  their  time,  the  conscripts  of 
1807.  At  this  period  the  conscription  was  expected  to  yield 
annually  about  80,000  recruits.  There  would  thus  be  in  the 
French  army,  when  the  advance  against  the  Russian  armies 
commenced,  80,000  recruits  called  out  and  trained  a  year 
before  their  proper  time  of  service,  and  shortly  afterwards, 
80,000  more  also  anticipated  by  nearly  a  year,  and  only 
commencing  their  training.* 

Even  the  recruits  of  the  conscription  of  1806  were  not, 
apparently,  provided  with  uniforms  by  the  22nd  November ; 
Napoleon  on  that  date  had  to  urge  the  completion  of  their 
equipment,  as  well  as  that  of  the  conscripts  of  1807.f     He 

*  Napoleon  called  for  the  conscripts  of  1807,  in  January  of  that  year,  instead 
of  September.     Corr.  11,282,  dated  21st  November,  to  Senate, 
t  Corr.  11,291.    . 

C 


18  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

proposed  to  call  to  the  front  the  recruits  of  1806,  now  fairly 
trained,  though  he  would  be  prepared  to  leave  20,000  in 
reserve  for  the  present.  That  would  give  him  60,000  for  the 
front.* 

He  recognised,  as  has  been  related  already,  that  the 
advance  against  Kussia  was  the  greatest  enterprise  he  had 
ever,  so  far,  entered  upon.f  Operating  at  so  great  a  distance, 
he  would  necessarily  require  forces  far  in  excess  of  those 
which  had  sufficed  for  the  destruction  of  Prussia.  To  provide 
these  additional  men,  he  now  employed  various  methods. 
He  had  to  think  not  only  of  the  army  at  the  actual  scene  of 
operations,  but  also  of  that  to  be  maintained  in  Italy  as  a 
threat  to  Austria  on  her  southern  border,  of  forces  to  repel 
any  attempt  from  the  sea  on  the  Dutch  or  German  coasts 
and,  finally,  of  the  troops  necessary  to  protect  the  ports  of 
France  against  a  possible  descent. 

The  last  was  the  least  important;  for  a  descent  on 
the  French  coast  by  England  was  not  probable  and,  if 
undertaken,  would  not  be  likely  to  be  made  in  great 
force. 

Napoleon  calculated  that  early  in  December  he  had  in 
Germany,  with  the  Grand  Army,  1400  companies  of  infantry 
averaging  123  men  each.f  He  had  61  regiments;  each 
regiment,  as  a  rule,  consisted  of  3  battalions,  one  of  which 
was  left  in  France  as  a  depot.  But  a  few  regiments  had  4 
battalions,  3  on  service  and  one  in  depot.  Of  these  he  had 
18  in  Germany.  He  designed  to  increase  the  companies  to 
140  men  each,  which  would  give  a  total  of  nearly  200,000 
for  the  infantry  in  Germany. 

The  cavalry  regiments  he  proposed  to  raise  to  5  squadrons 
of  200  sabres  each.§ 

Kellerman,  who  was  in  charge  of  the  depots  on  the 
eastern  frontier  of  France  and  in  Western  Germany,  was 

*  Corr.  11,292,  to  Lacu^e,  dated  22nd  November,  1806. 
t  Corr.  11,292,  as  above.  %  Corr.  11,478,  to  Lacue'e. 

§  Corr.  11,238,  dated  12th  November,  1806. 


THE  ARMIES  AND    THE  LEADERS.  19 

ordered  to  send  to  the  front  8,000  or  10,000  conscripts,  whom 
he  would  have  collected  by  the  15th  November.*  Irrespective 
of  these,  he  was  to  form  eight  provisional  battalions,  of  which 
the  nucleus  was  to  be  one  company  sent  back 'from  each 
of  eight  3rd  battalions  serving  with  the  Grand  Army.  To 
this  nucleus  were  to  be  added  conscripts  who  had  only 
undergone  eight  or  ten  days'  training,  who  would  be  then  sent 
to  continue  their  training  with  the  provisional  battalions  at 
Magdeburg  or  Cassel.  As  their  training  progressed,  they 
were  to  be  formed  into  companies,  then  into  battalions, 
finally  into  provisional  regiments  for  the  march  to  the  front. 
As  they  marched  their  training  continued.  Men  who  were 
left  behind,  sick  or  footsore,  by  one  provisional  battalion,  at 
any  of  the  halting-stages,  were  gathered  up  by  the  next 
to  pass.f     As  these  battalions  passed  through  the  principal 

*  Corr.  11,146,  dated  2nd  November,  1806. 

|  Kellerman's  report  of  his  proceedings  as  commander  of  the  Army  of  Reserve 
is  a  document  full  of  interest.  He  says  that  at  first  he  was  left  with  only 
enough  officers  and  non-commissioned  officers  to  carry  on  the  administration, 
and  the  men  were  nothing  but  sick,  wounded,  and  convalescents.  He  was 
dependent  on  the  conscripts  of  1806,  who  began  to  reach  him  in  October.  He 
considered  that  in  one  month  he  could  turn  out  a  fair  soldier,  understanding  his 
musket,  how  to  use  it,  take  it  to  pieces,  to  put  it  together,  and  exercised  first 
with  blank  cartridge,  then  at  target  practice.  He  complains  bitterly  of  his 
difficulties  with  clothing  and  transport  contractors.  For  instance,  the  28th 
regiment  marched  from  France  with  its  baggage,  but  reached  Kellerman  several 
months  before  it.  As  he  despatched  each  detachment  of  150  infantry  or  50 
cavalry,  another  was  ready  to  follow  it  closely.  During  the  whole  campaign 
he  despatched  20  provisional  regiments  of  infantry,  and  11  of  cavalry, 
numbering  50,683  men,'and  7112  horses.  As  the  regiments  were  sent  off,  there 
was  such  a  dearth  of  officers  that  the  marshal  had  to  promote,  subject  to  the 
Emperor's  confirmation,  many  non-commissioned  officers. 

Amongst  his  many  troubles  were  sore  backs  among  the  horses,  the  result  of 
neglect.  He  proposes  to  cashier  one  sub-lieutenant  who  produced  32  horses 
with  sore  backs  out  of  a  detachment  of  47. 

Besides  these  troops,  Kellerman  formed  Mortier's.  corps  at  Mayence,  and  the 
Legion  of  the  North  at  Landau.  The  latter  corps  exercised  him  much,  as  it 
was  to  be,  under  the  Emperor's  orders,  composed  of  deserters  from  the  enemy — 
largely  Poles.  It  had,  owing  to  the  neglect  of  contractors,  to  be  sent  off  almost 
without  clothes  and  supplies.  Yet,  though,  as  was  not  unnatural,  there  were 
many  desertions  from  it,  the  Legion  did  good  service  before  Danzig. 

Kellerman  also  organised  several  corps  of  gendarmes,  artillery,  etc.     Alto- 


20  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

places  such  as  Wurtzburg,  Erfurt,  Wittenburg  aud  Spandau, 
they  were  required  to  be  inspected  by  the  local  commandant, 
who  reported  on  them  to  headquarters.  Thus  Napoleon  had 
a  continuous  series  of  reports,  enabling  him  to  keep  his  eye 
on  the  progress  of  his  recruits  who  were  sent  forward  under 
officers  from  the  depots. 

On  arrival  at  the  front,  the  provisional  regiments  were 
again  broken  up  for  distribution,  according  to  requirements, 
to  the  various  corps  and  regiments.* 

For  the  defence  of  the  French  ports  Cambaceres  was 
directed  to  raise  9000  National  Guards  in  the  departments 
of  the  Somme  and  the  Lower  Seine. f  These  were  to  join 
the  reserve  in  Paris,  standing  ready  for  movement  to  any 
part  of  the  coast  that  might  be  threatened.  There  were  in 
Paris  three  regular  regiments  for  this  purpose.  Two  of  them 
were  replaced  by  these  National  Guards,  and  moved  towards 
the  front  in  Poland.  Napoleon  later  remarks  {  that  40,000 
men  will  be  available  in  the  3rd  battalions  left  in  France. 
3000  National  Guards  were  mobilised  at  Bordeaux.§  From 
Brittany  he  drew  to  the  front  two  regiments.  To  compensate 
for  these,  he  sent  there  6000  conscripts  of  1806  and  4000  of 
1807.  He  also  raised  5000  men  amongst  the  shipbuilders 
and  artificers  of  the  ports,  who  were  thrown  out  of  employ 
owing  to  the  British  supremacy  at  sea.  || 

gether,  he  says,  there  passed  the  Rhine  at  Mayence  and  Wesel,  as  reinforce- 
ments for  the  grand  army,  152,456  men,  and  19,306  horses,  of  which  73,624  men, 
and  9559  horses  were  from  the  Army  of  Reserve.  These  numbers  of  course  do 
not  include  the  troops  marching  from  Italy,  Switzerland,  and  Holland,  or  the 
German  contingents  (Kellerman's  report,  Arch.  Hist.). 

*  "  The  bad  method,"  says  Von  der  Goltz, "  of  reinforcing  armies  by  new 
units,  instead  of  by  fresh  drafts,  bringing  the  old  ones  up  to  their  normal 
numbers,  has  long  since  been  discarded  in  all  great  armies  "  (Nation  in  Arms, 
p.  378).  Napoleon,  it  will  be  observed,  followed  generally  the  principles  here 
advocated. 

t  Corr.  11,130.     To  Cambaceres,  31st  October,  1806. 

%  Corr.  11,262.    To  Cambaceres,  16th  November,  1806. 

§  Corr.  11,066,  dated  24th  October,  1806. 

||  Corr.  11,477, 15th  December,  1806,  to  Dejean,  and  Corr.  11,479  of  same  date 
to  Admiral  DecrSs. 


THE  AEM1ES  AND    TEE  LEADERS.  2] 

The  regiment  of  "velites"  of  the  Guard,  not  having  been 
found  to  fulfil  the  objects  for  which  it  was  intended,  he 
proposed  to  form  into  a  regiment  of  fusiliers  of  the  guard 
1500  or  1600  strong,*  which  was  to  leave  Paris  for  Berlin 
on  the  12th  December,  f 

To  his  brother  Louis  he  wrote  J  that  he  should  expect 
him  to  provide  at  least  20,000  Dutch  troops  for  the  Grand 
Army,  the  number,  if  possible,  to  be  raised  to  25,000  in  the 
spring.  Three  days  earlier  §  he  had  ordered  Louis  to  occupy 
Hanover  with  three  French  regiments  and  7000  or  8000 
Dutch  troops. 

He  was  even  willing  to  accept  the  offer  of  a  Breton 
gentleman  to  raise  500  or  600  volunteers,  though  he  stipu- 
lated that  they  should  not  be  men  who  would  be  otherwise 
taken  by  the  conscription.!  He  directed  the  raising  of 
regiments  in  Switzerland.  U  For  the  armament  of  regiments 
to  be  raised  amongst  the  Poles,  large  numbers  of  muskets 
were  sent  to  Davout  for  delivery  to  Dombrowski,  who  was 
charged  with  their  organisation.**  For  a  large  cavalry  force 
in  the  great  plains  of  Poland  Napoleon  at  once  recognised 
the  necessity.  He  was  anxious  to  hurry  up  as  many  horse- 
men as  possible  before  he  should  meet  the  Kussians.  He 
had  already  decided  on  adding  a  fifth  squadron  to  his  cavalry 
regiments,  bringing  them  nominally  to  a  strength  of  1000 
each,  though  he  did  not  expect  them  to  appear  in  the  field 
with  more  than  700  sabres.  He  writes  to  Dejean  that  alto- 
gether he  has  60,000  or  70,000  cavalry  in  different  parts  of 
Europe,  and  that  he  believes  there  are  still  10,000  in  the 


*  Corr.  11,292,  dated  22nd  November,  1806,  to  Lacuee. 

t  Corr.  11,330,  dated  30th  November,  1806,  to  Junot. 

%  Corr.  11,192,  dated  7th  November,  1806. 

§  Corr.  11,171,  dated  4th  November,  1806. 

|l  Corr.  11,164,  dated  4th  November. 

1  Corr.  11,237,  dated  12th  November,  and  11,302,  dated  24th  November. 

**  Corr.  11,257,  dated  13th  Nov.,  and  11,258,  dated  14th  Nov.,  to  Davout. 
The  latter  despatch  remarks  that  6  battalions  might  be  expected  from  Posen 
and  12  more  in.  Warsaw,  should  it  rise  against  the  Prussians. 


22  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

depots  in  France.*  On  the  5th  January,  1807,  he  calculates 
there  should  be  with  the  Grand  Army  24  regiments  of  dragoons 
and  cuirassiers,  18  of  chasseurs,  9  of  hussars,  making  51,000 
men,  at  the  nominal  streDgth  of  1000  per  regiment.  They 
would  not,  however,  amount  to  more  than  36,000  actually 
present.  A  few  days  earlier  he  had  said  he  expected  rein- 
forcements of  16,000  cavalry  during  the  year.f  So  urgent 
was  the  need  for  cavalry  that  he  ordered  Kellerman  to  send 
the  men  forward  in  batches  of  even  15  or  16,  as  they  were 
collected. 

Cavalry  was  not  required  to  any  great  extent  in  Italy. 
The  south  was  too  mountainous  for  it,  the  north  too  much 
intersected  with  canals  and  vineyards.  Therefore,  on  the 
4th  November,  1806,  he  writes  to  Joseph  that  he  has  taken 
8  French  cavalry  regiments  from  the  army  of  Northern  Italy, 
trusting  to  Joseph's  replacing  them  with  8  out  of  12  regi- 
ments which  he  had  in  Naples. 

The  army  in  Northern  Italy  was  to  be  reinforced  by 
20,000  men  from  France  in  the  beginning  of  December. f 
From  Spain  the  Emperor  directed  Talleyrand  to  demand 
10,000  infantry  and  4000  cavalry,  and  the  6000  Spaniards 
in  Italy  were  ordered  to  march  up  to  Germany.§ 

Such  were  the  principal  methods  by  which  the  Emperor 
increased  his  armies  in  preparation  for  his  first  advance 
against  the  Kussians.  In  the  spring  he  was  compelled  to 
make  still  further  demands  on  the  military  strength  of 
France.  They  will  be  described  later  in  their  proper 
chronological  order. 

He  was  able  by  the  end  of  November  to  count  on  80,000 
men  towards  Warsaw,  whilst  another  80,000  were  following 
in  second  line. 

"Napoleon  evinced,  at  all  times,  extraordinary  care  for 
the  measures  to  be  taken  to  provide  for  the  sustenance  of 

*  Corr.  11,556,  to  Dejean.  t  Corr.  11,544,  to  Dejean. 

X  Corr.  11,172,  to  Eugene  Beauharnais,  dated  4th  November,  1806. 

§  Corr.  11,476,  dated  15th  December,  1806,  to  Tallyrand. 


TEE  ARMIES  AND    THE  LEADERS.  23 

his  armies.  Certainly  he  did  not  adhere  to  any  fixed  system, 
but  took  the  means  of  nourishing  his  hosts  just  wherever  he 
found  them.  He  knew  how,  by  promising  high  payment, 
by  his  dexterous  treatment  of  authorities  and  communities, 
as  well  as  by  threats  and  brute  force,  to  furnish  himself  with 
supplies,  even  in  exhausted  districts.  .  .  .  But,  before  all 
things,  he  was  a  master  of  organising  his  lines  of  rear  com- 
munication; and  purchases,  transport,  requisitions,  and 
compulsory  provisioning  by  the  population,  all  contributed 
to  fill  his  soldiers'  bellies."  * 

As  soon  as  he  found  himself  supreme  in  Prussia  and  the 
allied  states,  the  Emperor  proceeded  to  impose  enormous  war 
contributions  on  them  all,  especially  on  rich  cities  such  as 
Hamburg.  The  total  sum  exceeded  160  millions  of  francs 
(£6,400,000).t  A  great  proportion  of  this  sum  he  could  not 
hope  to  realise  in  cash.  What  he  did  was  to  levy  supplies 
of  various  sorts  from  the  cities  and  states.  These  were 
nominally  on  payment ;  the  value  was  met,  not  in  cash,  but 
by  a  credit  against  the  demand  for  war  contribution. 

Wherever  there  was  a  great  local  manufacture  of  articles 
required  for  an  army,  it  was  utilised  in  this  way :  uniforms 
were  made  up  at  Hamburg  and  Magdeburg,  Leipsic  and 
Berlin,  saddles  at  Berlin  and  elsewhere,  boots  at  numerous 
centres.  If  it  is  true  that  an  army  marches  on  its  belly, 
Napoleon  equally  recognised  the  care  required  for  its  feet. 

*  Von  der  Goltz,  The  Nation  in  Arms,  p.  354. 

t  The  contributions  varied  from  25  millions  of  francs  in  the  case  of 
Saxony  (which  was  subsequently  modified  by  his  alliance  with  that  state)  to 
100,000  francs  in  the  case  of  the  smallest  states  (see  Corr.  11,010,  decree  dated 
15th  October,  1806,  the  day  after  the  battle  of  Jena).  By  the  same  decree,  all 
English  merchandise  in  the  northern  cities,  in  whatsoever  hands  it  might  be, 
was  declared  forfeit  to  the  use  of  the  French  army. 

The  sums  given  here  as  contributions,  do  not  include  the  ordinary  financial 
resources  of  the  countries  which  were  applied  by  the  French  to  their  own  uses. 
Altogether,  there  passed  into  Napoleon's  hands,  in  money  and  goods  collected 
from  Germany,  more  than  560  millions  of  francs  (£22,400,000),  whilst  the  net 
cost  of  the  war  against  Prussia  and  Russia  was  put  at  only  213  millions  (see 
summary  of  Daru's  report,  Dumas,  xix.  489).  Truly,  in  this  instance,  war  was 
made  to  support  itself. 


24  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Scarcely  a  day  passes  on  which  there  is  not  some  letter  or 
order  from  him  dealing  with  the  supply  of  boots,  the  con- 
struction of  bakeries,  and  the  means  of  forwarding  bread 
to  the  armies.  No  detail  was  below  his  notice.  "Every 
detachment,"  he  writes,  "  coming  from  Paris  or  Boulogne 
should  start,  each  man  with  a  pair  of  shoes,  besides  two  pairs 
in  his  knapsack.  At  Mayence  they  will  receive  another  pair 
to  replace  that  worn  on  the  march.  At  Magdeburg  they  will 
receive  a  new  pair  to  replace  that  worn  on  the  march  from 
Mayence  to  Magdeburg,  so  that  every  man  may  reach  his 
corps  with  a  pair  of  shoes  on  his  feet  and  a  pair  in  his  knap- 
sack." *  Notwithstanding  all  this  care  for  their  food,  their 
clothing  and  their  boots,  the  French  troops  were  often  in  dire 
distress  for  all  three.f 

*  Corr.  11,413.  During  the  campaign  there  were  supplied  to  the  army, 
from  first  to  last,  587,008  pairs  of  shoes,  16,948  of  boots,  and  37,386  of  gaiters, 
all  made  up  in  Germany,  besides  397,000  pairs  of  shoes  sent  from  France 
(summary  of  Daru's  report,  Dumas,  xix.  490).' 

t  Napoleon,  writing  to  Soult,  for  instance,  on  the  27th  February,  1807,  remarks 
that  the  Russians  appear  to  be  **  like  us,"  and  not  to  have  eaten  for  several  days. 

The  difficulty,  even  under  much  more  favourable  circumstances,  of  keeping  men 
properly  shod  and  clothed  is  illustrated  by  Von  der  Goltz  :  "  In  December,  1870, 
some  German  soldiers  might  have  been  seen  plodding  along  the  miry  roads,  in 
the  depth  of  winter,  barefoot,  whilst  many  had  only  wooden  shoes  and  linen 
trousers."  There  were  some  weak  German  companies  with  so  many  as  forty 
shoeless  men.  Every  sort  of  garment  was  utilised,  with  the  exception  of  the 
ominous  French  red  breeches,  the  possible  consequences  of  wearing  which  were 
obvious  (Nation  in  Arms,  pp.  375-376).  De  Fezensac  (132)  says  that,  in  the 
winter  of  1806-7,  the  French  soldiers  were  living  mainly  on  what  they  could 
find  in  the  country,  as  the  arrival  of  supplies  was  delayed  by  the  horrible 
weather  and  the  state  of  the  roads. 

The  following  quaint  little  note,  written  by  Lasalle  on  the  back  of  a 
despatch  from  Milhaud  to  Murat  as  it  passed  through  his  quarters,  speaks 
volumes.  It  is  in  the  daily  correspondence,  25th  December,  1806,  in  the  Archives 
Historiques.  "  A  force  de  cris  et  de  menaces,  j'ai  obtenu  un  pain  et  une  dame- 
jeanne  de  vin  que  je  suis  trop  heureux  d'offrir  a  votre  Altesse.  Notre  noble  hote 
est  un  ladre  qui  nous  laissera  mourir  de  faim."  Figure  the  shortness  of  supplies 
when  a  general  commanding  a  cavalry  division  has  no  hesitation  in  offering,  as 
an  acceptable  gift  to  the  Emperor's  brother-in-law,  a  loaf  of  bread  and  a  bottle 
of  wine  !  What,  too,  must  have  been  the  feelings  of  the  unfortunate  despatch- 
bearer,  unexpectedly  burdened  with  this  precious  and  fragile  load !  Envy  of 
the  good  things  he  was  carrying,  and  anxiety  lest  breakage  of  the  bottle  should 
draw  upon  him  the  wrath  of  Murat,  perhaps  divided  his  sentiments  equally. 


THE  ARMIES  AND    TEE  LEADERS.  25 

For  his  sick  and  wounded  the  Emperor  was  equally 
solicitous.  The  provision  of  hospital  and  ambulance  arrange- 
ments became  more  and  more  difficult  as  the  armies  advanced 
into  a  country  where  the  roads  were  atrocious  and  local 
means  of  transport  very  scarce.  The  numbers,  both  of  sick 
and  wounded,  to  be  dealt  with  were  very  great ;  the  supply 
of  hospital  attendants  and  surgeons  was  deficient,  especially 
at  the  advanced  hospitals.  Nevertheless,  by  the  end  of 
January,  1807,  no  less  than  21  hospitals  were  open  in  War- 
saw alone,  with  more  than  10,000  occupants  who  had  been 
brought  back,  on  foot  in  the  case  of  those  slightly  wounded 
or  suffering  from  trifling  ailments,  on  carts  or  sledges  in  the 
more  serious  cases.  The  pressure  was  still  greater  after  the 
battle  of  Eylau.  Hospitals  were  opened  at  Bromberg,  Marien- 
burg,  Marienwerder,  Elbing,  and  other  places.  To  relieve  the 
hospitals  in  Poland,  later  on,  many  wounded  and  sick,  who 
could  bear  the  journey,  were  transferred  to  Breslau  and  other 
places  in  Silesia,  where  spacious  barracks  afforded  excellent 
accommodation.  So  great  were  the  preparations  made  that 
though,  on  the  30th  June,  1807,  there  were  27,376  men  in 
hospital,  it  was  calculated  that  there  was  still  available 
accommodation  for  nearly  30,000  men.  From  the  1st  October, 
1806,  to  the  31st  October,  1808,  over  421,000  *  cases  of  sick- 
ness or  wounds  occurred,  with  32,000  deaths.  The  average 
stay  in  hospital  was  29  days.  It  may  be  taken,  therefore,  that 
during  this  period  the  mean  number  in  hospital  was  somewhere 
about  16,500;  at  times  it  was  very  much  higher,  f  These 
figures  do  not  include  the  enemy's  sick  and  wounded  prisoners, 
or  those  of  the  allied  troops,  who  ranged,  during  the  period 
November,  1806,  to  July,  1807,  from  f^-th  to  }th  of  the  number 

*  The  number  sounds  enormous,  yet  it  is  worth  remembering  that  in  1870 
(with,  of  course,  a  much  larger  army),  the  Germans  had  400,000  sick,  and  100,000 
wounded  (Nation  in  Arms,  p.  331). 

t  For  this  brief  account  of  the  hospitals,  see  abstract  of  Daru's  report  at  end 
of  vol.  xix.,  Dumas.  The  number  of  wounded  out  of  the  total  in  hospitals  was 
47,  and  of  fever  cases  105  out  of  every  190.  The  largest  number  in  hospital  was, 
in  June  1807,  27,376. 


26  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

of  French.  For  the  service  of  the  hospitals,  the  resources  of 
the  conquered  countries  were  fully  utilised,  as  they  were 
in  the  case  of  supplies,  clothing,  boots,  and  saddlery.  The 
captured  Prussian  tents  were  cut  up,  partly  for  bandages, 
partly  for  shirts,  and  partly  for  mattresses.  Napoleon's  army 
carried  no  tents.  If  cantonments  were  out  of  the  question, 
they  bivouacked  in  the  open,  whatever  the  weather.  Great 
numbers  of  cavalry  and  artillery  horses,  captured  from  the 
Prussians,  were  pressed  into  the  French  service.  The  cavalry 
from  Italy  and  France  were  marched  to  Germany  on  foot, 
and  there  remounted  at  the  great  cavalry  depot  which  Napo- 
leon established  at  Potsdam.  Altogether  he  raised  40,555 
horses  in  the  conquered  territories.* 

Into  the  finance  of  the  war  this  work  cannot  enter,  beyond 
the  remarks  above,  in  the  footnote  (f)  at  p.  23. 

The  army  was  organised  in  corps,  by  no  means  of  even 
strength,  rarely  reaching  the  modern  standard  of  30,000 
men.  The  only  corps  which  generally  approached  this  figure 
were  the  1st,  3rd,  4th,  and  10th. 

In  addition  to  the  corps  of  all  arms,  there  were  two  cavalry 
reserves — the  first  under  Murat,  nearly  10,000  strong  at  the 
end  of  November,  1806.f  The  second,  under  Bessieres,  only 
existed  during  the  first  phase  of  the  campaign.  It  was  broken 
up  before  Eylau.  The  artillery  was  armed  with  a  good  gun, 
as  guns  were  at  that  date.  Both  it  and  the  cavalry  drew 
their  remounts  largely  from  the  captured  Prussian  troops  and 
from  the  horses  found  in  the  country. 

The  rank  and  file  of  the  army  was  but  little,  if  at  all, 
past  its^  best.   In  the  earlier  part  of  the  campaign,  its  youngest 

*  Dam's  report,  Dumas,  end  of  vol.  xix. 

|  Corr.  11,305,  to  Murat,  dated  24th  November,  1806.    It  comprised  :— 

Beaumont's  and  Klein's  dragoons     4800 

Becker's  dragoons       1200 

Nansouty's  brigade 2400 

Milhaud's  brigade      800 

Total,  9200 


THE  ARMIES  AND    THE   LEADERS.  27 

men  wen  the  conscripts  of  1806  who  had,  owing  to  their 
premature  enrolment,  already  undergone  a  year's  training. 
Many  of  the  troops  had  been  with  Napoleon  in  his  earlier 
campaigns  and  in  Egypt,  very  many  had  been  at  Ulm  and 
Austerlitz,  the  majority  had  just  emerged  from  the  brilliant 
campaign  of  Jena.  They  were  now  preparing  for  a  renewed 
war  against  fresh  enemies;  the  hardest  task  that  an  army 
can  undertake.*  Even  these  hardened  and  enthusiastic 
warriors  contemplated  with  dread  the  prospect  of  a  fresh 
winter  campaign  in  an  inhospitable  and  difficult  country, 
and  Napoleon  was  often  remonstrated  with,  as  he  rode 
alongside  of  his  men,  for  insisting  on  their  advance  into 
Poland. f  To  such  complaints  he  would  reply  with  the 
rough  jests  which  his  veterans  loved  to  hear  from  him,  and 
with  promises  to  give  them  rest  as  soon  as  he  possibly 
could.  In  action,  the  infantry  was  still  splendid,  and  did 
not  as  yet  require  to  be  formed  in  deep  columns  of  many 
battalions,  such  as  was  Macdonald's  at  Wagram,  three  years 
later. 

The  cavalry  were  excellent  and  well  mounted,  though, 
in  the  latter  respect,  they  fell  short  of  many  of  the  Russian 
cavalry  regiments. 

The  artillery  was  highly  trained  and  invariably  made 
good  practice. 

Of  the  French  soldier  generally,  Jomini  makes  Napoleon 
say,  "  My  soldiers  are  as  brave  as  it  is  possible  to  be,  but  they 
argue  too  much.  If  they  had  the  impassible  firmness  and  the 
docility  of  the  Russians  the  world  would  not  be  great  enough 

*  "  The  most  difficult  task  that  can  be  imposed  upon  an  army  is  to  enter  on 
a  second  campaign,  against  fresh  enemies,  immediately  after  one  in  which  its 
moral  energies  have  been  partially  consumed.  Fortunate  as  Napoleon's 
operations  against  the  Prussians  and  the  Saxons  in  the  autumn  of  1806  had 
been,  they  all  the  same  came  to  a  standstill  when,  in  the  winter,  he  encountered 
the  Russians  and  the  corps  of  General  von  Lestocq,  which  had  not  previously 
been  in  action  "  (Nation  in  Arms,  p.  335). 

t  "Our  soldiers  were  less  satisfied;  they  showed  a  lively  repugnance  to 
cross  the  Vistula.  Misery,  the  winter,  the  bad  weather,  had  inspired  them  with 
an  extreme  aversion  for  this  country"  (Rapp,  p.  118). 


28  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

for  me.  The  French  soldiers  love  their  country  too  much  to 
act  the  part  of  the  Macedonians."  * 

To  the  chief  generals  a  separate  section  will  be  devoted ; 
but  there  are  many  regimental,  brigade,  and  divisional 
commanders  whom  it  will  be  impossible  to  notice  separately. 
Several  of  them  rose  to  the  highest  rank.  Generally  speaking, 
the  officers  and  non-commissioned  officers  were  of  excellent 
quality  and  great  experience  in  war. 

The  discipline  of  the  army  was  certainly  not  such  as 
would  be  approved  at  the  present  time,  either  in  the  case  of 
the  officers  or  in  that  of  the  men.  De  Eezensac  mentions  f 
that  Marchand  changed  the  cantonments  of  his  division  three 
times  without  vouchsafing  any  information  to  Ney,  the 
commander  of  the  corps.  Marauding,  chiefly  in  search  of 
food,  was  common  amongst  the  men.  Even  Thiers  puts  the 
number  of  men  "  absent "  after  Eylau  at  60,000. 

(b)   THE  RUSSIAN   ARMY. 

Of  the  Eussian  army  of  1806  |  we  have  an  account  by 
Sir  Eobert  Wilson,  avowedly  written  with  a  favourable  bias. 
Still,  being  written  by  an  eyewitness,  at  a  time  when 
England  was  at  war  with  Eussia,  it  seems  reasonable  to 
accept  it  as,  on  the  whole,  correct,  at  any  rate  as  regards 
facts. 

The  infantry  consisted  of  men  between  the  ages  of  18  and 
40,  generally  of  small  stature,  but  endowed  with  considerable 
physical  strength  and  inured  to  hardships  of  all  sorts.  They 
could  bear  the  stress  of  the  worst  weather,  and,  at  the  same 
time,  could  subsist  on  the  scantiest  fare.     The  keynote  to 

*  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  434.  This  work  is  in  the  form  of  a  narrative 
supposed  to  be  addressed  by  the  spirit  of  Napoleon  in  the  next  world  to  an 
audience  of  all  the  great  commanders  who  preceded  him.  The  words  quoted 
here  Napoleon  is  made  to  represent  as  used  by  himself  to  a  connoisseur.  They 
would,  therefore,  appear  to  have  been  his  own  actual  views. 

t  Souvenirs  Militaires,  p.  139. 

X  For  this  account  of  the  Russian  army,  see  chiefly  Wilson,  pp.  1-70. 


THE  ARMIES  AND    THE  LEADERS.  29 

their  character  was  implicit  obedience  to  superior  authority 
and  absolute  reliance  on  it.  This  submissive  obedience  was 
not  corrected  by  intelligence  in  the  interpretation  of  orders. 
Whatever  commands  he  received,  the  llussian  soldier  would 
do  his  best  to  carry  out.  It  mattered  not  to  him  that,  in 
the  meanwhile,  circumstances  had  so  changed  as  to  render 
the  orders  incapable  of  execution.  Once  he  had  received 
them,  and  until  they  were  cancelled  by  their  author,  it  was 
his  sole  aim  to  perform  them.  The  lengths  to  which  his 
sense  of  duty,  in  this  respect,  would  carry  him  are  well 
illustrated  by  the  account  given  by  Marbot  of  the  battle 
of  Golymin.  He  describes  how  a  stray  body  of  Eussians, 
hoping  to  conceal,  by  their  silence,  their  nationality  from 
the  French  who  surrounded  them  in  the  darkness,  restrained 
their  cries.  Neither  the  excitement  of  action,  nor  the  agony 
of  wounds,  could  draw  from  them  the  slightest  sound.  The 
wounded  and  the  dying  fell  and  lay  in  perfect  silence;  to 
their  opponents  it  seemed  as  if  they  were  firing  at  shadows.* 

The  courage  of  men  who  could  do  such  deeds  was  un- 
questionable ;  their  intelligence  was  of  a  very  different  order. 
Absolutely  uneducated,  they  fought  like  animals  rather  than 
like  intelligent  beings.  The  idea  of  seeking  cover  was  foreign 
to  their  nature  and  disdained  by  their  courage.  Death  had 
no  terrors  for  them,  no  carnage  appalled  them.  The  one 
thing  which  they  could  ill  brook  was  a  continued  retreat. 
In  such  circumstances  only,  did  their  feelings  express  them- 
selves in  murmurs,  so  audible  as,  at  times,  to  compel  their 
commanders  to  stand  and  fight  when  retreat  was  the  wiser 
course. 

Their  powers  of  marching  were  marvellous.  For  days  at 
a  time  they  would  march  regularly  every  night  and  yet  fight 
all  day  with  the  very  minimum  of  rest  and  food.  Even  the 
terrible  night  of  the  7th-8th  February,  spent  without  shelter 
and  without  food,  exposed  to  the  full  rigour  of  almost  arctic 
weather,  with   the   scantiest   clothing   and  almost  without 

*  Marbot,  i.  246-249. 


30  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

boots,  failed  to  damp  their  ardour  for  the  awful  battle  which 
was  to  succeed  it. 

The  Russian  soldier  could  be  trained  to  march  and  drill 
with  precision  and  rapidity,  to  fight  steadily  in  square 
or  column;  but  he  was  lost  under  circumstances  where 
separation  from  his  companions,  and  perhaps  from  his  officers, 
required  the  exercise  of  that  individual  intelligence  and  that 
natural  aptitude  for  war  which  has  always  characterised  the 
French  soldier.  Their  uniforms  were  bad  in  quality  of 
material,  and  they  were  armed  with  a  musket  so  heavy  and 
cumbersome  that  the  supplies  of  arms  received  from  England, 
not  being  sufficient  for  all,  were  reserved  as  a  reward  for 
meritorious  men.  When  it  is  remembered  how  clumsy  a 
weapon  was  the  "  Brown  Bess  "  of  those  days,  it  is  possible 
to  form  some  conception  of  the  burden  which  must  have  been 
imposed  by  the  carriage  and  use  of  the  Russian  musket. 

The  troops  fought  in  1807,  in  a  country  whence  the  terror 
of  war  and  famine  had  driven  every  inhabitant  who  could  by 
any  possibility  quit  it.  In  their  flight  the  peasants  carried 
with  them  all  that  was  portable.  What  they  had  to  leave 
behind  they  had  done  their  best  to  bury  beyond  the  reach  of 
the  approaching  armies.  With  a  commissariat  of  the  most 
wretched  description,  unable  often  to  supply  any  food,  the 
sufferings  from  hunger  of  the  Russian  soldiery  are  easier  to 
imagine  than  to  describe.  They  could  live  only  on  what  was 
provided  by  their  own  diligence  in  unearthing  and  robbing 
the  hidden  stores  of  the  inhabitants.  Long  habituation  to 
the  plainest  and  scantiest  food  could  alone  enable  an  army, 
under  such  circumstances,  to  maintain  life  and  strength. 
Yet  the  Russians  were  always  ready  and  able  to  fight  with 
undiminished  fury  and  obstinacy. 

The  army  was  recruited  on  no  fixed  principle.  A  certain 
number  of  men  being  required,  the  magistrates  selected  the 
best  of  the  young  men  up  to  that  limit.  Their  pay  was 
infinitesimal — about  half  a  guinea  a  year. 

As  might  be  expected,  the  arm  in  the  use  of  which  they 


THE  ARMIES  AND    THE   LEADERS.  31 

excelled  was  the  bayonet.  Their  generally  superior  physique 
gave  them  an  advantage  over  the  French  in  personal  combat. 
With  the  bayonet,  Sir  R.  Wilson  considers  that  the  British 
alone  could  dispute  the  supremacy  of  the  Russian. 

The  Russian  soldier's  sense  of  moral  obligations  was  that 
of  the  barbarian.  His  religion  was  mixed  with  superstition, 
but  he  was  not  a  bigot.  His  sovereign  he  invested  with  an 
almost  godlike  supremacy  and,  whilst  his  untold  privations, 
at  times,  overcame  his  sense  of  discipline  in  regard  to  his 
officers,  nothing  could  diminish  his  reverence  for  the  Czar, 
the  father  of  his  people.  A  curious  story  is  told  by  Sir  R. 
Wilson,  illustrative  of  this  trait  in  the  character  of  the 
Russian  soldier. 

At  a  time  when  privation  had  driven  many  Russians, 
as  well  as  French,  to  form  bands  marauding  in  search  of 
food,  a  party  of  Russian  officers,  prisoners  on  parole,  accom- 
panied by  some  French  officers,  was  marching  towards 
Warsaw.  Falling  in  with  a  body  of  Russian  marauders, 
commanded  by  a  sergeant,  the  French  officers  were,  in  spite 
of  the  protest  of  their  Russian  companions,  massacred.  Then 
came  the  turn  of  the  Russians.  As  honourable  men,  they 
refused  to  listen  to  the  demand  of  the  soldiers  that  they 
should  break  their  parole  and  return  to  the  army  at  the  head 
of  their  captors.  They  were  told  that  their  country's  right 
to  their  allegiance  overrode  all  obligations  of  honour  towards 
their  enemy.  They  still  refused,  and  were  thereupon  done  to 
death,  with  the  exception  of  one  officer  who,  left  for  dead, 
eventually  recovered  and  escaped  to  tell  the  story.  Yet  the 
soldiers  who  could  commit  an  atrocity  such  as  this,  would 
share  their  last  crust  with  a  starving  peasant  whose  all  had 
been  unearthed  and  robbed. 

The  Light  Infantry  (Jagers),  recruited  mainly  in  Siberia, 
were  superior  as  marksmen  to  the  line  *  regiments.  The 
Imperial  Guard  was  a  picked  body  of  about  17,000  men, 
of  magnificent  physique,  far  superior  in  this  respect  to 
Napoleon's  guard,  and  even  to  the  corresponding  Prussian 


32  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

force.*  The  Eussian  regular  cavalry  had  the  great  advan- 
tage over  their  enemies  of  being  mounted  on  horses,  "  match- 
less," says  Sir  R  Wilson,  "for  an  union  of  size,  strength, 
activity,  and  hardiness ;  whilst  formed  with  the  bulk  of  the 
British  cart  horse,  they  have  so  much  blood  as  never  to  be 
coarse,  and  withal  are  so  supple  as  naturally  to  adapt  them- 
selves to  the  manege,  and  receive  the  highest  degree  of 
dressing." 

When  the  Guard  cavalry  proceeded  from  St.  Petersburg 
to  the  front,  the  700  miles  was  accomplished,  as  far  as 
Eiga,  at  the  rate  of  50  miles  a  day,  the  men  riding  in 
waggons.  For  the  remainder  of  the  journey  the  horses  were 
ridden  35  miles  a  day.  Yet  they  reached  their  destination 
in  the  finest  condition.  The  hardships  which  the  Eussian 
cavalry  underwent,  in  a  snow-covered  country,  were  beyond 
bounds.  Forage,  save  the  old  thatch  stripped  from  the  roofs, 
was  unprocurable,  and  shelter,  of  course,  was  unknown. 

As  a  horseman,  the  Eussian  regular  cavalryman  had  no 
experience,  except  in  the  schools.  He  was  not  born  to  the 
use  of  horses,  and  he  had  to  learn  both  how  to  ride  and  how 
to  care  for  them.  Yet  the  Eussian  cavalry  distinguished 
itself  throughout  the  campaign  and  was  often  victorious 
over  the  French  with  all  its  training.  They  had  no  great 
cavalry  leader,  no  one  who  knew  when  to  use  them  to  the 
greatest  advantage.f 

If  good  horses  were  a  great  advantage  to  the  cavalry, 
they  were  still  more  so  to  the  artillery,  which  had  to  drag  its 

*  Jomini  puts  into  Napoleon's  mouth  these  words,  "I  saw  at  Tilsit  a 
regiment  of  Eussian  guards ;  and  I  have  not  forgotten  the  sensation  which  I 
felt  at  its  appearance.  Many  only  saw  in  it  a  disagreeable  stiffness.  I  have 
never  loved  armies  of  automatons,  I  required  soldiers  of  intelligence ;  however, 
I  was  surprised  at  the  precision  and  assurance  of  this  infantry.  I  understood 
that  an  army  so  well  disciplined  and  of  such  extraordinary  firmness,  would  be 
the  first  in  the  world  if,  to  these  qualities,  it  united  a  little  of  the  electric 
enthusiasm  of  the  French."  The  words  were,  perhaps,  not  used  by  Napoleon 
himself,  but  the  criticism,  as  that  of  Jomini,  is  valuable. 

t  The  cavalry,  which  had  been  very  inferior  under  Suvarow,  had  been 
vastly  improved  since  his  time  (Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  336,  note). 


THE  AHM1E&  AND    THE  LEADERS.  33 

guns  through  the  new  element  of  mud,  which  Napoleon 
alleged  he  had  discovered  in  Poland. 

The  Russian  guns,  according  to  Sir  R.  Wilson,  were 
good — better,  apparently,  than  the  infantry  musket.  The 
carnage  was  strong,  without  being  heavy,  the  harness  and 
tackle  of  the  best  quality.  The  horses  were  small,  but 
powerful  and  well  bred.  The  ordinary  teams  were  four  for 
the  light  guns,  and  eight  or  ten  for  the  12 -pounders.  With 
these  teams,  guns  were  forced  through  drifts  of  soft  snow  deep 
enough  to  cover  them,  and,  at  Friedland,  they  were  first  got 
across  a  ford  so  deep  that  the  horses  were  almost  swimming, 
and  then  up  a  nearly  perpendicular  bank. 

The  drivers,  gunners,  and  non-commissioned  officers  were 
good,  but  the  officers  were  often  ignorant  of  their  arm. 

The  number  of  guns  was  excessive ;  at  Eylau,  there  were 
460  on  the  battlefield,  which  gives  nearly  6  per  1000  men. 

This  great  number  was  at  times  a  disadvantage,  and 
delayed  the  movements  of  the  army.  Before  Eylau,  Bennig- 
sen  had  to  send  his  heavy  artillery  by  a  circuitous  route,  to 
avoid  encumbering  his  columns.  The  possibility  of  its  capture, 
whilst  detached,  was  a  cause  of  serious  anxiety  to  him. 

The  comparatively  small  number  of  guns  lost  in  the 
campaign  (the  numbers  were  greatly  exaggerated  by  Napo- 
leon) speaks  volumes  for  the  exertions  of  men  and  horses. 
Some  70  or  80  guns  had  to  be  abandoned  in  deep  mud, 
during  the  retirement  to  Pultusk  and  Golymin,  in  December. 
The  French  were  not  more  successful  at  that  time  in  carrying 
along  their  guns ;  but,  as  they  were  advancing,  they  were  able 
to  recover  those  they  left  behind,  whilst  the  Russian  guns 
necessarily  fell  into  the  enemy's  hands,  when  abandoned  in 
retreat. 

In  addition  to  their  regular  cavalry,  the  Russians 
depended  largely  on  their  cossacks.  This  irregular  cavalry, 
mounted  on  "very  little  ill-conditioned  but  well-bred 
horses,"  *  was,  throughout,  a  terror  to  the  French.     Against 

*  Wihon,  p.  27. 


34  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

the  heavy  cavalry  they  could  not,  in  ordinary  circumstances, 
stand ;  but  at  Eylau,  when  the  French  cuirassiers,  exhausted 
and  with  blown  horses,  encountered,  after  passing  through 
the  Kussian  infantry,  the  fresh  and  fearless  cossacks,  they 
went  down  before  them,  and  suffered  terribly. 

At  the  outposts,  when  the  armies  were  in  cantonments, 
these  hardy  warriors,  inured,  like  their  horses,  from  their 
birth  to  hardships  of  all  sorts,  were  a  continual  thorn  in 
the  side  of  the  French  light  cavalry,  whose  training  and 
previous  experience  had  failed  to  fit  them  or  their  horses  to 
bear  the  starvation  and  cold,  which  the  cossacks  felt  but 
little. 

Platow,  the  Ataman  of  the  cossacks,  had  immense  per- 
sonal influence  with  them,  and  it  was  only  necessary  for 
him  to  dismount  and  appeal  to  them  in  order  to  steady  them 
against  overwhelming  odds. 

Accustomed  from  childhood  to  the  use  of  the  lance,  the 
cossack  was  more  than  a  match  for  the  horseman  armed  only 
with  a  sword,  or  for  any  but  a  very  expert  lancer. 

The  last  class  of  troops  employed  by  Eussia  consisted  of 
1500  baskiers,  clad  in  chain  mail,  and  armed  with  bows  and 
arrows.  These  men  appeared  on  the  field  at  the  close  of  the 
campaign.  They  were,  of  course,  useless,  and  merely  ex- 
cited the  derision  of  Napoleon. 

The  officers  who  led  the  infantry  of  the  Czar  were  not 
worthy,  as  a  rule,  of  the  magnificent  raw  material  which 
they  should  have  been  able  to  mould  into  shape.  The 
lower  grades  were  especially  ill  qualified.  Scarcely  better 
educated  than  their  ignorant  men,  they  could  neither  inspire 
respect  nor  teach  an  art  of  which  they  knew  nothing. 
Poorly  paid,  and  looked  down  upon  by  the  officers  of  the 
cavalry  and  the  Guard,  the  position  of  an  infantry  officer  had 
no  attractions  for  the  upper  classes.  The  Guard,  on  the 
other  hand,  was  commanded  mainly  by  men  of  these  classes, 
and  even  the  ordinary  cavalry  officers  were  of  a  better  class 
than  those  of  the  infantry.     There  was  no  scientific  class  of 


THE  ARMIES  AND    THE  LEADERS.  35 

native  officers  for  the  artillery.  The  pick  of  the  officers  of 
ilic  whole  army  were  foreigners;  but  they  were  too  few, 
and  too  much  confined  to  the  more  important  commands,  to 
have  much  influence  in  leavening  the  native  mass.  Gam- 
bling was  very  prevalent,  and  the  Russian  officers  were 
much  inclined  to  indolence,  generally  preferring  to  drive 
rather  than  ride  or  walk. 

The  staff  was  clogged  with  red  tape,  and  overburdened 
with  reports,  which  had  to  be  submitted  by  every  officer, 
down  to  the  commandant  of  a  cossack  outpost.  With  all 
this  reporting,  there  was  no  real  method  such  as  prevailed  in 
Napoleon's  army.*  Leaders  of  ability  were  lamentably 
scarce;  the  commissariat  was  wretched;  the  treasury  was 
exhausted ;  without  money,  magazines  and  transport  could 
not  be  organised,  even  if  there  had  been  any  one  with  the 
ability  required  to  do  so.  At  first,  as  the  army  was  advancing, 
it  was  possible  to  live  on  the  country ;  but  its  never  very- 
great  resources  were  soon  exhausted  by  the  passage  and 
return  of  two  great  armies,  and  then  the  existence,  even  of 
the  French  army,  became  precarious ;  for  the  Russian,  life 
became  possible  at  all  only  owing  to  the  hardihood  and 
patience  of  its  men. 

The  hospital  and  medical  arrangements  were,  if  possible, 
worse  than  the  commissariat  and  transport.  The  medical 
officers,  uneducated  and  wretchedly  paid,  were  worse  than 
useless.  Platow,  when  asked  by  the  Czar  if  he  would  have 
an  increase  to  his  medical  staff,  then  consisting  of  a  single 
officer,  replied,  "  God  and  your  Majesty  forbid ;  the  fire  of 
the  enemy  is  not  half  so  fatal  as  one  drug."  f 

*  Napoleon  was  not  a  stickler  for  rigid  adherence  to  set  forms  of  report. 
He  required  reports  of  the  operations  of  the  various  corps  in  a  campaign,  yet  he 
accepted  documents  varying  so  widely  as  Davout's  elaborate  report  and  the 
skeleton  reports  of  Ney  and  Murat.  Ney's  report  is  a  mere  "journal  de 
marche,"  giving  the  positions  of  his  troops  on  each  day;  Murat's  is  much 
the  same.  Lannes'  appears  never  to  have  been  written— perhaps  in  consequence 
of  his  death  at  Essling  in  1809. 

t  Wilson^.  53. 


36  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

What  was  good  in  the  medical  arrangements  at  Koenigs- 
berg  was  supplied  by  Prussia.  At  the  battle  of  Friedland, 
for  the  first  time,  was  any  attempt  made  to  succour  the 
Eussian  wounded  on  the  field.  What  more  pathetic  picture 
can  there  be  of  the  suffering  of  the  Russian  soldiery  than 
these  words  of  one  of  them  who  forced  himself  into  the 
presence  of  the  Czar  ?  "  For  nine  months  I  and  my  comrades 
have  endured,  without  a  murmur,  all  the  ills  of  the  most 
severe  campaign.  We  wished  to  serve  our  Emperor  faith- 
fully, and  not  augment  his  difficulties.  I  call  God  to  witness 
that,  for  seven  days,  these  soldiers  and  myself  had  nothing 
to  eat  but  a  piece  of  hide,  steeped  in  water  that  we  might 
be  enabled  to  chew  it  when  softened ;  and  yet,  for  eighteen 
hours,  we  remained  on  the  field  of  battle,  until,  at  the  same 
instant,  we  were  struck  by  grape.  Now  that  we  have  passed 
our  frontiers,  and  are  returned  to  our  country,  we  know  that 
the  Emperor  cannot  profit  by  our  ill  treatment.  Look  at 
this  arm  •  ?undressed  for  seventeen  days,  and  a  burrow  for 
worms!  Look  at  our  bodies,  worn  down,  and  wasting  for 
food.  The  Emperor  may  want  us  again.  We  are  ready  to 
serve  him,  but  &i*  shall  know  our  condition  that  we  may  have 
his  redress."  * 

In  numbers -tfife- army  was  inadequate.  Russia  had 
prepared  only  to  supf*6rt  Prussia  as  an  ally.  By  the  collapse 
of  that  power,  she  suddmly  found  herself  compelled  to  face 
the  mighty  armies  of  Napoleon,  receiving  from  Prussia  but 
one  weak  corps,  the  remnant  of  the  great  host  which  had 
been  destroyed  at  Jena  and'*Auerstadt. 

The  Russian  army  was,  in  i806,  organised  in  18  divisions, 
each  consisting  of — 

6  regiments  of*3^battalions  each 
10  squadrons  heavy  cavalry 
10  squadrons  light,  cavalry 

2  batteries  of  gnus  of  position 

3  light  batteries 
1  horse  battery 

* .  ■■.r. «  «. 

*  Wilxm,  pp.  53,  54. 


Til E  ARMIES  AND    THE  LEADERS. 


37 


The  batteries  were  of  14  pieces  each  for  field,  and  12  for 
horse  artillery.*  Thus  the  division  had  a  nominal  strength 
of  18  battalions,  20  squadrons,  and  82  guns. 

At  the  end  of  1806,  the  whole  army  was  distributed 
thus : — 


I.  Imperial  Guard   under  the  Grand  Duke 

Constantiiie,  at  St.  Petersburg,  1st 
Division. 

II.  The    army    in    Poland    under    Marshal 

Kamenskoi,  viz. : — 

(a)  2nd,  3rd,  4th  and  6th  Divisions  under 

Ostermann  Tolstoi,  Sacken,  Gal- 
litzin  and  Sedmaratzki,  forming  the 
1st  army,  commanded  by  Benntgsen. 

(b)  5th,  7th,  8th  and  14th  Divisions,  under 

Tutchkow,  Dochtorow,  Essen  III., 
and  Anrepp  respectively,  forming 
the  2nd  army,  commanded  by  Bux- 
howden. 

III.  The  army  of  Moldavia,  under  Michelson :  ^ 

Divisions  9,  10,  11,  12,  13;  of  which 
9  and  10  were  commanded  by  Wol- 
konski  and  Miiller  respectively.  These 
two  divisions  returned  from  the  Turkish 
frontier,  when  the  Prussian  power 
collapsed,  and  joined  Bennigsen's  left 
on  the  Narew,  in  the  middle  of  January, 
1807. 

IV.  Intermediary  Corps  under  Count  Apraxim  ] 

in  Russia,  comprising  15th,  16th,  17th, 
18th  Divisions. 

Totals     . 


Battalions.    Squadrons.     Guns. 


33 


35 


84 


147 


170 


504 


90 


100 


306 


54 


324 


30 


144 


335    1038 


*  Heavy  field  batteries — 8  12-pndrs. 

4  i-piid  howitzers  (licornes) 
2  light  howitzers  (licornes) 


14 

Light  field  batteries     8  6-pndrs. 

4  J-piid  howitzers  (licornes) 
2  small  „  M 


Horse  batteries 


14 

12  6-pndrs. 


38  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Besides  these,  were  the  corps  in  Finland  and  Georgia, 
which  constituted  an  entirely  separate  army.* 

The  force  at  first  opposed  to  Napoleon  consisted  of  the 
two  armies  comprised  under  No.  II.  Their  strength  may  be 
taken,  according  to  Hcepfner,  as  follows : — 

(a)  Bennigsen's — 

49,000  infantry 

11,000  regular  cavalry 

4,000  cossacks 

2,700  artillery 

900  pioneers 


68,000  and  276  guns. 

Perhaps,  Hcepfner  thinks,  considering  various  authorities, 
60,000  combatants  is  a  full  estimate.! 

(b)  Buxhowden's — 

29,000  infantry 
7,000  cavalry 
1,200  artillery 


37,200  and  216  guns.J 

Dumas  estimates  the  strength  somewhat  lower  at — Ben- 
nigsen  55,000,  and  Buxhowden  36,000.  §  The  divisions  of  the 
latter  general  had  been  at  Austerlitz,  and  had  not  replaced 
the  losses  which  they  had  suffered  there.  An  army  of  reserve 
was  being  organised  in  the  interior  of  Kussia. 

Kamenskoi's  army  thus,  in  November,  1806,  consisted 
approximately  of  90,000  men.|| 

The  Prussian  army  was  but  a  small  remnant  of  the 
mighty  force  which  had  been  destroyed  at  Jena,  gradually 
reinforced  and  its  losses  repaired  by  such  recruits  as  could 
be  raised  in  what  remained  to  Prussia  of  her  territory,  or  as 

*  Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  334,  note,  from  which  figures  down  to  this 
point  are  taken. 

t  Hatpfner,  iii.  26,  27.  X  Ibid.,  iii.  29. 

§  Dumas,  xvii.  99  and  101. 

||  This  is  the  estimate  given  by  Wilson  (p.  84,  note). 


THE  ARMIES  AND    THE  LEADERS.  39 

could  escape  from  the  conquered  provinces.  Excluding  the 
garrisons  of  Graudenz  and  Danzig,  the  Prussian  corps  in 
Poland  seems  to  have  amounted  to  not  more  than  6000  men 
in  December,  1806,  and  at  no  time  up  to  the  end  of  July  to 
have  exceeded  25,000.  It  consisted  largely  of  recruits  and 
young  troops,  with  only  a  nucleus  of  better-trained  soldiers. 

(C)   THE  GENERALS. 

Of  the  great  master  of  war  who  "fills  a  space  in  the 
world's  history  far  greater  than  that  occupied  by  all  the  men 
of  action,  all  the  thinkers,  poets,  or  writers  of  every  age  .  .  . 
who  is  still  regarded  by  myriads  as  the  greatest  of  human 
beings,"  *  it  would  be  presumption  to  speak  in  the  few  lines 
which  space  will  allow  to  be  devoted  to  some  of  the  principal 
leaders  in  this  war.  His  achievements  have  filled  the  world, 
during  more  than  a  century,  with  wonder  and  admiration. 
This  history  of  one  of  them  cannot  pretend  to  give  an  account 
of  Napoleon  himself. 

He  was,  in  many  ways,  his  own  chief  of  the  staff. 
He  went  into  details  which  no  ordinary  commander-in-chief 
could  find  time  for,  especially  one  burdened  with  the  cares 
of  supervising  the  Government  and  the  foreign  relations  of 
a  great  state.  But  there  was  a  limit  to  the  powers  even  of 
Napoleon,  and  he  required  a  subordinate  to  amplify  and  issue 
the  orders  which  he  dictated  in  outline. 

For  his  purpose,  Marshal  Berthier  was  an  ideal  chief  of 
the  staff.  He  was  no  general,  and  he  could  never  have  filled 
the  place  of  a  Von  Moltke ;  but  he  knew  Napoleon,  his  ways 
and  his  wishes,  and  could  elaborate,  to  the  liking  of  his  master, 
the  brief  orders  which  were  what  he  usually  received.  "  In 
short  words  he  (Napoleon)  thus  enumerated  his  measures. 
Berthier  separated  them  from  each  other,  drew  up  each  order 
separately,  and  addressed  them  to  the  several  addressees."  f 

*  Wolseley,  Decline  and  Fall  of  Napoleon,  p.  193. 
t  Nation  in  Arms,  p.  73. 


40  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

"  Berthier's  position  was  more  that  of  a  chief  of  the  cabinet 
with  high  functions,  than  that  of  a  chief  of  the  general  staff."  * 
These  two  quotations,  from  a  modern  writer,  express  tersely 
the  duties  which  Napoleon  demanded,  and  which,  for  many 
years,  Berthier  executed,  generally  to  his  satisfaction.  There 
were  occasions  when  he  failed,  as  will  be  seen  later;  and 
when  Napoleon  once  f  ventured  to  leave  him  temporarily  in 
a  position  similar  to  that  of  the  modern  German  chief  of  the 
staff,  before  his  own  arrival  at  the  front,  the  result  was  very 
nearly  being  disaster.  He  was  a  superlative,  confidential 
secretary — nothing  more. 

Joachim  Murat,  at  this  period  Grand  Duke  of  Berg,  is 
perhaps  the  most  picturesque  figure  among  Napoleon's 
generals.  He  was  nominally  in  command  of  the  right  wing 
of  the  army ;  but  it  is  extremely  improbable  that  his  Imperial 
brother-in-law  would  ever  have  trusted  him  to  act  alone, 
once  operations  had  fairly  begun.  He  owed  his  position  more 
to  his  connexion  by  marriage  with  Napoleon,  and  to  the 
impossibility  of  getting  him  to  serve  loyally  under  any  other 
command  but  that  of  the  Emperor,  than  to  his  military  merits. 
Brave  to  a  fault,  vain  and  ambitious,  with  but  limited  intel- 
ligence, he  was  the  beau  ideal  of  the  leader  of  a  cavalry  charge. 
Yet  he  was  not,  in  any  sense,  a  great  cavalry  general.  His 
ideas  of  reconnaissance  were  vague,  his  information  often 
defective  and  misleading.  Even  on  the  battlefield  he  some- 
times handled  his  cavalry  very  indifferently.  With  his  gaudy 
uniform  and  his  theatrical  displays  at  the  head  of  Ms  cavalry, 
with  his  habit  of  playing  for  the  admiration  of  the  enemy  as 
well  as  of  his  own  men,  one  cannot  help  regarding  him  as  a 
poseur.  Yet  there  was  in  him  something  chivalrous,  hardly 
to  be  expected  in  a  man  of  his  humble  origin.  His  last  letter 
to  his  wife,  before  his  miserable  death  in  1815,J  shows  that 
he  was  not  devoid  of  feeling.  As  King  of  Naples,  he  was  far 
from  being  a  failure,  and  it  may  be  doubted  whether  the 

*  Nation  in  Arms,  p.  74.        t  At  the  commencement  of  the  campaign  of  1809. 
X  Biogr.  Gen.t  art.  *  Murat." 


THE  ARMIES  AND    THE  LEADERS.  4  1 

Neapolitans  would  not  have  flourished  more  under  his 
dynasty  than  under  the  Bourbons. 

In  command  of  the  left  wing  was  Marshal  Bernadotte, 
Prince  of  Ponte  Corvo,  afterwards  King  of  Sweden,  a  man 
of  a  very  different  stamp.  Calm,  selfish,  calculating,  and 
astute,  of  much  more  polished  manners  than  most  of  Napo- 
leon's marshals,*  he  was  endowed  with  considerable  powers 
of  command.  Him  the  Emperor  could,  as  far  as  ability  was 
concerned,  trust  in  a  semi-independent  command.  He  had, 
or  his  master  professed  to  think  so,  fallen  short  of  his  duty 
at  Austerlitz,  and,  again,  when  he  failed  to  support  Davout 
at  Auerstadt.  f  There  was  no  love  lost  between  him  and  the 
Emperor;  Bernadotte  had  even  been  at  times  in  opposition 
to  Napoleon,  notably  in  the  case  of  the  Imperial  title.  Did 
Napoleon  employ  him  in  the  field  because  he  feared  him,  and 
thought  it  dangerous  to  leave  him  behind  in  France  ?  The 
question  seems  worth  consideration. 

Marshal  Davout,J  commanding  the  3rd  Corps,  had  dis- 
tinguished himself  lately  by  his  magnificent  conduct  of  the 
battle  of  Auerstadt.     It  was  he  who  had  really  ruined  the 

*  De  Fezensac  (p.  132)  describes  his  only  meeting  with  Bernadotte,  and 
extols  the  superiority  of  his  manners  and  behaviour  to  that  of  the  other 
marshals.  Bernadotte  even  carried  his  consideration  so  far  as  to  offer  to  keep 
De  Fezansac  for  a  night's  rest,  instead  of  sending  him  back  to  Ney  at  once. 
The  offer  was  declined  ou  the  score  of  duty. 

M  His  own  people  said  that  he  (Bernadotte)  would  have  been  a  hero  in  his 
own  cause,  but  his  disposition  was  .  .  .  thoroughly  exclusive.  He  only  opened 
his  heart  when  everything  depended  on  him  alone;  then  it  became  full  of 
ardour,  generosity,  and  devotion  for  his  own  people,  who  found  in  him  all 
the  seductions  and  fascinations  of  a  great  soul.  But  to  endure  an  equal  or  a 
superior  ;  to  help  on  the  glory  of  another,  whoever  he  might  be ;  such  an  effort 
was  always  either  impossible  or  intolerable  to  him  "  (De  Sfgur,  p.  296). 

t  Napoleon  says  that,  after  Jena,  he  had  ordered  Bernadotte's  trial  by 
court  martial  for  his  conduct  on  that  day,  but  abandoned  the  idea  on  personal 
grounds  {Me'moires  pour  servir,  vii.  215,  note  on  Bernadotte's  Me'moires). 

%  The  name  of  this  marshal  is  frequently  spelt  Davoust,  sometimes  Davout. 
Both  seem  to  be  incorrect.  The  form  Davout  is  used  in  Napoleon's  correspond- 
ence, in  Berthier's,  by  the  marshal's  nephew,  the  present  Due  d' Auerstadt; 
finally,  there  is  no  misreading  possible  of  his  own  very  legible  signature  ou 
numerous  despatches  and  orders  in  the  Archives  Historiques  in  Paris. 


42  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Prussian  army  on  the  fatal  14th  October,  though  it  would 
not  have  been  like  Napoleon  had  he  publicly  allowed  the 
full  credit  to  his  lieutenant.  With  the  exception  only  of 
Massena,  he  was  probably  the  ablest  of  the  marshals,  both  as 
a  strategist  and  a  tactician.  He  was  a  stern  disciplinarian, 
but,  apparently,  popular  with  his  men  and  subordinates.* 
He  was  ever  solicitous  for  their  sustenance  and  shelter. 

In  the  army  generally,  Marshal  Ney  occupied  a  position 
in  some  ways  analogous  to  that  which  Murat  held  in  the 
cavalry.  The  "  bravest  of  the  brave,"  he  was  the  equal  of 
Murat  in  personal  courage,  his  superior  in  intelligence  and 
comprehension  of  the  requirements  of  war.  His  general 
good  nature  made  him  a  favourite  with  his  subordinates ; 
his  sudden  outbursts  of  temper  frightened  them,  and  often 
involved  him  in  quarrels  with  his  equals  or  superiors.!  As 
a  soldier,  he  was  at  his  best  commanding  the  rearguard  of  a 
retreating  army.  Before  Friedland,  in  the  north  of  Portugal, 
in  the  retreat  of  1812,  Ney  seemed  to  be  a  great  soldier.  None 
knew  better  how  long  it  was  possible  to  hold  in  safety  a 
covering  position,  more  precisely  the  moment  when  it  was 
necessary  to  evacuate  it  and  seek  the  next  favourable  locality 
in  which,  by  a  bold  stand,  to  check  the  advancing  enemy  and 
afford  time  to  the  main  body  of  his  own  army.  In  the  front, 
or  detached,  he  seemed  to  lose  his  head,  would  be  carried 
away  by  ambitious  projects,  and  sometimes  run  great  and 

*  He  was  "  a  man  of  probity,  of  order,  and  of  duty  above  all "  (De  Sfgur,  p. 
296).  After  Eylau  we  find  him  complaining,  in  an  order  to  Morand  commanding 
the  1st  Division,  that  many  men  had  skulked  out  of  the  battle  on  the  pretext  of 
assisting  the  wounded  to  the  rear  (Archives  Historiques,  daily  correspondence, 
10th  February,  1807).  The  remedy  he  recommends  for  this  state  of  affairs  is 
"  la  savate  avec  du  gras."  This  was  a  summary  form  of  punishment  inflicted 
by  the  men  themselves  on  their  defaulting  comrades.  The  delinquent  was  tied 
up,  and  each  man  of  his  company,  passing  by,  administered  a  sound  blow  or  two 
on  the  bare  flesh  with  a  shoe.  This  system  of  barrack-room  justice  is,  or 
recently  was,  in  force  in  the  French  army  in  the  case  of  petty  thefts,  etc. 

f  "He  knew  not  how  to  administer  a  calm  reprimand.  He  either  said 
nothing  or  else  exceeded  all  bounds.  Despite  this  violence  of  character,  his 
heart  was  good,  his  spirit  perfectly  just,  his  judgment  sound;  very  precious 
qualities  in  a  soldier  "  (De  Fezensac,  p.  133). 


TEE  ARMIES  AND    THE  LEADERS. 

mi  necessary  risk,  almost  in  defiance  of  orders.  There  is 
something  very  pathetic  and  natural  in  the  man  which  blots 
out  the  faults  and  compels  admiration.  Ney,  "  his  third  horse 
killed  under  him,  alone  near  an  abandoned  battery,  striking, 
in  his  rage,  the  bronze  muzzle  of  an  English  gun,"  * — Ney, 
baring  his  breast  to  the  bullets  of  the  soldiers  he  had  so 
often  led,  in  that  last  tragic  scene  near  the  garden  of  the 
Luxemburg,  appeals  to  us,  not  unsuccessfully,  to  forget  his 
weaknesses  and  his  faults. 

Napoleon  boasted  that  he  had  no  friends.  His  feelings 
towards  Jean  Lannes  were  perhaps  nearer  akin  to  friendship 
than  he  would  admit.  This  marshal  was  one  of  the  few  old 
comrades  to  whom  Napoleon,  even  as  Emperor,  allowed  the 
familiarity  implied  by  the  use  of  the  second  person  singular 
in  speech.  At  his  deathbed  the  stern  Emperor  relaxed,  and 
gave  vent  to  his  grief.  He  had  watched  Lannes*  progress 
as  a  commander,  and  had  seen  him  steadily  improving.! 
Impetuous,  and  ever  ready  to  throw  himself  into  the 
thickest  of  the  fray,  Lannes  was  yet  not  rash,  and  on  more 
than  one  occasion  in  the  Polish  campaign  he  fought  a  good 
and  patient  battle  against  very  superior  numbers.  He 
feared  neither  the  enemy  nor  the  Emperor ;  to  the  latter  he 
would,  at  times,  unbosom  himself,  even  regarding  Murat,  in 
terms  which  would  not  have  been  tolerated  from  another. 

Soult,  a  man  more  of  the  stamp  of  Bernadotte  than  of 
Ney,  was,  beyond  doubt,  a  capable  commander.  He  was  un- 
popular with  his  subordinates.:):  Of  his  capacity  as  a  general, 
Wellington  said  that  he  respected  him,  but  that,  "  though  his 
plans  seemed  always  to  be  admirable,  he  never  knew  when 
to  strike."  § 

Massena,  the  "  darling  child  of  victory,"  of  whom  Welling- 
ton said  that  he  was  the  best  of  the  marshals,  and  "  I  always 

*  Houssaye,  Waterloo,  p.  374. 

t  "  Je  l'avais  pris  pigmee,  je  l'ai  perdu  geant,"  said  Napoleon  (Meln.  de  Ste. 
11. .  vol.  i.,  pt.  2,  p.  10. 

X  "  Execre'  par  le  corps  entier  des  officiers  "  (Houssaye,  Waterloo,  p.  58). 
§  Brialmont,  Life  of  Wellington,  Gleig's  translation,  iv.  155. 


44  NAPOLEON'S    CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

found  him  where  I  least  desired  that  he  should  be,"  *  played 
but  a  minor  part  in  the  campaign.  Yet  it  might  well  have 
been  one  of  infinite  importance,  calling  for  the  exercise  of  all 
the  patience  and  endurance  which  he  displayed  in  the  defence 
of  Genoa,  combined  with  the  vigour  and  fire  of  the  victor  of 
Zurich,  f  He  was,  it  can  hardly  be  denied,  the  most  brilliant 
of  the  marshals,  and  the  best  fitted  for  the  command  of 
an  army. 

Mortier  calls  for  little  remark.  He  was  a  general  of 
average  capacity,  good  enough  for  the  command  of  a  corps, 
hardly  suited  for  independent  command  of  an  army. 

The  name  of  Bessieres  will  always  be  associated  with  the 
command  of  Napoleon's  Guard.  He  was  not  in  the  first 
rank  amongst  the  marshals,  and  acting,  as  he  generally  did, 
under  the  personal  command  of  Napoleon,  he  had  no  special 
opportunity  for  establishing  a  reputation  for  originality  or 
independence. 

Augereau  was  a  curious  mixture.  His  style  of  dress  and 
his  manner  gave  the  impression  of  a  braggart,  which  he  was 
not.  He  was  wanting,  said  Napoleon,  in  steadfastness  and 
perseverance.  Even  a  day  of  victory  seemed  to  discourage 
him.  His  intelligence  was  not  great,  his  education  very 
little;  yet  he  maintained  order  and  discipline  among  his 
men,  and  was  beloved  by  them.} 

Lefebvre  had  served  Napoleon  a  good  turn  on  the  18  th 
Brumaire,  when  he  marched  his  grenadiers  into  the  chamber 
of  the  Five  Hundred,  and  cleared  it  at  the  most  critical 
moment.  His  master  repaid  him  with  the  marshal's  baton, 
and  the  Dukedom  of  Danzig.  The  latter  was  probably  better 
deserved  by  his  chief  engineer,  Chasseloup.  A  hard-headed, 
courageous  old  soldier,  Lefebvre  was  not  a  general  of  any 
capacity.     To  his  artillery  officers  at  Danzig,  he  said,  "  Je 

*  Ibid.,  iv.  155. 

f  Unlike  Augereau,  "  Masse'na  vaincu  e'tait  toujours  pr§t  il  recommencer," 
said  Napoleon  {Mem.  de  Ste.  27.,  vol.  i.,  pt.  1,  p.  313). 

X  Napoleon's  character  of  him  (Me'm.  de  Ste.  H.,  vol.  i.,  pt.  1,  p.  313). 


THE  ARMIES  AND    TEE  LEADERS.  45 

n'entends  rien  de  votre  affaire :  mais  fichez  moi  un  trou  et  j'y 
passerai."  *     The  words  illustrate  his  character. 

Amongst  the  commanders  of  French  divisions  were  many 
men  who  attained,  in  later  years,  great  distinction — Victor, 
Oudinot,  Grouchy,  and  Suchet,  all  later  made  marshals,  the 
last  ulready  greatly  distinguished  in  the  wars  of  the  Republic 
in  Italy ;  Morand,  Friant,  and  Gudin,  the  excellent  leaders  of 
the  three  divisions  of  L)avout's  splendid  3rd  Corps ;  f  Van- 
damme,  Eapp,  Savary,  Dupont,  St.  Hilaire,  Lasalle,  Milhaud, 
Carra  St.-Cyr,  Keller  man,  Chasseloup,  Latour  Maubourg, 
were  all  names  well  known  in  the  history  of  Napoleon's 
campaigns ;  but  it  is  impossible,  in  the  limits  of  this  volume, 
to  dwell  on  them. 

The  French  generals  were  remarkable  for  their  compara- 
tive youth.  Napoleon  himself  was  37,  Lannes  and  Soult 
were  born  in  the  same  year  as  the  Emperor,  Davout  was  37, 
Mortier  39,  Murat  36,  Bernadotte  43.  The  veterans  were 
Augereau  at  50,  Berthier  54,  and  Lefebvre  52. 

Of  Marshal  Kamenskoi,  who  commenced  the  campaign 
as  commander-in-chief  of  the  Eussian  armies,  little  need  be 
said.  A  veteran  lieutenant  of  Suwarow,  he  was  now  too  old 
for  war.  His  early  measures  in  Poland  were  a  mixture  of 
impetuosity  and  hesitation.  His  violent  character,  which 
eventually  led  to  his  assassination  by  a  peasant,  rendered 
him  unsuitable  for  supreme  command. 

Count  Bennigsen,  who  succeeded  him,  was  a  Hanoverian. 
Born  in  1745,  he  retired  from  his  native  army,  and  entered 
the  Russian  service  in  1773.  In  that  army  he  had  a  dis- 
tinguished career  in  the  cavalry.  J 

*  Biogr.  Gen.,  art.  "  Marshal  Lefebvre." 

t  "  Davout  in  a  transport  of  joy  replied, '  Sire,  we, are  your  Tenth  Legion  ; 
the  3rd  Corps  will  be  to  you,  everywhere  and  always,  what  that  legion  was  to 
Caesar'"  (De  Segur,  An  A.D.C.  of  Napoleon,  p.  311).  The  boast  had  been 
justified  at  Auerstadt,  and  was  to  be  so  again  at  Eylau. 

X  The  personal  appearance  of  the  Russian  commander  is|thus  sketched  by 
De  Segur :  "  A  pale,  withered  personage  of  high  stature  and  cold  appearance, 
with  a  scar  across  his  face  "  (An  A.D.C.  of  Napoleon,  p.  328). 


46  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

He  can  hardly  be  described  as  a  great  general.  If  his 
plans  of  campaign  were  sometimes  not  wanting  in  originality 
and  design,  they  failed  in  execution,  or  from  Bennigsen's 
inability  to  modify  them  to  suit  changing  circumstances. 
At  times  his  conduct  exhibited  "a  mixture  of  rash  im- 
prudence and  of  irresolution  quite  irreconcilable."  *  For 
the  partial  successes  which  he  obtained  in  this  campaign 
against  the  French,  the  valour  and  obstinacy  of  his  troops, 
rather  than  his  tactics,  account. 

Barclay  de  Tolly  greatly  distinguished  himself  in  this 
campaign,  in  command  of  a  division,  especially  at  Eylau. 
His  great  claim  to  distinction,  however,  rests  on  his  plan  of 
campaign  in  1812,  when,  as  minister  of  war,  he  was  respon- 
sible for  the  design,  executed  in  part  by  himself,  of  drawing 
Napoleon  to  his  destruction  in  the  heart  of  Kussia.  Better 
had  it  been  for  Bussia  had  that  system  been  followed  in 
1807. 

Prince  Bagration,  who  was  usually  in  command  of 
Bennigsen's  advanced  or  rear  guard,  as  the  case  might  be, 
showed  himself  to  be  to  the  Bussians  what  Ney  was  to  the 
French.  The  excellence  of  his  rearguard  actions  will  appear 
in  the  course  of  this  history.  He  quarrelled,  later,  with 
Barclay,  to  whose  scheme  for  the  campaign  of  1812  he  was 
vehemently  opposed. 

The  Ataman  Platow,  leader  of  the  cossacks,  occupied  a 
peculiar  semi-paternal  position  amongst  his  wild  troops.  His 
personal  influence  with  them  was  enormous,  and  his  example 
would  rally  them  against  fearful  odds.  He  had  only  to 
dismount  and  call  upon  his  horsemen  in  order  to  stop  the 
spread  of  disorder. 

Of  Prince  Gallitzin,  who  led  the  Bussian  cavalry  with 
ability,  of  Dochtorow,  of  the  two  Essens,  of  Anrepp,  Muller, 
and  Markow,  it  is  unnecessary  to  make  detailed  mention. 
One  man,  on  the  side  of  the  allies,  acquired  a  great  repu- 
tation— Lestocq,   the    Prussian    commander.      His   conduct 

*  Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  421. 


THE  ARMIES  AND    THE  LEADERS.  47 

was  distinguished  throughout  by  energy,  firmness,  and 
ability.  It  was  more  than  once  his  fate  to  be  exposed  in  a 
position  where  he  could  be  cut  from  the  Russians.  On  each 
occasion  he  extricated  himself,  from  an  almost  hopeless 
situation,  with  the  greatest  ability.  His  march  on  Eylau  was 
a  masterpiece  of  patience  and  resolution,  as  well  as  of  resist- 
ance to  the  temptation  of  a  general  action. 

Marshal  Kalkreuth,  who  acquired  great  glory  by  his 
defence  of  Danzig,  had  seen  much  of  war,  and  was  best 
known,  before  1807,  for  his  siege  of  Mayence  in  1793. 


CHAPTEE   III. 
The  Theatre  of  War. 

THE  theatre  of  the  war  to  which  most  of  the  rest  of  this 
work  will  be  devoted,  lies  between  the  rivers  Bug  and 
Vistula  on  one  side,  and  the  Niemen  on  the  other.  The 
south-eastern  boundary  of  this  area  may  be  taken  as  a  line 
joining  Grodno  to  the  point  on  the  Bug  where  that  river 
ceased  to  be  the  northern  frontier  of  Gallicia.  The  north- 
western side  abuts  on  the  Baltic  Sea.  Within  these 
boundaries  lay  a  country  for  the  most  part  flat,  marshy,  and 
thickly  wooded — a  country  resembling,  except  in  the  last 
respect,  the  broads  of  Suffolk  and  Norfolk.  There  are  no 
heights  of  any  importance,  and  it  is  only  in  the  north- 
western corner,  from  Graudenz  on  the  Vistula  to  Marien- 
burg,  and  for  a  few  miles  to  the  east,  towards  Hohenstein, 
that  it  is  possible  to  describe  the  country  as  anything  but  an 
undulating  plain.  Here  the  underlying  rock  of  the  Polish 
plain  crops  out,  and  gives  rise  to  hills  which,  in  places,  reach 
an  elevation  of  500  to  700  feet  above  the  sea,  amongst  which 
are  imbedded  the  lakes  about  Osterode,  Pr.  Holland,  and 
Mohrungen.  The  bulk  of  the  military  operations  of  1807 
occurred  in  the  flat  country  farther  east.  Across  this  tract, 
in  a  direction  but  slightly  north  of  east,  there  extends,  from 
near  the  Vistula  about  Graudenz  to  the  Niemen  south  of 
Kowno,  a  broad  belt  of  lakes  and  marshes  of  all  sizes  and 
shapes.  Individual  lakes  attain  in  places  a  length  of  8  or 
10  miles ;  chains  of  lakes  with  narrow  strips  of  land  between 


THE   THEATRE   OF   WAR.  49 

them  extend  to  much  greater  distances.  Some  of  the  lakes 
are  long  and  narrow,  others  of  fantastic  trace,  with  long, 
finger-like  bays  protruding  into  the  country  in  all  directions. 
The  belt  of  lakes,  roughly  speaking,  averages  25  miles  in 
breadth,  and  includes  hundreds  of  sheets  of  water  and  marsh, 
varying  in  size  from  the  lakes  above  described  to  mere  ponds, 
which  could  only  be  shown  on  a  very  large  scale  map. 

The  forests,  which  in  ancient  times  clothed  the  whole  of 
this  country,  had,  in  1807,  and  even  now  have,  only  partially 
been  cleared.  It  was  often,  for  a  distance  of  many  miles, 
impossible  to  find  an  area  sufficiently  clear  of  continuous 
forest  to  allow  of  the  deployment  of  considerable  forces. 
The  great  forest  of  Johannisburg  extended,  almost  con- 
tinuously, for  45  miles  north  of  the  upper  Narew,  with  a 
breadth  varying  from  6  to  15  miles. 

The  principal  waterways  of  this  tract  were  the  following : 
The  Vistula,  rising  in  the  Carpathian  Mountains,  is,  even  at 
Warsaw,  a  large  stream  with  a  breadth  of  several  hundred 
yards.  From  Warsaw  to  a  point  some  20  miles  below  Thorn 
/a  distance  of  nearly  130  miles  as  the  crow  flies)  the  river 
flows  generally  north-west  between  low  banks,  in  a  broad 
marshy  bed,  studded  with  innumerable  islands.  At  this  point 
it  turns  sharply  to  a  direction  slightly  east  of  north,  the 
right  bank  begins  to  acquire  some  height  and,  in  the 
neighbourhood  of  Graudenz,  rises  to  the  dignity  of  a  range 
of  hills.  Some  30  miles  south  of  the  Gulf  of  Danzig,  the 
stream  divides,  the  right  branch  flowing  north-east  and 
falling  into  the  Frisches-Haff,  the  great  lagoon  which  stretches 
from  20  miles  east  of  Danzig  to  Koenigsberg.  The  left 
branch  flowing  north  nearly  to  the  sea,  again  subdivides, 
part  of  it  falling  into  the  western  end  of  the  Frisches-Haff, 
the  rest  running  west  to  Danzig,  where  it}  turns  north  into 
the  Gulf  of  Danzig.  The  river  and  the  Frisches-Haff  thus 
separate  from  the  main  land  the  long,  low,  narrow  strip 
of  land  known  as  the  Frische-Nehrung,  in  which  a  breach, 
at   Pillau   towards   its   north-eastern   extremity,  affords   an 

E 


50  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

outlet  to  the  sea  for  the  lagoon  and  the  waters  which  flow 
into  it. 

The  principal  affluent  on  the  right  bank  of  the  Vistula  is 
the  Bug,  which,  after  forming  the  northern  boundary  ol 
Gallicia,  joins  the  Vistula  18  or  20  miles  below  Warsaw. 
At  Sierock,  the  Bug  receives  on  its  right  bank  another  con- 
siderable stream,  the  Narew,  which,  flowing  from  the  western 
frontier  of  Eussia,  as  it  was  in  1806,  passes  Lomza,  Nowo- 
grod,  Ostrolenka,  and  Pultusk.  Both  rivers  are  military 
obstacles  of  importance,  subject  to  heavy  floods  in  wet 
weather,  fordable  only  in  seasons  of  drought.*  A  short 
way  below  Ostrolenka,  the  river  Omulew  reaches  the  Narew  ; 
which  again,  a  few  miles  above  Pultusk,  receives  the  Orezyc. 
Both  are  small  streams  with  a  course  of  40  or  50  miles  from 
the  north-west.  Close  to  its  junction  with  the  Vistula,  the 
Bug  is  joined  by  the  Ukra,  a  stream  of  somewhat  greater 
importance  which  rises  near  Soldau,  about  60  miles  north. 

The  only  other  stream  of  the  slightest  importance  which 
reaches  the  right  bank  of  the  Vistula,  in  the  theatre  of  war, 
is  the  Drewenz,  flowing  from  the  Osterode  lakes  to  the 
Vistula,  above  Thorn. 

The  Pregel,  in  so  far  as  it  concerns  the  campaign,  flows 
west,  past  Wehlau,  into  the  Frisches-Haff  at  Koenigsberg. 

Two  other  rivers  which  played  a  great  part  in  1807  require 
mention.  The  Passarge,  originating  in  the  lakes  south-east 
of  Osterode,  flows  nearly  due  north  to  the  Frisches-Haff  near 
Braunsberg.  In  its  upper  course  it  is  of  importance  only 
where  it  spreads  out  into  lakes  or  marshes.  Even  in  its 
lower  reaches  it  is  not  a  very  important  stream,  and,  except 
when  in  flood,  is  fordable  in  many  places. 

The  Alle,  starting  not  far  from  the  source  of  the  Passarge, 
flows  generally  parallel  to  it  at  a  distance  of  8  or  9  miles, 
till  a  point  just  north  of  Guttstadt ;  there  it  turns  to  the 

*  The  united  stream  below  Sierock  is  sometimes  spoken  of  as  the  Narew, 
sometimes  as  the  Bug.  The  latter  seems  more  correct,  the  Bug  being  the  larger 
stream,  and  it  is  adopted  in  this  work. 


THE   THEATRE   OF   WAR.  51 

north-east,  and,  flowing  in  a  tortuous  course  past  Heilsberg, 
Bartenstein,  and  Schippenbeil,  it  joins  the  Pregel  at  Wehlau, 
30  miles  east  of  Koenigsberg.  It  is  a  more  considerable 
stream  than  the  Passarge,  and,  even  as  high  up  as  Heilsberg, 
it  is  only  fordable  after  a  drought. 

The  tributaries  of  the  rivers  which  have  been  described 
were  in  no  case  of  importance,  from  a  military  point  of  view, 
in  themselves;  they  became  so  only  from  their  connexion 
with  the  marshes,  which  they  fed  or  partially  drained. 

The  general  features  of  this  country  were  plains  of  sand, 
or  of  mud  in  wet  weather,  intermixed  with  heaths,  bogs> 
forests,  lakes,  and  morasses. 

Across  this  area  there  passed  no  metalled  road ;  the  best 
of  the  communications  were  mere  banks  of  earth,  not  even 
revetted  except  where  their  passage  across  marshes  rendered 
it  impossible  to  maintain  them  without  artificial  support. 
By  the  droughts  of  summer  or  the  frosts  of  winter,  these 
so-called  roads  were  hardened  to  a  consistency  which  allowed 
of  the  passage  of  artillery  with  as  much  ease  as  is  ever 
possible  where  unmetalled  roads  have  to  be  used.  When 
soaked  with  rain,  or  dissolved  by  thaws,  they  became  almost 
impassable.  Napoleon  jokingly  said  that  in  Poland  he  had 
discovered  a  new  element — mud.  In  wet  weather  the  slush 
attained  a  depth  to  be  measured  in  feet,  not  in  inches.  In 
December,  1806,  the  infantry  sank  to  their  knees,  often 
further,  in  the  soft  roads;  the  horses  to  their  hocks;  the  guns 
to  their  axles :  sometimes  even,  guns  absolutely  disappeared 
in  the  clayey  mire.  Double  and  quadruple  teams  could  not 
drag  them  along  as  fast  as  the  1 J  miles  an  hour  which  the 
infantry  with  infinite  labour  could  cover.* 

•  The  following  references  to  the  works  of  writers  who  took  part  in  the 
campaign,  will  serve  to  show  the  terrible  condition  of  the  communications  in 
open  weather. 

De  Fezensac's  account  of  his  journey  to  make  explanations  to  Napoleon  on 
behalf  of  Ney.  He  started  on  the  15th  January  in  wet  weather  ;  his  conveyance 
broke  down,  and  he  had  to  go  for  miles  at  a  footpace  with  wretched  horses. 


52  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

The  best  of  the  roads  were  such  as  have  been  described, 
the  worst  were  mere  tracks  leading  from  one  village  to 
another.  The  four  principal  roads  between  the  Vistula  and 
the  Pregel  were — 

(1)  From  Danzig  to  Warsaw  by  the  right  bank  of  the 
Vistula ; 

(2)  From  Danzig  to  Koenigsberg  by  Dirschau,  Elbing, 
and  Braunsberg,  not  far  south  of  the  Frisches-Haff ; 

(3)  From  Warsaw  to  Koenigsberg  by  Sierock,  Pultusk, 
Makow,  Prasznitz,  Willemburg,  Bartenstein,  Preussisch 
Eylau,  and  Kreuzberg; 

(4)  The  road  from  Pultusk  to  Ostrolenka,  Lomza,  and 
thence  towards  St.  Petersburg. 

The  more  unfavourable  portion  of  the  theatre  was 
the  southern  half,  inhabited  by  Poles.  It  was  devoid 
of  large  towns,  sparsely  populated,  backward  in  every 
respect.  Farther  north,  the  names  of  the  villages  and  towns 
indicate  the  German  origin  of  the  population.  Large  indus- 
trial villages  were  comparatively  frequent  and  there  was  a 
general  air  of  prosperity  which  was  lacking  in  the  country 
of  the  Poles.  "Old  Prussia  offers,  compared  with  Poland, 
the  greatest  triumph  of  civilisation  over  barbarism  and  of 
light  over  darkness.  On  one  side  numerous  industrial 
wealthy  towns,  rich  farms,  and  admirable  cultivation;   on 

Then  came  frost  on  the  17th.  He  had  to  cross  the  Bug  in  a  boat  on  the  18th, 
as  the  bridge  had  been  broken  by  the  floating  ice  (pp.  134-135). 

Bernadotte,  writing  of  the  operations  towards  Soldau  in  December,  says, 
"  The  roads  were  frightful ;  the  artillery  could  not  follow,  and  one  marched  all 
day  to  cover  three  or  four  leagues"  (7J  to  10  miles)  (Report  on  1st  Corps, 
Arch.  Hitt.). 

"  The  field  on  which  we  were  about  to  fight  was  converted  into  a  lake  of 
mud,  where  soldiers  and  horses  could  scarcely  march  "  (Lannes'  report  on  Pultusk, 
Arch.  Hist). 

"  The  country  over  which  the  army  passed  (25th  December)  was  clayey  and 
marshy,  the  roads  were  frightful.  Horsemen,  infantry,  and  artillery  could  only 
get  over  them  in  the  face  of  almost  insurmountable  difficulties.  It  took  two 
hours  to  march  a  short  league  "  (2 J  miles)  (Davout,  p.  132). 

"  We  fought  and  marched  in  mud ;  we  should  have  died  of  cold  and  misery 
without  movement "  (Oomeau,  p.  288). 


THE   THEATRE   OF   WAR.  53 

the  other,  paltry  hamlets,  huts  side  by  side  with  a  palace : 
yet  there  is  no  difference  in  the  soil.  Customs,  government, 
religion,  these  are  what  constitute  nations."  * 

The  climate  of  this  tract  is  inhospitable.  The  icy  blasts, 
which  reach  it  from  the  frozen  north,  produce  in  winter  a 
climate  almost  arctic  in  its  severity.  In  summer  the  heat 
is  great,  for  Europe,  though  of  short  duration.  Hot  days  are 
succeeded  by  damp  cool  nights,  a  condition  of  climate  resulting 
in  the  prevalence  of  fevers.  The  dampness  of  the  country, 
especially  in  the  autumn  and  spring,  its  want  of  a  well- 
defined  watershed,  and  the  consequent  frequency  of  marshes 
and  of  sluggish  streams,  choked  with  the  decaying  debris  of 
the  forests,  render  it  unhealthy  and  malarious.  Of  every 
196  sick  in  the  French  hospitals  in  1807,  as  many  as  105 
were  cases  of  fever. t 

In  connexion  with  military  operations  it  is  not  so  much 
the  terrain  that  is  of  importance  in  Poland  as  the  climatic 
and  seasonal  conditions.:]:     In  summer  the  country  is  open, 

*  Jomini  (Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  354). 

t  Daru  quoted  by  Dumas,  at  p.  487,  vol.  xix.  M 

X  The  winter  of  1806-7  was  exceptional.  Comparatively  mild  autumn 
weather,  alternating  with  frosts,  lasted  far  later  than  usual.  The  following 
account  of  the  weather,  during  the  campaign,  is  abstracted  from  the  writings  of 
persons  who  went  through  it,  chiefly  from  the  correspondence  of  Napoleon. 
44  The  weather,  which  had  been  magnificent  during  the  month  of  October,  and 
the  first  part  of  November,  (then)  became  horrible.  It  rained  and  snowed 
incessantly.  Provisions  became  very  scarce ;  no  more  wine,  hardly  any  beer, 
and  what  there  was  exceedingly  bad,  muddy  water,  no  bread,  and  quarters  for 
which  we  had  to  fight  with  the  pigs  and  the  cows  "  (Marbot,  i.  240). 

On  the  18th  November,  1806,  no  frost,  sunshine  every  day,  the  roads  too 
heavy  to  allow  the  Emperor  to  travel,  except  in  country  conveyances.  Duroc's 
carriage  overturned  in  the  mud  (Corr.  11,497). 

Early  in  December,  bright,  dry,  cold  weather  (Larrey,  iii.  22). 

15th  December. — No  frost,  sunshine  every  day  {Corr.  11,494). 

17th  December. — Thaw  rendering  roads  very 'heavy  (Corr.  11,497). 

26th  December. — Complete  thaw  for  last  two  days  (Rapp,  p.  127,  and  others). 

31st  December. — Frost  set  in  again  (Larrey,  iii.  22). 

8th  January. — Alternate  snow  and  thaw  (Corr.  11,584). 

1st  to  10th  February. — Frost  and  snow  (all  authorities). 

10th  February. — Thaw  set  in  (Larrey,  iii.  61). 

17th  February. — Cold  has  ceased,  and  snow  melted  (Corr.  11,822). 


54  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND, 

and  practicable  in  all  directions  for  all  arms.  The  diffi- 
culty in  operations  arises  from  the  often  oppressive  heat. 
In  winter,  when  every  lake,  pond,  marsh,  and  river  is 
locked  in  the  embrace  of  severe  frost,  these  features,  as 
obstacles,  are  obliterated.  The  only  hindrances  to  progress 
are  the  forests,  the  snow,  and  the  severity  of  the  cold. 
In  spring  and  autumn,  rain  swells  the  lakes  and  the  rivers, 
and  the  roads  are  almost  impracticable  for  the  passage  of 
wheeled  traffic,  owing  to  the  sea  of  mud  which  covers  them.* 

Much  of  what  has  been  said  regarding  the  character  of 
the  country  beyond  the  Vistula  applies  equally  to  that 
between  the  Oder  and  the  Vistula. 

Within  the  theatre  of  operations,  when  the  French  reached 
Warsaw,  there  were  still  four  fortresses  in  the  possession  of 
Prussia. 

1.  Danzig,  on  the  left  bank  of  the  Vistula  near  its  mouth. 
The  strength  of  this  place  will  be  fully  dealt  with  when  the 
siege  is  described. 

2.  Koenigsberg,  at  the  mouth  of  the  Pregel,  the  capital 


18th  February. — Eain  and  thaw.    April  weather  (Corr.  11, 

21st  February. — Alternate  frosts  and  thaw  (Corr.  11,845). 

26th  February. — Loamy  ground  so  slippery  from  thaw  as  to  render  cavalry 
and  artillery  useless  (  Wihon,  p.  246). 

28th  February.— Frosts  and  thaw  alternately  (Corr.  11,907). 

17th  March — Cold  weather  again.  Two  feet  of  snow  in  last  three  or  four 
days  (Corr.  12,064). 

2nd  April. — Weather  fine,  but  still  cold.  Three  or  four  degrees  of  frost 
(Corr.  12,263). 

6th  April.— Freezing  hard  (Corr.  12,322). 

17th  April.— Raining! (Corr.  12,394). 

21st  April.— Frost.    January  weather  (Corr.  12,437). 

2nd  May. — Fine.     Leaves  coming  out  (Corr.  12,505). 

16th  May.— Weather  like  April  in  France  (Corr.  12,593). 

10th  June. —  Rain  at  night  (Larrey,  iii.  78). 

14th  June. — Hot  days,  cool  damp  nights  (Larrey,  p.  84). 

*  "  It  has  never  yet,"  says  Von  der  Goltz,  "  occurred  to  any  one  to  write  a 
strategy  and  tactics  for  the  different  seasons  of  the  year ;  and  yet  their  influence 
is  certainly  quite  as  great  as  that  of  terrain,  which  has  often  been  treated  so 
longwindedly  "  (Nation  in  Arms,  p.  327).  The  remark  applies  with  special 
force  to  Poland. 


THE    THEATRE   OF   WAR.  55 

of  old  Prussia,  a  poorly  fortified  city  but  an  immense  depdt 
of  stores  of  all  sorts. 

3.  Pillau,  a  fortified  pentagon  commanding  the  narrow 
outlet  from  the  Frisches-Haff  to  the  Baltic. 

4.  Graudenz,  a  fort  situated  to  the  north  of  the  town  of 
the  same  name,  important  as  commanding  a  principal  passage 
of  the  Lower  Vistula.  It  held  out  against  the  French 
throughout  the  campaign.  It  was  too  small  to  be  of  great 
value,  and  too  much  isolated.  The  siege  was  not  worth 
pressing  with  any  great  vigour,  seeing  that  it  was  easy  to 
mask  the  place  with  a  comparatively  small  force. 


PART  II. 

THE  FIRST  CAMPAIGN— PULTUSK  AND 
GOLYMIN 


/ 


CHAPTER   I. 

The  Plan  of  Campaign  and  the  Passages  of  the 
Vistula  and  Bug. 

"  TE  n'ai  jamais  en  un  plan  cooperations, "  was  a  saying  of 
Napoleon.*  He  did  not  imply  that  he  had  no  general 
scheme,  no  fixed  goal  towards  which  to  direct  his  operations. 
What  he  did  mean  was,  that  he  made  no  pretence  to  de- 
ciding beforehand  precisely  when  and  where  he  would  meet 
the  enemy,  and  how  he  would  dispose  of  him  when  met. 
Whilst  fixing  his  eye  steadily  on  the  end  at  which  he  had 
decided  to  aim  and  laying  down  the  earliest  movements,  he 
recognised  that,  once  the  enemy  was  encountered,  the  further 
direction  of  operations  must  depend  on  changing  circum- 
stances, from  day  to  day  and  from  hour  to  hour. 

When  he  first  arrived  in  Berlin  he  could,  until  the 
fragments  of  the  Prussian  army  had  been  destroyed,  come  to 
no  more  definite  decision  than  that  he  must,  sooner  or  later, 
encounter  and  defeat  the  Russians.  On  that  point  he  was 
certain,  and  he  did  not  hesitate  to  proclaim  it  publicly  to  his 
victorious  army.f 

As  news  of  the  surrender  of  Bliicher  and  Weimar,  the 
capitulation  of  Magdeburg,  the  destruction  of  the  other  re- 
mains of  the  Prussian  army  west  of  the  Oder,  and  of  the  slow 
advance  of  the  Russian  armies  towards  the  Vistula  came  in, 
he  began  to  see  his  way  more  and  more  clearly.     From  the 

•  Nation  in  Arms,  p.  152.        t  Corr.  11,093,  dated  26th  October,  1806. 


60  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

first,  he  had  recognised  the  desirability  of  taking  up  his 
quarters,  for  the  winter,  east  of  the  Vistula.*  By  doing  so 
he  would  place  himself  in  a  position  to  open  the  campaign 
next  spring  against  the  Kussians  without  having  to  delay  his 
advance  by  the  preliminary  operation  of  forcing  the  passage 
of  a  great  river,  the  Vistula.  He  would  cover  completely 
the  operations  for  the  subjugation  of  the  Silesian  fortresses, 
he  would  support  and  secure  the  moral  and  material  assist- 
ance of  the  Poles,  he  would  be  able  to  cover  the  sieges  of 
Danzig,  Colberg,  and  Stralsund,  from  which  places  he  had  to 
fear  a  descent  by  sea  upon  his  left  flank  and  rear.  Finally, 
he  would  wrest  from  Prussia  almost  all  the  territory  from 
which  she  might  hope  to  recruit  her  shattered  army,  leaving 
her  nothing  but  the  Baltic  provinces  of  Old  Prussia.  His 
goal,  for  the  present,  was  the  establishment  of  cantonments 
on  and  beyond  the  Vistula,  with  his  advanced  corps  pushed 
out  far  enough  into  Poland  to  leave  him  breathing  space  and 
to  afford  sufficient  room  to  enable  him,  in  the  event  of  his 
being  seriously  attacked,  to  concentrate  east  of  the  Vistula, 
for  the  defence  of  its  line,  without  risk  of  a  disaster.  Should 
he  be  able  to  attain  that  end,  or  even  should  he  find  himself 
compelled  to  winter  between  the  Vistula  and  the  Oder,  or 
behind  the  latter  river,  he  would  still  require  a  base  secured 
by  the  possession  of  the  fortresses  of  the  Oder  in  its  whole 
course.  Should  he  winter  beyond,  or  on  the  left  bank  of  the 
Vistula,  the  Oder  would  form  a  secondary  base  on  which  to 
fall  back,  if  necessary.     Should  he  find  progress  beyond  the 

*  "  It  was  desirable  for  the  success  of  ulterior  operations  not  to  allow  the 
enemy  to  cross  the  Vistula ;  otherwise  we  should  have  been  obliged  to  take  can- 
tonments in  a  bad  position  between  the  Vistula  and  the  Oder,  or  else  to  recross 
the  Oder  and  winter  in  Prussia.  That  would  have  uncovered  the  operations  in 
Silesia,  and  have  allowed  the  Prussians  to  recruit  all  the  Poles  who  came  under 
our  standards  "  (Savary,  iii.  20). 

"  If  I  let  the  Russians  advance  I  lost  the  support  and  the  resources  of  Poland ; 
they  might  decide  Austria,  which  only  hesitated  because  they  were  so  far  off ; 
they  would  carry  with  them  the  whole  Prussian  nation  which  would  feel  the 
necessity  of  doing  everything  it  could  to  retrieve  its  disasters  "  (Jomini,  Vie  de 
Napoleon,  ii.  334). 


THE  PLAN   OF  CAMPAIGN.  61 

Oder  impossible,  it  would  become  his  front  line,  with  the 
Elbe  in  support. 

In  the  end  of  October  aDd  the  beginning  of  November  he 
was  uncertain  as  to  the  fate  of  the  ruins  of  the  Prussian 
army  of  Jena ;  Magdeburg  still  held  out  against  Ney ; 
Bliicher  'and  Weimar  might  yet  escape  to  establish,  with 
their  reorganised  troops,  a  new  army  beyond  the  Vistula. 
He  had  little  information  as  to  the  situation  and  movements 
of  the  advancing  Eussians.  He  knew  not  whether  he  would 
have  to  meet  them  on  a  battlefield  not  far  east  of  the  Oder  or 
whether  they  were  still  beyond  the  Russian  frontier,  farther 
to  the  east  of  the  Vistula  than  he  was  to  the  west. 

On  the  5th  November  he  writes  fully  to  Davout,  whom 
he  had  promptly  sent  eastwards  from  Berlin.  He  directs  the 
marshal  to  advance  on  Driesen  and  Meseritz,  beyond  the 
Oder,  and  to  scour  the  country  in  advance  with  2500 
dragoons  under  Beaumont.  On  no  account  was  his  infantry 
to  pass  Driesen  and  Meseritz  without  further  orders.  As  far 
as  the  Emperor's  information  at  present  went,  it  was  im- 
probable the  Russians  could  reach  Warsaw  for  another 
fortnight.  On  Davout's  right,  Jerome,  with  24,000  men,  was 
attempting  the  capture  of  Glogau ;  if  he  succeeded  he  would 
march  on  Custrin,  which  had  pusillanimously  capitulated 
and  was  temporarily  garrisoned  by  2000  Baden  troops.  If 
Weimar  surrendered  to  Soult,  Bernadotte,  and  Murat,  they, 
with  Lannes  from  Stettin,  would  be  available  to  support 
Davout's  advance.  When  Magdeburg  should  fall  before  Ney, 
he  also  would  be  in  hand.* 

All  was  still  uncertain  as  regards  the  extent  of  the 
advance.  Two  days  later  the  clouds  began  to  lift.  Bliicher 
and  Weimar  had  surrendered  on  the  7th  ;  Magdeburg  was  on 
the  point  of  capitulation,  and  actually '  fell  next  day.  It 
seemed  that  Bennigsen,  with  the  first  Russian  army,  had  not 
more  than  50,000  men,  and  that  it  was  very  improbable  they 
could  all  reach  the  Vistula  before  the  20th  at  the  earliest. 

*  Napoleon  to  Davout,  dated  Berlin,  5th  November,  1806  (Corr.  11,176). 


62  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Davout  was,  therefore,  to  reach  Posen  on  the  9th,  when 
Augereau  would  have  arrived  in  support  at  Driesen.  At 
Posen  he  was  to  construct  enormous  bakeries  for  the  supply 
of  the  army  which  would  concentrate  on  it.  Nevertheless, 
Davout  was  to  avoid  engaging  the  Eussians  should  they, 
perchance,  have  arrived  on  the  Vistula.  If  they  had  not 
been  brought  to  a  halt  by  the  result  of  the  operations  against 
the  Prussians,  the  Emperor  proposed,  for  the  present,  to  halt 
at  Posen,  which  he  thought  it  beyond  the  limits  of  possibility 
for  Bennigsento  attack  before  the  18th.  Should  the  Eussians 
be  further  delayed,  the  Emperor's  plans  might  be  changed.* 
At  the  same  time,  Chasseloup  was  directed  to  fortify  Stettin 
against  a  surprise,  as  a  support  to  the  left  of  the  base  on  the 
Oder,f  and  numerous  orders  for  the  collection  of  ammunition 
and  supplies  of  all  sorts  at  Posen  were  issued.J  For  the 
protection  of  his  left  rear  against  the  sea,  precautions  were 
also  taken.  To  Louis  Buonaparte  his  brother  had  no  inten- 
tion of  trusting  the  command  in  this  direction.  On  the  5th 
November,  the  Emperor  wrote  to  Mortier,  in  Hanover,  that 
Louis'  health  would  probably  necessitate  his  return  to 
Holland.  §  On  the  11th,  Mortier  was  appointed  to  the 
command  on  Louis'  departure.  The  ill  health  of  the  latter 
was,  perhaps,  diplomatic  only.  The  army  under  Mortier  was 
ordered  to  seize  Hamburg,  and  confiscate  all  the  great  stores 
of  English  merchandise  there.  || 

It  soon  became  abundantly  clear  that  no  trouble  to  the 
west  of  the  Vistula  was  likely  to  arise  from  a  Eussian 
advance  in  the  winter.  Davout  had  encountered  practically 
no  opposition  as  far  as  Posen,  his  cavalry  was  well  out  in 
front  of  him,  meeting  with  no  serious  resistance. 

The  occupation  of  Warsaw,  at  any  rate,  was    of  vital 

*  Corr.  11,196  and  11,199,  both  to  Davout,  dated  Berlin,  7th  November, 
1806. 

t  Corr.  11,178,  dated  5th  November,  1806. 

X  Corr.  11,187  to  11,190,  dated  5th  November,  1806. 

§  Corr.  11,175,  dated  5th  November,  1806. 

H  Corr.  11,267,  dated  16th  November,  1806. 


THE  FLAN   OF  CAMPAIGN.  63 

importance  as  assuring  the  support  of  the  Poles.  This 
political  consideration  was  of  paramount  importance,  and 
turned  the  balance  in  favour  of  an  advance  on  the  Upper 
Vistula.  From  a  purely  military  point  of  view  the  Emperor 
would  possibly  have  preferred  to  operate  on  the  angle  of  the 
river  about  Thorn,  spreading  his  cantonments  eastward,  with 
his  flanks  resting  on  the  Vistula  above  and  below  Thorn.  To 
the  Lower  Vistula,  as  a  base,  there  was  the  objection  that  his 
communications  would  be  more  open  to  a  raid  from  Pomerania 
than  they  would  be  farther  south.  It  is  true  they  were  more 
exposed  to  Austria  if  he  advanced  on  the  southern  line ;  but 
then,  if  Austria  entered  the  arena,  the  whole  advance  must 
have  been  abandoned  until  she  had  been  annihilated. 

The  Emperor,  on  these  considerations,  decided  to  advance, 
at  least  as  far  as  the  line  of  the  Vistula  from  Warsaw  to 
Thorn.  The  conduct  of  the  Russians,  when  he  reached  War- 
saw, would  show  whether  it  was  safe  to  push  on  beyond  the 
great  river. 

The  advance  was  to  be  in  echelons  with  Davout  and 
Murat  on  the  right  in  front.  As  those  marshals  progressed 
beyond  the  re-entrant  angle  of  the  Vistula  below  Thorn, 
their  communications  would  be  exposed  to  enterprise  from 
the  river.  To  protect  them  on  this  side,  the  corps  of  Lannes, 
Augereau,  Soult,  Bessieres,  Ney,  and  Bernadotte  would  move 
in  succession  on  Thorn,  the  three  first-named  then  turning  to 
their  right  up  the  left  bank  of  the  river  towards  Warsaw. 

In  this  way,  any  attempt  by  the  enemy,  across  the  river  be- 
tween Thorn  and  Warsaw,  against  the  communications  of  one 
corps,  would  be  taken  in  flank  by  the  corps  following.  When 
Davout  and  Murat  arrived  in  Warsaw,  the  corps  of  Lannes, 
Augereau,  and  Soult  would  be  along  the  river  below  it,  within 
call,  whilst  Bessieres,  Ney,  and  Bernadotte  would  be  at,  or 
approaching,  Thorn.  Thorn  and  Warsaw  would  be  strongly 
held,  when  taken,  as  the  extremities  of  the  advanced  base. 

To  cover  the  right  flank  of  Murat  and  Davout,  the  corps 
of  Jerome  was  available,  until  the  proximity  of  the  Austrian 


64  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

frontier,  as  it  turned  northwards  to  the  Bug,  should  form  a 
protection,  so  long  as  Austria  was  quiet.  Murat,  who  was  to 
command  the  right  wing  of  the  army,  would  be  able,  should 
the  Kussians  show  signs  of  standing  to  fight  at,  or  in  front  of, 
Warsaw,  to  dispose  of  80,000  men,  a  force  far  superior  to  any 
Bennigsen  was  likely  to  have.* 

On  the  24th  November,  the  Emperor  left  Berlin,  on  the 
25th  he  was  at  Custrin.  He  was,  at  this  time,  carrying  on 
negotiations  with  the  King  of  Prussia  for  an  armistice,  the 
idea  of  which  he  had  refused  to  entertain  until  he  had 
gathered  in  all  the  fruits  of  his  victories  at  Jena  and 
Auerstadt.  The  terms  which  he  now  offered  were  such  as 
Prussia  could  not  possibly  accept,  unless  she  were  prepared 
to  cut  herself  loose  from  the  Kussian  alliance  and  to  throw 
herself  on  the  mercy  of  the  French.     They  were — 

(1)  The  Prussian  army  to  be  withdrawn  behind  the 
Vistula  ; 

(2)  The  French  to  occupy  the  right  bank  of  the  Vistula, 

*  Corr.  11,302,  to  Murat,  dated  24th  November,  1806.  In  this  letter  the 
Emperor  shows  Murat  the  strength  of  his  wing  thus : — 

1st  Cavalry  Keserve  (Murat) — 


Beaumont's  and  Kleii 

1*8  dragoons 

4800 

Becker's  dragoons 

... 

1200 

Nansouty's  cavalry 



2400 

Milhaud's  cavalry 



800 

Total 

9200 

Infantry. 

Cavalry. 

7th  Corps  (Davout) 

22,000 

1200 

5th  Corps  (Lannes) 

16,000 

1200 

7th  Corps  (Augereau) 

16,000 

1200 

of  9th  Corps  (Jerome) 

12,000 

2000 

Totals      ...        66,000  5200 

Grand  totals      ...      66,000  infantry,  and  14,400  cavalry  =  80,400  men. 

The  Russians  could|not,  Napoleon  thought,  have  more  than  30,000  or  40,000 
men  at  Warsaw.  TheJ  remaining  French  forces  might  be  expected  to  be  as 
follows : — 

Ney  at  Posen  on  24th.  Soult  at  Frankfort  on  25th.  Sahuc's  cavalry  at 
Posen  on  the  27th.  Lasalle's  on  the  20th.  Grouchy's  on  the  29th.  Bernadotte 
was  still  behind. 


Til g  PLAN   OF  CAMPAIGN.  65 

bom  the  Austrian  frontier  to  the  mouth  of  the  Bug,  as  well 
as  Thorn,  Graudenz,  Danzig,  Colberg,  Lenczyca,  the  Silesian 
fortresses  of  Glogau  and  Breslau,  and  all  Silesia  on  the  left 
bank  of  the  Oder; 

(3)  The  rest  of  East  Prussia,  and  Prussian  Poland  to  be 
unoccupied  by  either  party  ; 

(4)  The  King  of  Prussia  to  obtain  the  withdrawal  of  all 
Russian  troops  from  his  territories  during  the  suspension  of 
arms. 

The  last  condition  it  was  beyond  the  power  of  the  King  to 
comply  with;  the  others  would  have  the  effect  of  leaving 
Napoleon  master  of  the  situation  on  the  recommencement  of 
hostilities,  and  he  would  naturally  protract  peace  negotiations 
till  the  season  was  suitable  for  his  advance.  He  would  then 
be  able,  holding  all  the  passages  of  the  Vistula,  to  place  his 
army  in  Poland  long  before  the  Russians  could  reach  it,  and 
Prussia  would,  meanwhile,  have  had  little  territory  from 
which  to  recruit  a  fresh  army. 

On  the  27th  November,*  Napoleon  informed  Talleyrand 
that  the  King  had,  as  he  must  have  expected,  refused  to 
ratify  the  armistice.  The  period  of  negotiation  had  been 
utilised  by  Napoleon  in  vigorously  pressing  his  advance. 

On  the  10th  November,  Davout  was  at  Posen,  where  he 
had  arrived  the  day  before ;  Lannes  was  at  Schneidmuhl  on 
his  left,  on  the  Stettin-Bromberg  road;  Augereau  was 
at  Custrin;  Jerome,  leaving  6000  Wurtemburg  troops  to 
besiege  Glogau,  f  was  moving  towards  Kalisch  on  Davout's 
right. 

On  the  18th,  Davout  had  reached  Sempolno,  nearly  half 
way  from  Posen  to  Warsaw,  and  Nansouty's  cavalry  was  as 
far  forward  as  Konin  on  the  Wartha.  Cavalry  pushed  out  in 
all  directions,  especially  towards  Bromberg  and  Thorn,  had 

•  Corr.  11,311,  dated  Meseritz,  27th  November,  1806. 

t  Glogau  surrendered  on  the  2nd  December,  and  Vandamme,  with  the 
Wurtemburg  division,  moved  to  the  siege  of  Breslau,  where  he  was  joined  by 
Jerome  from  Kalisch,  with  the  Bavarian  division.  Breslau  did  not  surrender 
till  the  7th  Januarv. 


66  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

forced  the  small  bodies  of  Prussians  in  front  of  them  to  fall 
back  towards  the  Vistula.  Lannes  was  before  Thorn,  into 
which  Lestocq,  with  the  Prussians,  had  retired,  after  partially 
burning  the  pile  bridge.  Augereau  was  at  Bromberg.  Davout's 
left  was,  therefore,  well  protected.  Lannes  had,  however,  been 
unable  to  induce  the  surrender  of  either  Graudenz  or  Thorn. 
Jerome  with  part  of  his  corps  was  at  Kalisch.  Ney  and 
Soult  were  in  second  line,  Bernadotte  still  marching,  east  of 
the  Elbe,  on  Berlin. 

On  the  24th  November,  as  Davout  and  Murat  continued 
their  advance  on  Warsaw,  Lannes,  who  had  remained  till 
then  in  front  of  Thorn,  commenced  his  movement  up  the 
Vistula,  protecting  their  left.  The  small  fort  of  Lenczyca, 
surrounded  by  marshes,  about  equi-distant  from  Thorn  and 
Warsaw,  and  about  half  as  far  from  the  river  as  it  was  from 
either  place,  was  evacuated  by  the  Prussians  and  occupied 
by  Davout.  It  was  at  once  set  in  order  as  a  great  advanced 
magazine,  immense  quantities  of  stores  and  ammunition  being 
collected  in  it. 

The  first  Kussian  cavalry  were  met  and  driven  back  by 
Murat  at  Blonie.  On  the  evening  of  the  28th  November,  he 
entered  Warsaw  as  the  Kussians  passed  the  Vistula  to  the 
suburb  of  Praga  on  the  right  bank,  burning  the  bridge 
after  crossing.  Even  now,  Napoleon  could  hardly  believe  that 
Bennigsen  would  leave  him,  uncontested,  the  passage  at 
Warsaw.  He  wrote  to  Murat,  on  the  1st  December,*  "Ifv 
the  enemy  commits  the  folly  of  evacuating  Praga,  seize  the 
faubourg,  and  construct  a  strong  bridge  head."  On  the  30th, 
Davout  arrived  with  Morand's  division  and  part  of  Gudin's, 
the  rest  of  the  infantry  being  between  Blonie  and  Warsaw, 
the  light  cavalry  spread  along  the  left  bank  of  the  Vistula 
down  to  a  point  opposite  the  mouth  of  the  Bug. 

Lannes  was  now  on  the  Bszura  at  Lowicz  and  Sochaczew. 
Augereau,  from  the  mouth  of  that  river  to  Wroclawik,  above 
Thorn,  touching,  with  his  right,  Lannes'  left  at  Sochaczew. 
*  Corr.  11,332,  dated  Posen,  1st  December,  180G. 


THE  PLAN  OF  CAMPAIGN.  G7 

His  light  cavalry,  on  the  left,  waiting  for  the  arrival  of  Ney, 
manceuvered  towards  Bromberg. 

On  the  2nd  December,  the  anniversary  of  the  Imperial 
coronation  and  of  Austerlitz,  Napoleon  issued  to  his  troops 
one  of  the  stirring  proclamations  with  which  he  was  wont  to 
announce  the  opening  of  a  new  campaign.*  On  the  present 
occasion  there  was  special  need  for  a  strong  appeal  to  the 
enthusiasm  and  devotion  of  his  soldiers  who,  in  the  past 
fifteen  months,  had  served  the  Emperor  so  well.  They  had 
begun  to  feel  the  desire  for  a  period  of  rest  before  renewing 
their  exertions ;  they  looked  with  repugnance  on  the  idea  of 
at  once  entering  on  a  fresh  campaign  in  the  wilds  of  Poland, 
in  the  midst  of  mud  and  snow.  They  had  already  learnt 
something  of  the  terrors  of  Polish  weather  in  their  march 
from  Berlin,  and  there  was  much  grumbling  at  the  idea  of 
going  beyond  the  Vistula.! 

It  is  now  time  to  examine  the  situation  of  the  Eussian 
armies  and  the  small  Prussian  corps,  with  the  outposts  of 
which  alone  the  French  had  so  far  come  into  collision. 

On  the  1st  December  began  the  Eussian  retreat  from  the 

*  Here  is  the  proclamation :  "  Soldiers !  A  year  has  to-day  passed  since  you 
were,  at  this  very  hour,  on  the  memorable  field  of  Austerlitz.  The  Russians, 
ileeing  in  terror,  or  surrounded,  were  yielding  their  arms  to  their  conquerors. 
Next  day  they  sent  overtures,  deceitful  overtures,  of  peace.  Scarce  had  they, 
thanks  to  a  perhaps  culpable  generosity,  escaped  from  the  disasters  of  the  third 
coalition,  when  they  entered  upon  a  fourth.  But  their  ally,  on  whose  tactics 
they  founded  their  chief  hopes,  is  now  no  more.  His  strong  places  ;  his  capital ; 
his  magazines  ;  280  of  his  standards  ;  700  of  his  guns  ;  5  of  his  great  fortresses 
are  all  in  our  hands.  The  Oder,  the  Wartha,  the  deserts  of  Poland,  the  rigours 
of  the  season,  have  all  failed  to  arrest  for  an  instant  your  advance ;  you  have 
braved  all,  surmounted  all,  everything  has  fled  at  your  approach.  Soldiers !  we 
shall  not  lay  aside  our  arms  until  a  general  peace  has  affirmed  and  assured  the 
power  of  our  allies,  and  restored  to  our  commerce  its  liberty  and  its  colonies. 
We  have  conquered  on  the  Elbe  and  the  Oder,  at  Pondicherry,  and  in  our 
Indian  colonies ;  at  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope,  and  in  the  Spanish  colonies. 
Who  can  give  the  Russians  the  hope  of  balancing  destiny  ?  Who  can  authorise 
them  to  thwart  such  great  designs  ?  Are  not  they  still,  as  we  are,  the  soldiers 
of  Austerlitz?"  (Corr.  11,352). 

t  "Our  soldiers  were  less  satisfied;  they  showed  a  lively  repugnance  to 
cross  the  Vistula.  Misery,  the  winter,  the  bad  weather,  had  inspired  them  with 
an  extreme  aversion  for  this  country''  (Rapp>  118). 


68  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Vistula  before  the  French  threatening  a  passage,  not  only  at 
Warsaw,  but  also  lower  down  at  Wroclawik  and  Zakroczin. 
The  6th  division  (Sedmaratzki)  fell  back,  from  Praga,  over  the 
Narew  to  Sierock.  The  4th  division  retired,  between  the  2nd 
and  4th  December,  from  Pultuskto  Ostrolenka  with  Bennigsen's 
headquarters.  The  2nd  division  from  Plonsk  to  Kozan,  the 
3rd  from  Prasznitz  to  a  post  midway  between  Makow  and 
Ostrolenka.  The  advanced  guard  of  Barclay  de  Tolly  retired 
from  Plock  to  Novemiasto,  behind  the  Sonna.  Only  a  few 
hundred  cossacks  remained  on  the  Vistula.*  The  Prussians 
under  Lestocq  had  been  guarding  the  line  of  the  Lower 
Vistula  from  Thorn,  far  too  long  a  line  for  their  weak  force. 
Lestocq,  nevertheless,  protested  against  Bennigsen's  orders 
for  his  retreat.f  He  was  compelled  to  obey,  especially  as  the 
retirement  of  Bennigsen  would  expose  his  left  flank.  On 
the  5th  December,  his  headquarters  were  at  Gollub,  on  the 
6th  at  Strasburg.  The  detachments  lower  down  fell  back  on 
Deutsch  Eylau,  Bischofswerder,  and  Lobau.} 

On  the  2nd  December,  Praga  was  occupied  by  a  French 
regiment.  On  the  3rd,  Milhaud's  light  cavalry  passed  the 
Vistula  and  proceeded  towards  the  Bug.  Between  the  3rd 
and  8th,  Davout's  three  divisions  crossed  the  Vistula  and 
occupied  the  small  triangle  between  it,  the  Bug,  and  the 
Austrian  frontier,  which  left  the  Bug  a  few  miles  above 
Sierock  and  met  the  Vistula  a  short  way  above  Warsaw. 
Davout's  headquarters  were  at  Jablona,  his  outposts  stretched' 
along  the  left  bank  of  the  Bug  from  its  mouth  to  the  Austrian 
frontier. 

As  long  as  Austria  was  neutral,  this  frontier  now  safe- 
guarded Davout's  right ;  Jerome's  corps  could  devote  itself  to 
the  Silesian  sieges.  Lannes'  corps  replaced  Davout  in  Warsaw 
dnd  Praga.  Its  headquarters  were  in  Warsaw  on  the  5th 
December. 

Immense  energy  was  being  displayed  in  repairing  the 
bridge  and  in  constructing  redoubts,  so  as  to  make  of  Praga  a 

*  Hoep/mr,  iii.  09.  t  lhid.,  iii.  67.  X  *W<i.,  iii.  70. 


PASSAGE  OF  THE   VISTULA.  69 

j>owerful  entrenched  camp  and  bridge  head.*  This  work  was 
of  the  utmost  importance  as  supporting  the  right  of  the  new- 
base  on  the  Vistula,  and  as  a  cover  to  a  retreat,  should  that 
be  necessary. 

Whilst  Murat  and  Davout  were  completing  the  passage 
of  the  Vistula  on  the  extreme  right,  Ney  had  arrived  on  the 
left  of  the  line,  in  front  of  Thorn,  now  held  only  by  a 
rearguard  left  by  Lestocq. 

On  the  evening  of  the  6th  December,  a  few  French 
companies,  commanded  by  Colonel  Savary,  passed  the  river 
in  boats  which  had  been  collected  under  shelter  of  the  islands. 
After  a  little  sharp  fighting,  the  Prussians,  whose  strength 
was  small,  were  driven  out  of  the  town.  More  French  troops 
passing  over,  a  battalion  and  two  squadrons  followed  the 
Prussian  rear  guard  as  far  as  Gollub.  Having  forced  them 
to  continue  their  retreat,  the  French  returned  to  Thorn,  and 
the  repair  of  the  bridge  was  at  once  taken  in  hand,  though 
not,  apparently,  with  so  much  energy  as  was  desirable,  for  it 
was  not  completed  till  the  15th  December,  t 

As  Warsaw  was  required  for  a  support  to  the  right  of  the 
base  on  the  Upper  Vistula,  so  Thorn  was  required  for  the 
left.  The  old  fortifications  were  ordered  to  be  restored,  in 
order  to  make  of  the  place  a  bridge  head  covering  the 
passage.  J 

To  support  Ney,  Bessieres,  with  the  second  cavalry 
reserve,  passed  at  Thorn. 

Bennigsen  had  ordered  the  retreat  from  the  Vistula  with 
a  view  to  uniting  with  the  2nd  Army  under  Buxhowden 


j,  xvii.  Ill,  112. 

t  De  Fezensac  (p.  128)  gives  this  date,  mentioning  that  even  on  the  13th 
troops  had  still  to  cross  in  boats.  The  wooden  bridge  had  been  burnt,  and  its 
restoration  was  no  easy  matter. 

X  Chasseloup  was  instructed  to  take  in  hand  the  fortification  of  the  bridge 
head  at  Thorn ;  but  first  he  was  to  attend  to  Praga,  where  an  intrenched  camp, 
large  enough  for  40,000  men,  was  required.  He  was  also  to  submit  a  plan  for 
fortifying  one  of  the  islands  at  the  mouth  of  the  Bug.  Another  tHe  de  pont 
was  required  on  the  Bug,  at  the  mouth  of  the  Ukra  (Corr.  11,4G3,  dated  13th 
December,  1806). 


70  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

(who,  in  the  beginning  of  December,  had  only  just  passed 
the  Kussian  frontier,*  and  could  not  arrive  on  the  Vistula 
before  the  15th)  before  attempting  to  oppose  seriously  the 
French  advance.  Buxhowden,  learning  the  retreat  of  the 
1st  Army,  halted  his  own  nearly  thirty  miles  east  of  Ostro- 
lenka,  the  headquarters  of  Bennigsen.  The  two  commanders 
were  vieing  with  one  another  for  the  chief  command.  Both 
saw  it  was  impossible  for  Marshal  Kamenskoi,  rapidly  losing 
his  reason,  to  retain  his  position  long,  and,  it  is  to  be  feared, 
their  jealousy  may  have  influenced  their  actions.  No  sooner,t 
however,  had  Bennigsen  retreated  than  he  perceived  his 
mistake  in  allowing  the  French,  unchallenged,  to  pass  the 
Vistula.^    No  doubt  he  could  not  have  prevented  their 

*  The  Russian  western  frontier  in  1806  was  very  different  from  what  it  now 
is.  Starting  from  the  Baltic  some  10  miles  north  of  Memel,  it  ran  south-east  to 
the  Niemen  (or  Memel)  river,  25  miles  east  of  Tilsit.  Thence  it  ran  east  along 
the  river  for  about  60  miles.  From  this  point  it  ran  nearly  due  south,  following 
the  Niemen  nearly  to  its  source,  and  thence  in  the  same  direction,  to  the 
Bug  and  the  Austrian  frontier.  This,  the  nearest  point  on  the  frontier  to 
Warsaw,  and  to  the  Vistula,  was  90  miles  east  of  that  city. 

f  Dumas  (xiv.,  425-429)  gives  a  note,  furnished  to  him  by  Bennigsen, 
on  the  latter's  motives  for  not  defending  the  line  of  the  Vistula.  After  pointing 
out  the  inferiority  of  his  numbers,  he  rightly  remarks  that  he  would  have 
committed  an  unpardonable  fault  in  attempting  to  defend  the  long  line  of  the 
river  above  Thorn.  If  he  attempted  to  defend  Thorn  and  Warsaw,  the  French 
could  cross  between  them,  thus  cutting  him  in  two.  The  argument  loses  its 
force  when  we  consider  Bennigsen's  subsequent  orders  to  Lestocq  to  retake 
Thorn  after  its  occupation  by  Ney. 

%  A  statement  in  the  Arch.  Hist,  gives  the  positions  of  the  French  army  on 
the  5th  December. 

Reserve  of  Grenadiers  (Oudinot),  Berlin. 

Marching  on  Posen,  due  there  on  7th. 

Warsaw  and  Blonie.     Light  Cavalry  on  left  bank  of 

Vistula  from  Warsaw  to  the  Bszura. 
About  Posen. 
Sochaczew,  Lowicz,  and  along  the  Vistula  below 

the  mouth  of  the  Bszura. 
Opposite  Thorn,  and  at  Bromberg,  etc. 
In  front  of  Blonie.    Light  Cavalry  opposite  Thorn, 
under  orders  to  rejoin  the  corps. 
Reserve  Cavalry— 

Lasalle  marching  on  Warsaw. 

Milhaud  on  right  bank  of  Vistula  towards  the  lower  Bug. 


Imperial  Guard,  Posen. 
Bernadotte  1st  Corps. 
Davout ...   3rd  Corps. 

Soult     ... 
Lannes 

4th 

5th 

Corps. 
Corps. 

Ney 
Augercau 

6th 
7th 

Corps. 
Corps. 

PASSAGE   OF   THE    VISTULA.  71 

passage;  but  he  might,  at  least,  have,  for  the  moment, 
delayed  their  acquisition  of  the  two  important  tetes  de  pont 
of  Praga  and  Thorn.  He  decided  again  to  advance.  The 
recovery  of  Praga  was  hopeless ;  but  he  could  hope  to  check 
Napoleon  at  the  Bug,  which  had  not  yet  been  passed,  and 
he  might  still  possibly  recover  Thorn,  where  the  French  had 
shown  less  strength.  Whilst  he,  with  the  main  body  of  his 
army,  again  advanced  to  Pultusk,  he  sent  a  hurried  order 
to  Lestocq  to  attempt  the  re-occupation  of  Thorn.  It  was 
too  late.  When  Lestocq  arrived  before  the  place,  which 
he  had  evacuated  only  two  days  before,  he  found  Ney's  force 
too  strong  for  him.  He  was  forced  to  retreat  again  to  Stras- 
burg,  his  rearguard  being  roughly  handled  by  Ney,  and  to 
take  up  a  position  towards  Lautenburg,  on  the  left  bank  of 
the  Drewenz. 

Bennigsen's  fresh  forward  movement  was  not  more 
successful;  for  he  was  shortly  informed  of  the  further 
progress  of  the  French,  now  to  be  narrated.  Murat's  orders 
were,  when  he  had  passed  the  Vistula  at  Warsaw,  to 
endeavour  also  to  pass  the  Bug.*  This  operation  was 
undertaken  by  Davout,  on  the  10th  December,  with  Gauthier's 
brigade  of  Morand's  division.  The  points  selected  for  the 
passage  were  Okunin,  about  two  miles  above  Nowydwor,  and 
Nowydwor  itself,  the  principal  passage  to  be  at  the  former. 

At  5.30  a.m.  on  the  10th,  in  the  dark,  Gauthier  sent 
across  the  river  at  Okunin,  by  boat,  ninety  men,  with  orders 
to  take  post  silently  one  hundred  paces  from  the  river  on 
the  farther  side.     They  were  not  to  fire,  unless  attacked. 

Wattier  concentrating  on  Kutno. 

Nansouty,  Wiskitki,  etc. 

D'Hautpoult,  Obermulki. 

Klein,  Mosna,  etc. 

Grouchy,  near  Posen. 

Beaumont  near  Willanow. 

Sahuc  marching  on  Sempolno. 

Becker  in  front  of  Blonie. 
Several  of  the  cavalry  positions  are  not  marked  on  the  maps. 
*  Corr.  11,332,  dated  1st  December,  1806,  to  Murat. 


72  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND, 

Effecting  the  passage  undiscovered,  they  were  quickly  sup- 
ported by  more  troops,  and,  at  7  a.m.,  a  sharp  fusillade  was 
opened  by  the  French  at  Gora,  higher  up  the  river,  in  order 
to  induce  the  belief  of  a  passage  being  intended  there.  There 
was  no  such  intention,  and  the  action  was  confined  to  fire 
across  the  river. 

As  the  force  opposite  Okunin  gathered  strength,  a  recon- 
naissance was  pushed  forward  towards  Pomiechowo,  a  village 
on  the  right  bank  of  the  Ukra,  about  four  thousand  paces 
north  of  the  point  of  passage. 

Simultaneously,  another  force  had  crossed  opposite 
Nowydwor,  landing  in  safety.  The  Russians  in  Modlin, 
near  this  landing-place,  were  forced  to  fall  back  on  Pomie- 
chowo, their  retreat  to  which  was  threatened  by  the  French 
troops  from  the  Okunin  crossing.  They  passed  the  Ukra, 
under  fire  from  this  force,  by  the  Pomiechowo  bridge. 

Davout  at  once  hurried  on  the  construction  of  a  bridge 
at  Okunin,  and  of  a  tete  de  pont  on  the  opposite  bank.  By 
evening  he  was  firmly  posted,  with  Morand's  division,  on 
the  right  bank,  and  had  a  defensible  work,  covering  his 
bridge,  well  flanked,  owing  to  the  re-entrant  angle  of  the 
river,  by  batteries  on  the  left  bank,  above  and  below  it. 

On  the  12th,  Augereau's  advanced  guard,  passing  the 
Vistula,  without  opposition,  at  Zakroczin,  was  able  to  pro- 
tect the  construction  of  a  bridge  head  between  Zakroczin 
and  Utrata. 

Bennigsen,  hoping  that  by  seizing  Modlin  on  the  11th, 
when  Augereau  was  still  beyond  the  Vistula,  he  might  force 
the  French  back  across  the  Bug,  possibly  even  over  the  Vistula, 
sent  a  regiment  of  jagers  and  one  of  hussars  across  the  Ukra 
at  Pomiechowo,  at  7  a.m.  This  force  drove  the  French  85th 
regiment  from  Pomiechowo,  and  occupied  a  position  between 
that  village  and  Koszewo.  Davout,  reinforcing  the  85th 
with  the  25th,  again  attacked.  By  2  p.m.,  after  a  sharp 
combat,  the  Prussians  were  compelled  to  re-cross  the  Ukra. 

Informed  of  Augereau's  crossing,  and  aware  that  Soult 


I' ASS  AGE   OF  THE   VISTULA.  73 

was  approaching  the  Vistula  on  Augereau's  left,  Bennigsen, 
once  more  abandoning  his  forward  movement,  determined  to 
defend  the  line  of  the  Ukra. 

Osterman  Tolstoi's  division  (the  2nd)  was  at  Nasielsk  on 
the  evening  of  the  11th.  On  the  13th,  he  wits  at  Borkowo, 
on  the  Ukra,  leaving  Davout,  unmolested,  to  strengthen  his 
position  opposite  Okunin. 

Soult  marched  from  Posen  on  the  13th  in  echelons  of 
divisions  *  to  Wrocklavik,  and  was  preparing  to  cross  there, 
with  such  boats  as  he  could  collect,  when  he  received  orders  f 
to  march  up  the  river,  to  cross  as  near  as  possible  to  the 
mouth  of  the  Bszura,  and  march  on  Plonsk  to  join  Augereau. 
Selecting  as  his  point  of  passage  the  re-entrant  angle  near 
Dobrzyckow,  he  crossed  unopposed  there  t  with  St.  Hilaire's 
and  Legrand's  divisions,  whilst  Leval's  passed  at  Plock,  some 
distance  lower. 

Bernadotte's  corps,  arriving  at  Posen  only  on  the  8th 
December,  was  not  at  Thorn  till  the  20  th. 

On  the  13th  December,  Napoleon  dictated,  at  Posen,§  the 
following  orders : — 

Bessieres,  with  the  2nd  cavalry  reserve  from  Thorn,  to 
advance  to  the  right  on  Biezun,  Eypin,  and  Soldau.  Ney's 
light  cavalry  on  Strasburg.  Bessieres  would  thus  find  him- 
self midway  between  Thorn  and  Pultusk,  in  a  position 
definitely  to  ascertain  the  Eussian  movements. 

Soult,  passing  the  Vistula  on  the  16th  at  Wrocklavik,  to 
join  Bessieres  at  Lipno.  When  the  junction  was  effected, 
Soult's  light  cavalry  would  move  to  the  right  on  Plonsk,  to 
facilitate  the  passage  of  Augereau  at  Zakroczin,  of  Wattier 
at  Wyszogorod,  and  of  Davout  at  Nowydwor.  Bessieres' 
objects  were :  (a)  to  sweep  the  plain,  and  join  Soult ;  (b)  to 
push  the  enemy  over  the  Ukra;  (c)  to  reconnoitre  towards 
Pultusk  and  Willemburg;  (d)  to  compel  the  Prussians  to 
retreat. 

*  Hoepfner,  iii.  81.  f  Dumas,  xvii.  115. 

-  X  Ibid.,  xvii.  116.  §  Corr.  11,458. 


74  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Leval  (Soult's  corps),  crossing  at  Thorn  in  support  of 
Bessieres,  was  to  be  at  Lipno  on  the  17th.  St.  Hilaire, 
followed  by  Legrand  (both  of  Soult's  corps),  to  pass  at 
Wrocklavik  on  the  16th.  Thus,  on  the  18  th,  Soult  would 
be,  with  his  three  divisions,  across  the  Vistula,  his  right  at 
Dobrzyckow,  his  left  at  Eypin.  Ney,  Bernadotte,  and  Lannes 
in  second  line.  Ney  to  make  for  Strasburg,  his  place  at 
Thorn  being  taken  by  Bernadotte  and  the  Guard  who  would 
arrive  there  on  the  18th.  For  the  present  no  further  move- 
ments could  be  definitely  indicated,  but,  if  the  enemy  did 
not  mean  to  make  a  stand,  infantry  would  be  useless  for  his 
pursuit. 

Scarcely  had  Napoleon  passed  these  orders,  when  he 
received  a  despatch  from  Murat,  dated  midnight  of  the 
10th  December,  describing  the  passage  of  the  Bug,  and 
asserting  that  the  enemy  had  evacuated  the  left  bank  of  the 
Narew.  This  changed  his  views,  and  induced  him  to  believe 
the  enemy  was  in  full  retreat.  He  at  once  issued  fresh 
orders.*  Murat  was  directed  in  pursuit  with  all  his  avail- 
able cavalry  (about  30,000  men),  including  that  of  Davout, 
Augereau,  and  Lannes,  to  link  himself  to  Bessieres  towards 
Biezun,  to  endeavour  to  interrupt  the  road  from  Pultusk 
to  Koenigsberg,  and  to  harass  the  enemy's  rearguard  to  the 
utmost.  With  this  great  cavalry  force,  Murat  would  have 
such  a  superiority  of  that  arm  that  he  would  be  master  of 
the  situation,  and  could  accept  or  refuse  battle,  as  might 
seem  best  in  the  circumstances  of  the  moment.  Meanwhile, 
the  infantry  would  secure  as  much  rest  as  possible.  Davout 
to  occupy  Sierock,  and,  possibly,  send  one  division  to  Pultusk. 
Augereau  to  halt  at  Zackroczin  and  Wyszogorod,  drawing 
supplies  from  Plonsk  and  Blonie.  Soult  towards  Plonsk. 
Lannes  to  concentrate  at  Warsaw.  Napoleon  had  himself 
intended  going  to  Thorn,  but  the  reported  retreat  had  changed 
his  views,  and  he  was  bound  for  Warsaw. 

To  Ney  he  wrote  that  his  infantry  would  be  useless  for 
•  Corr.  11,4G2,  dated  13th  December,  180G. 


PASSAGE   OF  THE   VISTULA.  75 

the  pursuit,  and  he  could  protect  his  left  with  his  light 
cavalry.* 

It  was  time  for  the  Emperor  to  be  at  the  front.  He  left 
Posen  on  the  16th.  The  roads  were  so  bad  that  he  had  to 
travel  in  a  country  conveyance,  and  Duroc,  overturned  in  his 
carriage,  broke  his  collar-bone. f  Late  at  night  on  the  18th, 
the  Emperor  reached  Warsaw,  where,  notwithstanding  the 
hour,  there  was  the  wildest  enthusiasm  amongst  the  Poles. 
Next  day,  he  was  besieged  with  petitions  and  deputations 
seeking  the  reconstitution  of  the  Polish  kingdom.  He 
replied  to  them  as  he  had  replied  from  Berlin.  His  one 
desire,  as  well  as  that  of  his  soldiers,  at  this  time,  was  to  be 
allowed  peaceably  to  occupy  cantonments  for  the  remainder 
of  the  cold  season ;  but  it  was,  at  the  same  time,  necessary  to 
gain  space  and  drive  the  Eussians  from  his  front. t  He  had 
discovered  the  inaccuracy  of  Murat's  report  as  to  the  general 
retreat  of  the  enemy,  and  had  once  more  modified  his  orders, 
thus — 

Ney  to  move  on  Gollub  with  advanced  guard  at  Rypin, 
light  cavalry  towards  Strasburg  and  Culm.§  Leval  to  occupy 
Thorn  between  the  departure  of  Ney  and  the  arrival  of 
Bernadotte ;  then  to  join  his  own  corps  and  support  Ney  at 
Gollub.  ||  Bernadotte  to  arrive  at  Thorn,  and  await  orders 
there,  after  relieving  Leval  on  the  evening  of  the  17th. •J 
Soult  to  march  between  the  Vistula  and  Biezun,  so  as  to 

♦  Corr.  11,465,  dated  13th  December,  180G. 

t  Corr.  11,497.    43rd  bulletin. 

%  u  It  is  time  to  take  up  our  winter  quarters  which  can  only  be  done  after 
we  have  driven  off  the  Russians  "  {Corr.  11,501,  to  Davout,  dated,  Warsaw,  19th 
December,  1806).  To  Clarke  he  wrote  from  Lowicz,  on  his  way  to  Warsaw,  that 
the  armies  were  facing  each  other,  the  French  on  the  left,  the  Russians  on  the 
right  bank  of  the  Narew,  and  that  it  was  possible  that  in  a  week  there  would  be 
a  battle  which  would  make  an  end  of  the  affair"  (Corr.  11,500). 

"  Not  wishing  to  let  the  enemy  shut  us  in  on  the  Vistula,  and  feeling,  on 
the  contrary,  the  necessity  to  give  ourselves  a  broader  sphere  in  front  of  Warsaw 
and  Thorn,  I  at  once  took  the  offensive  "  (Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  339). 

§  Berthier  to  Ney,  15th  December,  1806. 

||  Berthier  to  Leval,  15th  December. 

H  Berthier  to  Bernadotte,  15th  December. 


76  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

reach  Plonsk  on  Key's  right.*  Bessieres,  with  his  cavalry, 
to  drive  the  enemy  on  Soldau,  and  to  send  parties  along  the 
Ukra  and  towards  Plonsk,  to  meet  the  cavalry  of  Augereau. 
Murat  to  cover  Ney's  advance.t  Further  orders  were  sent 
to  Bernadotte,  on  the  17th,  to  leave  one  division  at  Thorn, 
and,  with  the  other  two,  to  support  Ney  and  Bessieres, 
who  would  be  subordinate  to  him  as  the  senior  marshal.^ 
Augereau  was  ordered  to  be  at  Plonsk  on  the  22nd  with 
Mil  baud  from  the  cavalry  reserve.  §  Davout  to  pass  all  his 
corps,  except  one  regiment,  to  the  right  bank  of  the  Bug.|[ 
Murat  also  to  send  over  Lasalle,  Klein,  Nansouty,  and 
Beaumont.1T  Lannes  to  move  from  Warsaw  to  the  left  bank 
of  the  Bug  towards  Jablona  and  Zegrz,  and  the  Guard  to  take 
his  place  at  Warsaw,**  which  would  be  defended  by  Poles.ft 

All  was  now  ready  for  the  French  advance. 

As  for  the  Eussian  positions,  Marshal  Kamenskoi  had, 
at  last,  joined  his  armies  on  the  21st  December  at  Pultusk. 
Old  and  worn  out  in  body  and  mind  as  he  was,  he  was  yet 
all  for  a  forward  movement  towards  the  Ukra  in  support 
of  the  troops  there.  Gallitzin,  with  an  infantry  regiment, 
2  cavalry  regiments  and  18  guns,  was  sent  from  Pultusk  to 
Glubowo,  6  miles  north-east  of  Novemiasto,  to  support  the 
3rd  division;  Sedmaratzki,  with  the  6th  division,  was 
ordered  to  advance  to  Zbroski;  Buxhowden's  5th  and  7th 
divisions  to  march  from  Ostrolenka  on  Novemiasto,  whilst 
his  8th  and  14th  divisions  marched  on  Pultusk.Jt 

*  Berthier  to  Soult,  15th  December. 

t  Berthier  to  Bessieres,  15th  December.  The  despatches  in  this  and  the 
four  preceding  notes  are  printed  in  full  in  Dumas,  xvii.,  "  Pieces  justificatives." 

X  Berthier  to  Bessieres,  17th  December. 

§  Berthier  to  Augereau,  21st  December. 

||  Berthier  to  Davout,  22nd  December. 

%  Berthier  to  Murat,  22nd  December. 

**  Berthier  to  Lefebvre,  22nd  December,  and  Berthier  to  Lannes,  23rd 
December. 

ft  Berthier  to  Gouvion,  governor  of  Warsaw,  23rd  December.  This,  and  the 
despatches  quoted  in  the  preceding  five  notes,  are  quoted  in  Duma*,  xvii., "  Pieces 
justificatives." 

XX  Ecepfner,  iii.  84. 


PASSAGE   OF  TEE    VISTULA.  77 

Barclay  de  Tolly  was,  with  6  battalions,  1  hussar  and  1 
oossack  regiment,  and  6  guns,  on  the  Ukra  about  Kolozomb 
and  Sochoczin. 

Dorochow,  with  3  battalions,  1  cavalry,  1  cossack  regi- 
ment, and  6  guns,  part  of  the  2nd  and  4th  divisions,  at 
Borkowo. 

Osterman,  with  the  rest  of  the  2nd  division,  stood  from 
Borkowo  on  the  Ukra  to  the  Narew. 

Bagavout,  with  3  battalions,  one  regiment  of  cossacks, 
und  one  gun,  was  at  Zegrz,  supported  in  rear  by  another 
battalion  and  a  regiment  of  cossacks. 

Litow,  with  two  infantry  regiments,  supported  Barclay 
and  Dorochow. 

Sacken,  at  Srenszk,  stretched  a  hand  to  the  Prussians, 
whose  left  was  there  and  right  at  Lautenburg.* 

*  Hoepfner,  iii.  82,  83. 


CHAPTER  II. 

Passage   of  the  Ukra,  and  Operations   of    the   24th 
and  25th  December. 

THE  Ukra  falls  into  the  Bug  a  short  way  above  the 
French  bridge  at  Okunin.  At  its  mouth  it  branches 
right  and  left,  forming  a  triangular  island  which  is  divided 
into  two  unequal  portions  by  a  channel.  Davout  had 
already  crossed  the  right  branch  of  the  river,  and  occupied 
the  island  up  to  the  channel.  During  the  night  of  the  20th 
December,  he  seized  the  rest  of  the  island,  expelling  the 
Eussian  detachment  which  occupied  the  part  beyond  the 
channel.  There  thus  remained  only  one  branch  of  the  Ukra 
for  him  to  pass. 

On  the  morning  of  the  23rd,  Napoleon  proceeded  to 
reconnoitre  the  position  for  the  crossing  which  he  proposed. 
Mounting  by  a  ladder  on  to  the  roof  of  a  cottage  on  the 
island,  he  soon  decided  on  his  plan,  and  dictated,  on  the 
spot,  the  necessary  orders.* 

From  opposite  Pomiechowo  on  the  Ukra,  to  Czarnowo  on 
the  Bug,  there  runs  a  bank  above  flood-level  of  the  rivers. 
Between  this  bank  and  the  island  occupied  by  Davout,  the 
ground,  like  the  island  itself,  is  low,  swampy,  partially 
wooded,  and  liable  to  floods.  From  the  left  branch  of  the 
Ukra,  across  the  broadest  part  of  the  low  ground  to  the  bank, 
is  a  distance  of  some  2500  yards.     On  and  below  the  bank  was 

*  For  this  account  of  the  passago  of  the  Ukra,  compare  lloepfner,   Hi. 
88-94;  Dumas,  xvii.  135-147;  Davout,  115-127. 


PASSAGE   OF  THE   VERA.  79 

posted  Osterman  Tolstoi's  force  of  9  battalions,  2  squadrons,  1 
regiment  of  cossacks,  14  field  guns,  G  light  guns.*  Davout 
had  Morand's  division  in  the  island,  Friant's  near  Pomie- 
chowo,  Gudin's  at  the  Okunin  bridge.  Napoleon  had  decided 
on  a  night  attack,  and  his  orders  were  consequently  given  in 
great  detail,  and  with  the  utmost  care.f  They  were  executed 
with  wonderful  exactitude  by  Davout's  corps,  perhaps  the 
best  in  the  army. 

At  7  p.m.  Morand's  division  was  formed,  with  its  ad- 
vanced portion  in  three  columns  in  the  island,  as  far  as 
possible  from  the  enemy.  Each  of  these  leading  columns 
had  a  strength  of  one  battalion.  A  company  of  voltigeurs 
was  detached  from  each  column  as  escort  to  the  guns  which 
were,  under  cover  of  the  voltigeurs'  fire,  able  to  take  position 
and  open  a  fire  of  grape  across  the  left  branch  of  the  river, 
on  the  Eussians  in  the  low  ground.  The  river  was  then 
passed  by  the  voltigeurs  in  boats  brought  up  from  the  Bug, 
and  three  bridges,  one  at  either  extremity,  and  one  in  the 
centre  of  the  branch,  were  constructed,  the  work  being  pro- 
tected by  the  troops  which  had  passed  in  boats.  As  the 
bridges  were  completed,  the  rest  of  the  leading  columns 
crossed  and  advanced  into  the  low  ground.  Behind  them 
came  a  regiment  (the  17th)  of  light  infantry  and  3  squadrons 
of  cavalry.     Behind  these  the  rest  of  Morand's  division. 

Petit,  with  a  detachment  of  Gudin's  division,  crossed  the 
upper  bridge  and  pushed  up  the  left  bank  of  the  river.  To 
support  his  frontal  attack  on  the  Eussian  right,  6  guns 
enfiladed  it  from  Pomiechowo.  To  alarm  the  enemy  with  the 
idea  of  a  passage  at  Pomiechowo,  a  quantity  of  damp  straw 
had  been  lighted  in  the  bed  of  the  river  in  that  direction, 
creating  a  dense  smoke.  Cavalry  had  also  been  sent  up  the 
right  bank  to  raise  apprehensions,  as  well  as  to  link  Davout's 
corps  to  Augereau's.  A  detachment  of  50  men,  under  Pen-in, 
crossed  100  paces  above  the  island,  and  helped  to  protect 

*  Plotho,  p.  16. 

t  For  the  orders  in  full,  see  Dumas,  xvii.  13G-138. 


80  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Petit's  left.  Finally,  2  guns  and  30  picked  marksmen, 
moving  up  the  right  bank,  slightly  in  advance  of  Perrin, 
flanked  with  their  fire  any  attempt  to  attack  his  or  Petit's 
front  on  the  left  bank. 

No  great  difficulty  was  found  in  expelling  the  Kussians 
from  the  low  ground,  and  Morand  advanced  against  the  left 
of  the  main  position  in  echelons  by  his  right. 

The  17th  Eegiment,  in  advance  of  Morand's  main  body, 
hurried  forward,  with  more  valour  than  wisdom,  to  the 
attack  of  Czarnowo.  The  fury  of  its  onslaught,  for  the 
moment,  staggered  the  defenders,  and  the  French  infantry  burst 
triumphantly  into  the  batteries  in  front  of  the  village.  Their 
triumph  was  short-lived,  for  the  defenders,  quickly  rallying, 
drove  their  rash  assailants  back  with  the  bayonet.  Support 
was  not  at  hand,  and  the  advance  was  for  the  moment  stayed. 
The  main  body,  however,  soon  came  up,  and  a  fresh  attack  was 
organised.  One  battalion  of  the  30th  turned  Czarnowo  by  a 
ravine  leading  to  the  Bug,  another  advanced  against  the  front 
of  the  village,  and  the  third  against  the  (French)  left  of  it, 
through  a  pine  wood.  The  rest  of  Morand's  division,  with 
cavalry  behind  the  centre,  followed  in  support.  Still,  the 
first  attacks  were  met  and  repulsed  by  Osterman's  infantry 
with  a  stubborn  calmness  which  was  proof  against  the  elan 
of  the  enemy.  Osterman,  however,  could  not  but  perceive 
that,  with  fresh  troops  constantly  feeding  Morand's  fighting 
line,  it  was  impossible  for  him  long  to  hold  out  with  his 
inferior  force.  Fearing  the  loss,  with  that  of  Czarnowo,  of 
his  heavy  artillery,  he  despatched  it  in  the  direction  of 
Nasielsk.  The  fight  for  Czarnowo  continued  long  with  the 
greatest  fury.  In  the  end,  the  superior  numbers  of  the 
French  enabled  them  to  gain  a  firm  footing  in  the  village 
and,  forcing  the  enemy  out,  they  were  able  to  deploy  on  the 
plateau  beyond. 

On  the  opposite  wing,  Petit's  attack  had,  in  the  mean- 
while, been  equally  successful.  At  first  he  had  only  400 
men,  besides  Perrin's  detachment  on  his  left.    Aided  by  a 


PASSAGE   OF   TEE   UKUA.  81 

vigorous  cannonade  from  the  6-gun  battery  at  Pomiechowo, 
be  w;is  able  to  carry  the  Russian  redoubts,  from  which  the 
artillery  was  withdrawn  towards  Czarnowo,  only  just  in  time 
to  save  it  from  capture.  The  absence  of  pursuit  soon  showed 
the  Russians  how  weak  the  French  left  was,  and  they 
launched  a  strong  force  of  cavalry  against  Petit.  His  men, 
calmly  holding  their  fire  till  the  cavalry  were  close  upon 
them,  repulsed  this  and  several  other  attacks  by  infantry 
upon  the  captured  redoubts.  Davout  was  able  to  reinforce 
Petit  with  more  troops  of  the  3rd  division,  and  every  attack 
made  upon  him  was  open  to  the  flanking  artillery  fire  from 
Pomiechowo. 

Osterman's  troops  had  now,  at  4  a.m.,  been  for  12 
hours  under  arms,  for  9  under  fire.  The  general,  seriously 
alarmed  by  the  loss  of  Czarnowo,  determined  on  retreat. 
To  cover  it,  he  still  continued  his  attacks  on  Petit,  and  kept 
up  a  vigorous  fire  in  front.  At  this  juncture,  being  reinforced 
by  3  battalions  and  4  squadrons,  he  was  able  to  draw  off  his 
troops,  still  in  good  order,  towards  Nasielsk. 

It  is  probable  that  the  loss  on  the  French  side  exceeded 
that  of  the  Russians,  who  had  1392  *  killed  and  wounded. 

Napoleon's  decision  to  attempt  the  passage  by  night  was 
remarkable,  and  unusual  with  him.  He  was  using  for  it  the 
best  troops  in  his  army,  and  the  accuracy  with  which  they 
carried  out  his  programme  folly  justified  his  confidence  in 
them.  Any  deviation  from  his  orders,  any  hesitation  on  the 
part  of  the  officers  in  leading,  or  of  the  men  in  following, 
might  have  led  to  disaster.  On  the  other  hand,  the  passage 
by  daylight  would  have  been  attended  with  immense  risk 
and  difficulty.  The  bridges  would  have  had  to  be  constructed 
under  the  fire  of  the  Russian  guns  commanding  all  the  low 

*  Davout  states  his  loss  at  807,  but  this  is  probably  below  the  mark,  and 
appears  to  exclude  Petit  and  part  of  the  cavalry.  The  loss  in  officers  was 
specially  heavy,  as  was  to  be  expected  in  a  night  attack  where  bold  leading  was 
essential  to  success  (Davout,  p.  127).  Plotho  (p.  24)  says  Osterman  Tolstoi 
reported  his  loss  as  only  500.  Hoepfner  (iii.  93)  gives  1392,  including  three 
generals  wounded. 

G 


82  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

ground,  the  advance  across  which  could  not  fail  to  be 
attended  with  much  greater  loss  than  was  incurred  at 
night. 

Friant's  division,  which  had  bivouacked  between  Pomie- 
chowo  and  Koszewo,  marched  at  4  a.m.  on  the  24th,  and 
following  the  same  route  as  Morand's,  was  on  the  battlefield 
by  daybreak.  It  at  once  took  over  the  pursuit  from  the 
victorious  troops,  now  exhausted  by  a  long  night  of  con- 
tinuous fighting. 

Passing  through  Psucin,  Friant  arrived  near  Nasielsk 
soon  after  midday.  Eapp,  with  Marulaz's  cavalry,  and 
Lemarroy,  with  a  regiment  of  dragoons,  were  already  engaged 
with  the  Eussians,  whom  they  had  driven  out  of  the  village, 
and  who  had  now  taken  up  a  position  on  the  rising  ground 
beyond,  their  cavalry  resisting  the  French  in  the  meadows  on 
the  left  and  in  front.  Dorochow  from  Borkowo  had  by  this 
time  joined  Osterman. 

Friant,  himself  attacking  in  front,  sent  his  voltigeurs  to 
threaten  the  Eussian  retreat  by  their  left.  So  successful 
was  the  flank  attack  that  three  guns  were  taken  and  the 
Eussians  driven  back  to  the  wood.  Friant  had  not  been  able 
yet  to  bring  up  his  guns  over  the  muddy  roads.  The  Eussians 
still  held  to  the  woods,  and  it  was  not  till  night  had  fallen 
that  they  were  compelled,  by  constant  attacks  of  superior 
forces,  to  continue  their  retreat  to  Strzegoczin,  abandoning 
some  of  their  guns  in  the  mud.  Davout's  1st  and  2nd 
divisions  bivouacked,  during  the  night  of  the  24th-25th 
December,  in  and  beyond  Nasielsk.  The  3rd,  which  had 
marched  up  from  the  Okunin  bridge,  was  behind. 

On  the  25th,  all  the  divisions  marched  in  the  direction  of 
Novemiasto ;  but,  finding  a  strong  Eussian  column  in  position 
.at  Kaleczin,  where  the  Novemiasto-Golymin  and  Nasielsk- 
Ciechanow  roads  cross,  Davout  changed  his  direction  to  that 
of  Strzegoczin,  whence  he  dislodged  the  enemy  without 
difficulty.  The  corps  bivouacked  that  night  in  and  behind 
.Strzegoczin.     Lannes'  corps,  following  from  Okunin,  was  on 


PASSAGE  OF  THE   UKRA.  83 

lilt's  right  rear  on  the  24th,  and  at  Zbroski  on  the  night 
of  the  25th. 

Whilst  Davout's  corps  had  been  effecting  the  passage  of 
the  Ukra  at  its  mouth,  the  next  corps  on  the  left,  Augereau's, 
had  moved  from  Plonsk  *  early  on  the  24th,  reinforced  by 
Wattier's  and  Milhaud's  cavalry.  Its  march  was  directed 
against  Barclay  de  Tolly,  holding  the  upper  passages  of  the 
river  at  Kolozomb  and  Sochoczin.  Both  bridges  had  been 
burnt,  and  there  was  an  earthwork  beyond  that  of  Kolozomb 
defended  by  artillery,  and  by  three  battalions  and  two 
squadrons.  At  Sochoczin,  three  battalions,  and  three  squadrons 
held  the  left  bank.  The  two  forces  were  linked  by  three 
battalions  in  a  wood  between  them. 

Against  Sochoczin  marched  Heudelet's  division,  with 
Milhaud's  cavalry  attached;  against  Kolozomb  Desjardins' 
division,  and  Wattier's  cavalry. 

Whilst  the  16th  Light  Infantry  lined  the  right  bank  on 
either  side  of  the  Kolozomb  bridge,  Savary,f  with  the 
grenadiers  of  the  14th,  forced  his  way  across  by  utilising 
some  planks  which  the  Eussians  had  not  burnt,t  and  which 
served  to  span  the  gaps  in  the  partially  destroyed  bridge. 
The  French  were  met  at  Kolozomb  by  the  Kussian  infantry 
and  hussars,  but,  being  quickly  reinforced,  compelled  the 
enemy  to  retreat  towards  Novemiasto,  leaving  in  their  hands 
six  guns  in  the  earthworks.  Lapisse,  meanwhile,  had  been 
sent  some  3000  yards  down  the  river  to  surprise,  at  Pruski, 
the  enemy,  who  had  no  guns  there.  The  Eussian  position  at 
Kolozomb  was  a  very  strong  one,  with  the  river  in  front  and 
a  wood  behind,  and  they  had  twelve  guns.  Lapisse  passed 
successfully,  but  an  attempt  to  pass  1000  yards  above 
Kolozomb  failed. §  Heudelet  had  Been  less  successful. 
There  was  no  ford  in  front  of  him.  Attempting  to  restore 
the  bridge,  under  cover  of  his  infantry  and  artillery  replying 

*  It  had  arrived  there  from  Zakroczin  on  the  23rd  (H&pfner,  iii.  96). 

t  Brother  of  the  future  Due  de  Rovigo. 

|  Marbot,  i.  245.  §  Augereau  (Archives  Historiques). 


84  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

to  the  Eussian  fire,  his  first  attack  was  beaten  off  with  heavy 
loss.  In  a  fit  of  temper,  for  which  he  is  severely  blamed 
by  Marbot,*  he  again  sent  forward  his  men,  who  were 
once  more  repulsed.  Any  serious  attack  at  Sochoczin  was 
unnecessary,  seeing  that  a  crossing  at  Kolozomb,  farther  east, 
must  infallibly  result  in  the  retreat  of  the  Kussians  at 
Sochoczin.  It  was  only  necessary  to  hold  them  at  the  latter 
place  by  a  demonstration  preventing  them  from  assisting 
their  comrades  at  Kolozomb.  Accordingly,  as  soon  as 
Desjardins  was  across  at  Kolozomb,  two  of  Heudelet's 
brigades  were  summoned  thither  by  Augereau.  The  passage 
at  Sochoczin  was  soon  after  left  open  by  the  retreat  of  its 
defenders.  Milhaud,  pursuing  the  retreating  Kussians, 
captured  the  baggage  of  their  2nd  division.  The  French  loss 
at  these  crossings  is  given  by  Augereau  at  66  killed  and 
452  wounded,  about  equally  distributed  between  the  two 
divisions.!     Savary  was  killed  at  Kolozomb. 

Augereau  now  reassembled  his  corps.  His  light  cavalry 
(Durosnel)  moved  up  the  Sonna  towards  Ciechanow,  to 
expedite  the  Eussian  retreat,  and  the  main  body  pursued  the 
Eussians  towards  Novemiasto  till  stopped,  short  of  that  place, 
by  darkness. t  On  the  25th,  Augereau  occupied  Novemiasto 
and  his  advanced  guard  got  as  far  as  Bondkowo,  his  1st  division 
to  Gatkowo,  and  his  2nd  to  Gostynin.  On  Augereau's  left 
was  Soult's  corps.  It  reached  Gora,  west  of  Plonsk,  on  the 
24th,  and  marching  in  the  direction  of  Sochoczin  and 
Ciechanow,  was  at  the  former  on  the  night  of  the  25th,  with 
light  cavalry  at  Oirzen.f  The  Guard  was  with  the  Emperor 
that  night  at  Lopaczin.  Murat,  with  all  of  the  1st  cavalry 
reserve  which  had  not  been  detached,  was,  on  the  night  of 
the  25th,  at  Sochoczin.  He  had,  on  the  24th,  attacked 
Sacken  at  Lopaczin.  With  his  retreat  already  threatened 
by  the  forward  movement  of  the  French  against  Barclay  on 

*  Marbot,  i.  246.  f  Archives  Uistoriques. 

X  Augereau  (Archives  Ilistoriques)  says  he  only  reached  Novemiasto  on  the 
25th,  which  is  less  than  Hoepfner  (iii.  08)  gives  him  credit  for. 


I'ASSAGE    OP    Till-:    UKBA.  85 

his  right,  and  Osterman  on  his  left,  Sacken  gave  way  before 
Murat,  who,  in  the  pursuit,  forced  the  Russian  1st  Division  to 
make  the  best  of  its  way  towards  Pultusk.  Part  of  it,  under 
Pahlen,  was  driven  towards  Ciechanow. 

To  bring  up  the  story  to  the  night  of  this  dismal  Christmas 
Day,  it  remains  to  describe  what  was  happening  towards 
Thorn,  between  the  Prussians  on  the  one  hand,  and  Bessieres, 
Key,  and  Bernadotte  on  the  other. 

On  the  18  th  December,  Lestocq  had  retreated  from 
Strasburg  to  Lautenburg,  leaving  Bulow  to  defend  the  defile 
at  Gurzno.* 

On  the  19  th,  Grouchy,  with  Bessieres'  advanced  guard,  t 
seized  Biezun.  The  point  was  of  great  importance  to 
Lestocq;  through  it  he  communicated  directly  with  the 
Kussian  right  at  Sochoczin,  from  which  it  was  distant  less 
than  two  marches.  On  the  21st,  Lestocq  sent  a  detachment 
through  Soldau  and  Kuczbork  to  attempt  the  recapture  of 
Biezun.  It  was  at  Kuczbork  on  the  22nd,  and  consisted  of 
two  infantry  regiments,  a  regiment  of  dragoons,  two  of  hussars, 
and  a  battery  of  horse  artillery.  On  the  23rd,  it  appeared 
before  Biezun,  where  Grouchy  had  now  been  joined  by  Bessieres, 
with  infantry  and  artillery.  The  attempt  was  a  complete 
failure.  The  Prussians,  charged  by  Grouchy,  were  driven 
back  two   miles   beyond  Kuczbork,  with  the   loss   of  500 

*  Prussian  official  account  quoted  by  Wilson  (p.  253). 

t  Bessieres'    2nd   cavalry    reserve    was    about    6000  strong  (Berthier  to 

res,  17th  December,  Dumas,  xvii.  456). 
Its  constitution  was — 

Light  Cavalry  division Tilly 

2nd  Dragoon  division      Grouchy 

4th        „  „  Sahuc 

2nd  Cuirassier  division    dHautpoult 

(Soult's  report,  ArcJrives  Historiques.) 
It  was  constituted  on  the  16th  December,  1806,  and  again  broken  up  on  the 
12th  January,  1807,  when  the  constituent  troops  were  thus  distributed — 

Tilly's  and  Sahuc's  divisions  were  made  over  to  Bernadotte ; 

Grouchy's  to  Ney ; 

D'lLtutpoult's  was  sent  to  Thorn  and  the  neighbourhood. 

("  Journaux  de  Marche,"  Archive*  Eistoriques.) 


86  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

prisoners  and  5  guns,  besides  killed  and  wounded.*  On 
the  24th,  the  detachment  continued  its  retreat  to  Soldau. 
Ney,  whilst  this  detachment  was  in  front  of  Biezun,  marching 
from  Strasburg,  came  upon  Bulow's  rearguard  at  Gurzno. 
On  the  24th  he  drove  it  before  him  to  Kuczbork,  where  it 
joined  the  Biezun  detachment  in  its  retreat  to  Soldau. 

From  Kuczbork,  Key  sent  Marchand's  division  to  operate 
against  the  Prussians  at  Mlawa  and  Soldau.  f  With  his  other 
division  he  remained  in  support  behind  Marchand's  left. 

Lestocq's  corps,  in  the  hope  of  ascertaining  the  intentions 
of  the  enemy  and  of  maintaining  communications  with  the 
Eussian  right,  was  scattered  over  a  front  of  some  10  or  11 
miles,  from  near  Lautenburg,  on  the  right,  to  Neidenburg  and 
Mlawa,  on  the  left.  The  whole  strength  of  the  Prussian 
corps  was  not  above  6000  men. 

At  Soldau,  there  appear  to  have  been  no  more  than  one 
battalion  and  8  or  10  guns.J     Marchand  had,  according  to 

*  Hcepfner,  iii.  138-140,  where  a  full  account  of  the  action  is  given. 

t  This  is  not  quite  Dumas's  version,  but  see  the  next  note  for  evidence  in 
support  of  this  account. 

%  Dumas  (xvii.  189),  basing  his  statement,  apparently,  on  Marchand's 
report,  says  there  were  6000  Prussians  entrenched  at  Soldau.  Hcepfner  denies 
this,  and  gives  full  details  of  the  distribution  of  the  corps  (iii.  145,  etc.).  His 
account  is  the  more  probable  on  the  face  of  it.  Against  6000  men  in  a  strong 
position  covered  by  a  stream,  a  canal,  and  a  lake  on  its  left,  Marchand  could 
hardly  have  succeeded  so  easily  as  he  did  in  capturing  the  town.  Had  he  done 
so,  Lestocq  would  scarcely  have  led  back  to  the  storm  of  the  captured  position 
a  force  which  had  yielded  so  easily  when  it  had  the  advantage  of  the  defensive. 

It  is  curiously  difficult  to  fix  with  certainty  the  date  of  the  action  at  Soldau. 
Hcepfner  gives  the  25th  ;  Dumas  also.  De  Fezensac  (131)  says  it  was  on  the 
same  day  as  Pultusk,  the  26th.  Jomini  does  not  specify  the  date  clearly. 
Beraadotte  {Archives  Historiques)  gives  the  25th.  The  "  Journaux  de  Marche," 
of  Ney's  corps  (in  the  Archives  Historiques),  unlike  those  of  Davout,  Soult, 
Augereau,  and  Beraadotte,  are  very  brief,  mere  diaries,  giving  the  positions 
occupied  by  the  corps  on  each  day.  There  are  two  versions  of  the  manuscript ; 
the  one  which  is  rather  fuller  as  regards  details  of  positions,  makes  no  mention 
whatever  of  days  of  battle.  The  other  merely  states,  in  a  column  of  remarks, 
that  there  was  an  action  on  a  particular  date  at  a  place  named.  Against  the 
25th  December  it  has  the  entry  "combat  de  Mlawa,"  against  the  26th, 
"  combat  de  Soldau." 

The  matter,  however,  seems  to  be  set  at  rest  by  a  letter  from  Marchand  to 


PASSAGE  OF  THE   UKBA.  87 

his  own  statement,  only  two  regiments  of  infantry,  supported 
later  by  the  rest  of  his  division  from  Mlawa.  Ney  was  at 
(Juizno  with  his  2nd  division. 

Notwithstanding  the  strength  of  the  position,  the  weak 
Prussian  force  was  unable  to  make  a  serious  resistance. 
Marchand  was  master  of  Soldau  soon  after  2  p.m.  Having 
ascertained  the  direction  of  Ney's  advance,  Lestocq  had 
concentrated  his  troops  and  returned  to  recapture  Soldau. 
The  attack  on  it  was  made  from  the  Neidenburg  road,  about 
o  p.m.  Despite  the  valour  with  which  the  Prussian  troops 
fought,  they  were  unable  to  get  beyond  the  outer  edge  of  the 
village,  whence,  after  desperate  hand-to-hand  fighting,  they 
were  driven  back.  Lestocq,  whose  left  had  meanwhile 
been  driven  in  from  Mlawa,  retreated  during  the  night  on 
Neidenburg,  whither  he  was  slowly  followed  by  Ney.* 

The  same  night,  Bernadotte  was  marching  to  support  and 
replace  Ney  at  Mlawa  and  Soldau.  Bessieres,  with  head- 
quarters at  Bogarzin,  occupied  the  country  about  Mlawa, 
Raciaz,  &c.f 

Thus  the  Prussians,  on  the  night  of  the  25th-26th 
December,  were  completely  severed  from  the  Eussian  right, 
and  retreating,  away  from  it,  towards  Koenigsberg.  Ney, 
Bernadotte,  and  Bessieres  were  interposed  between  the  allies ; 
Soult  was  also  marching  to  turn  the  Russian  right ;  the  rest 
of  the  French  army,  opposed  to  their  front,  was  towards 
Golymin  and  Pultusk. 

The  Russian  position  at  the  same  time  was  as  follows : 
Kamenskoi  had  ordered  a  general  retirement  on  Ostrolenka, 

Ney  (Daily  Correspondence,  26th  December,  in  Archives  Historiques),  in  which 
he  says,  "  Yesterday  (i.e.  25th)  I  occupied  Mlawa  and  Soldau.  At  Mlawa  I 
had  no  serious  difficulty,  but  it  was  different  at  Soldau,  as  I  had  only  two 
regiments  with  which  to  attack  6000  men."  This' seems  to  show  that  Ney  was 
not  in  person  at  Soldau.  The  "  Journaux  de  Marche  "  show  his  headquarters  as 
Gurzno  on  the  24th,  25th,  and  26th  December. 

*  Ney  did  not  move  his  headquarters  beyond  Soldau  till  the  29th,  when 
they  were  at  Neidenburg  ("Journaux  de  Marche,"  6th  Corps,  Archives 
Hhtoriques)^ 

t  ■  Journaux  de  Marche,"  Archives  Historiques. 


88  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

artillery  being  freely  abandoned  to  avoid  hampering  the 
movement.  Bennigsen,  with  the  divisions  of  Osterman 
Tolstoi,  Sedmaratzki,  and  part  of  those  of  Gallitzin  and  Sacken, 
was  at  Pultusk ;  Gallitzin,  with  the  rest  of  his  own  division, 
was  retiring  on  Golymin ;  the  rest  of  Sacken's  was  moving  on 
the  same  place  from  Ciechanow,  but,  owing  to  its  having  been 
driven  by  Murat  northwards,  was  farther  from  Golymin  than 
Gallitzin  was.  Of  Buxhowden's  army,  Dochtorow's  division 
was  east  of  Gallitzin,  on  the  road  through  Golymin  to 
Makow ;  Essen's  and  Anrepp's  were  at  Popowo,  on  the  Bug, 
preparing  to  retire  direct  to  Eozan  and  Ostrolenka  up  the 
peninsula  between  the  Bug  and  the  Narew. 

Bennigsen  resolved,  disobeying  Kamenskoi's  orders,  to 
stand  and  fight  at  Pultusk.  The  marshal  was  himself  with 
Bennigsen,  but  broken  in  body  and  mind,  he  left  the  army 
early  next  morning  for  Grodno,  where  his  eccentric  conduct 
showed  that  he  was  no  longer  fit  for  command.*  At  this 
point  the  gallant  but  worn-out  old  lieutenant  of  Suwarrow 
disappears,  except  for  a  brief  moment,  from  the  scene. 

*  "  On  his  return  to  Grodno  he  went,  without  his  shirt,  into  the  streets,  and 
then,  sending  for  a  surgeon,  pointed  out  all  his  wounds,  groaned  as  he  passed 
his  hand  over  them,  and  insisted  on  a  certificate  of  his  incapacity  to  serve" 
(  Wilson,  83,  note).    Truly  a  pitiful  ending  to  the  career  of  a  gallant  old  soldier. 


CHAPTER  III. 

The  Battles  of  Pultusk  and  Golymin,  26th  December, 

1806. 

(a)  PULTUSK.* 

THE  town  of  Pultusk  lies  on  the  right  bank  of  the  river 
Narew,  the  general  course  of  which  here  is  nearly  due 
north  and  south.f  The  greater  part  of  the  town  is  in  the  low 
ground,  and  is  intersected  by  a  small  branch  of  the  stream. 
It  spreads,  however,  also  on  to  the  bank,  which  is  somewhat 
steep  and  rises  to  a  small  elevation  to  the  west.  The  river  is 
passed  by  the  road  from  Strzegoczin  and  Golymin  below  the 
infall  of  the  small  branch.  That  road  runs  to  the  north-west 
over  the  height  already  mentioned,  then  falls  into  a  slight 
depression,  again  rises  and  mounts  the  height  to  the  south- 
east of  the  village  of  Mosin,  and,  passing  through  the  centre 
of  a  large  wood,  continues  its  course  close  to  the  south  side 
of  Mosin.  The  height  on  which  stands  the  large  wood  is  a 
plateau  of  some  extent  which,  narrowing  into  a  fairly  wide 
ridge,t  continues  to  the  south-east  nearly  to  the  river  bank, 
where  it  is  bounded,  towards  the  town,  by  a  considerable  ravine 
falling  into  the  low  ground  about  one  thousand  paces  from 

*  This  account  of  the  battle  of  Pultusk  is  based  on  a  comparison  of  those 
given  by  (a)  Dumas,  vol.  xvii.,  pp.  164-171 ;  (6)  Sir  R.  Wilson ;  (c)  Hcepfner, 
vol.  hi.,  pp.  109-119  ;  (d)  Davout,  pp.  131-137;  (e)  Lannes'  report,  Arch.  Hist. 

t  The  river  at  the  bridge  appears  to  have  a  breadth  of  about  100  yards.  At 
the  date  of  the  battle  it  was  running  very  high,  owing  to  the  thaw,  and  was 
covered  with  blocks  of  floating  ice. 

X  The  wood-measured  about  1800  paces  at  right  angles  to  the  Golymin  road, 
and  about  1200  at  its  greatest  width  along  the  road. 


90  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND, 

the  Golymin  road.  The  plateau  and  ridge  form  a  natural 
screen,  hiding  from  the  forest  on  their  west  and  south,  the 
town  and  all  the  lower  portions  of  the  Golymin  road.  In 
front  of  a  person  coming  from  Pultusk  there  appears,  from 
the  ridge  of  this  screen,  a  shallow  depression,  bounded  on  its 
farther  side  by  the  forest,  to  which  the  ground  again  slightly 
rises,  and  covered  in  places,  especially  opposite  the  Mosin 
heights,  by  outlying  thickets  and  woods. 

The  position  chosen  by  Bennigsen  for  his  main  line  of 
battle  practically  coincided  with  the  line  of  the  Golymin 
road,  from  Pultusk  to  the  point  where  it  enters  the  wood  on 
the  Mosin  heights. 

On  this  line,  the  left  resting  on  the  town  and  the  right  on 
the  Mosin  wood,  he  drew  up  his  main  body  in  three  lines. 
In  first  line  he  placed  21  battalions  of  the  2nd  and  3rd 
divisions.  Behind  these,  at  about  300  paces'  interval,  stood, 
in  second  line,  18  battalions,  and  behind  them  again,  in  third 
line,  towards  the  left,  were  5  battalions  of  the  5th  and  6th 
divisions.  The  artillery  of  the  main  body  was  disposed  in 
advantageous  positions  along  the  front  of  the  first  line. 

On  the  right,  Barclay  de  Tolly  was  thrown  forward  into 
the  south-western  half  of  the  great  wood.  With  three  jager 
regiments  he  held  the  edge  of  the  wood,  whilst  two  battalions 
of  another  regiment  stood  in  reserve  in  the  wood  on  the 
Golymin  road,  thus  forming  a  continuation  through  it  of  the 
first  main  line.  The  third  battalion  supported  a  battery 
placed  outside  the  wood,  astride  of  the  road,  commanding  the 
approach  from  Golymin.  In  the  space  between  the  wood 
and  Mosin  was  a  regiment  of  Polish  cavalry.  There  were 
more  guns,  masked  by  a  hedge,  facing  the  Nasielsk  road. 

The  Eussian  general  had  a  similar  advanced  position  on 
his  left  wing,  designed  to  cover  the  Narew  bridge.  Here 
Bagavout  stood,  beyond  the  deep  ravine,  with  10  battalions, 
2  squadrons  of  dragoons,  600  cossacks,  and  one  battery. 
His  cavalry  was  pushed  forward  along  the  Warsaw  road. 
These  troops  were  all  drawn  from  the  6th  division.     The 


THE  BATTLES   OF  PULTUSK  AND    GOLYMIX.       91 

advanced  posts  of  Barclay  and  Bagavout  *  thus  occupied  the 
two  extremities  of  the  screening  ridge,  which  has  already 
been  described.  To  link  them  to  one  another,  there  were 
posted  along  this  ridge  28  squadrons  of  regular  cavalry. 

Owing  to  the  conformation  of  the  ground,  and  the 
position  of  the  advanced  wings  with  their  connecting  line  of 
cavalry,  the  main  lines,  on  the  Golymin  road,  were  concealed 
from  the  view  of  an  enemy  debouching  from  the  forest  by 
the  Warsaw  and  Nasielsk  roads.  But,  at  the  same  time,  the 
fire  of  the  greater  portion  of  the  Russian  artillery  was 
masked  by  the  cavalry  line. 

In  the  valley,  beyond  the  cavalry  and  extending  into  the 
outlying  woods  in  front  of  the  forest,  was  a  long  line  of 
cossacks,  supported,  in  front  of  Barclay's  position,  by  10 
squadrons  of  hussars.  Lastly,  one  battalion  of  Anrepp's 
division  (14th)  stood  to  guard  the  bridge  on  the  left  bank  of 
the  Narew.  Anrepp  himself  was  on  the  march,  under 
Kamenskoi's  orders,  from  Popowo,  near  the  Bug,  to  Eozan 
and  Ostrolenka. 

Such  was  the  position  in  which  Bennigsen  prepared  to 
receive  the  French  attack,  which  might  fall  upon  him  either 
from  the  direction  of  Warsaw  and  Nasielsk  or  from  that  of 
Golymin. 

He  had  taken  special  precautions  to  cover  the  bridge,  not 
only  by  his  strong  detachment  under  Bagavout,  but  also  by 
keeping  his  reserve  behind  his  left  flank,  ready  to  support 
that  commander. 

From  the  outskirts  of  Pultusk  to  Barclay's  battery  on  the 
Golymin  road  was  a  distance  of  about  4500  paces.  The 
Russians  had  two  lines  of  retreat,  one  by  the  right  bank  of 
the  Narew,  through  Makow  to  Ostrolenlya,  the  other  over  the 
bridge  by  the  road  on  the  left  bank  via  Rozan.  The  latter 
was  decidedly  longer,  as  it  passed  round  the  outside  of  the 

*  Bagavout  began  the  battle  with  5000  men  before  he  was  reinforced 
(Bennigsen's  despatch,  Wiltnn,  p.  235).  He  was  between  the  river  bank  and 
the  extremity  of  the  ridge,  extending  on  to  the  slope  heading  up  to  it. 


92  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

great  bend  of  the  river.  Therefore,  Bennigsen's  right  flank, 
covering  the  shorter  line  by  the  chord,  was  specially  sensitive 
to  attack.* 

Lannes,  with  his  two  divisions,  commanded  by  Suchet 
and  Gazan,  marched  from  Zbroski  at  7  a.m.  on  the  26th 
December.  The  distance  to  Pultusk  is  but  five  miles;  to 
the  point  where  he  must  meet  Bennigsen's  foremost  troops 
scarcely  four.  Yet  even  this  march,  short  in  actual  length, 
was  a  tedious  and  difficult  one.  The  weather  had  recently 
been  an  alternation  of  frost  and  thaw.  During  the  last  two 
days  a  decided  thaw  had  set  in.  It  had  penetrated  deep  into 
the  ground,  aided  in  its  action  by  constant  showers  of  rain, 
of  sleet,  and  of  snow,  which  melted  as  it  reached  the  surface 
of  the  earth.  The  ground  had  become  more  and  more 
sodden,  and  the  unmetalled  roads  had  degenerated  into  lines 
of  mud  which,  ground  and  churned  by  the  passage  of  men 
and  horses,  acquired  a  depth  that  rendered  all  movement, 
not  only  irksome,  but  difficult  in  the  extreme.  For  the 
artillery,  it  was  still  more  difficult  to  forge  a  way  through 
these  terrible  roads,  even  with  the  aid  of  double,  treble,  and 
quadruple  teams.  For  the  infantry,  a  rate  of  progression 
exceeding  1\  miles  an  hour  was  not  generally  practicable.! 
The  men  were  generally  halfway  up  to  their  knees  in  sticky 
mud,  often  much  further.  Davout  officially  records  that 
several  men,  including  an  officer  whom  he  names,  spent  the 
night  after  the  battle  on  the  field,  simply  because  they  were 
unable  to  move  backwards  or  forwards  in  the  mud.}  Eapp 
makes  a  similar  statement^     Lannes  himself  wrote :  "  The 

*  Hcepfner,  iii.,  111.  Behind  his  left  wing  lay  both  the  road  to  Makow  by 
the  right  bank,  and  that  over  the  bridge.  The  former,  however,  shortly  turned 
to  the  north-west,  so  that  it  was  liable  to  be  severed,  farther  on,  behind  the 
right  wing. 

f  "  The  country  was  clayey  and  cut  up  by  marshes ;  the  roads  were  frightful. 
The  cavalry,  infantry,  and  artillery,  were  lost  in  the  depths  of  mud.  None 
could  get  out  of  them  save  by  untold  labour"  (Rapp,  p.  127).  "It  took  two 
hours  to  cover  a  short  league  "  (Davout,  p.  132). 

One  league  =  4  kilometres  =  2£  miles. 

X  Davout,  p.  13G.  §  llapp,  p.  127. 


77//;    /LITTLES   OF  PULTUSK  AND    GOLYMIN.      93 

rain  and  the  hail  overwhelmed  our  soldiers;"  and,  again: 
"  The  field,  on  which  we  were  about  to  do  battle,  had  been 
converted  into  a  sea  of  mud,  through  which  soldiers  and 
horses  could  with  difficulty  march."  * 

By  incredible  exertions,  the  whole  corps  had  been  got 
forward  on  the  25th  from  Czarnowo,  with  its  artillery  com- 
plete, till  the  first  division  reached  Zbroski,  and  Gazan's, 
in  second  line,  was  a  mile  behind.  The  corps  had  marched 
15  miles.  The  troops  bivouacked  in  misery  during  a  night 
of  storms  of  snow,  hail,  and  rain. 

When  Lannes  had  started  his  corps  on  its  march  towards 
the  enemy,  of  whose  presence  in  force  at  Pultusk  he  was 
aware,  he  himself  rode  forward,  with  an  escort  of  two 
squadrons,  to  reconnoitre  the  position.  As  he  emerged  from 
the  forest  on  the  Nasielsk-Pultusk  road,  he  saw  before  him, 
on  the  plateau  covering  Pultusk,  Bennigsen's  cavalry,  and 
the  front  of  his  advanced  wings,  the  whole  covered  by  the 
line  of  cossacks  in  the  intervening  depression.  He  had 
already  had  to  clear  some  of  the  cossacks  out  of  the  thickets 
on  his  side.  The  town  of  Pultusk,  and  Bennigsen's  main  lines, 
were  hidden  from  him  by  the  rising  ground.  It  was  not  till 
considerably  later  that  he  realised  the  magnitude  of  the  force 
with  which  he  had  to  do  battle.  Could  he  have  known  the 
odds  in  numbers  against  which  he  had  to  contend,  perhaps 
even  Lannes'  brave  spirit  would  have  quailed ;  for  he  knew 
of  no  succour  likely  to  reach  him  from  his  left,f  and  he  did 
know  that  there  was  nothing  behind  him. 

*  Lannes'  report  on  the  battle  to  Berthier,  dated  27th  December,  in  dailv 
correspondence  (Arch.  Hist).  The  report  is  written  by  Victor,  then  Lannes' 
chief  of  the  staff. 

t  Lannes  had  no  information  of  the  approach  of  Davout's  3rd  division. 
Indeed,  Davout  had  no  orders  to  send  it  to  Lannes'  support.  He  merelv 
directed  it  to  keep  from  that  marshal's  left  flank  a  Russian  column  retreating, 
apparently,  on  Pultusk  from  Strzegoczin  (Davout,  p.  132).  Berthier's  despatch 
to  Lannes  (dated  26th  December),  which  reached  him  about  10  a.m.,  says  : 
"Marshal  Davout  is  about  to  advance  on  Strzegoczin  and  Golymin."  The 
orders  of  the  same  date  to  Davout  merely  direct  him  on  the  last-named  places, 
and  in  no  wav  indicate  that  he  was  to  assist  Lannes. 


94  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Presently,  Claparede,  coming  up  with  the  17th  Eegiment 
Light  Infantry  as  advanced  guard,  drove  in  the  cossack  out- 
posts, and  enabled  Lannes  to  see  better  what  was  in  front  of 
him.  His  position  was  difficult  and  dangerous,  but  he  had 
the  Emperor's  clear  orders  for  the  capture  of  the  Pultusk 
bridge,  and  he  was  not  the  man  to  hesitate,  whatever  the 
difficulties.  It  was  now  about  10  a.m.,  and  he  had  just 
received  the  Emperor's  order.* 

As  his  troops  slowly  came  up,  he  marshalled  them,  under 
cover  of  the  woods,  in  two  lines,  covering,  as  far  as  he  could, 
the  whole  length  of  the  Kussian  position.  In  first  line  he 
ranged  the  whole  of  Suchet's  division,  less  the  40th  Eegiment. 
In  second  line  was  Gazan's  division,  plus  the  40th  from 
Suchet's.  On  the  right  of  his  first  line,  he  placed  Claparede 
with  the  17th  Light  Infantry,  and  Treilhard's  Light  Cavalry, 
in  support,  opposed  to  Bagavout's  detachment.  The  centre, 
under  Wedell,  consisted  of  the  64th  Eegiment  and  one  battalion 
of  the  88th.  On  the  left  were  the  other  battalion  of  the  88th, 
the  34th,  and  Becker's  dragoons,  the  whole  led  by  Suchet  in 
person.  The  left  wing  was  covered,  more  completely  than 
the  centre  and  the  right,  by  detached  woods,  and  its  strength 
was  thus  concealed  from  Barclay  de  Tolly,  to  whom  it  was 
opposed.  The  few  guns  which  had,  so  far,  arrived  were 
disposed  in  front  of  the  centre  and  the  left.  Gazan,  with  the 
second  line,  followed  the  first  at  about  three  hundred  paces. 
The  battalions  were  mostly  deployed  and  their  front  covered 
by  a  swarm  of  skirmishers. 

The  second  line  comprised  only  two  regiments  of  Gazan's 
and  the  40th.  In  reserve  there  were  the  two  battalions  of 
the  21st  regiment  (Gazan's  division). 

The  strength  of  Lannes'  corps  may  be  taken  at  about 

*  These  are  the  orders  referred  to  in  the  last  note.  They  inform  Lannes  that 
the  enemy's  centre  is  pierced,  that  one  or  two  regiments  may  have  remained  at 
Sierock,  if  so,  they  will  certainly  be  captured.  The  marshal  is  to  advance 
on  Pultusk,  to  pass  the  Narew  there,  and  at  once  to  construct  a  bridge  head. 
Clearly  the  Emperor  had  no  thought  of  any  serious  resistance  to  his  advance  at 
Pultusk  (cf.  despatch  quoted  in  full,  Dumas,  vol.  xvii.,  pp.  485-487). 


THE  BATTLES   OF  PULTUSK  AND    GOLYMIN.       95 

20,000  men,  whilst  Bennigsen  had  between  40,000  and 
45,000.* 

The  attack  commenced  about  11  a.m.  on  the  right,  with 
the  advance  of  Claparede's  men  against  Bagavout.  The 
French  moved  forward  with  enthusiasm  to  the  attack.  They 
felt  that  behind  them  lay  the  dripping  woods  and  the  sodden 
ground  on  which  they  had  spent  the  preceding  night,  and 
through  which  they  had  been  toiling  since  seven  o'clock.  In 
front  of  them  was  Pultusk,  where,  if  they  reached  it,  they 
might  hope  to  spend  a  less  wretched  night.  The  enemy 
defending  it  they  had  already  beaten  at  Austerlitz;  they 
had  not  yet  learnt  what  was  his  capacity  for  stolid,  dogged 
resistance.  Lastly,  they  were  fighting  under  the  eyes  of  a 
marshal  whom  they  adored,  and  who  was  always  ready  to 
lead  them  in  person  where  the  battle  raged  most  hotly. 

Bagavout's  cavalry  and  cossacks,  no  match  for  the 
French  infantry,  were  driven  in  without  difficulty.  The 
next  opponents  of  the  French  were  the  4th  Jagers,  whom 
Bagavout  sent  forward.  Cheering,  and  regardless  of  the 
heavy  artillery  fire  with  which  they  were  smitten  by  the 
Ptussian  guns,f  the  French  infantry  drove  the  jagers  back- 
wards and  leftwards,  until  they  reached  seven  squadrons, 

*  Hoepfner  gives  Lannes  20,000  men  in  the  morning,  and  30,000  at  the 
end  of  the  battle,  though  it  is  difficult  to  suppose  he  is  right  in  estimating 
Gudin's  division  of  Davout's  corps  at  10,000.  The  estimate  seems  at  least  3000 
too  high.  The  same  authority  (iii.  10)  gives  Bennigsen's  strength,  allowing 
for  sick,  detachments,  etc.,  as  40,000  men,  viz.  66  battalions,  55  squadrons,  7  field 
batteries,  and  2£  horse  batteries  ("128  guns). 

Sir  R.  Wilson  (p.  273)  gives  45,000. 

Lannes'  strength  was  24  battalions  and  27  squadrons.  If,  as  Hoepfner 
reckons,  he  had  20,000  men,  the  battalions  may  be  reckoned  at  750,  and  the 
squadrons  at  80  men.  Assuming  Davout's  battalions  to  have  had  an  equal 
average  strength,  d'Aultanne's  force  could  not  have  exceeded  7000,  and  the 
whole  French  force  engaged  would  not  amount  to  over  27,000. 

Napoleon  (Corr.  11,305),  sending  orders  to  Murat,  mentions  the  strength  of 
Lannes'  corps  as  16,000  infantry  and  1200  cavalry.  Becker's  dragoons  he  puts 
at  1200,  which  would  give  Lannes  18,400  in  the  morning.  To  this  must  be 
added,  in  the  afternoon,  one-third  of  Davout's  infantry,  which  Napoleon  states  in 
all  to  be  22,000?    Lannes'  total  in  the  afternoon  would  thus  be  only  25,300. 

t  Bagavout's  battery  (14  guns)  was  on  his  loft,  close  to  the  river  bank. 


96  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

under  Koschin,  on  the  left  of  the  cavalry  line  joining 
Bagavout  to  Barclay. 

Seeing  the  attack  on  Bagavout,  Bennigsen  had  despatched 
to  his  aid  four  battalions,  under  Osterman,  from  the  reserve 
and  first  line.* 

Simultaneously  with  Claparede,  Wedell,  with  the  French 
centre,  had  moved  forwards,  and  now  changed  direction  to 
his  right,  intending  to  fall  on  Bagavout's  right  flank,  whilst 
Claparede  attacked  him  in  front.  In  doing  so  he,  necessarily, 
exposed  his  own  left  flank  to  Koschin's  cavalry  and  the 
defeated  jagers  who  had  fallen  back  on  it.  Koschin,  quick 
to  see  his  chance,  charged  at  once  through  a  blinding  snow- 
storm which  concealed  his  approach  until  his  men  were 
actually  in  the  midst  of  Wedell's  leading  battalions,  sabring 
them  right  and  left.f  But  the  storm,  which  had  aided  him 
so  far,  now,  in  turn,  prevented  Koschin's  seeing  the  advance, 
against  his  own  right  flank,  of  Wedell's  half  of  the  88th. 
That  battalion  was  just  in  time  to  save  those  in  front  of  it, 
attacked  by  Koschin  in  flank  and  by  two  battalions  of  jagers 
and  Bagavout's  cavalry  in  front.  In  the  confused,  hand- 
to-hand  struggle  which  ensued,  each  side  claims  to  have 
annihilated  the  enemy.  In  the  end,  the  Bussians  had  to 
retire,  and  the  fight  came  to  a  standstill,  Bagavout  falling 
back  on  his  old  position,  and  Koschin  towards  the  rear  of  the 
left  wing. 

Treilhard's  cavalry  now  advanced.  A  Bussian  hussar 
regiment  in  front  of  it  waited  till  it  approached,  and  then, 
wheeling  leftwards,  exposed  the  French  cavalry,  on  the  ridge, 
to  the  fire  of  a  battery  in  the  main  line,  which  had  previously 
been  masked.     From  it  the  French  suffered  severely. 

It  is  now  time  to  return  to  the  movements  which  had 
been  going  on  simultaneously  on  the  French  left.     Lannes, 

*  Two  from  the  extreme  left  of  the  1st  line,  and  two  from  the  reserve  in  3rd 
line  (Wilson,  ?.  272). 

t  This  combat  occurred  in  the  angle,  on  the  French  side,  between  the 
Nasielsk  and  Warsaw  roads,  about  250  yards  from  either. 


THE  BATTLES   OF  PULTUSK  AND   QOLYMIN.      97 

haying  started  his  attack  on  the  right,  hurried  off  to  look 
after  Suchet's  column  advancing  to  the  storm  of  the  14 
heights.     The  34th  Regiment  led  the  way  with  a  swarm  of 
skirmishers  and  chasseurs  a  cheval  in  front,  accompanied  by 
the  intrepid  Lannes,  as  well  as  by  Suchet. 

Fired  by  the  example  and  encouragement  of  their  leaders, 
the  34th,  bursting  on  the  front  of  the  wood,  carried  all  before 
them.  Barclay's  men  were  driven  in  confusion  back  through 
the  first  half  of  the  wood  on  to  the  reserve,*  on  the  Golymin 
road.  The  Russian  battery  in  the  wood  was  momentarily 
captured,  but  the  reserve  turned  the  scale ;  the  battery  was 
recovered,  and  the  34th  driven  into  the  midst  of  the  wood 
through  which  they  had  just  triumphantly  fought  their  way. 
They  were  saved  from  disaster  by  the  arrival  of  the  2nd 
battalion  of  the  88th,  which,  it  will  be  remembered,  was 
attached  to  this  wing.  In  the  outer  half  of  the  wood,  on  the 
French  side  of  the  road,  a  furious  personal  conflict  raged  with 
varying  success.  Whilst  the  French  first  line  had  thus,  on  the 
whole,  gained  ground  against  the  detachments  of  Bagavout 
and  Barclay,  the  2nd  line  had  followed  steadily,  and  it  now 
occupied  the  ridge  which  had,  at  the  beginning  of  the  battle, 
been  held  by  the  Russian  regular  cavalry  joining  the  wings. 
The  cavalry  had  retired  behind  the  main  lines,  and  Gazan's 
men  were  thus  exposed  to  the  full  stress  of  the  artillery  fire 
from  the,  now  unmasked,  batteries  in  front  of  Bennigsen's 
main  position,  f 

The  battle  had  raged  for  several  hours.  The  French  had 
made  but  little  progress.  Their  right  had  failed  to  dislodge 
Bagavout  completely  from  his  original  position,  their  centre 
had  not  got  beyond  the  ridge  occupied  in  the  morning  by 
the  Russian  cavalry.  There  replying,  as  'best  it  might  with 
a  very  inferior  force  of  artillery,  to  Bennigsen's  guns  in  the 

*  Two  battalions,  vide  supra,  p.  90. 

t  Of  the  total  of  over  120  guns,  Barclay  had  28,  and  Bagavout  12.  Then* 
were  another  14  in  Osterman's  reserve.  Thus,  Gazan  was  exposed  to  the  fire  of 
nearly  70  guns. 

H 


98  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

main  line,  it  was  suffering  severely  from  their  lire.  On  the 
left,  Lannes  and  Suchet  were,  with  difficulty,  maintaining 
themselves,  in  the  nearer  half  of  the  great  wood,  against 
Barclay's  superior  force.  There  seemed  every  prospect  of 
Lannes*  whole  corps  being  compelled  to  a  disastrous  retreat. 

But  now  a  change  came  over  the  scene.  The  short  day, 
which  would  close  by  4  p.m.,  had  scarce  two  hours  to  run,  a 
premature  darkness  was  threatened,  owing  to  the  stormy, 
cloudy  weather. 

At  this  juncture,  Bennigsen  was  warned,  by  the  cossacks 
on  his  right,  of  the  approach,  by  the  Golymin  road,  of  a  strong 
hostile  column.  Davout's  3rd  division,  commanded  tem- 
porarily by  his  chief  of  the  staff  d'Aultanne,  had  started  at 
6  a.m.  from  Kowalavice,  about  two  miles  short  of  Strzegoczin, 
in  pursuit  of  a  Kussian  column  which  appeared  to  be  falling 
back  on  Pultusk,  and  which  it  was  ordered  to  fend  off  from 
the  left  flank  of  Lannes'  corps. 

Finding  in  front  of  him  a  considerable  body  of  cavalry 
escorting  guns  and  stores,  d'Aultanne  followed  it  without 
seriously  engaging  himself.  The  enemy,  in  his  retreat,  was 
forced,  by  the  state  of  the  roads,  to  abandon  14  guns  and  a 
large  number  of  waggons.  Satisfied  with  his  progress,  the 
French  commander  was  about  to  bivouac  for  the  night,  when 
he  heard,  on  his  right,  a  heavy  cannonade,  showing  him  that 
Lannes  was  hotly  engaged.  The  large  number  of  guns 
indicated  that  the  enemy  must  be  superior  in  this  arm  at 
least;  for  d'Aultanne  could  infer  that  Lannes  had  had  the 
same  difficulty  as  himself  in  moving  up  artillery. 

With  a  just  appreciation  of  the  situation,  he  resolved  to 
move  at  once  to  Lannes'  assistance.  By  the  route  which  he 
had  followed  he  had  had  to  march  about  double  the  distance 
Lannes  had,  and  he  had,  moreover,  been  delayed  by  fighting, 
and  collecting  the  abandoned  guns  and  waggons.*  It  must, 
therefore,  have  been  somewhere  towards  2  p.m.  when  he 
arrived  in  view  of  the  Russian  right  on  the  Mosin  heights. 

*  For  this  account  of  d'Aultaune's  inarch,  see  Davont,  pp.  132-134. 


THE  BATTLES   OF  PULTUSK  AND    GOLYMIN.      y(J 

With  a  double  team  he  had  succeeded  in  dragging  up  cue 
gun;  with  that  he  satisfied  himself  that  Mosin  was  only 
occupied  by  cossacks. 

He  had  no  time  to  concert  measures  with  Lannes,  to  whom 
he  sent  notice  of  his  advance,  in  echelon  from  his  right,  in  the 
direction  of  the  Golymin  to  Pultusk  road.  He  had  9 
battalions.*  His  right  echelon,  in  front,  skirted  the  woods 
opposite  Barclay's  right ;  the  left  echelon  rested  on  the  little 
brook  which  flows  past  Mosin  to  the  Narew. 

He  was  first  attacked  by  the  Polish  cavalry  regiment 
from  between  Barclay's  position  and  Mosin ;  that  was  easily 
beaten  off. 

Meanwhile,  Bennigsen,  alarmed  for  his  right,  had  wheeled 
back  the  whole  right  of  his  main  lines  so  as  to  face  the 
Mosin  wood.  He  thus  greatly  lessened  the  volume  of 
artillery  fire  which  Lannes'  centre  had  to  bear. 

When  d'Aultanne's  right  echelon  arrived  opposite  the 
angle  of  the  Mosin  wood,  he  changed  direction  to  the  left, 
forming  for  attack,  in  columns  of  half  battalions  at  50  paces' 
interval,  and  at  once  advanced  in  the  midst  of  a  heavy 
snowstorm.  The  new  direction  which  he  had  assumed 
brought  him  obliquely  on  the  right  of  Barclay's  position,  his 
right  directed  on  the  extreme  left  of  Lannes'  left  wing,  still 
fighting  in  the  wood. 

As  the  attack  advanced,  Barclay  fell  back  towards  the 
now  refused  right  wing  of  the  main  line.  From  this,  there 
hurried  to  his  assistance  two  infantry  regiments  and  20 
squadrons.  At  the  same  time,  Bennigsen  directed  the  fire  of 
a  powerful  battery,  from  the  Golymin  road,  against  the  French 
in  the  outer  half  of  the  wood. 

Thus  strengthened,  Barclay  once  more  advanced  into  the 
wood  beyond  the  road.  At  last,  the  French  34th,  which  had 
so  long  and  so  gallantly  maintained  itself  in  the  wood,  was 

*  His  whole  cavalry  force  consisted  of  70  chasseurs,  and  100  of  Rapp's 
dragoons.  His  artillery  was  not  up  except  the  one  gun  just  mentioned  (Davout. 
pp.  132  and  134). 


100  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

forced  back  out  of  it.  The  result  of  its  retreat  was  to 
create  a  great  gap  between  it  and  the  right  of  d'Aultanne's 
force,  whose  flank  was  thus  exposed.  Into  the  opening  so 
made  poured  the  20  squadrons  of  Eussian  cavalry.  Both 
Lannes  and  d'Aultanne,  separated  by  this  mass  of  cavalry, 
were  in  imminent  danger  when  the  situation  was  saved  by  the 
firm  conduct  of  the  85th  Eegiment  of  D'Aultanne's  division. 
Disorder  was  already  spreading  in  his  ranks,  as  well  as  in 
those  of  Lannes.  It  was  increased  by  the  darkness  which 
had  now  settled  down.  The  Eussian  cavalry  was  received 
with  a  steady  fire  from  the  85th,  formed  in  squares  and 
facing  the  right  flank  of  the  intruding  enemy.  That  cavalry 
was  compelled  to  fall  back,  though  it  several  times  charged 
d'Aultanne's  lines.  Order  had,  however,  been  restored  by 
the  exertions  of  Pire  and  Gauthier,  and  the  charges  failed. 
The  last  of  them  was  made  about  8  p.m.,  in  the  midst  of 
another  violent  snowstorm. 

Shortly  before  this,  d'Aultanne  had  received  a  message 
from  Lannes,  begging  him  to  stand  firm,  as  the  marshal  was 
about  to  renew  his  attack.  After  waiting  for  an  hour,  and 
seeing  no  signs  of  the  promised  attack,  d'Aultanne  decided  to 
retire  to  the  woods  along  whose  edge  his  right  had  advanced. 

The  further  doings  of  the  French  centre  and  right  have 
still  to  be  related.  When  Bennigsen  turned  most  of  his  guns 
to  the  support  of  Barclay,*  Gazan,  in  the  centre,  was  able 
to  direct  his  artillery  against  the  right  flank  of  Bagavout's 
detachment,  and  to  support  a  fresh  attack  on  him  by  Claparede 
and  Wedell.  Bagavout  was  overpowered,  and  driven  back 
across  the  ravine  in  front  of  which  he  stood.  His  guns 
were  captured,  but  he  was  promptly  reinforced  by  five  fresh 
battalions.  To  support  him,  Osterman  established  a  strong 
battery  behind  his  right.  Bagavout  once  more  urged  forward 
his  troops  across  the  ravine.  After  a  long  and  desperate  fight, 
the  French,  unable  to  maintain  their  forward  position,  were 
borne  back  across  the  ravine  in  confusion.    A  bayonet  charge, 

*  About  2  p.m. 


TEE   BATTLES   OF  PULTUSK  AND   OOLYMIX.       10  1 

regiment  under  Somow,  had  completed  their  overthrow.* 
They  were  unable  to  retain  the  guns  which  they  had  taken, 
and  which  now  again  fell  into  Bagavout's  hands. 

Exhausted  by  many  hours'  fighting,  following  on  a  severe 
march,  Lannes'  corps  was  not  fit  to  continue  the  battle,  in 
which  they  had  for  four  hours  fought  against  double  their 
numbers.  Even  with  d'Aultanne's  division  they  had  scarcely 
equalled  three-fourths  of  the  Eussian  strength. 

Weary  and  sullen,  they  fell  back  in  good  order,  unpursued, 
to  the  positions  which  they  had  occupied  before  the  action 
commenced. 

Beyond  that  they  did  not  retreat.  Bennigsen's  story, 
that  his  cossacks,  next  morning,  found  no  French  within 
eight  miles  of  the  field,  may  be  dismissed  as  a  fable.  Possibly 
the  story  may  have  been  carried  by  cossacks  scouting  in  the 
direction  of  d'Aultanne,  who,  thinking  Lannes  could  now 
take  care  of  himself,  since  Bennigsen  had  retreated,  marched 
off,  before  dawn  on  the  27th,  to  rejoin  his  own  corps,  leaving 
the  ground  unoccupied  in  the  direction  of  the  Golymin  road. 

During  the  night,  Bennigsen  decided  on  retreat.  The 
greater  part  of  his  army,  passing  to  the  left  bank  of  the 
Narew,  marched  by  the  circuitous  road  on  that  side  to  Rozan 
on  the  27th,  and  on  to  Ostrolenka  on  the  28th.  f  The  night 
of  the  26th-27th  had  been  one  of  calm,  succeeding  the 
tempest  of  the  day.  Lannes  was  in  no  state  to  pursue  on 
the  27th.  His  losses  had  been  very  heavy  in  the  savage 
hand-to-hand  fighting  throughout  the  26th.  His  and  d'Aul- 
tanne's losses  are  greatly  understated  by  the  French.  On 
the  whole,  it  is  probable  that  they  were  not  less  than  7000 

*  Lannes  (Arch.  Hist.)  states  that  a  fresh  attempt  (apparently  the  one  here 
described)  was  made  against  his  right  about  3  p.m.,  but  was  arrested  bj 
Gazan. 

t  Writing  on  the  28th  December  to  Murat,  Napoleon  says  that  part  of  the 
troops  from  Pultusk  had  retired  by  the  right  bank.  Murat  is  ordered  to 
ascertain  whether  they  had  gone  direct  to  Rozan  or  by  Makow.  If  the  enemy 
were  standing  at  Makow,  they  were  not  to  be  attacked  until  an  overwhelming 
force  was  collected  (Corr.  11,512). 


102  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

in  killed,  wounded,  and  prisoners.  The  Eussians,  too,  had 
lost  heavily ;  5000  is,  perhaps,  not  too  high  a  figure  at  which 
to  estimate  their  casualties.* 

Both  sides  lay  claim  to  the  victory  in  this  well-contested 
l)attle.  It  is  difficult  to  award  the  palm  to  either.  What 
ground  Lannes  gained  he  lost  again,  and  he  had  been  so 
severely  handled  that  he  could  not  molest  Bennigsen's  retreat. 
Bennigsen,  on  the  other  hand,  though  he  had  repulsed  the 
attack  of  a  very  inferior  force,  had  not  been  able,  or  had  not 
dared,  to  pursue  it.  He  was,  rightly,  nervous  lest  the  advance 
of  Napoleon's  centre  on  Makow  should  cut  his  line  across  the 
bend  of  the  river  to  Eozan  and  Ostrolenka.  He  could  not 
feel  sure  that  Lannes'  attack  would  not  be  renewed  next 
day  by  a  stronger  force.  Then,  if  he  lost  the  Pultusk  bridge, 
almost  inevitable  ruin  would  stare  him  in  the  face.  So  badly 
did  he  think  of  his  position,  that  he  preferred  reaching  Eozan 
by  a  22  mile  march  on  the  left  bank  of  the  river  to  risking  the 
direct  march  of  only  15  or  16  by  the  right. 

Having  decided,  contrary  to  Kamenskoi's  orders,f  to 
stand  and  fight  at  Pultusk,  Bennigsen  might  well  have  used 
his  position  to  better  advantage,  and,  at  least,  have  inflicted 
a  decisive  defeat  on  Lannes.     Had  he  fallen  vigorously  on 

*  Wilson  puts  the  French  loss  at  10,000  killed  and  wounded,  the  Eussians  at 
3000  killed  without  mentioning  wounded  (Wihon,  p.  273).  Elsewhere  (p.  81), 
he  puts  the  Russian  loss  at  less  than  5000  men,  and  the  French  at  8000  at 
least. 

Hoepfner  (iii.  118)  says  that,  though  the  Russian  official  accounts  state 
the  French  loss  at  10,000,  other  Russian  authorities  say  7000  killed  and 
wounded,  and  700  prisoners.  The  French  admit  only  600  or  700  killed  and  1500 
wounded.  This  is  the  figure  given  hy  Dumas  (vol.  xvii..  p.  174),  and  by 
Lannes  (Arch.iHist).  The  marshal  puts  the  Russian  loss  at  2000  killed,  3000 
wounded,  1800  prisoners.  Dumas  says  more  than  2000  dead  Russians  were 
found  on  the  field,  and  1500  wounded,  incapable  of  being  moved. 

The  French,  as  the  attackers,  might  be  expected  to  lose  more  heavily  than 
the  defenders.  They  were  exposed  to  a  terrible  artillery  fire,  telling  heavily  on 
the  close  formations.  On  the  other  hand,  in  the  personal  conflict  which  consti- 
tuted so  large  a  part  of  the  battle,  losses  would  probably  not  differ  greatly. 

Plotho  (p.  36)  calculates  the  Russian  loss  at  only  8000  or  4000  killed  and 
wounded. 

t  Wihon,  p.  80. 


1 


TEE  BATTLES   OF  FULTUSK   AND    U0LYM1X.      103 

cnch  corps  at  the  beginning  of  the  battle,  and  advanced 
with   his  right,  he  would  probably  have  rolled  it  up  and 
driven  it  into  the  river  before  d'Aultanne  could  come  up. 
He  could  still  have  kept  a  strong  reserve  behind  his  right 
wing  to  ward  off  any  attack  from  the  Golymin  direction. 
But  his  disposition  of  his  troops  was  not  calculated  to  favour 
any    such    bold   action.     Instead    of   meeting   the    French 
advance  with  over  100  guns  posted  on  the  ridge,  he  masked 
the  greater  part  of  his  artillery  by  the  curtain  of  cavalry 
which  he  drew  between  the  advanced  wings  under  Barclay 
and  Bagavout.     Consequently,  the  French,  whilst  encounter- 
ing strenuous  resistance  from  these  two  commanders  on  either 
wing,  had  nothing,  at  first,  opposed  to  their  centre  but  cavalry 
and   cossacks.     It   was   only  when   these   retired  that  the 
Kussian  batteries  behind  could  open  on  the  enemy's  centre. 
What  their  effect  would  have  been  had  they,  with  a  consider- 
able force  of  infantry,  been  where  the  cavalry  were,  can  be 
judged  from  the  way  in  which  they  arrested  Gazan's  advance, 
until  their  fire  was  diverted  by  d'Aultanne's  appearance.   But 
for  the  weakness  of  the  Eussian  centre  in  front,  WedelTs 
move  to  the  right,  to  support  Claparede  against  Bagavout 
would  have  been  impossible. 

Bennigsen  could  well  have  placed  10,000  infantry  and 
50  or  60  guns  where  his  cavalry  were,  still  keeping  a  strong 
reserve  of  infantry.  The  cavalry,  standing  behind  his  right 
wing,  could  have  issued  on  the  French  left  flank  and  rear  as 
soon  as  the  first  attack  had  failed,  as  it  must  inevitably  have 
done.  Then,  with  25,000  infantry  against  him  in  front,  as 
well  as  a  powerful  artillery,  with  38  *  squadrons  and  a  strong 
force  of  cossacks  attacking  his  left  and  rear,  and,  finally,  with 
practically  no  reserve  at  his  command,  it  is  difficult  to  see 
how  Lannes  could  have  escaped  total  destruction.  The  battle 
would  have  been  over  in  two  or  three  hours,  well  before 
d'Aultanne  could  arrive,  and  that  officer  would,  naturally, 
not  have  risked  an  attack  without  the  support  of  Lannes. 

*  28  from  the  ridge,  and  10  from  in  front  of  Barclay  (vide  supra,  p.  91). 


104  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Bennigsen  reported  that  he  had  been  attacked  by 
00,000  French  under  Napoleon  in  person.  If  he  was,  in 
good  faith,  under  this  delusion  it  will  account  for  his  want  of 
vigour.    But  surely  his  intelligence  should  have  been  better ! 

He  reported  to  the  Czar  that  "  the  succours,  so  much 
desired  by  General  Buxhowden,  did  not  arrive  in  time, 
although  it  was  scarcely  distant  from  me  two  miles,*  in  the 
neighbourhood  of  Makow,  and  that  it  had  halted  halfway  to 
afford  me  all  the  advantages  of  my  victory."  f 

Buxhowden  is  unjustly  blamed  here ;  for  he  had  Kamen- 
skoi's  orders  to  retreat  on  Ostrolenka,  and  he  was  doing  so 
with  Dochtorow's  and  Tutchkow's  divisions  by  Makow,  and 
with  Essen's  and  Anrepp's  from  Popowo.  Kamenskoi  was 
with  Bennigsen  the  night  before  the  battle,  and  Buxhowden 
had  no  fresh  orders  from  him.  It  is  true  that  Dochtorow  did 
recall  part  of  his  division  to  support  Gallitzin  at  Golymin, 
but  the  cases  were  not  altogether  parallel.  He  was  merely 
supporting  a  rearguard  retreating  by  the  same  road  as 
himself. 

Lannes  seems  to  have  made  the  best  of  an  extremely 
unpleasant  position.  He  was  put  in  it  owing  to  the 
Emperor's  false  intelligence  as  to  the  enemy's  lines  of  retreat. 
His  orders  to  Lannes,  already  quoted,{  indicate  clearly  his 
belief  that  there  was  no  considerable  force  at  Pultusk.  They 
do  not  even  provide  for  Lannes'  action  in  the  event  of  his  find- 
ing himself  outnumbered.  Napoleon,  in  fact,  believed  that  the 
enemy  was  marching  on  Makow,  and  all  his  efforts  were 
directed  against  the  right  of  the  Eussian  army  and  its  rear, 
now  that  it  was  separated  by  Ney,  Bernadotte,  Bessieres,  and 

*  German  miles  of  4£  English.  Distance,  therefore,  was  about  9  miles, 
English. 

t  Bennigsen's  despatch,  quoted  by  Wilson,  p.  336.  The  translation  is  not 
very  clear,  nor  well  punctuated,  but  the  meaning  can  be  gathered.  The  proper 
translation  would  appear  to  be  "the  succour  so  much  desired  by  me  from 
General  Buxhowden,  although  distant  from  me  scarcely  2  miles,  in  the 
neighbourhood  of  Makow,  did  not  arrive  in  time  to  afford  me  all  the  advantages 
of  my  victory  ;  it  had  halted  halfway." 

X  Vide  supra,  p.  94. 


TEE  BATTLES   OF  PULTUSK  AND    GOLYMIN.      105 

Soult  from  the  Prussians.  Lannes  received  his  orders  only 
as  he  reached  the  field  of  battle.  They  were  so  positive  that 
he  could  hardly  have  justified  failure  to  follow  them  to  the 
letter.  Moreover,  he  had  already  commenced  the  action 
before  he  was  fully  aware  of  the  immense  superiority  of 
Beningsen's  numbers. 

He  was  hampered  in  his  attack  by  the  necessity  for 
keeping  a  strong  second  line  to  fall  back  on.  If  there  was 
one  thing  he  was  certain  of  it  was  that  there  was  no  strong 
supporting  force  between  him  and  Czarnowo.  At  2  p.m.  his 
position  was  more  than  ever  hazardous,  and  he  must  have 
felt  that  a  strong  offensive  return  against  his  left  flank  could 
not  but  involve  him  in  disaster.  That  it  would  eventually 
have  come,  but  for  the  unexpected  arrival  of  d'Aultanne, 
can  hardly  be  doubted.  The  promptitude  of  the  latter 
commander,  in  marching  to  the  sound  of  the  guns  is  highly 
commendable. 


(b)  Golymin. 

Whilst  Lannes  was  fighting,  at  Pultusk,  his  uphill  battle 
against  very  superior  numbers,  another  action  was  in  progress 
in  front  of  Golymin,  12  miles  to  the  north-west.* 

At  that  village,  Gallitzin  had  collected  parts  of  his  own 
division.  The  portion  of  Sacken's  which  had  been  driven 
northwards  by  Murat  was  also  on  its  road  to  Golymin.  The 
rest  of  these  divisions  had  retreated  on  Pultusk  and  formed 
part  of  the  army  under  the  personal  command  of  Bennigsen 
on  tie  26th  December.  When  Gallitzin  reached  Golymin, 
about  vS  a.m.,  his  troops  were  too  exhausted  by  their  difficult 
march  to  continue  it  farther  towards  Makow.  He  had, 
moreover,  to  wait  for  Sacken's  men.    The  same  morning, 

*  The  chief  authorities  consulted  for  this  hattle  are :  (a)  Hapfner,  iii.  122, 
etc. ;  (6)  Dumas,  vol.  xvii.,  p.  180,  etc. ;  (c)  Davout,  pp.  137-140 ;  (d)  Marbot, 
i.  246,  247;  (e)  Rapp,  p.  128,  etc.;  (/)  Augereau's  report  in  the  Archive* 
HUioriques. 


106  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

under  orders  from  the  Emperor,*  Augereau  marched  off 
Desjardins'  division,  at  7.30  a.m.,  from  Kaleczin.f  The  other 
division  (Heudelet's)  was  ordered  to  start  at  9  a.m.  They 
were  to  march  via  Sonsk,  whilst  Durosnel,  with  the  light 
cavalry,  was  to  cut  the  road  between  Ciechanow  and  Golyinin, 
collecting  on  it  baggage  abandoned  by  the  enemy.  Murat, 
with  part  of  the  reserve  cavalry,  followed,  marching  by 
(Jarnowo.J  Gallitzin  had,  overnight,  informed  Dochtorow, 
who  was  marching  in  advance  of  him  on  Makow,  of  his  own 
march  to  Golymin,  and  had  warned  him  that  the  French 
were  advancing  to  the  attack  from  all  directions.  This 
message  Dochtorow  received  simultaneously  with  Kamenskoi's 
orders  for  his  retreat  on  Makow.  Nevertheless,  leaving  his 
division  to  continue  its  retreat  meanwhile,  he  himself,  with 
a  musketeer  regiment  and  one  of  dragoons,  remained  at 
Golymin  to  receive  Gallitzin. § 

Scarcely  had  the  latter  collected  and  organised  his 
wearied  troops  at  Golymin  when  the  rear-guard,  of  2  squadrons, 
was  attacked  by  Murat's  advanced  guard.  Gallitzin  sent 
3  squadrons  of  cuirassiers  to  endeavour  to  arrest  the 
French  advance,  and  so  to  give  him  some  time  to  rest  his 
men,  before  again  proceeding  towards  Makow.  The  rear- 
guard, thus  strengthened,  succeeded  in  repulsing  Lassalle, 
who  led  Murat's  advance,  to  the  woods  from  which  he  had 
issued. 

Presently  there  appeared,  at  Euskowo,  the  head  of 
Augereau's  column. 

*  Orders  from  Berthier  to  Augereau,  dated  Lopaczin,  26th  Decembers 
(Printed  in  Dumas,  xvii.  487,  488.)  In  the  same  order  he  was  warned  that, 
should  he  hear  heavy  firing  on  his  right,  it  would  mean  that  Davout  was 
seriously  engaged  and  must  be  assisted  by  Augereau  moving  towards  Strzegoczin. 

t  He  went  round  by  Sonsk  on  the  Sonna.  By  this  route  the  distance 
to  Buskowo  is  about  10  miles. 

X  This  is  the  direct  route.  From  Kaleczin  to  Garnowo,  about  6  miles.  He 
had  to  start  from  Sochoczin,  and  was  somewhat  delayed  until  the  Emperor  was 
satisfied  that  the  force  in  front  of  Davout  at  Strzegoczin  was  retreating  on 
Golymin.  See  three  despatches  from  Berthier  to  Murat,  dated  Lopaczin,  26th 
December,  printed  by  Dumas,  xvii.,  pp.  488-491. 

§  Hcepfner,  iii.  123. 


THE  BATTLES    OF  PULTUSK  AND    OOLYMIN.       107 

aing   that,   in   the   exhausted   condition   of   his  troops, 

it  without  fighting  was  no  longer  possible,  Gallitzin 
proceeded  to  make  the  best  arrangements  he  could  to  meet 
the  French, 

The  position  of  Golymin,  though  almost  absolutely  flat, 
was  one  of  great  strength  for  a  defensive  action  against  an 
enemy  advancing  from  the  west.  The  ground  is  slightly 
elevated  to  the  north  and  north-west  of  the  village,  but  the 
rise  is  very  gentle.  Except  on  the  north,  it  is  almost  entirely 
surrounded  by  woods  interspersed  with  marshes,  which,  owing 
to  the  weather  prevailing  on  the  26th  December,  were  in 
their  most  impracticable  condition.  The  outer  edge  of  these 
woods  abutted,  at  a  distance  averaging  3500  paces  from 
Golymin,  on  the  open  marshy  plain  over  which  the  French 
line  of  approach  passed.  The  side  most  open  to  attack  was 
the  rising  ground,  towards  Wadkowo  and  Wola-Golyminska ; 
but  even  here  there  was  a  large  wood,  between  Wadkowo 
and  Golymin. 

Into  the  woods  and  ground  about  Kaleczin  *  Gallitzin 
sent  Tcherbatow  with  a  regiment  of  infantry,  and  4  light 
guns.  With  the  rest  of  his  troops,  he  posted  himself  in  front 
of  Golymin.  His  first  line  comprised  6  battalions  of 
infantry,  and  what  remained  of  two  cavalry  regiments,  from 
which  he  had  already  made  detachments.  In  reserve  he 
held  a  regiment  of  cuirassiers,  2  squadrons  of  hussars,  and  the 
troops  of  the  7th  (Dochtorow's)  division. 

On  arrival  at  Euskowo,f  Augereau  sent  Heudelet,  when  he 
arrived  some  time  after  Desjardins,  to  the  left  to  attack  by 
Wadkowo,  which  he  occupied  without  difficulty.  Desjardins 
moved  forward,  from  Ruskowo,  towards  Golymin.     At  this 

*  A  hamlet  400  or  500  paces  west  of  Golymin,  not  to  be  confounded  with 
the  place  of  the  same  name  from  which  Augereau  started. 

t  Looking  to  the  state  of  the  roads,  and  the  distance  they  had  to  march, 
this  could  hardly  have  been  before  2  or  2.30  p.m.',  the  time  which  Marbot 
(pp.  246,  247)  gives.  He  was  himself  with  Augereau's  cavalry.  It  was 
already  getting  dark,  owing  to  the  shortness  of  the  day  and  the  gloom  of 
the  sky. 


108  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

moment,  Murat  arrived  with  Milhaud's  and  Klein's  *  cavalry- 
divisions  and  was  joined  by  Marulaz  with  Davout's  light 
cavalry,  moving  by  the  Strzegoczin  road.  They  advanced,  in 
two  lines,  against  the  Kussian  cavalry,  which  gave  way  before 
them,  retiring  into  the  woods,  where  the  French  horsemen 
were  unable  to  follow. 

Meanwhile,  Augereau's  two  divisions,  which  had  been 
unable  to  bring  up  their  artillery,  moved  forward,  Desjardins 
from  Ruskowo,  Heudelet  from  Wadkowo.f  Heudelet  had  but 
poor  success.  The  resistance  of  the  Kussian  cavalry  and 
infantry  was  so  strenuous  that,  wanting  the  support  of  guns, 
he  could  advance  but  a  short  way.  Desjardins'  division, 
which,  unlike  Heudelet's,  had  been  completely  successful  at 
the  passage  of  the  Ukra,  attacking  with  more  impetuosity,  at 
first  drove  back  Tcherbatow's  infantry  regiment.  Eeinforced 
by  a  battalion  sent  him  by  Gallitzin  from  the  reserve,  Tcher- 
batow  placed  himself,  sword  in  hand,  at  the  head  of  his  men, 
and  again  led  them  forward  to  the  attack.  Desjardins  lost 
the  ground  which  he  had  gained,  but  rallied,  and  once  more 
advanced  against  the  foe.  His  men,  when  within  50  paces 
of  the  Kussians,  were  brought  to  a  standstill  by  grape  fire.| 

After  this,  the  fight  in  front  of  Augereau  degenerated  into 
a  combat  of  skirmishers,  which  lasted,  with  varying  success, 
well  into  the  evening.  On  the  whole,  the  French  left 
(Heudelet)  slowly  progressed  towards  turning  the  Eussian 
right.     So  far,  Gallitzin's  small  force  had  held  its  own  with 

*  Including  Lasalles'  advanced  guard  and  Marulaz,  there  must  have  been 
between  6000  and  7000  cavalry  at  Garnowo. 

t  Desjardins'  division  was  the  first  on  the  field.  On  its  left,  on  arrival  at 
Ruskowo,  it  found  many  hostile  troops.  Augereau  therefore  sent  orders  to 
hurry  up  Heudelet,  and  left  one  of  Desjardins'  brigades  in  Ruskowo,  to  protect 
the  rear  of  the  other  moving  on  Golymin,  till  Heudelet's  arrival  on  the  left. 

Heudelet,  advancing  between  Wadkowo  and  Golymin,  was  attacked  in  flank 
by  cavalry,  but  had  time  to  form  squares  and  repulse  it.  He  was  so  constantly 
attacked  by  the  cavalry  that  he  had  to  keep  his  troops  permanently  in  squares 
(Augereau,  Arch.  Hist.). 

X  Desjardins'  2nd  brigade,  in  its  advance,  was  overwhelmed  by  grape  when 
within  50  paces  of  the  enemy.  It  was  forced  to  retire  200  yards,  and  to  form 
squares  in  front  of  Kaleczin  (Augereau,  Arch.  Hist). 


'////•;  BATTLES    OF  I'lILTUSK  AND   OOLYMIN.      109 

success.  There  was  yet  another  strong  French  column  with 
which  he  had  to  deal  on  his  left. 

Davout  had  started,  with  his  1st  and  2nd  divisions 
(Morand's  and  Friant's),  from  Klukowo  and  Strzegoczin  at 
daybreak.*  Marulaz,  with  the  cavalry,  was  in  advance,  and, 
as  already  described,  had  joined  Murat  in  driving  the 
Russian  cavalry  back  from  Garnowo  on  the  woods  towards 
Golymin.  On  his  way,  he  had  captured  20  guns,  80  am- 
munition waggons  and  200  others,  abandoned  by  the  retreating 
Russians  in  the  mud.  He  and  Murat  were  now  awaiting  the 
arrival  of  the  infantry  for  the  attack  of  the  wood.  The 
Russian  infantry  were  preparing  for  its  defence.  Gallitzin, 
warned  of  the  approach  of  Morand,  had  sent  3  fresh  batta- 
lions into  the  woods  and  marshes  on  Tcherbatow's  left,  and 
2  squadrons  on  to  the  Pultusk  road.  At  3  p.m.  the  Russian 
right  had  been  reinforced  by  2  cavalry  regiments  of  the  7th 
and  8th  divisions,  arriving  from  Ciechanow.  This  force  had 
succeeded  in  getting  past  Durosnel,  by  whose  cavalry  it  was 
attacked  on  the  road.  Davout's  1st  division  (Morand)  had 
to  march  7  miles  from  Strzegoczin  to  Garnowo,  and  the  2nd 
(Friant)  8J  from  Klukowo. 

On  arrival,  Morand  formed  his  1st  brigade  in  battalion 
columns  for  the  attack  of  the  wood.  The  2nd  brigade 
(d'Honnieres)  was  behind  him.  It  was  3.30  before  the 
1st  brigade  was  ready.  Darkness  had  fallen,  though  the 
scene  was  illuminated  by  the  burning  village  of  Garnowo, 
which  had  been  fired  by  the  cossacks  as  they  left  it.  This 
light  facilitated  the  direction  of  the  fire  of  the  Russian  guns.f 
As  the  brigade  charged  into  the  wood,  with  its  voltigeurs  in 
front,  the  Russian  infantry,  to  free  their  limbs  for  the 
struggle,  threw  off  their  knapsacks.     Their  resistance  was 

*  Davout,  p.  131. 

t  Marbot,  i.  248.  He  also  mentions  that  the  uniform  of  Murat's  white 
cuirassiers  made  them  a  prominent  object  for  the  direction  of  the  Russian  fire. 
Many  of  the  villages,  says  Marbot,  were  on  fire.  Probably  Ruskowo  and 
Wadkowo  were  so.  Augereau  (Arch.  Hist.)  mentions,  as  burning,  the  village 
between  Ruskowo  and  Golymin,  i.e.  Kaleczin. 


110  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

obstinate,  but  the  vigour  of  the  French  attack  overcame  all 
opposition.  Fighting  hand  to  hand  with  their  favourite 
weapon,  the  bayonet,  the  infantry  of  Gallitzin  was  slowly 
driven  back  through  and  out  of  the  wood,  leaving  it  strewn 
with  their  dead  and  wounded,  and  with  4000  knapsacks, 
which,  in  the  agony  of  the  struggle,  the  soldiers  had  no  oppor- 
tunity to  recover.  As  in  Augereau's  case,  Davout  could 
attack  only  with  infantry,  for  his  guns  had  fallen  behind. 
Perceiving  that  the  enemy  was  attempting  to  retreat  to  the 
right  by  the  Makow  road,  Davout  despatched  d'Honnieres' 
brigade,  in  that  direction,  to  attempt  to  turn  the  wood  and  to 
advance  on  Golymin  by  the  Pultusk  road.  The  51st  Kegi- 
ment  moved  into  the  wood  in  front  of  Osiek,  on  the  near 
side  of  the  Pultusk  road,  whilst  Kapp  with  his  dragoons 
charged,  on  the  road,  the  Eussian  cavalry.  Himself  at  the 
head  of  his  men,  Kapp,  ever  in  the  forefront  of  the  battle, 
bore  back  the  Eussian  horsemen  in  confusion  towards 
Golymin.  But,  in  doing  so,  he  fell  into  a  trap.  The  marshes 
on  either  side  were  filled  with  Eussian  infantry,  standing  up 
to  their  waists  in  the  bog,  safe  from  any  attack  by  cavalry.* 
From  their  fire,  Eapp's  men  suffered  heavily.  The  general 
himself  was  wounded,  and  his  dragoons  were  compelled  to 
fall  back  into  line  with  their  own  infantry.  To  avoid  what 
appeared  to  be  probable  useless  loss,  Morand  did  not  attempt 
to  advance  beyond  the  border  of  the  woods  towards  Golymin. 
There  he  took  post,  with  Eapp's  dragoons  in  reserve,  for  the 
night.     Friant's  division  had  not  come  into  action  at  all. 

Gallitzin  and  Dochtorow  had  now  began  their  retreat  on 
Makow.  Their  troops,  instead  of  obtaining  some  rest  at 
Golymin,  had  had  a  full  day  of  fighting.  Perhaps,  even  that 
was  less  exhausting  than  plodding  along  the  miry  roads  :  at 
least,  it  was  less  disheartening. 

Dochtorow  was  the  first  to  move  off,  as  the  storm  of 
combat  lulled.  It  was  not  till  9  p.m.  that  Gallitzin  was 
able  to  move  the  last  of  his  troops  from  the  battlefield. 

*  Rapp,  p.  128 


THE  BATTLES   OF  1'ULTUSK  AND   GOLYMIN.      Ill 

He  first  withdrew  his  guns,  which  inarched  slowest  and 
with  most  difficulty.  Next  followed  his  cavalry.  Behind 
them  was  the  main  body  of  the  infantry.  Last  of  all  came 
the  outposts,  covering  the  rear  of  the  infantry.  When  the 
battle  gradually  died  away,  the  Kussians  in  Golymin  were 
almost  surrounded  ;  the  Makow  road  was  the  only  one  open 
to  them.  It  was  midnight  before  the  head  of  Dochtorow's 
detachment  joined  Tutchkow,  and  the  remainder  of  his  own 
division,  at  Makow,  10  miles  from  Golymin. 

As  regards  the  proportion  between  the  numbers  engaged 
on  either  side,  the  case  of  Pultusk  was  reversed  at  Golymin. 
Gallitzin's  own  force  was  15  battalions  and  20  squadrons,* 
a  regiment  (3  battalions)  of  infantry  from  Dochtorow  and  a 
regiment  of  cavalry.  At  3  p.m.  he  was  joined  by  two 
cavalry  regiments  retiring  from  Ciechanow,  as  well  as  some 

*  Wilson,  p.  82.  That  authority  asserts  that  Gallitzin  was  reinforced  by 
part  of  Dochtorow's  and  Tutchkow's  divisions  towards  evening.  It  does  not 
appear  probable  that  any  of  Tutchkow's  troops  took  part  in  the  battle. 
Dumas  (xvii.  176,  177)  says  Gallitzin  had  parts  of  his  own  and  Sacken's 
divisions  and  the  whole  of  Dochtorow's — in  all,  28  battalion,  45  squadrons. 

On  this  question  the  authority  of  Hoepfner  seems  preferable,  as  to  only  part 
of  Dochtorow's  being  present.  Napoleon  (Corr.  11,305,  dated  24th  November, 
1806),  writing  to  Murat,  recapitulates  the  strength  of  that  portion  of  his  wing 
of  the  army  which  was  afterwards  present  at  Golymin.  Setting  off  losses 
(Davout  and  Augereau  had  both  suffered  considerably  in  the  recent  actions) 
against  recruitments  in  December,  it  is  probable  the  strength  was  slightly 
below  what  is  given  by  the  Emperor,  viz. : — 

I.  Cavalry  Reserve — 

Dragoons — Beaumont  (with  Rapp)* 

Kleins  (with  Murat)    /       4'800 
Milhaud's  light  cavalry      800 

II.  Corps  cavalry — 

Davout's  1,200 

Augereau's       800 


III.  lnfantry- 


7,600 

Davout  ($  only)     *    ...     14,600 
Augereau        16.000 


Total  cavalry  and  infantry    ...    ;  18,91  N ' 


112  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

of  Sacken's  infantry.*  It  would  seem  probable,  therefore, 
that  he  at  no  time  had  available  more  than  16,000  or  18,000 
men. 

The  French  had  Augereau's  two  divisions,  two  of 
Davout's  (one  of  which  was  only  in  reserve),  and  part  of  the 
cavalry  reserve ;  altogether  about  37,000  or  38,000  men. 

The  Kussian  losses  are  put  at  775,f  but  were  probably 
somewhat  higher. 

Davout  states  the  loss  of  the  1st  division  at  222,J  and 
Dumas  says  the  French  total  losses  were  about  the  same  as 
those  of  the  Eussians.§ 

The  action  was  a  much  smaller  affair,  in  every  way,  than 
that  at  Pultusk ;  the  duration  and  vigour  of  the  combat  were 
less.  Gallitzin  was  at  a  great  disadvantage  as  regards 
numbers.  To  make  up  for  this,  he  had  two  batteries  of 
artillery  (28  guns),  while  the  French  had  failed  to  bring  to 
the  front  any  of  theirs.  The  Eussian  position  was  an  ex- 
tremely strong  one  naturally,  especially  when  the  enemy 
were  unable  to  bring  artillery  to  bear  on  the  woods  and  on 
the  Kussian  lines.  Again,  Gallitzin  had  an  advantage  in 
being  attacked  piecemeal  by  the  different  columns  as  they 
arrived  in  succession.  Augereau's  effort  had  practically 
collapsed  before  Davout  arrived  on  the  scene  at  all.  Murat, 
too,  was  unable  to  do  anything  beyond  driving  the  hostile 
cavalry  before  him  back  into  the  woods  occupied  by  infantry. 
The  action  was  a  disjointed  one  on  the  French  side. 
Davout's  words  ||  that  "  an  hour  after  nightfall  the  corps  of 

*  Augereau  had  sent  Durosnel's  light  cavalry  towards  Pomorze  to  cut  off  the  ' 
enemy's  baggage.     Coming  on  Sacken  in  force,  retreating  on  Golymin,  he 
turned  in  that  direction,  pressing  the  retreat.   Reaching  the  field  about  nightfall, 
he  endeavoured  to  effect  a  diversion  by  attacking  the  Russian  right.    (Augereau's 
report,  Arch.  Hist.) 

t  Hap/rier,  iii.  126. 

X  Davout,  140. 

§  Dumas,  xvii.  12G.  It  is  difficult  to  believe  that  the  losses  on  either  side 
were  not  somewhat  higher  than  800.  Plotho  makes  the  Russian  loss  553  killed 
and  wounded,  and  203  prisoners. 

||  Davout,  p.  139. 


THE   BATTLES    OF  PULTUSK  AND    GOLYMIN.       118 

Marshal  Augereau  was  engaged  with  the  enemy,  nearly  a 
league  to  the  left  of  the  3rd  Corps;  the  darkness,  and  the 
uncertainty  as  to  the  point  of  this  attack,  rendered  impossible 
any  concerted  action."  Davout,  advancing  in  front  of 
Garnowo,  was  exhibited  to  the  view  of  the  defending  force 
by  the  light  behind  him  of  the  burning  village,  whilst  his 
opponents  were  hidden  from  him  by  the  darkness  and  the 
woods. 

When  all  is  said,  these  advantages  were  but  a  poor  com- 
pensation to  Gallitzin  for  his  numerical  inferiority ;  it  cannot 
be  denied  that  his  resistance,  with  exhausted  troops,  is  de- 
serving of  the  highest  praise.  So  brave  was  his  defence  that 
Murat  wrote  to  the  Emperor,  "  We  thought  the  enemy  had 
50,000  men."  * 

It  appears  doubtful  if  Augereau's  corps  occupied  Golymin 
before  the  early  morning  of  the  27th,  when  no  un wounded 
Russians  remained  there.t  The  exact  time  of  its  entry  is 
not  of  great  importance,  as  it  is  certain  that  it  was,  in  the 
end,  unopposed. 

Napoleon,  if  we  may  accept  the  testimony  of  Jomini 
speaking  in  his  name,  was  more  disappointed  with  the  inde- 
cisive result  of  the  action  of  Golymin  than  with  that  of  the 
battle  of  Pultusk.j  His  failure  to  get  beyond  Golymin  on 
the  26th,  still  more  Soult's  failure  to  pass  Ciechanow,§ 
destroyed  the  hope  of  cutting  the  Russian  line  of  retreat  with 
his  left,  and  driving  them  against  the  Narew. 

*  Hcepfner,  iii.  126. 

t  Dumas  (xvii.  185),  who  says  it  was  the  27th.  Marbot  (i.  247),  who  was 
with  Augereau,  says  they  got  into  Golymin  on  the  night  of  the  26th,  and  found 
it  littered  with  dead  and  dying.  Augereau's  own  account  (Arch.  Hist.)  is  not 
clear  on  the  subject. 

X  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  342. 

§  His  light  cavalry  reached  Ciechanow  on  the  26th,  just  after  the  enemy 
had  left  it.  That  night  the  1st  and  2nd  divisions  were  in  front  of  Ciechanow . 
the  3rd  at  Paluki,  some  5  miles  further  on  (Soult's  report,  Arch.  Hitt.). 


CHAPTER  IV. 

The  First  Winter  Quarters,  and  Events  Outside 
Poland. 

(a)  winter  quarters. 

ON  the  27th  December  the  French  army  occupied  a  line 
extending  from  Neidenburg,  on  the  left,  down  the 
valley  of  the  Orezyc,  to  Pultusk  on  the  right.  There  was 
already  a  bridge  head  at  Okunin,  on  the  lower  Bug ;  others 
were  at  once  commenced,  on  the  Bug  at  Sierock,  and  on  the 
Narew  at  Pultusk.  The  5th  and  7th  Russian  divisions  reached 
a  point  about  eight  miles  north-west  of  Rozan.  Bennigsen 
was  at  Rozan,  where  he  was  joined  by  the  divisions  of  Anrepp 
and  Essen  from  Popowo. 

On  the  28th,  Napoleon  stopped  the  advance  of  his  troops. 

Bennigsen,  finding  he  was  not  pursued  with  any  energy, 
first  took  position  in  the  angle  between  the  Omulew  and  the 
Narew,  opposite  Ostrolenka.  Buxhowden's  army  was  on  his 
right,  between  Ostrolenka  and  Myszienec* 

Marshal  Kamenskoi  reappeared  for  a  few  hours  at  Ostro- 
lenka, but,  as  it  was  ascertained  that  the  orders  he  gave  did 
not  emanate  from  the  Czar,  it  was  decided  to  disregard  them. 
He  again  returned  to  Grodno,  finally  disappearing  from  the 
scene. 

•  Jomini  (Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  343)  says  the  retreat  on  Ostrolenka  was 
disapproved  by  Bennigsen,  who,  losing  sight  of  the  ensemble  of  the  campaign, 
fancied  that,  in  checking  Lannes  at  Pultusk,  he  had  gained  a  great  victory 
over  Napoleon. 


THE  FIRST   W18TBB    QUARTERS.  115 

Of  the  two  Russian  generals,  Buxhowden  was  the  senior. 
Bennigsen,  however,  was  not  inclined  to  serve  under  him, 
and  looked  for  the  chief  command,  which  he  considered  his 
stand  at  Pultusk  would  ensure  to  him.  Consequently,  he, 
with  his  own  army  and  the  8th  and  14th  divisions  of  Bux- 
howden's,  which  had  been  prevented  from  crossing  by  the 
destruction  of  the  Ostrolenka  bridge,  marched  up  the  left 
bank  of  the  Narew  to  Nowogrod,  reaching  it  without  inishap 
on  the  1st  January.  Buxhowden  was  9  miles  to  the 
north-east  of  Nowogrod,  at  Plock.  The  two  portions  of  the 
army  were  connected  by  a  temporary  bridge,  the  frequent 
destruction  of  which,  by  floating  ice,  furnished  Bennigsen 
with  a  convenient  excuse  for  not  joining  Buxhowden,  and 
for  thus  maintaining  a  semi-independent  command.  He  could 
not,  however,  disobey  his  senior's  summons  to  a  council  at 
which  the  future  plan  of  operations  Was  discussed.  What 
it  was,  and  how  it  was  carried  out,  may  be  left  for  description 
until  the  French  settlement  in  winter  quarters  has  been 
detailed. 

Napoleon,  now  out  of  touch  with  the  Russians,  flattered 
himself  that  he  would  be  allowed,  without  further  molesta- 
tion, to  take  up  his  quarters,  for  the  rest  of  the  cold  season, 
in  the  broad  stretch  of  country  between  the  Vistula  and  the 
Omulew.*  His  army  was  discontented  at  the  hardships  it 
had  to  undergo  in  terrible  weather,  and  he  himself  required 
time  to  complete  the  organisation  of  his  magazines,  hospitals, 
and  transport.! 

From  Pultusk,  and  from  "Warsaw,  he  issued  numerous 
orders,  detailing  the  position  of  each  corps  in  the  cantonments 

*  "  I  think  all  is  finished  for  this  year.  The  army  is  about  to  take  up  its 
winter  quarters  "  (Corr.  11523,  to  Josephine).  The  Emperor  returned  to  Warsaw 
on  the  2nd  January  (Corr.  11,549,  48th  bulletin). 

t  There  was  great  disorder,  at  this  time,  in  the  commissariat  at  Warsaw, 
which  the  Emperor  had  to  remedy.  His  orders,  placing  under  each  marshal  the 
control  of  supplies  in  his  own  district,  did  »ot,  at  first,  work  satisfactorily.  The 
marshals,  considering  themselves  supreme,  hampered  and  interfered  with  the 
collection  of  supplies  by  the  civil  commissaries.  Napoleon  had  to  issue  severe 
orders  to  check  this  (Savary,  iii.  27). 


116  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

which  he  proposed  to  occupy.*  They  were  finally  summarised 
in  a  note  by  Berthier,  dated  7th  January,  on  the  general  dis- 
position of  cantonments,  of  which  the  following  is  an  abstract. 

I. — Cavalry  without  Infantry. 

Latour-Maubourg,  with  the  5th  and  7th  Hussars,  in  the 
country  between  Plock  and  Wyszogrod ;  cantonments  not  to 
extend  far,  and  this  brigade  to  refit  and  rest. 

Milhaud,  with  the  two  regiments  of  his  brigade  which 
had  suffered  most,  to  rest  on  the  right  bank  of  the  Vistula 
between  Plock,  Dobrzyn,  and  Borkowo. 

Klein — Dobrzyn  to  Bobrownik,  guarding  the  small  stream 
running  from  Gollub  to  the  Vistula. 

Xansouty,  with  his  heavy  cavalry  division,  on  the  Pilica 
about  Bawa,  on  the  road  from  Warsaw  to  Breslau. 

D'Hautpoult's  cuirassiers,  with  their  artillery,  about 
Thorn — the  regiments  in  Gollub,  Bypin,  and  Sierps. 

Espagne's  cuirassiers  to  move  forward  from  Posen  to 
Petrikau,  behind  Xansouty. 

Guard  cavalry,  excepting  four  squadrons  at  Warsaw,  with 
artillery,  ambulances,  etc.,  between  Warsaw  and  Biela,  along 
the  left  bank  of  the  Vistula  and  the  Pilica. 

All  the  small  depots  of  cavalry,  with  the  artillery  park 
of  the  army,  to  collect  at  Lenczyca. 

Each  command  to  concentrate  at  its  headquarters,  and 
await  orders,  should  the  enemy  take  the  offensive. 

II. — Infantry  Corps  with  Cavalry  attached. 

Bernadotte  with  Sahuc's  dragoons;  headquarters  at 
Osterode,  occupying  the  districts  of  Elbing  and  Marienwerder.t 

*  These  orders  will  be  found  printed  in  full  in  Dumas,  xviii.,  pp.  288-309. 
It  is  Dot  rerj  clear  in  Dumas,  whether  the  note  was  by  Berthier,  but  the 
flfigfn*]  in  Paris  dispels  any  doubt  (Arch.  Hist.). 

t  The  Polish  corps,  then  numbering  7000  under  Dombrowski,  was  made  over 
to  Bernadotte  for  the  blockade  of  Graudenz  (Corr.  11,535  and  11,536,  dated  2nd 
January).  That  fortress  was  effectually  blockaded  on  the  18th  January,  after  a 
small  fight,  in  which  the  garrison  was  driven  in.  (Bernadotte's  report  on  1st 
Corps,  Arek.  HitL\ 


TEE  Flit  ST   WINTER    QUARTERS.  117 

Ney,  having  his  supplies,  depots,  park,  and  workshops  at 
Thorn,  to  occupy  Soldau,  Mlawa,  Chorzel  and  their  neigh- 
bourhood, with  outposts  at  Willemburg.  His  corps  would 
link  that  of  Bernadotte  to  Soult,  with  whom  he  would  settle 
the  limits  of  cantonments. 

Soult,  using  Plock  in  the  same  way  as  Ney  used  Thorn, 
to  occupy  Prasznitz,  Makow,  Sochoczin,  Noviemasto,  and  the 
Plock  district,  having  in  front  of  him,  beyond  the  Orezyc, 
Lasalle's  light  cavalry  and  Mil  baud's  brigade,  with  the  excep- 
tion of  the  two  regiments  ordered  to  rest  on  the  Vistula. 

Augereau,  using  Wyszogrod  as  his  base,  to  occupy  the 
surrounding  district  up  to  the  right  bank  of  the  Ukra,  not 
carrying  his  left  beyond  the  stream  passing  Bodzanow.  Should 
he  find  himself  cramped  here,  he  was  at  liberty  to  extend  to 
the  rear,  on  the  Bszura,  west  of  the  Vistula,  as  far  as  Lowicz. 

Davout's  limits  were,  in  rear,  the  left  bank  of  the  Ukra, 

from  its  mouth  to  the  little  river  Ziclini.     Thence  to  near 

Golymin,  and  on  to  near  Pultusk.     He  was  also  to  occupy 

whole  country  between  the  Narew  and  the  Bug,  up  to 

( >-trolenka. 

Lannes  to  hold  Sierock  and  the  neighbourhood.  His 
light  cavalry  in  the  villages  on  the  right  bank  of  the  Bug 
from  Sierock  to  Brok.  Gazan's  division,  of  the  same  corps, 
was  to  hold  the  triangle  between  the  Bug,  the  Vistula,  and 
the  Austrian  frontier.  Suchet's  division  in  Praga  and  the 
suburbs  of  "Warsaw.  There  also  was  Gudin's  division  of 
Davout's  Corps  and  the  infantry  of  the  Guard. 

Orders  issued  for  the  collection  of  supplies,  and  the 
establishment  of  hospitals  at  the  bases  fixed  for  the  various 
commands,  at  Marienwerder  for  Bernadotte,  at  Thorn  for 
Ney,  at  Plock  for  Soult,  at  Wyszogrod  and  Lowicz  for 
Augereau,  at  Pultusk  for  Davout,  and  at  Warsaw  for  Lannes. 

It  will  be  noted  that,  with  the  exception  of  Pultusk,  all 
these  centres  were  on  or  behind  the  Vistula.  The  Emperor's 
desires  were  clearly  stated  to  be,  "  not  to  have  any  encum- 
brance on  the  right  bank  of  the  Vistula,  so  that  there  might  be 


118  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

no  obstacle  to  the  evacuation  of  that  country  should   His 
Majesty  see  fit  to  order  it."  * 

At  the  places  named,  was  ordered  the  collection  of  every 
sort  of  supplies,  and  the  preparation  of  workshops  for  the 
repair  of  harness,  clothes,  and  artillery.  Baking  was  to  be 
carried  on  to  a  much  greater  extent  than  was  required  for 
the  daily  consumption  of  the  army,  a  large  supply  of  biscuit 
being  thus  accumulated. 

In  case  the  enemy  should  take  the  offensive,  the  points  of 
concentration  for  the  corps  were — Ney  at  Mlawa,  Soult  at 
Golymin,  Davout  at  Pultusk,  Lannes  at  Sierock,  Augereau  at 
Plonsk. 

It  will  be  observed  that  nothing  is  said  of  a  point  of 
concentration  for  Bernadotte,  which  would  seem  to  point  to 
Napoleon's  not  believing  he  could  be  attacked  without 
warning  from  the  corps  on  his  right.  Any  marshal  attacked 
in  force  was  at  once  to  concentrate,  and  warn  the  others. 

With  his  troops  thus  quartered,  Napoleon's  right  and 
centre  were  covering  an  area  of  country  which  it  was  well 
within  their  power  to  defend  against  any  force  they  were 
likely  to  encounter.  The  corps,  from  Ney  on  the  left  to 
Lannes  on  the  right,  covered  roughly  the  segment  of  a  circle, 
the  centre  of  which  was  at  Wyszogrod,  and  the  arc  extended 
from  Neidenburg  and  Willemburg,  down  the  right  bank  of  the 
Omulew  and  across  the  country  from  near  Ostrolenka,  to 
Brok,  on  the  Austrian  frontier.  Bernadotte's  Corps  alone  was 
unduly  extended  towards  Elbing  and  the  Frisches-Haff.  The 
whole  of  the  arc  was  covered  by  light  cavalry,  and  any  one 
of  the  corps  behind  it  could  be  promptly  reinforced  from 
flank  and  rear.  Napoleon  seems  to  have  thought  it  extremely 
improbable  that  the  enemy  would  assume  the  offensive,  still 
more  improbable  that,  if  he  did  so,  he  would  attack  Bernadotte. 

*  Ney,  Bernadotte,  and  Soult,  alone,  owing  to  their  distance  from  the  river, 
were  allowed  to  have  small  intermediate  hospitals  and  depots  of  supplies.  The 
words  quoted  in  the  text  are  a  good  instance  of  the  caution  displayed  by 
Napoleon,  and  his  prevision  of  all  possible  eventualities. 


THE  FIRST   WINTER    QUARTERS.  119 

He  would  appear  to  have  under-estimated  the  Russian 
generals'  enterprise  of  design. 

He  urged  on  the  fortification  of  important  points  of 
support  to  his  line.  At  Sierock  a  double  tete  de  pont,  on 
the  Bug  and  the  Narew,  was  to  be  constructed ;  another 
on  the  Narew,  at  Pultusk ;  a  third  at  Modlin.  The  passage 
of  the  Vistula  at  Warsaw  was  to  be  covered  by  a  strongly 
fortified  camp  at  Praga,  supported  by  works  on  the  left  bank. 
Finally,  Thorn  was  to  be  fortified  as  a  bridge  head.*  Even 
should  he  be  forced  to  abandon  temporarily  the  right  bank 
of  the  Vistula,  Napoleon  looked  to  being  able  to  hold  the 
left,  as  well  as  bridge  heads  on  the  right  bank  at  all  important 
points  from  Warsaw  to  Thorn.  Thus,  when  he  recommenced 
operations  in  the  spring,  he  would  not  have  to  force  the 
passage  of  a  great  river. 

The  object  of  Bernadotte's  extension  towards  the  Baltic 
was  to  cover  the  siege  of  Danzig,  which  place,  as  a  standing 
menace,  whilst  in  the  enemy's  hands,  to  his  communications, 
the  Emperor  desired  to  capture  before  the  time  came  for  a 
fresh  advance. 

For  this  siege,  and  for  the  blockade  of  Colberg  and 
Graudenz,  the  10th  Corps  was  now  constituted,  and  placed 
under  the  orders  of  Lefebvre.f 

*  Gorr.  11,585. 

f  The  command  was  first  given  to  Victor,  but  he  was  captured  by  a 
Prussian  party  from  Colberg.  Though  he  was,  shortly  afterwards,  exchanged 
against  Blucher,  this  misfortune  cost  him  his  chance  of  the  Dukedom  of  Danzig, 
and,  for  a  time,  his  marshal's  baton.  A  letter  (Arch.  Ilist.,  daily  correspondence), 
from  him  to  the  Emperor,  describes  his  capture,  as  he  was  changing  horses,  by 
disguised  Prussian  soldiers,  and  peasants.  He  is  very  indignant  at  what  he 
considers  this  unfair  capture,  and  begs  the  Emperor  to  remonstrate  with  the 
King  of  Prussia.  Napoleon  hardly  appears  to  have  taken  the  same  view,  as  he 
made  no  difficulty  about  exchanging  Victor  for  Blucher.  The  constitution  of 
the  10th  Corps  at  this  time  was — 

(1)  Dombrowski's  Polish  division,  about  7000. 

(2)  A  brigade  of  French  infantry,  about  4000. 

(3)  Two  regiments  French  chasseurs. 

(4)  Baden  troops  (for  blockade  of  Colberg),  about  6000. 

(5)  Legion  of  the  North,  about  4000. 

(6)  A  French  cavalry  brigade. 

About  25,000  in  all.    To  these  would  be  added  the  Hessian  troops  so  soon  as 


120  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Napoleon  himself  took  up  his  quarters  at  Warsaw  on  the 
2nd  January,  1807. 

Great  as  were  the  attractions  of  the  Polish  capital  and  its 
delightful  society,*  it  is  certain  that  Napoleon,  had  he  been 
left  undisturbed  there,  would  have  taken  good  care  that  it 
should  not  have  become  a  Capua,  either  for  himself  or  his 
army.  There  was  no  rest  for  him.  He  was  employed  night 
and  day  in  making  innumerable  arrangements,  and  conducting 
business  of  every  sort,  from  the  provision  of  supplies  for  his 
army  to  the  supervision  of  affairs  at  home  and  abroad. 

Here  he  may  be  left  for  the  short  period  of  cessation  of 
serious  hostilities,  whilst  the  course  of  events  elsewhere  than 
at  the  principal  seat  of  war  is  briefly  sketched. 


(b)  SILESIA. 

Though  Napoleon's  chief  efforts  against  Eussia  were  made 
on  the  Vistula,  it  must  not  be  forgotten  that  he  was,  at  the 
same  time,  carrying  on  operations,  military  or  diplomatic, 
in  furtherance  of  his  projects  over  the  whole  of  Europe,  from 
France  to  Turkey,  from  Swedish  Pomerania  to  Southern  Italy, 
and  even  in  Persia.  It  is  with  the  operations  on  the  Vistula 
alone  that  this  history  can  deal  in  detail,  but  a  brief  outline 
of  events  elsewhere  is  essential. 

Silesia,  when  the  advance  to  the  Vistula  commenced,  was 
still  unsubdued.  Though  not  held  by  any  important  Prussian 
force  in  the  open  field,  its  fortresses  t  were  strongly  garrisoned, 
and  would  afford  rallying-places  for  Prussian  levies,  to  say 

Zayonchek  with  his  Poles  could  relieve  them  of  the  duty  of  blockading  Graudenz 
(Corr.  11,680). 

*  It  was  at  this  time  that  Napoleon  first  made  the  acquaintance  of  the 
beautiful  Countess  Walewska.  Of  her  devotion  to  him,  which  continued  even 
to  the  days  of  St.  Helena,  there  can  be  no  shadow  of  doubt.  Of  the  reality  of 
his  love  for  her  there  is,  perhaps,  not  quite  the  same  certainty.  In  any  case,  it 
is  clear  that  he  did  not  allow  it  to  interfere  with  his  energetic  attention  to  his 
army  and  his  schemes. 

t  They  were  Glogau,  Breslau,  Schweidnitz,  Glatz,  Neisse,  Brieg,  and 
KomL 


EVENTS   OUTSIDE  POLAND.  121 

nothing  of  being  a  strong  support  for  Austria,  should  she 
make  up  her  mind  to  intervene.  Obviously,  these  places 
could  not  be  left  on  the  right  rear  of  the  French  army. 

The  first  siege  undertaken  was  that  of  Glogau,  which 
surrendered,  after  some  bombardment,  on  the  2nd  December, 
to  Vandamme  and  the  Wurtemberg  troops.  The  two 
Bavarian  divisions  had,  at  this  time,  moved  with  Jerome  to 
Kalisch.  Until  Napoleon  was  in!  possession  of  Warsaw,  he 
required  these  divisions  to  protect  his  right  flank  as  it  moved 
eastwards.  At  Warsaw,  he  was  able  to  rest  it  on  the 
Austrian  frontier  in  safety,  so  long  as  that  power  remained 
neutral.  Jerome  was,  therefore,  at  liberty,  in  the  beginning 
of  December,  to  return  to  the  assistance  of  Vandamme  and 
the  Wurtemberg  division,  who  had  at  once,  on  the  surrender 
of  Glogau,  proceeded  to  partially  invest  Breslau.  On  the 
10th,  Jerome  reached  Breslau.  On  the  15th,  the  bombard- 
ment was  continued,  the  governor  having  refused  to  sur- 
render. Deroi's  division  and  Mazanelli's  cavalry  brigade, 
which  had  been  left  at  Kalisch,  were  now  summoned,  as  it 
appeared  that  the  Prince  of  Anhalt  Pless  had  raised  the 
peasantry  in  support  of  detachments  from  the  other  garrisons. 
Vandamme,  left  alone  owing  to  the  departure  of  Jerome  in 
response  to  the  Emperor's  summons,  attempted  an  assault  of 
Breslau  on  the  night  of  the  22nd-23rd,  but  it  was  delayed  by 
various  accidents,  and  was  beaten  off.  The  Prince  of  Anhalt 
was  approaching.  On  the  24th,  his  badly  organised  levies 
were  routed  by  Minucci's  division,  and  their  6  guns  captured. 

The  batteries  in  front  of  Breslau  had  now  been  strength- 
ened by  some  of  the  artillery  taken  at  Glogau,  the  ditches 
were  frozen  over,  and  the  governor  negotiated  for  a  surrender. 
The  negotiations  were  broken  off  on  his  hearing  that  the  Prince 
of  Anhalt  was  again  advancing  to  his  relief  with  rallied  and 
increased  forces.  The  Prince,  evading  the  troops  sent  to 
meet  him,  arrived  near  Breslau,  whence  he  was  repulsed,  and 
in  his  retreat  was  badly  cut  up  by  the  detachments  which 
he  had  escaped  in  his  advance. 


122  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

The  governor  of  Breslau,  now  losing  all  hope  of  succour 
from  without,  and  fearing  that  the  thick  ice  on  the  ditches 
would  expose  the  place  to  an  assault,  surrendered  on  the 
7th  January.  The  corps  of  Jerome  now  had  at  its  disposal 
the  captured  artillery  for  the  sieges  of  the  remaining  fort- 
resses. Napoleon,  considering  the  subjugation  of  Silesia 
practically  complete,  appointed  his  brother  Jerome  governor 
of  the  province,  and  left  Vandamme  to  carry  out  the  sieges.* 


(c)   rOMERANIA. 

Protection  for  his  left  flank  was  equally  essential  to  the 
Emperor.  To  Mortier,  with  the  8th  Corps,  f  was  confided  the 
task  of  occupying  and  defending  the  conquered  country 
between  the  mouths  of  the  Elbe  and  the  Oder,  including  the 
territory  to  the  east  of  Stettin  as  far  as  Colberg.  He  had  to 
watch  Swedish  Pomerania,  and  to  threaten  Stralsund  and  the 
Island  of  Rugen,  which  might  be  used  as  bases  for  a  descent 
by  the  English  and  Swedes. 

On  the  12th  December,  he  occupied  a  central  position  on 
the  right  bank  of  the  Peene,  his  right  at  Uckermunde,  left  at 
Demmin,  and  headquarters  at  Anklam.  The  Swedish  troops 
on  the  opposite  bank  fell  back  on  Stralsund.  Between 
the  16th  December  and  the  4th  January,  Mortier  was 
reinforced  by  four  infantry  regiments.t  To  put  a  check 
on  the  frequent  expeditions  from  Colberg,  he  occupied 
Usedom,  Schweinmunde,  and  Wollin,  at  the  mouths  of  the 
Peene  and  the  Oder.  On  the  6th  January,  a  detachment, 
attacked  by  Prussians  from  Colberg,  at  Wollin,  successfully 
drove  them  off.  Mortier,  refusing  to  be  drawn  into  petty 
fights,  occupied  a  line  behind  the  Peene,  from  Uckermunde  to 

*  About  this  time  Napoleon  estimates  his  army  in  Silesia  at  over  30,000 
men  (Corr.  11,575). 

t  It  comprised  Granjean's  and  Dupas'  divisions ;  3  cavalry  regiments,  2 
companies  foot  artillery,  and  2  of  Dutch  light  artillery. 

X  22nd  and  58th  of  the  line,  and  12th  and  15th  light  infantry. 


EVENTS   OUTSIDE  POLAND.  123 

Treptow.     Nothing  more   occurred  here  before  the  end  of 
January. 

(d)  TURKEY  AND  PERSIA. 

At  the  Ottoman  Court,  Napoleon  was  most  ably  repre- 
sented by  his  Corsican  compatriot,  General  Sebastiani.  The 
Ambassador's  clever  combinations  of  threats  and  promises 
were  aided  by  the  injudicious  invasion,  towards  the  end  of 
November,  of  Moldavia  and  Wallachia  by  Michelson  with 
50,000  or  60,000  men.*  The  demands  of  England  and  her 
threats  of  bombarding  Constantinople  were  also  of  assistance 
to  him. 

The  action  of  Eussia,  in  thus  imposing  upon  herself  the 
task  of  observing  Turkey  with  a  considerable  force,  at  a  time 
when  she  wanted  every  available  man  to  oppose  the  French 
in  Poland,  was  most  unwise.  Sebastiani  was  able,  by  the  end 
of  December,  1806,  to  persuade  the  Sultan  to  declare  war 
against  his  Northern  neighbour.  The  Czar,  compelled  by  the 
pressure  in  Poland  to  withdraw  two  out  of  the  five  divisions 
with  Michelson  in  Moldavia  and  Wallachia,  sought  to  pro- 
cure a  diversion  by  England  towards  Constantinople.  On 
the  29th  January,  the  Sultan,  egged  on  by  Sebastiani,  declared 
war  against  England  also.f 

In  February  a  British  fleet  passed  the  Dardanelles,  and 
appeared  before  Constantinople.     All  was  at  once  confusion 

*  Michelson  at  first  had  90  battalions,  100  squadrons,  and  306  guns.  Of 
these,  36  battalions  and  40  squadrons  were  withdrawn  to  Poland  in  December, 
1806  (Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.,  344  (note)  and  346).  According  to  the 
same  author  (ii.  336)  Michelson  at  first  had  80.000  men.  This  seems  too  high 
an  estimate.  Plotho  (p.  69-70)  calculates  the  Russian  forces  as  500  per 
battalion,  80  per  squadron,  and  200  per  battery  of  14  guns.  These  figures 
would  give  Michelson's  original  army  as  58,200,  and  the  numbers  remaining 
later  as  about  35,000.  Napoleon  himself,  in  the  end  of  January,  estimated 
them  at  30,000  (see  ante,  p.  12,  note  f). 

t  Napoleon,  in  seeking  the  co-operation  of  Turkey,  appears  to  have  had  au 
eye  to  using  her  against  Austria  also.  "  Austria  is  muzzled  ;  if  she  moves,  not- 
withstanding my  army  of  Italy,  I  will  bring  the  Turks  to  the  gates  of  Vienna, 
and  my  Poniatowski  will  not  be  for  them  a  Sobieski "  (Cvmeau,  p.  285). 


124  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

there.  Sebastiani,  in  imminent  danger  of  his  life,  kept  his 
head,  urged  on  the  defence  of  the  capital,  and  amused  the 
British  Admiral,  Duckworth,  with  negotiations,  until  the 
latter  found  the  defences  so  strong  that  there  was  no  course 
left  but  a  retreat  again  through  the  Dardanelles — no  easy 
matter,  under  the  heavy  fire  of  the  now  completed  batteries 
on  either  shore. 

On  the  Danube,  nothing  of  importance  occurred  during 
the  campaign  in  Poland;  but  Napoleon,  by  assisting  the 
Turks  with  the  loan  of  French  officers,  and  by  threats  of  the 
advance  of  Marmont's  corps  *  from  Dalmatia,  succeeded  in 
keeping  paralysed  a  considerable  force  under  Michelson, 
which  could  have  been  employed  to  much  greater  advantage 
in  Poland. 

With  Persia,  too,  he  carried  on  negotiations  in  the  spring, 
which  sufficed  to  alarm  Kussia  in  the  East,  and  detain  there 
troops  which  might  otherwise  have  given  assistance  in  the 
main  theatre  of  war.  With  the  affairs  of  Turkey  and  Persia 
it  will  not  be  necessary,  now  that  their  general  bearing  on 
the  war  has  been  indicated,  to  deal  further. 

*  The  2nd. 


PART   III. 

THE  CAMPAIGN  OF  EYLAU. 


CHAPTER   I. 

The  Movements  up  to  the  Battle  of  Eylau. 

AT  the  council  of  war,  held  by  Buxhowden,  at  Nowogrod, 
on  the  2nd  January,  a  plan  of  operations  had  been 
decided  on. 

The  14th  division,  with  the  two  divisions  under  Essen  I., 
now  approaching  from  Moldavia,  were  to  be  left  between  the 
Bug  and  the  Narew  to  watch  and  occupy  the  French  right 
wing.  The  remaining  7  divisions  would  assemble  by  the 
5th  January,  between  Biala  and  the  right  bank  of  the  Narew, 
for  an  advance,  behind  the  Johannisberg  forest,  into  East 
Prussia  against  the  French  left  wing. 

But  it  did  not  at  all  suit  Bennigsen's  views  to  undertake 
these  operations  under  the  chief  command  of  his  senior,  and 
rival,  Buxhowden.  Seizing,  therefore,  on  the  breaking,  by 
floating  ice,  of  the  bridge  at  Nowogrod  as  a  cover  for  his 
action,  he  inarched,  on  the  6th,  up  the  left  bank  of  the 
Narew,  by  Lomza,  to  Tykoczin,  with  the  2nd,  3rd,  4th,  6th, 
8th,  and  14th  divisions,  arriving  there  on  the  8th.  Thence, 
crossing  the  Narew,  he  marched  for  Goniondz,  where  he 
received  the  Czar's  orders  conferring  on  him  the  Order  of 
St.  George,  in  recognition  of  his  action  at  Pultusk,  and,  what 
he  prized  still  more,  the  chief  command  of  the  army,  from 
which  Buxhowden  was  recalled.  On  the  12th  January,  he 
crossed  the  Bobra,  now  covered  with. thick  ice  by  the  frost, 
which  had  commenced   on   the  31st  December.*     On  the 

•  This  date  is  taken  from  Larrey,  iii.  22. 


128  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

14th,  he  was  at  Biala,  where  Buxhowden  surrendered  the 
command  to  him  and  left  the  army. 

At  Goniondz  was  left  Sedmaratzki's  division  (6th),*  to 
cover  the  movement  of  the  main  army,  and  to  keep  up  its 
communications  with  Essen  I.  and  the  two  Moldavian 
divisions. 

Lestocq,  meanwhile,  had  fallen  back,  after  the  action  of 
Soldau,  towards  Gilgenburg,  on  the  night  of  the  26th 
December.  On  the  march  he  changed  direction  towards 
Neidenburg,  with  the  result  that  there  was  considerable 
confusion,  and  it  was  not  for  several  days  that  the  Prussians 
were  collected  at  the  latter  place.  On  the  7th  January, 
Lestocq,  after  retreating  from  Neidenburg  to  Oertelsburg 
and  Sensburg,  reached  Eastenburg.f  On  the  10th,  he 
marched  to  Angerburg,  north  of  the  Lotzen  lake.  On  the 
11th  he  moved  westward  again  to  Drengfurth,  failing  in  an 
attempt  to  recapture  Schippenbeil  from  Ney,  who  had  taken 
it  the  previous  day.  On  the  16th,  he  was  at  Barthen.t  On 
that  date,  Bennigsen  had  reached  Arys,  between  the  lakes 
of  Spirding  and  Lotzen.  He  had  marched  from  Biala,  on 
the  15th,  in  four  columns,  the  movement  of  which  was  com- 
pletely concealed  from  Soult's  cavalry,  on  the  Omulew,  by 
the  intervening  forest  of  Johannisburg. 

Napoleon's  marshals  had  faithfully  carried  out  his  wishes, 
with  the  sole  exception  of  Ney.  The  keynote  to  the 
Emperor's  dispositions  was  the  avoidance  of  all  forward 
movements  calculated  to  rouse  the  enemy  to  activity. 
He  desired  to  leave  the  Eussian  bear  to  hibernate  quietly, 
if  he  would  do  so,  whilst  he  himself  was  busy  making 
every  preparation  to  awake  him  in  the  spring.  Hibernation 
was,  as  has  been  seen,  not  the  Eussian  scheme,  but  Ney  did 

*  Instead  of  the  14th,  which  had  originally  been  ordered  to  stay  behind,  and 
was  now  carried  forward. 

t  For  this  account  of  Lestocq's  movements,  see  Prussian  official  account  in 
Wilton,  pp.  253-254. 

X  Not  Bartenstein. 


MOVEMENTS   UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  E7LAU.      129 

not  know  that.  He  had  received  a  general  indication  of  the 
Emperor's  plans  on  the  4th  January,  but  his  cantonments 
were  not,  in  that  order,  precisely  specified.* 

The  orders  of  the  4th  January  were  surely  clear  enough 
in  their  spirit  to  indicate  to  Ney  the  undesirability  of  an 
offensive  advance ;  yet,  early  in  January,  he  began  to 
move  towards  Koenigsberg.  His  motives,  according  to  De 
Fezensac,t  were  the  search  for  a  country  better  supplied 
with  provisions,  and  an  advance  against  Koenigsberg  itself. 
On  the  2nd  January,  his  light  cavalry  was  marching  on 
Guttstadt  by  Passenheim  and  Oertelsburg.  On  the  8th- 
11th,  his  headquarters  were  at  Wartenburg ;  from  the 
12th  to  the  20th,  they  were  at  Allenstein,  and  he  had  his 
troops  dispersed  all  over  the  country  at  Bischofsburg, 
Bischofstein,  Seeburg,  Wartenburg,  Guttstadt,  Queetz, 
Gottkendorf,  Neidenburg,  Bartenstein,  Oertelsburg,  Mens- 
guth.  He  had  even,  as  far  forward  as  Schippenbeil,  a 
battalion  of  grenadiers  supporting  his  light  cavalry  still 
farther  out.  % 

On  the  9th,  he  proposed  a  strong  reconnaissance  to  see 
if  the  enemy  were  still  in  Koenigsberg,  but  abandoned  the 
idea  in  consequence  of  fresh  news.  On  the  10th  he  took 
and  occupied  Schippenbeil,  which  Lestocq  failed  to  re- 
capture on  the  11th.  On  the  14th,  he  estimated  that  he 
had  in  front  of  him  Lestocq  with  9000  men,  and  Kuchel, 
garrisoning  Koenigsberg,  with  4000.  At  the  same  time,  he 
wrote  that  he  had  no  positive  news  of  Bernadotte  and 
Soult,  though  he  had  incidentally  heard  of  Sahuc's  and 
d'Hautpoult's  cavalry  divisions  passing  Neidenburg.  He 
adds   that  he   is   occupying  a  well-supplied   country,  and 

*  On  the  4th  January,  Berthier  had  written  to  Ney  :  "  The  Emperor,  not 
icishing  to  make  any  offensive  movements  with  his  armies  during  the  winter, 
desires  you  to  take  such  cantonments  as  will  protect  Marshal  Soult's  left  and 
Marshal  Bernadotte's  right."  The  distinct  specification  of  Soldau,  etc.,  was  on 
the  7th. 

t  Souvenirs  Militaires,  p.  134. 

X  *  Journaux  de  Marche,"  6th  Corps,  Arch.  Hist. 

K 


130  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

his  men  are  living  in  abundance.*  On  the  15th,  Berna- 
dotte  wrote  warning  Ney  that  he  was  exceeding  his  orders 
in  advancing. f  On  the  16th  January,  Ney  writes  to 
Berthier  J  that  he  is  negotiating  with  Lestocq  and  Kuchel 
for  a  delimitation  of  the  hostile  fronts,  and  an  armistice 
requiring  four  days'  notice  for  termination. 

It  is  hardly  surprising  that  the  Emperor,  when  he  at  last 
heard  of  Ney's  proceedings,  was  furious.  He  believed  that 
Ney  had  long  ago  received  the  definite  orders  prescribing  his 
cantonments.  It  was  only  on  the  18th  that  the  Emperor 
received  information,  and  his  despatches,  for  days  after,  show 
traces  of  his  anger.  §     He  was  still  ignorant,  on  the  26th,  of 

*  Ney  to  Berthier,  14th  January,  Arch.  Hist. 

f  Copy  enclosed  in  a  despatch  from  Bernadotte  to  Berthier,  on  15th  January, 
Arch.  Hist. 

%  Arch.  Hist.,  daily  correspondence,  16th  January. 

§  On  the  18th,  Berthier  writes  to  Ney  :  "  I  have  submitted  to  the  Emperor 
your  letter,  and  one  from  Marshal  Bernadotte  informing  him  of  the  movements 
you  have  made  without  his  orders.  He  desires  me  to  convey  to  you  his  dis- 
pleasure. .  .  .  His  intentions  are  not  to  go  to  Koenigsberg  ;  had  he  so  proposed  he 
would  have  issued  orders.  The  Emperor,  in  his  general  projects,  requires 
neither  advice  nor  plans  of  campaign ;  no  one  else  knows  his  designs,  and  it  is 
our  duty  to  obey.  His  Majesty  is  all  the  more  surprised  at  the  movements  you 
have  made,  inasmuch  as  he  had  already  explained  to  you  the  circumstances 
under  which  you  were  not  to  act  without  orders.  .  .  .  The  Emperor  knew  the 
Prussians  were  retreating  ;  that  was  no  reason  for  you  to  spread  your  corps  over 
20  leagues.  He  orders  you  to  take  up  the  prescribed  cantonments :  do  so 
gradually,  for  this  is  the  first  retrograde  step  the  Emperor  makes.  The 
adjutant-commandant  Jomini  will  explain  to  you  how  much  the  Emperor  is 
annoyed  at  the  movements  you  have  made  without  orders." 

Again  he  wrote,  next  day :  "  The  Emperor  has  been  extremely  astonished  to 
see  by  a  despatch  received  from  Marshal  Soult,  as  well  as  from  your  own,  that, 
not  only  have  you  disobeyed  his  Majesty's  orders  relative  to  your  winter  quarters, 
but  that  you  have  even  counselled  Marshal  Soult  to  do  the  same.  I  reiterate  the 
order  to  return  to  the  positions  indicated  to  you  for  winter  quarters ;  the 
Emperor  is  unchangeable  in  his  plans,  and,  but  for  political  considerations, 
would  have  made  mention  in  the  orders  of  the  day  of  the  non-execution  of  his 
orders  by  your  corps." 

On  the  19th,  Berthier,  writing  to  Soult,  says :  "  His  Majesty  hopes  that 
this  is  the  last  occasion  on  which  Marshal  Ney,  by  his  flighty  dispositions,  will 
expose  himself  to  the  danger  of  compromising  the  fate  of  the  army  by  such 
grave  faults." 

De  Fezensac  (p.  136)  had  been  sent  to  carry  a  despatch  from  Ney,  and  he 
returned  with  Jomini  and  the  reply.    From  Jomini  he  heard  that  the  Emperor 


MOVEMENTS   UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.      LSI 

Bennigsen'fl  march,  with  the  bulk  of  his  army,  against  the 
French  left,  though  he  saw  that  something  was  going  on  in 
that  direction.*  Despatches  travelled  slowly  in  the  difficult 
country,  and  the  wintry  weather  which  now  prevailed.  A 
severe  frost  had  set  in  about  the  17th,  after  some  broken 
weather.f  The  Emperor's  information  was,  therefore,  several 
days  behind  time.  Nevertheless,  he  had,  from  the  23rd,  had 
suspicions,  and  he,  at  least,  expected  heavy  reprisals  for  the 
irritation  of  Ney's  ,march  on  Koenigsberg.  From  the  25th, 
commences  a  series  of  orders  calculated  to  meet  any  even- 
tualities on  the  left.  Only  two  days  earlier,  Lefebvre  had 
been  ordered  to  proceed  with  the  new  10th  Corps  towards 
Danzig.  He  was  now  directed  to  hold  fast  at  Thorn.  % 
Espagne  was  to  march  on  Thorn  ;§  Augereau  to  pass  the 
Vistula  with  his  troops  from  the  left  bank,  and  concentrate 
at  Plonsk ;  ||  Oudinot  to  leave  Kalisch,  and  reach  Lowicz  by 
the  3lst.1T 

Bernadotte  was  told  **  that,  owing  to  Ney's  aggression, 

was  specially  enraged  by  the  armistice  which  Ney  was  negotiating  with  the 
Prussians,  and  had  remarked  that  other  generals  had  been  tried  by  court 
martial  for  less  grave  offences.  Yet  Ney's  conduct  was  not  quite  so  bad  as  the 
Emperor  pictured  it.  In  the  Archive*  Historiques  there  is  a  despatch  from  Ney 
to  Berthier,  dated  18th  January,  in  which  the  writer  says  :  u  I  received  yesterday 
(17th)  the  duplicate  copy  of  the  dispositions  ordered  on  the  7th  for  the  definite 
quarters  of  all  the  corps,  and  have  given  orders  for  my  troops  to  return  in  succession 
to  the  neighbourhood  of  Chorzel,  Soldau,  and  Mlawa."  How  Berthier 's  despatch 
took  10  days  to  reach  Ney  is  not  explained.  Still,  with  Berthier's  letter  of  the  4th 
before  him  (supra,  p.  129,  note),  Ney  clearly  did  not  act  in  the  spirit  of  his 
instructions.  Even  now,  he  protested  against  the  country  he  was  ordered  to 
occupy  as  being  void  of  supplies,  and  a  "  veritable  cemetery  "  (Arch.  Hist.y 
daily  correspondence). 

*  On  the  20th,  Berthier  wrote  to  Soult :  "  The  ill-considered  point  made  by 
Marshal  Ney  appears  to  have  determined  the  enemy  to  make  a  movement  to  his 
right." 

t  See  De  Fezensac's  account  of  his  journey  with  Ney's  despatch  (Souvenirs 
Militaires,  p.  136). 

X  Berthier  to  Lefebvre,  dated  25th  January  (printed  in  Dumas,  xviii. 

§  Berthier  to  Espagne,  25th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  341). 

||  Berthier  to  Augereau,  25th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  339). 

%  Berthier  to  Oudinot,  25th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  341). 

**  Berthier  to  Bernadotte,  26th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  341). 


132  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

the  enemy  was  moving  to  the  right.  He  was  to  hold  the 
line  of  the  Passarge,  and  was  even  to  go  so  far  as  to  propose 
to  the  enemy  to  fix  that  river  as  a  boundary,  intimating  to 
him  that  the  Emperor  had  no  intention  of  moving  on  Koenigs- 
berg,  and  had  recalled  Ney.  Should  he  attempt  to  force 
Elbing,  the  Emperor  was  prepared  to  break  up  his  winter 
quarters,  in  order  to  prevent  a  passage  of  the  Vistula  by  the 
enemy.  Elbing  was  not  to  be  seriously  defended.  If  it  was 
attacked  determinedly,  Bernadotte  was  to  fall  back  so  as  to 
cover  Thorn,  raising  the  blockade  of  Graudenz  if  he  felt  it 
necessary,  and  drawing  the  troops  before  it  partly  to  Thorn, 
and  partly  across  the  Vistula. 

On  the  26th,*  again,  Ney  was  told  that  Soult  would  now 
occupy  Willemburg  and  Chorzel,  with  his  point  of  concen- 
tration moved  forward  from  Golymin  to  Prasznitz,  whilst 
Ney's  own  rallying-point  was  changed  from  Mlawa  to 
Neidenburg.  These  orders,  it  was  remarked,  were  issued 
on  the  assumption  that  the  enemy  proposed  wintering  in 
front  of  Ney;  a  remark  which  clearly  shows  that  the 
Emperor  had  not  yet  grasped  the  full  meaning  and  extent 
of  the  Eussian  movement. 

On  the  27th,  he  was  convinced  that  Bennigsen  aimed  at 
nothing  less  than  cutting  off  the  extended  French  left,  and, 
by  a  movement  on  the  Lower  Vistula,  endeavouring  to  force 
the  whole  army  to  repass  the  river. 

Such,  indeed,  was  Bennigsen's  scheme — a  well-conceived 
one,  which  had  a  good  chance  of  success  if  well  executed 
against  a  general  of  ordinary  capacity.  The  objections  to  it, 
were :  first,  the  difficulties  of  execution  in  such  country  and 
such  weather ;  and,  secondly,  the  natural  boldness  of  Napo- 
leon, who  could  ill  afford,  after  the  checks  at  Pultusk  and 
Golymin,  to  expose  his  prestige  to  another  blow  by  yielding 
to  the  initiative  of  the  enemy,  and  contenting  himself  with 
the  line  of  the  Vistula,  even  with  its  well-protected  points 

*  Berthier  to  Ney  and  Soult,  both  dated  2Gth  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  343, 
344). 


MOVEMENTS    UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.      133 

of  issue  at  Warsaw,  Modlin,  and  Thorn.  His  great  disincli- 
nation for  a  fresh  campaign  in  this  season  is  clearly  shown 
by  his  despatch,  of  the  26th  January,  to  Bernadotte,*  which, 
at  the  same  time,  indicated  that  he  was  prepared,  in  the  last 
resort,  to  undertake  it. 

Now  that  he  saw  it  was  inevitable,  he  prepared  to  make 
his  blow  a  crushing  one.  His  scheme  was  to  pivot  on  his 
left  at  Thorn,  and,  wheeling  forward  his  right  and  centre,  to 
drive  Bennigsen  into  the  angle  between  the  Lower  Vistula 
and  the  Frisches-Haff,  or  against  the  latter,  f 

The  movements  which  he  had  been  ordering  during  the 
last  few  days  were  all  calculated  to  facilitate  such  a  plan. 

Murat  was  to  assemble  d'Hautpoult's,  Klein's,  and  Latour- 

*  Vide  supra,  p.  131,  note  (**). 

f  What  Napoleon's  intentions  were  is  clearly  indicated  in  Berthier's  despatch 
of  the  28th  January  to  Bernadotte.  "  The  intention  of  the  Emperor  is  to 
pierce  the  enemy's  centre,  and  to  drive  to  his  right  and  left  such  of  the  enemy's 
troops  as  may  not  have  retired  in  time  ;  but,  holding  fast  to  his  system,  which  is 
to  cover  Thorn,  that  should  be  the  object  of  your  movements.  You  would  then 
rejoin  the  left  of  the  army,  regaining,  even  by  the  rear  if  necessary,  your  com- 
munications with  Marshal  Ney  .  .  .  the  more  deeply  the  enemy  is  involved  the 
better"  (printed  in  Dumas,  xviii.  366).  We  may  well  believe  that  the 
Emperor's  secret  hopes  went  further  than  this.  If  Bennigsen,  unaware  of  his 
impending  fate,  should  push  on  south-westwards  in  pursuit  of  Bernadotte,  it 
might  well  happen  that  he  would  become  so  deeply  involved  as  to  find  himself 
in  front  of  Thorn  with  the  Lower  Vistula  barring  his  way  westwards,  watched 
as  it  was  by  part  of  Lefebvre's  corps  spread  down  the  left  bank.  In  his  front 
he  would  find  Lefebvre  entrenched  in  Thorn.  Wheeling  to  their  left,  and 
driving  Bennigsen  on  to  the  river,  would  be  the  corps  of  Bernadotte,  Ney,  Soult, 
Augereau,  Murat,  and  the  Guard.  In  that  case  destruction,  or  at  the  best  a 
precarious  retreat  on  Danzig,  would  stare  him  in  the  face. 

A  letter  from  the  Emperor  to  Lefebvre  (Corr.  11,711,  dated  28th  January), 
warns  him  that  the  enemy,  finding  his  left  turned  by  Napoleon's  wheel,  might 
march  on  Thorn,  or  across  the  Vistula. 

Lanfrey  (Hist,  de  Napoleon,  iv.  45-46)  thinks  Napoleon  only  hoped  to  cut 
off  15,000  or  20,000  Russians.  It  is  true  that,  in  his  proclamation  of  the  30th 
January  (Corr.  11,739),  he  talks  of  driving  the  enemy  across  the  Niemen,  and 
that  in  writing  to  Clarke  at  Berlin  (Corr.,  dated  27th  January,  1807)  he  warns 
him  to  be  on  the  look-out  for  15,0u0  or  20,000  of  the  enemy,  who  might  be 
driven  across  the  Vistula.  That,  however,  by  no  means  implies  that  this  was 
the  limit  of  the  Emperor's  hopes,  or  that  he  did  not  expect  to  cut  off  a  great 
many  more  east  of  the  Vistula,  before  they  could  reach  it.  See  also  the 
concluding  words  of  note  \,  next  page. 


134  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Maubourg's  brigades  at  Kaciaz,  whilst  the  Emperor  himself 
proceeded  with  his  headquarters  to  Prasznitz  and  Willem- 
burg.* 

Soult,  raising  his  cantonments,  to  concentrate  on  Willem- 
burg.f  Ney  to  cover  Soult's  left,  and,  with  Augereau  now 
marching  on  Mlawa,  to  unite  him  to  Bernadotte.J 

Lefebvre  was  ordered  to  assemble  his  corps  at  Thorn  for 
the  protection  of  that  all-important  fortress. §  Davout  to 
keep  his  advanced  posts  in  position,  and,  under  cover  of 
them,  to  concentrate  towards  Pultusk.||  Bernadotte's  first 
object  was  to  hold  on  at  Osterode,  and  cover  Thorn,  till 
Lefebvre  had  assembled  there,  raising,  if  necessary,  the  siege 
of  Graudenz.1T  Bessieres,  with  the  Guard,  to  pass  the  Narew 
on  the  28th,  and  march  on  Pultusk  on  the  29th,  leaving 
15  guns  for  Oudinot  at  Warsaw.** 

Lannes'  corps,  and  Becker's  dragoons,  were  left  to  cover 
the  right  of  the  army  towards  Ostrolenka,  and  in  the  penin- 
sula between  the  Narew  and  the  Bug.  ft     As  Lannes  took 

*  Berthier  to  Murat  (2  despatches),  dated  27th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  348, 
349). 

t  Berthier  to  Soult,  27th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  350). 

X  Berthier  to  Ney,  27th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  352).  Whether  Bernadotte 
should  be  able  to  maintain  himself  at  Osterode,  or  whether  he  should  be 
compelled  to  retreat  on  Thorn,  Ney  and  Augereau  were  to  maintain  the  line 
between  his  right  and  Soult's  left.  If,  however,  there  should  appear  to  be 
danger  of  Bernadotte's  being  anticipated  at  Thorn  by  the  enemy,  Ney  was  to 
cover  that  place.  "  The  Emperor  does  not  wish  to  re-occupy  his  winter  quarters 
before  he  has  destroyed  the  enemy." 

§  Berthier  to  Lefebvre,  27th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  350).  Lefebvre  was  to 
collect  (a)  his  French  brigade ;  (6)  12  guns  now  on  their  way  from  Warsaw  ; 

(c)  Espagne's  cavalry ;  (d)  if  the  siege  of  Graudenz  had  been  raised,  the  Hessian 
division ;  he  was  to  keep  his  Poles  on  the  left  bank,  watching  it  as  far  down  as 
possible.  His  objects  were  denned  to  be  (a)  the  defence  of  Thorn,  and  the 
restoration  of  the  bridge,  damaged  by  floating  ice  ;  (6)  the  watching  of  the  left 
bank  of  the  lower  Vistula  as  far  as  possible  ;    (c)  the  protection  of  Bromberg  ; 

(d)  the  formation  of  a  reserve  to  the  left  of  the  army,  and,  possibly,  an  advance 
on  Danzig. 

||  Berthier  to  Davout,  27th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  353). 
^f  Berthier  to  Bernadotte,  27th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  354). 
**  Berthier  to  Bessieres,  27th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  355). 
+t  Berthier  to  Lannes,  28th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  859). 


MOVEMENTS    UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU. 

up  his  position,  Davout  would  move  forward  by  Ostrolenka 
and  Makow  to  Myszienec,  where  he  would  leave  all  his 
corps,  except  Gudin's  division,  by  the  31st.  Becker's 
dragoons  would  quietly  replace  the  light  cavalry,  which, 
in  turn,  would,  equally  unobserved,  replace  Soult's  at 
Myszienec.  Gudin's  division,  for  the  present,  not  to  go 
beyond  Pultusk.* 

By  these  movements,  the  Emperor  expected  to  have  his 
army,  by  the  31st,  in  the  following  positions : — 

Lefebvre  at  Thorn,  and  down  the  left  bank  of  the  Vistula. 
Bernadotte  on  his  right.  Augereau  and  Ney  uniting  Berna- 
dotte  with  Soult  and  Murat  in  the  direction  of  Willemburg, 
with  cavalry  pushed  towards  Oertelsberg.  Davout  at  Mys- 
zienec. Lannes'  corps  and  Becker's  dragoons  towards 
Ostrolenka.  The  Guard  and  Gudin  in  second  line,  in  the 
angle  between  Davout  and  Lannes. 

Everything  being  thus  in  readiness  for  the  French  advance 
pivoting  on  Thorn,  it  is  necessary  to  return  to  the  movements 
of  the  Russians  and  Prussians  during  the  latter  half  of 
January,  which  had  induced  the  Emperor,  much  against  his 
will,  to  resume  active  operations. 

Lestocq,  driven  by  Ney  from  Schippenbeil  on  the  10th 
January,  failed  in  an  attempt  to  retake  it,  and  took  post 
about  Friedland.  It  was  in  this  direction  that  a  proposed 
armistice  between  the  opposing  forces  had  so  aroused  the  anger 
of  Napoleon  against  Ney. 

Bennigsen,  meanwhile,  in  furtherance  of  a  promise  to  the 
King  of  Prussia  that  he  would  defend  Koenigsberg,f  had 
reached  Arys  on  the  16th,  and  Rhein  on  the  18th,  without  his 
movement  being  discovered  by  Ney,  or  by  Soult,  across  whose 
front  he  had  marched  behind  the  Johannisburg  forest  and  the 
Spirding  lake. 

Ney,  on  the  19th,  ignorant  of  .the  storm  which  was 
gathering  on  his  right  flank,  and  not  yet  having  received 

*  Berthier  to  Davout,  28th  January  (Dumas,  xviii.  361). 
t  Wilson,  p.  242. 


136  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Napoleon's  peremptory  orders  to  withdraw,  still  had  his 
cavalry  at  Schippenbeil.  There  it  was  encountered  by 
Gallitzin,  on  the  19th,  with  40  squadrons,  the  Russian 
advanced  guard,  exploring  the  roads  from  Rhein  towards 
Koenigsberg  on  the  right,  and  Bischof stein  on  the  left.*  On 
this  date  Lestocq,  standing  fast,  effected  his  union  with  the 
Russian  right.  Bennigsen  marched  with  three  advanced 
guards  under  Markow,  Barclay,  and  Bagavout. 

On  the  20th  his  headquarters  were  at  Roessel,  midway 
between  Rastenburg  and  Bischofstein,  his  cavalry  driving  in 
Ney's  with  loss,  and  even  surprising  the  cantonments  of  parts 
of  the  corps  which  had  still  not  begun  their  march.  Lestocq 
closed  in  towards  the  Guber,  and,  on  the  21st,  he  and  the 
Russians  were  abreast  on  the  line  from  Schippenbeil  to 
Bischofstein.  At  the  latter  place  Colbert,  with  Ney's  light 
cavalry,  retreating  from  Schippenbeil  and  Bartenstein,  was 
attacked  by  the  advanced  guard,  and  driven  back  with  heavy 
loss  on  to  Seeburg.  Bennigsen's  advanced  guard  penetrated, 
on  the  21st,  as  far  as  Heilsberg.  On  the  22nd  and  23rd,  the 
Russian  main  body  halted,  whilst  the  advanced  guard  moved 
on  towards  the  Passarge.  On  the  latter  date,  Ney  had 
succeeded  in  making  good  his  retreat,  though  not  without 
loss,  to  Neidenburg,  whence  he  extended  his  corps  towards 
Soult  on  his  right,  and  Bernadotte  on  his  left. 

Lestocq,  on  the  22nd,  marched  from  Schippenbeil  towards 
Bartenstein,  pushing  outposts  towards  Landsberg.  On  the 
23rd,  he  marched  on  Landsberg,  so  as  to  keep  clear  of  the 

*  Hoepfner  (iii.  172)  gives,  on  the  authority  of  the  original  reports,  the 
allied  strength  thus : — 

7  Russian  divisions  under  Bennigsen       66,000 

Sedmaratzki's  6th  division  at  Goniondz 8,000 

Corps  of  Essen  I.  at  Bransk  18,000 

Lestocq's  Prussians  about  Friedland        13,000 


Total 


..  105,000 


Deducting  (Ibid.,  p.  177,  note)  about  3000  men  connecting  Bennigsen  with 
Sedmaratzki,  he  puts  the  force  advancing  from  Rhein  against  Ney  at  76,000 
Russians  and  Prussians. 


MOVEMENTS    UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.      137 

Russian  columns,  and  sent  his  advanced  troops  towards 
Mehlsack  and  Wormditt.  That  morning  Roquette,  on  the 
Heiligenbeil- Braunsberg  road,  reported  having  been  driven 
back  by  Bernadotte's  advanced  guard,  which,  for  the  moment, 
induced  Lestocq  to  suppose  the  marshal  was  marching  on 
Koenigsberg.  However,  when  he  reached  Mehlsack  on  the 
24th,  he  found  that  Bernadotte  had  abandoned  Braunsberg, 
and  fallen  back  on  Preussisch  Holland.  On  the  24th,  the 
Russian  headquarters  were  at  Heilsberg.  Markow's  advanced 
guard  surprised  and,  after  a  sharp  fight  in  Liebstadt,  captured 
about  300  French  cavalry  and  infantry. 

Bernadotte  had  scarcely  reached  the  Frisches-Haff  with 
his  left  wing  when  he  received  news  from  his  chief  of  the 
staff,  Maison,  at  Osterode,  of  the  Russian  offensive  movement, 
and  Ney's  retreat.* 

Maison,  without  waiting  for  orders  from  his  chief,  with 
admirable  promptitude  warned  Pacthod,  who  was  at  Moh- 
rungen  with  one  infantry  regiment,  and  directed  the  concen- 
tration of  Rivaud's  division  at  Osterode,  of  Drouet's  at 
Saalfeld,  and  the  retirement  of  the  dragoon  brigade  from 
Hohenstein.f  Bernadotte,  on  the  left,  ordered  the  assembly 
of  Dupont's  division,  Laplanche's  dragoons,  and  the  light 
cavalry  at  Pr.  Holland,  and  directed  Rivaud  to  hold 
Osterode,  blocking  the  defiles  leading  to  it,  whilst  Drouet 
should  advance,  on  the  25  th,  from  Saalfeld  to  Mohrungen,  in 


*  Maison  received  the  news  from  Ney  (operations  of  1st  Corps,  Arch. 
Hist.').  Ney  has  been  accused  of  not  sending  warning  of  the  Russian  advance 
to  Bernadotte.     This  passage  clears  him. 

t  Bernadotte's  orders  had  prescribed  the  following  cantonments  for  his 
corps : — 

Dupont's  Division :  Pr.  Holland,  Elbing,  Frauenberg,  Braunsberg. 

Rivaud's  Division :  Osterode,  Mohrungen,  Deutsch  Eylau. 

Drouet's  Division:  Saalfeld,  Christburg,  Riesmuhl  with  detachments  at 
Marienburg  and  Marienwerder. 

Light  Cavalry  :  To  occupy  the  whole  length  of  the  Passarge. 

4th  Division  of  Dragoons :  One  brigade  at  Hohenstein,  communicating  with 
Ney ;  the  other  in  reserve  between  Pr.  Holland  'and  Elbing  (Bernadotte's 
report,  Arch.  Hist.). 


138  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

order  to  support  Pacthod's  regiment  there,  and  to  give  security 
to  the  march  of  Dupont  from  Pr.  Holland  to  Osterode. 

On  the  25th,  Bennigsen's  headquarters  reached  Arensdorf, 
his  left  column,  passing  the  Alle  at  Guttstadt,  reached  the 
Passarge  at  Deppen,  the  advanced  guard  going  forward  to 
Alt-Reichau  on  the  road  to  Mohrungen.  The  right  column 
marched  through  Arensdorf  to  Liebstadt. 

Lestocq,  who  had  turned  towards  Mehlsack  when  he 
thought  Bernadotte  was  moving  on  Koenigsberg,  had  to  make 
a  very  long  march  to  reach,  with  his  headquarters,  Schlodien, 
on  the  25th.  His  outposts  were  towards  Mulhausen,  Pr. 
Holland,  and  Mohrungen  —  4  battalions  still  behind  the 
Passarge.  In  this  position  he  was  joined  by  Eouquette,  now 
released,  by  Bernadotte' s  retreat,  from  guarding  the  road  to 
Koenigsberg  near  the  Frisches-Haff. 

ACTION  OF  MOHRUNGEN,  25TH  JANUARY. 

It  was  at  Mohrungen,  on  the  25th,  that  there  occurred 
the  first  serious  action  between  the  advancing  Kussians  and 
the  retreating  French.  Markow,  with  the  advanced  guard  of 
the  right  wing,  had  learnt,  from  the  prisoners  taken  at 
Liebstadt,  that  Bernadotte  was  on  the  march  for  Mohrungen. 
Pushing  on,  he  arrived  near  Mohrungen  about  noon  on  the 
25th.*  There  he  found  Bernadotte  with  9  battalions  and  11 
squadrons  made  up  partly  from  Pacthod's  regiment,  partly 
from  Dupont's  division  arriving  from  Pr.  Holland,  and  partly 
from  Drouets  from  Saalfeld.f  Seeing  the  Kussian  advance, 
Bernadotte  sent  to  hurry  up  Dupont  to  his  assistance,  and 

*  Bernadotte  (Arch.  Hist.)  thinks  that  Ney  had  abandoned  Allenstein  with 
too  much  precipitation,  thus  leaving  Bernadotte  exposed  on  his  right  flank. 
After  the  series  of  rebukes  and  peremptory  orders  he  had  received,  it  seems 
scarcely  fair  to  blame  Ney  for  following  to  the  letter  his  orders  from 
headquarters. 

t  Bernadotte  reached  the  field,  just  as  Markow  appeared,  with  one  battalion 
9th  Infantry,  the  27th  and,  94th  Regiments,  and  Laplanche's  dragoon  brigade 
(Bernadotte,  Arch.  Hist.).  The  same  authority  puts  the  enemy's  strength  at 
20,000,  which  was  considerably  too  high. 


MOVEMENTS    UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.      139 

prepared,  with  what  troops  he  had,  to  attack  Markow.  That 
general  took  up  a  position  on  the  heights  in  front  of 
Georgenthal,  north  of  Mohrungen.  In  first  line  he  placed 
two  regiments  of  infantry,  in  second  line  one  regiment.  Two 
battalions  of  another  regiment,  with  the  third  in  reserve, 
advanced  towards  the  defile  of  Pfarrersfeldchen.  In  front  of 
them,  towards  Mohrungen,  was  a  regiment  of  hussars.  To 
the  right  front  of  Georgenthal  were  2  battalions  of  jagers, 
and  in  the  village  itself  3  more  battalions — altogether  17 
battalions  and  one  regiment  of  hussars,  besides  cossacks.* 

Scarcely  had  these  dispositions  been  made  when,  about 
1  p.m.,  Bernadotte's  cavalry  attacked  the  hussars.  The 
latter,  at  first  victorious,  were  forced  by  the  French  artillery 
to  retire,  and  take  post  to  the  left  of  Georgenthal.  The 
French  cavalry,  in  turn,  were  brought  to  a  standstill  by  the 
Eussian  guns. 

Bernadotte  now  sent  urgent  orders  to  Dupont  to  make 
for  the  Bussian  right  flank,  marching  from  Hagenau  by 
Koenigsdorf  and  Wiese,  whilst  he  himself  attacked  in  front. 
He  carried  Pfarrersfeldchen  with  a  rush,  and  advanced  against 
the  main  Russian  position.f  Darkness  was  already  falling 
on  the  field,  when  the  two  jager  battalions  began  to  fall  back 
before  his  attack.  They  were  supported  by  their  reserve, 
but  Dupont's  flank  attack,  from  Wiese  on  Georgenthal,  now 
began  to  make  itself  felt.  Notwithstanding  the  brave  resist- 
ance of  6  battalions  detached  against  Dupont,  Markow  felt 
himself  outmatched,  and  compelled  to  retreat.  At  this 
moment  Anrepp  arrived  on  the  field,  announcing  that  he  was 


*  Bernadotte  says  that  when  he  arrived,  the  plain  in  front  of  Pfarrersfeld- 
chen was  "  inundated  "  by  cossacks  (Arch.  Hist.). 

t  For  the  attack  of  Pfarrersfeldchen,  Bernadotte  employed  the  battalion  of 
the  9th,  and  one  of  the  27th.  He  pushed  forward  4  guns  on  to  a  height 
commanding  the  village.  The  9th  were  at  first  beaten  off  from  Pfarrersfeldchen, 
whilst  the  27th  made  steady  progress  against  the  wood  on  the  right.  The 
attack  was  then  reinforced  by  the  2nd  battalion,  27th,  and  by  the  8th  light 
infantry,  with  the  94th  in  reserve,  and  dragoons  in  support.  The  1st  battalion 
of  the  27th,  at  the  wood,  lost,  but  again  recovered,  its  eagle. 


140  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

hurrying  up  the  cavalry  of  the  Kussiau  right  wing.  He 
was  mortally  wounded  as  he  moved  to  the  front. 

Following  up  the  retreating  Eussians,  the  French  lost 
heavily.  Dupont  had  now  succeeded  in  defeating  the  two 
regiments  opposed  to  him,  and  was  nearing  Georgenthal. 

In  this  moment  of  victory,  Bernadotte  heard  firing 
behind  him  at  Mohrungen,  but  was  unable  to  judge  of  the 
strength  of  the  force  which  had,  apparently,  taken  him  in 
rear.  Abandoning,  therefore,  the  pursuit,  he  marched  his 
men  back  on  Mohrungen.* 

The  cause  of  the  noise  was  an  inroad  of  Kussian  cavalry 
upon  the  baggage  in  Mohrungen.  Gallitzin,  with  the  cavalry 
of  the  left  wing,  had  reached  Alt-Eeichau,  and  sent  forward 
3  squadrons,  under  Dolgoruki,  supported  by  6  more  under 
Pahlen,  to  reconnoitre  through  the  defile  between  the  Narien 
and  Mahrung  lakes.f  This  force,  reaching  the  western  side 
of  the  lakes  at  nightfall,  moved  on  Mohrungen,  which  they 
found  almost  denuded  of  troops,  but  full  of  baggage,  and 
supply  columns.  The  place  was  promptly  attacked,  its 
defenders  captured,  and  the  baggage  plundered.  Beyond  it, 
the  cavalry  met  Bernadotte,  retracing  his  steps  with  his 
troops,  and  was  compelled  to  retreat,  carrying  with  them 
some  360  French  prisoners,  200  released  Eussian  and  Prussian 
prisoners,  and  a  quantity  of  plunder.^     They  lost,  however, 

*  Bernadotte  {Arch.  Hist.)  points  out  the  danger  of  his  position,  liable, 
as  he  was,  if  defeated,  to  be  cut  from  Rivaud's,-division  at  Osterode. 

t  According  to  Danilewski,  the  sound  of  the  battle  at  Mohrungen  did  not, 
owing  to  the  stormy  weather,  reach  Gallitzin,  so  that  Dolgoruki's  arrival  was,  in 
a  sense,  accidental  (see  Hcep/ner,  iii.  185). 

X  According  to  Wilson  (p.  35,  note)  they  found  in  Bernadotte's  personal 
baggage  12,500  ducats  which  he  had  levied  for  himself  in  Elbing,  as  well 
as  a  quantity  of  plate  bearing  the  arms  of  minor  German  states,  from  which 
it  had  been  takea.  Bernadotte's  servant,  when  asked  to  point  out  his 
master's  property,  denied  that  these  articles  were  part  of  it.  They  were,  how- 
ever, found  in  the  marshal's  own  quarters,  and  in  such  quantity  that  he  could 
hardly  have  been  ignorant  of  their  presence.  If  this  story  is  correct,  the  future 
King  of  Sweden  cuts  but  a  sorry  figure  in  the  episode.  His  own  account  {Arch. 
Hist.)  of  the  movements  of  his  corps  omits  all  mention  of  the  irruption  of 
Kussian  cavalry  into  Mohrungen. 


MOVEMENTS   UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EFLAU.      14  L 

part  of  their  force,  which  had  been  surrounded  when  it  rashly 
advanced  too  far  towards  Pfarrersfeldchen. 

The  action  in  front  of  Mohrungen  might  have  involved 
Bernadotte  in  a  serious  disaster,  had  Markow  promptly  sent 
for  assistance,  from  Gallitzin  on  his  left,  and  from  Anrepp  on 
his  right.  The  Prussians  were,  perhaps,  too  far  off  to  be 
able  to  render  much  assistance ;  yet  they  had,  at  Hagenau, 
to  some  extent  hindered  Dupont's  junction  with  Bernadotte. 
Bernadotte  should  have  taken  measures  to  guard  the  defile 
between  the  lakes  on  his  right  rear.*  Probably  he  felt  that 
he  had  not  sufficient  troops  available  to  be  able  to  spare 
any  for  this  purpose.f  Had  he  been  able  to  do  so,  his 
right  flank  and  rear,  to  a  distance  of  some  miles,  would 
have  been  admirably  protected.  Till  Dupont's  arrival,  he 
was  in  a  considerable  inferiority  in  numbers,  and  by  that 
time  the  mischief  was  done. 

The  loss  in  this  action  was  heavy,  probably  about  2000 
on  either  side.  J 

Lestocq  on  this  day  (25th)  reached  Hagenau  as  day 
closed,  after  an  engagement  with  part  of  Dupont's  division 
on  its  retreat  from  Pr.  Holland. § 

Proposing  to  free  Elbing  from  the  enemy,  the  Prussians 
started  on  the  26th  for  Pr.  Holland,  but  were  ordered  by 

*  The  military  importance  of  the  lakes  in  this  direction  is  well  brought  out 
in  the  critical  remarks  of  Count  von  Waldersee  (representing  Marshal  von 
Moltke)  on  the  66th  problem  set  by  Von  Moltke  in  1882  (Moltkes  Tactical 
Problems,  text,  p.  164).  In  the  problem  the  western  army  is  supposed  to  be 
endeavouring  to  join  an  army  corps  to  the  north,  and  has  to  guard  its  flank 
against  an  army  east  of  the  lakes. 

f  De  Fezensac  (p.  140)  says  Bernadotte  had  only  9000  against  16,000,  but  it 
is  not  quite  clear  whether  he  refers  to  the  earlier  portion  of  the  action,  or  to 
the  later  period  when  Dupont  had  arrived.  At  the  latter  period  the  French 
probably  had  a  superiority  of  numbers. 

X  This  is  the  number  admitted  by  Wilson  as  the  Russian  loss.  Bernadotte 
gives  his  own  losses  as  700  or  800,  whilst  putting  that  of  the  enemy  at  1600 
(report  in  Arch.  Hist.). 

§  Lestocq,  unlike  Gallitzin,  had  heard  the  cannon  at  Mohrungen 
(H&pfner,  iii.  186),  from  which  it  may  be  inferred  that  a  strong  east  wind  was 
blowing. 


142  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Bennigsen  to  advance  on  Liebstadt.  When  they  had  got 
halfway  there,  a  fresh  order  directed  them  on  Hagenau  again, 
to  be  prepared  to  support  an  attack  on  Mohrungen  next 
morning.  After  some  twenty  miles  of  marching  and  counter- 
marching, they  were  much  where  they  had  been  in  the  morning. 

Bernadotte,  on  the  26th,  fell  back  on  Liebemuhl,  avoiding 
the  direct  road  to  Osterode,  which  was  rendered  dangerous 
by  its  proximity  to  Gallitzin's  force  at  Alt-Reichau.* 

Bennigsen  occupied  Mohrungen  with  part  of  his  main 
army  on  the  26th,  the  rest  coming  up  on  the  morning  of 
the  27th.  His  right  advanced  guard  moved  on  Liebemuhl, 
the  left  on  Allenstein,  the  former  place  having  been 
evacuated  by  Bernadotte  who  had  continued  his  march  on 
Lobau,  where  he  was  joined  by  d'Hautpoult's  cuirassiers  on 
the  29th,  from  the  neighbourhood  of  Gollub.  He  thus 
commanded  17,000  infantry,  and  5000  or  6000  cavalry, 
on  the  30th.  On  the  28th,  Bennigsen  found  himself  at 
Mohrungen  with  his  troops  wearied  by  10  days  of  marching. 
He  decided  to  rest  and  replenish  his  stores. 

Lestocq  he  again  sent  off  farther  to  the  right.  On  the 
29th,  that  general  reached  Rosenberg,  with  outposts  towards 
Freystadt,  Beschofswerder,  and  Deutsch  Eylau.  Rouquette's 
detachment  had  marched  on  Marienwerder.  The  Prussian 
advance  had  resulted  in  the  raising  of  the  blockade  of 
Graudenz  by  the  Hessians.  Bennigsen's  right  advanced 
guard  extended  to  Saalfeld,  his  left  to  Guttstadt.  On  the 
30th,  he  sent  Bagration  to  Deutsch  Eylau  to  strengthen  his 
link  with  the  Prussians,  whilst  he  proposed  to  march  him- 
self towards  Allenstein.  On  the  31st,  Lestocq  was  at  Frey- 
stadt, with  outposts  at  Lessen,  Schonau,  and  Schwarzenau, 

*  Bernadotte's  report  says  that  the  enemy's  movement  on  his  left  flank, 
threatening  to  cut  him  from  Thorn,  compelled  his  retreat.  His  corps  was 
completely  assembled  only  on  the  28th,  at  Roecken  on  the  road  to  Lobau.  On 
the  30th  and  31st,  he  was  drawn  up  there  for  battle.  On  the  latter  day  at 
noon,  he  marched  for  Strasburg,  his  rear  guard  being  roughly  handled  by  the 
enemy  at  Brattian.  He  did  not  leave  Strasburg  to  advance  again  till  the  4th 
February  {Arch.  Hitt.). 


MOVEMENTS    UF   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.       L49 

ami  100  cavalry  between  him  and  Graudenz,  which  was 
being  rapidly  provisioned.  Bagration,  with  the  right  ad- 
vanced guard  of  the  Russian  army,  was  at  Deutsch  Eylau 
with  detachments  on  the  Drewenz.  The  left  advanced 
guard,  and  the  2nd  division,  were  in  and  behind  Allenstein, 
with  a  detachment,  under  Barclay,  at  Osterode.  The  5th, 
7th,  and  8th  divisions  under  Tutchkow  were  at  Samrodt, 
between  Mohrungen  and  Pr.  Holland;  the  13th  and  14th 
divisions,  commanded  by  Sacken,  with  headquarters  at 
Gotteswalde,  were  on  the  march  south  of  Osterode ;  reserve, 
4th  division  under  Somow,  at  Guttstadt ;  Bennigsen  him- 
self was  in  Mohrungen;  cavalry  of  the  left  wing  was  as 
far  forward  as  Hohenstein  and  Passenheim. 

On  the  same  date,  the  French  positions  were : — Lefebvre 
on  the  extreme  left,  at  and  about  Thorn,  and  down  the  left 
bank  of  the  Vistula ;  Bernadotte  at  Strasburg ;  Ney  at 
Gilgenburg ;  Augereau  at  Neidenburg  and  Janow ;  Guard 
(Bessieres)  at  Chorzel;  Davout,  with  two  divisions,  at 
Myszienec,  and  Gudin's  at  Prasznitz;  cavalry  reserve 
(Murat)  and  Soult,  about  Oertelsburg  and  Willemburg; 
Savary,  with  the  corps  of  Lannes  (who  was  ill  at  Warsaw), 
at  Brok  on  the  Bug. 

Bennigsen  was  under  the  impression  that  he  had  suc- 
ceeded in  his  enterprise,  almost  without  a  blow,  and  that 
Napoleon  was  about  to  recross  the  Vistula  between  Thorn 
and  Warsaw.  On  the  1st  February,  the  scales  fell  from  his 
eyes,  and  he  saw,  not  only  the  full  disposition  of  the  French 
army,  but  also  the  whole  of  Napoleon's  great  scheme  for 
his  destruction. 

Whatever  might  have  been  the  effect  of  Bennigsen's 
move  in  inducing  a  general  of  ordinary  capacity  to  abandon 
the  country  beyond  the  Vistula,  Napoleon  was  the  last 
person  to  follow  such  a  course.  Bennigsen  had  not  yet 
appreciated  his  boldness,  and  he  was,  *  therefore,  surprised 
when  the  Emperor  himself  conveyed  to  him,  unintentionally, 
a  full  statement  of  his  scheme.     Bennigsen's   flank  march 


144  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

against  the  French  left  is  a  good  example  of  the  futility  of 
a  good  design  if  not  supported  by  equally  good  execution. 
His  first  fault  was  his  waste  of  time,  and  force,  in  marching 
up  the  Narew,  and  not  joining  Buxhowden  directly.  His 
second  was  the  direction  of  his  march  from  Ehein  towards 
the  head  of  Key's  column,  instead  of  towards  its  rear.  Had 
he  turned  boldly  to  the  south-west,  he  must,  almost  infallibly, 
have  separated  Ney  from  Soult,  and  destroyed  the  greater 
part  of  the  former's  corps.  He  would  also  have  antici- 
pated Bernadotte  at  Mohrungen  and  Osterode,  and  separated 
Dupont's  and  Drouet's  divisions  from  Rivaud's,  forcing 
them,  probably,  to  cross  the  Vistula. 

With  Ney's  corps,  and  two-thirds  of  that  of  Bernadotte, 
cut  off,  Napoleon's  position  beyond  the  Upper  Vistula  would 
have  been  one  of  extreme  peril.  It  is  difficult  to  see  how  he 
could  have  maintained  himself  on  the  right  bank. 

Bennigsen  lost  two  days  by  halting  on  the  22  nd  and 
23rd — the  fatigue  of  his  troops  probably  rendered  this  in- 
evitable. His  halt  at  Mohrungen  was,  nevertheless,  fortunate 
for  him,  for  it  was  then  too  late  to  cut  off  Ney  or  Bernadotte, 
and  a  further  advance  would  have  plunged  him  more  deeply 
into  the  trap  which  Napoleon  had  now  prepared  for  him. 

Napoleon,  too,  had  underestimated  his  adversary's 
capacity  for  designing  a  bold  move.*  It  was  not  till  the 
27th  January  that  he  was  convinced  that  the  movement 
against  his  left  was  anything  more  than  a  reply  to  Ney's 
aggression.  As  a  matter  of  fact,  Ney  had  no  part  in  in- 
fluencing the  Russian  scheme,  for  it  was  decided  on  before 
the  marshal  began  to  move  northwards. 

The  Emperor,  convinced  at  last  that  he  must,  unwilling 
though  he  was,  enter  on  a  fresh  campaign,  lost  no  time  in 
pressing  it  to  what  he  hoped  might  be  a  final  decision. 

On  the  30th  January,  Berthier  sent  orders  to  Bernadotte 
to  concentrate  wherever  he  might  be,  but  to  be  careful  to 

*  That  is  if  the  design  was  Bennigsen's  at  all.  There  is  some  reason  for 
believing  it  was  not  his,  but  Buxhowden's. 


MOVEMENTS   UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.      145 

cover  Thorn,  until  he  was  certain  Lefebvre  was  there.  Once 
there,  the  latter  would  be  able  to  hold  it,  if  necessary,  for  a 
week,  which  was  more  than  would  be  required  of  him.*  The 
place  was  of  infinite  importance,  as  the  hinge  on  which  the 
whole  French  movement  was  to  turn.t 

Napoleon  had  left  Warsaw  on  the  night  of  the  29th 
January.  On  the  evening  of  the  30th,  he  was  at  Prasznitz, 
on  the  31st,  at  Willemburg.  The  marshals  had  been  warned 
that  the  advance  would  commence  on  the  1st  February. 

From  Willemburg  a  despatch  was  sent  to  Bernadotte  by 
Berthier.  It  ordered  the  1st  Corps  to  join  the  left  of  the 
army  under  the  immediate  command  of  the  Emperor.  The 
march  was  to  be  concealed  from  the  enemy  by  being  made 
at  night ;  a  light  cavalry  regiment  was  to  be  left  behind  to 
keep  up  the  bivouac  fires  all  night,  and  then,  in  the  morning, 
to  retire  slowly  on  Thorn,  turning  back  any  French  convoys 
it  might  meet,  and  warning  Lefebvre  that  he  was  now  de- 
pendant on  his  own  resources.  If  possible,  Bernadotte  was 
to  reach  Gilgenburg,  though,  if  he  found  serious  difficulty, 
he  might  continue  to  cover  Thorn.  The  despatch  gave 
details  of  the  positions  of  the  other  corps,  and  contained 
the  significant  words,  "  It  is  unnecessary  for  me  to  tell  you 
that  the  Emperor,  desiring  to  cut  off  the  enemy,  would  prefer 
your  joining  his  left ;  but  he  must  trustjin  this,  to  your  zeal 
and  your  knowledge  of  the  actual  circumstances  in  which 
you  ai'e."J 

*  Berthier  to  Bernadotte,  dated  Prasznitz,  30th  January,  Dumas,  xviii.  374. 

t  In  Corr.  11,711,  dated  28th  January,  Napoleon  warns  Lefebvre  that  the 
enemy,  finding  himself  turned  by  the  French  advance  from  the  right,  may 
march  on  Thorn. 

X  Berthier  to  Bernadotte,  dated  Willemburg,  31st  January,  Dumas,  xviii. 
380.  A  second  despatch  was  sent  off  at  7  p.m.,  in  which  Berthier  states  that 
the  Emperor  does  not  understand  Bernadotte's  meaning  when  he  says  that  the 
enemy  is  manoeuvring  against  the  left  by  Mlawa.  He  only  knows  of  one  Mlawa, 
but  that  is  not  on  Bernadotte's  left.  The  despatch  continues :  "  I  have  sent 
you  orders  an  hour  ago ;  you  will  be  guided  by  what  has  passed  on  the  31st ;  if 
the  enemy  is,  as  you  suppose,  in  retreat  on  Osterode,  you  will  pursue  him 
prudently ;  nevertheless,  His  Majesty  hopes  he  will  not  have  been  in  time  to 
escape  altogether."    Then  follows  a  long  complaint  of  the  delay  in  carrying 

L 


146  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Here  was  Napoleon's  whole  plan  of  campaign,  stated 
with  the  lucidity  which  characterised  his  despatches.  This 
all-important  paper  was  given  by  Berthier  to  the  first  officer 
who  came  to  hand.  A  young  officer,  fresh  from  one  of  the 
military  schools,  was  on  his  way  to  join  his  regiment  in 
Bernadotte's  corps.  He  might  as  well  be  utilised  to  carry 
the  despatch.  Naturally,  he  knew  nothing  of  the  country 
he  had  to  cross,  nothing  of  the  enemy's  positions,  and  he 
probably  was  only  able  to  get  a  very  sorry  mount.*     This 

despatches.  The  officer  with  Bernadotte's  despatch  had  been  15  hours  on  the 
road.  This  second  despatch  is  not  given  by  Dumas.  The  fate  of  these  two 
despatches  is  narrated  in  one  from  Bernadotte  (Arch.  Hist.),  dated  3rd  February. 
In  it  he  explains  that  what  he  meant  about  Mlawa  was  that,  whilst  8000  or 
10,000  of  the  enemy  were  manoeuvring  on  his  left,  another  column  was  reported 
to  be  moving  towards  Mlawa  on  his  right,  and  the  Emperor's  left.  He  goes  on 
to  explain  that  he  only  received  the  second  despatch,  dated  31st  January,  7  p.m., 
on  the  2nd  February.  The  one  of  an  hour  earlier  never  reached  him,  and  he  is 
ignorant  of  what  the  orders  were.  He  had  ascertained  from  the  villagers  that 
it  was  captured  by  cossacks  at  Lautenburg  from  a  young  officer  of  the  Ecole 
Militaire,  who  was  carrying  it.  The  captain  who  carried  the  second  despatch 
had  heard  the  same  story. 

The  next  despatch  from  Berthier  to  Bernadotte  is  dated  3rd  February,  4  a.m., 
and  says  it  appears  possible  Bennigsen  will  fight  at  Liebstadt,  in  which  case 
the  Emperor  desires  Bernadotte  to  join  his  left,  via  Osterode,  for  the  battle.  The 
next  is  dated  5th  February,  8.30  p.m.  It  says  that  Ney  has  cut  off  the 
Prussians.  The  Emperor  believes  Bernadotte  to  be  at  Osterode,  but  has  no 
news  of  him.  He  hopes  Bernadotte  is  approaching  the  enemy  by  Liebstadt,  or 
by  Guttstadt,  from  Osterode.  On  the  6th,  at  3  a.m.,  Berthier  again  writes  that 
Ney  had  taken  3000  prisoners  from  Lestocq.  Bernadotte  is  urged  to  try  and 
come  up  with,  this  disorganised  corps,  as  Ney  is  wanted  to  join  the  Emperor's 
left  (Arch.  Hist.,  daily  correspondence).  Evidently,  Bernadotte's  despatch  of  the 
3rd  February,  announcing  the  capture  of  Berthier's  of  the  31st  January,  had 
not  reached  headquarters  yet,  and  the  Emperor  was  still  ignorant  of  the  marshal's 
position. 

The  first  despatch  of  the  31st  January  was  sent  en  clair.  Jomini  (Vie  de 
Napoleon,  ii.  359)  makes  the  Emperor  say  that  it  would  have  been  wiser  to  use 
a  cypher,  and  that  he  afterwards  adopted  this  practice. 

*  It  appears  to  have  been  the  custom  in  the  Grand  Army  to  assume  that 
every  officer  carrying  despatches  was  properly  mounted,  and  knew  the  country, 
whereas  the  contrary  was  more  often  the  case.  "  An  officer  always  had  an 
excellent  horse,  he  knew  the  country,  he  was  never  taken  prisoner,  he  never 
met  with  an  accident,  he  arrived  quickly  at  his  destination  ;  and  this  was  so 
little  doubted  that  a  second  officer  was  by  no  means  always  sent.  All  this  I 
knew,"  says  De  Fezensac  (p.  116),  speaking  of  his  mission  with  orders  to  Ney  on 
the  8th  February. 


MOVEMENTS   UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.      147 

unfortunate  young  man  fell  in  with  a  party  of  cossacks  sent 
forward  by  Bagration  towards  Strasburg.  He  was  captured 
before  he  could  destroy  the  paper,  and  the  inestimable 
prize  reached  Bennigsen,  after  being  read  by  Bagration, 
on  the  1st  of  February.  Only  one  copy  having  been  sent, 
Bernadotte  received  no  orders,  and,  therefore,  stayed  where 
he  was. 

For  Bennigsen,  obviously,  an  early  retreat  was  the  only 
possible  course.  He  "  had  fallen  headlong  into  the  trap  ;  his 
attention  was  fixed  on  Bernadotte,  whom  he  was  pursuing. 
He  was  rushing  blindly  on  his  destruction,"  *  when  his  eyes 
were  suddenly  opened  by  the  captured  despatch,  whilst  there 
was  still  time  to  avoid  the  noose.f  Yet  he  was  unwilling 
to  seek  safety  in  rapid  retreat ;  moreover,  he  had,  if  possible, 
to  gain  some  time  for  Lestocq  and  Bagration  to  join  him. 
The  former  knew  nothing  of  the  French  movement.  The 
latter  had  read  the  despatch  to  Bernadotte  before  forwarding 
it,  and  acted  on  the  information.  On  the  1st  February,  the 
advance  of  the  French  right  wing  commenced  by  the  move- 
ment of  Murat  with  the  light  cavalry,  and  of  Soult's  corps 
on  Passenheim,  from  which  Dolgoruki  was  driven  back  on 
Allenstein.  Soult's  light  cavalry  was  sent  to  Mensguth  to 
safeguard  the  right. 

Ney  reached  Hohenstein  the  same  day.  Davout,  from 
Myszienec,  sent  Marulaz  with  his  light  cavalry,  2  infantry 
regiments,  and  2  guns,  to  reconnoitre  towards  Johannisburg. 
Gudin's  division  was  at  Chorzel.  Lefebvre  was  ordered  to 
pursue  the  Prussians,  as  they  retired  between  Marienwerder 
and  Osterode,  and  to  re-invest  Graudenz.J 

*  Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  355. 

t  "  This  intelligence,  which  ought  not  to  have  been  unexpected,  created 
some  surprise ■  (Wilson,  p.  89). 

X  Hcepfner  (iii.  198)  observes  that  Napoleon  seems  to  have  overlooked  the 
fact  that  they  could  have  retreated  in  safety  on  Danzig. 

The  garrison  of  Graudenz  had  been  closely  blockaded  and  driven  into  the 
fortress  on  the  18th  January  (Bernadotte,  Arch.  Hist.). 

They  were  very  short  of  supplies,  and  on  the  point  of  surrender,  when 
relieved,  and  their  magazines  replenished  by  Lestocq  (Wilson,  144). 


148  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

On  this  day,  Bennigsen  ordered  his  army  to  concentrate 
on  Jonkowo.  The  reserve,  from  Guttstadt,  and  Sacken, 
from  Seeburg,  were  called  up.  Barclay  was  to  wait  at 
AUenstein  for  Dolgoruki,  retiring  from  Passenheim.  Bagra- 
tion  had,  of  his  own  accord,*  started  for  Liebemiihl  and 
AUenstein,  leaving  his  comrades  to  attack  Bernadotte's  out- 
posts, and  induce  him  to  believe  in  an  advance  against 
himself.  On  the  2nd  February,  Murat  and  Soult  occupied 
AUenstein,  which  was  evacuated  by  Barclay's  advanced  guard. 
It  retired  to  Gottkendorf,  whUst  Bennigsen  assembled  the 
greater  part  of  his  army  behind  the  heights  of  Jonkowo. 
There  he  took  post,  his  right  resting  on  a  marshy  wooded 
vaUey,  his  left  on  the  AUe  at  Mondtken,  his  front  covered 
by  a  small  brook — now,  of  course,  frozen  over. 

Ney  nearly  reached  AUenstein,  Augereau  was  half  a  day's 
march  from  it,  Davout  was  moving  on  Oertelsburg,  after 
leaving  a  strong  rear-guard  f  at  Myszienec  to  keep  up  the 
communication  with  Savary.  The  Guard  reached  Passenheim. 
On  the  3rd  February,  Ney  and  Augereau,  arriving  at  AUen- 
stein, drove  the  Eussian  outposts  on  their  main  body. 
Napoleon,  hearing  of  the  Eussian  position  at  Jonkowo  J 
ordered  the  Guard  to  AUenstein,  and  himself  reached 
Gottkendorf  about  mid-day.  § 

Under  cover  of  Ney's  horse  artiUery,  he  threatened 
Bennigsen's  front  with  Ney's  and  Augereau's  corps  and  St. 
HUaire's  division  of  Soult's.  Soult  himself,  with  his  two 
other  divisions,  went  down  the  right  bank  of  the  Alle  to 

*  In  consequence  of  his  perusal  of  the  captured  despatch  to  Bernadotte. 

f  The  rear-guard  consisted  of  the  111th  Regiment,  the  2nd  battalion  85th, 
and  the  2nd  Regiment  of  chasseurs  k  cheval  {Davout,  159-160). 

X  This  place  is  called  Jonkendorf  on  the  modern  map.  The  name  has  been 
retained  here  in  the  form  used  in  all  accounts  of  the  campaign. 

§  Up  to  the  3rd  February,  Napoleon  was  very  doubtful  as  to  the  enemy's 
intentions.  On  that  day  he  writes  to  Murat :  "  Everything  leads  to  the  belief 
that  the  enemy  will  try  to  re-unite  at  Guttstadt ;  it  is  impossible  to  believe 
he  will  allow  his  left  flank  to  be  turned ; "  but  he  goes  on  to  express  his  anxiety 
lest  the  enemy,  instead  of  retiring,  should  march  by  Mohrungen,  Liebstadt,  or 
Osterode  on  AUenstein  (Corr.  11,772). 


MOVEMENTS   UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.      149 

seek  a  crossing  at  Bergfried,  which  would  bring  him  out 
on  the  left  rear  of  the  Russian  army.  Davout,  who  had 
been  attacked  as  he  was  on  the  way  from  Oertelsburg  to 
Wartenburg,  received  orders  to  turn  towards  Spiegelberg 
and  join  Soult's  right.  Guyot's  light  cavalry,  of  Soult's 
corps,  was  directed  on  Guttstadt ;  Gudin's  division,  on  the 
march  from  Prasznitz,  was  ordered  to  Oertelsburg  by 
Mensguth. 

ACTION  OF  BERGFRIED,  3RD  FEBRUARY. 

For  the  protection  of  the  bridge  over  the  Alle  at 
Bergfried,  Bennigsen  had  posted  the  14th  division  (Kamen- 
skoi)  and  3  Prussian  batteries.  Four  battalions  undertook 
the  defence  of  the  defile,  whilst  the  rest  remained  in  reserve. 
One  battalion  held  the  village  of  Bergfried,  on  the  right 
bank.*  The  Prussian  guns,  on  the  heights  of  the  left  bank, 
commanded  the  approaches  to  the  bridge  and  flanked  the 
village,  but  the  left  bank  above  and  below  Bergfried,  and  the 
heights  behind,  do  not  appear  to  have  been  occupied  by 
Russian  infantry,  so  that  the  defence  was  confined  to  the 
defile  itself. 

It  was  3  p.ni.f  when  the  head  of  Leval's  division  appeared 
before  Bergfried.  Two  batteries  were  brought  into  action 
against  the  Prussian  guns,  a  third  enfiladed  the  defile  from 
the  heights  to  the  left  of  Bergfried.  The  24th  Light  Infantry 
was  directed  to  the  attack  of  the  village  and  bridge,  whilst 
Vivier,  with  the  4th  of  the  Line  and  a  battalion  of  the  28th, 
attempted  to  cross  the  Alle  below  Bergfried.J 

The   frontal  attack   on   Bergfried  was  repulsed  by  the 

*  Soult  {Arch.  Hist.)  says  the  Bergfried  position  was  defended  by 8000  men,' 
who  were  later  reinforced  by  a  second  division  of  equal  strength.     This  seems 
excessive. 

t  Sunset  about  4.40  on  this  date. 

X  Dumas  (xvii.  346)  says  Vivier  was  to  ford  ("  passer  a  gue' ")  the  river. 
Wilson  (p.  89)  says :  "  The  Alle  was  long  frozen,  but  impassable  on  account  of 
the  snow  that  rested  on  its  bed."  What  Vivier  had  to  ford  was  not  water,  but 
soft,  deep  snow. 


150  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

artillery  and  infantry  fire  of  the  defenders.  A  second, 
enveloping  attack  was  more  successful,  but  a  heavy  fire  of 
case  prevented  the  French  from  promptly  following  up  the 
Russian  infantry,  as  it  crossed  the  bridge  in  retreat. 

Pressing  the  attack  with  great  vigour,  Leval' s  infantry 
broke  over  the  bridge,  forcing  the  guns  to  retire.  Presently 
rallying,  the  Russian  infantry  charged  again  with  the 
bayonet.  Carrying  the  enemy  before  them,  they  retook  the 
hotly  contested  bridge,  in  a  desperate  hand-to-hand  fight  on 
it  and  the  causeway.  One  Russian  company,  in  the  heat  of 
the  moment  following  across  the  bridge,  was  almost  destroyed, 
and  forced  to  retire. 

Vivier,  during  this  period,  had  not  made  much  progress, 
though  some  French  accounts  pretend  that  he  succeeded 
in  taking  the  heights  on  the  left  bank,  thus  leaving  the 
passage  open  to  Leval,  and  inflicting  heavy  loss  on  the 
enemy.  The  Russians,  on  the  other  hand,  say  a  fresh  attack 
on  the  bridge  was  repulsed.  Soult  himself  says  that,  though 
he  drove  the  enemy  across  the  bridge,  and  Viviers'  flank 
attack  compelled  him  to  retire,  yet  the  division  of  Leval 
bivouacked  that  night  on  the  heights  above  Bergfried,  on 
the  right  bank,  keeping  only  outposts  on  the  left  bank. 
Legrand  was  at  Spiegelberg  and  Braunswalde,  one  brigade 
at  each  place.  St.  Hilaire,  who  in  the  morning  had  had  a 
successful  brush  with  the  enemy,  was  at  Kaltflies. 

Soult's  account  vouches  for  the  finding  of  800  dead 
Russians  on  the  field,  and  puts  his  own  loss  at  300.  The 
losses  were  probably  more  equal.* 

Bergfried  was  certainly  not  the  decided  success  that 
Napoleon  represented  it  to  be.  Even  accepting  the  account 
most  favourable  to  the  French,  they  had  done  no  more  than 
get  across  the  river,  and  could  not  risk  occupying  the  farther 
bank  in  force  at  night.  The  attack,  commencing  only  an 
hour  and  a  half  before  sunset,  was  too  late  to  enable  Soult 
to  take  part,  on  that  day,  in  the  fight  at  Jonkowo.     As, 

*  Soult,  Arch.  Hut. 


MOVEMENTS    UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.      151 

however,  he  had  reached  a  position  threatening  Bennigsen's 
left  rear,  the  position  at  Jonkowo  was  no  longer  tenable. 

In  front  of  Bennigsen,  Napoleon  confined  his  operations 
to  a  delaying  action,  awaiting  the  expected  turning  move- 
ment of  Soult  and  Davout.  Nothing  beyond  a  desultory 
exchange  of  artillery  fire  occurred  in  this  part  of  the  field. 

The  Emperor  still  hoped  that  Bennigsen  would  remain  to 
fight  next  day,  in  which  case,  with  Davout  and  Soult 
descending  on  his  rear,  he  must  almost  certainly  have  been 
destroyed. 

At  daybreak  on  the  4th,  the  Emperor  moved  forward, 
Murat  in  front  of  the  centre,  Ney  on  the  right  of  Jonkowo, 
Augereau  on  the  left,  Soult, from  Bergfried,  towards  Mondtken. 
It  soon  appeared  that  Bennigsen,  aware  not  only  of  Soult's 
presence  at  Bergfried,  but  also  of  the  capture  of  Guttstadt  by 
Guyot  on  the  previous  evening,  had  retreated  during  the 
night,  leaving  only  a  strong  rear-guard  to  waste  Napoleon's 
time  by  inducing  him  to  deploy  for  battle.  The  course  which 
he  followed,  in  retreating  northwards,  was  Bennigsen's  only 
chance  of  assuring  his  communications  with  Koenigsberg, 
which  were  seriously  compromised  by  the  loss  of  Bergfried, 
and  by  Davout's  advance   on  Guttstadt. 

The  Eussians  marched  in  three  columns,  under  Sacken, 
Gallitzin,  and  Tutchkow,  on  Wolfsdorf  and  Arensdorf. 

The  rear-guard  followed,  also  in  three  columns,  under  the 
general  command  of  Bagration ;  Bagavout  on  the  right, 
Markow  in  the  centre,  Barclay  de  Tolly  on  the  left.  They 
were  followed  and  harassed  all  day  by  Ney,  Murat,  and 
Soult. 

A  sharp  cavalry  fight  occurred  between  Ney  and  Bagavout 
at  Waltersmiihl.  Bagavout,  reinforced  by  Bagration,  and 
touching  Markow's  column,  kept  up  a  running  fight  till 
nightfall  put  an  end  to  it. 

Murat  pushed  on  to  Deppen,  whence  he  drove  the  enemy 
after  a  cavalry  combat. 

Soult,  closely  following  the  Russian  left  column,  and 


152  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

frequently  attacking  it,  reached  at  nightfall,  Heiligenthal, 
Ankendorf,  and  Alt  Garschen.  Davout,  with  Friant's  division 
and  his  light  cavalry  (Marulaz'),  reached  Rosengarten  in  rear 
of  Soult ;  Morand's  division  at  Wartenburg,  Gudin's,  towards 
Oertelsberg.*  Augereau  bivouacked  at  Pupkaim,  behind 
Murat. 

Bennigsen,  still  anxious  for  the  junction  of  Lestocq,  who, 
with  the  longer  distance  he  had  to  traverse,  had  only  reached 
Liebstadt  f  on  the  evening  of  the  4th,  once  more  took  up  a 
position,  as  if  for  battle  on  the  morrow,  at  Wolfsdorf,  on  the 
road  from  Liebstadt  to  Guttstadt.  The  news  of  the  French 
occupation  of  Guttstadt,  and  his  consequent  anxiety  for  his 
communications,  decided  him  once  more  to  make  a  night 
march,  leaving  Lestocq  to  his  fate. 

Early  on  the  morning  of  the  5th  he  marched  through 
Arensdorf  on  Frauendorf,  halting  1£  miles  short  of  it,  at 
Burgerswalde. 

Napoleon,  convinced  that  Bennigsen  was  making  for 
Landsberg,  continued  to  manoeuvre  by  his  right  with  the 
corps  of  Soult  and  Davout,  whilst  Ney  and  Murat  delayed 
the  Russian  rear-guard.  The  two  wings  were  connected  by 
the  Guard  and  Augereau's  corps,  under  the  Emperor's  imme- 
diate command.  Davout  was  ordered  to  march  direct  on 
Guttstadt ;  Soult  to  pursue  between  Guttstadt  and  Liebstadt, 
towards  Arensdorf,  but  in  touch  with  Davout's  left ;  Murat 
to  reconnoitre  towards  Liebstadt  and  Wolfsdorf,  attacking 
the  enemy  with  his  main  body  should  he  find  him  in  position. 
Ney  would  push  the  enemy  towards  Wolfsdorf  and  Arensdorf. 

Ney  had  scarcely  started,  when  it  was  reported  that  there 
was  a  strong  hostile  force  on  his  left,  south  of  Liebstadt, 
seeking  to  cross  the  Passarge.     The  Emperor  at  once  ordered 

*  Davout,  p.  152. 

t  Lestocq  reached  Deutsch  Eylau  from  Freystadt  on  the  morning  of  the 
3rd  February.  Later  in  the  day  he  was  at  Osterode,  where  he  received  a  despatch 
from  Bennigsen,  urging  his  junction  with  the  Russian  right.  On  the  4th,  he 
was  marching  through  the  defile  between  the  Marien  and  Mahrung  lakes,  with 
outposts  towaids  the  passages  at  Deppen  and  Waltersdorf. 


MOVEMENTS   UP  TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.      153 

him,  with  his  two  divisions  and  Lasalle's  light  cavalry,  to  the 
left  bank  of  the  Passarge,  towards  Liebstadt.  At  11  a.m.  he 
was  attacked  by  Lestocq's  advanced  troops,*  and  driven 
back  into  the  Waltersdorf  defile.  A  wood,  in  which  was 
the  French  advanced  guard,  was  stormed  and  taken.  Ney, 
arriving  with  his  whole  force  in  three  columns,  attacked  the 
wood,  and  drove  the  Prussians  from  it  with  heavy  loss. 
Continuing  the  pursuit  till  dusk,  he  forced  the  enemy  f  to 
retreat  between  the  lakes  to  Mohrungen. 

Ney  had  only  defeated  an  advanced  guard  which  was 
trying  to  cross  towards  Bennigsen's  supposed  position. 
Lestocq,  with  the  main  body,  succeeded  in  reaching  Wusen, 
on  the  right  bank  of  the  Passarge.  Ney  arrived  at  Liebstadt, 
thus  cutting  off  the  advanced  guard  which  he  had  driven  on 
Mohrungen.  { 

Whilst  these  events  were  occurring  on  the  French  left, 
Bennigsen,  detaching  a  force  §  to  hold  Heilsberg  and  protect 
his  left  flank,  continued  his  retreat  on  Landsberg,  his  rear- 
guard constantly  stopping  to  fight.  He  took  position  for  the 
night  at  Frauendorf,  his  rear-guard  strongly  posted  at  the 
entrance  of  the  woods  1 J  miles  short  of  it. 

Soult,  reaching  Freymarkt,  through  Wolfsdorf  and  Arens- 
dorf,  had  an  advanced  guard  of  2  battalions,  and  his  light 

*  5  or  6  battalions,  3  cavalry  regiments,  and  a  horse  artillery  battery. 

t  Dumas  (xvii.  355)  says  2000  prisoners  and  16  guns  were  taken,  besides 
killed  and  wounded.  Hcepfner  (iii.  211)  shows  that  this  is  an  exaggeration. 
Only  8  guns  were  engaged  on  the  Prussian  side.  On  the  6th  February,  at 
3  a.m.,  Berthier  wrote  to  Bernadotte  that  Ney  had  taken  3000  prisoners  from 
Lestocq,  on  the  road  between  Schlitt  and  Liebstadt,  and  had  pursued  him 
towards  Mohrungen.  Bernadotte  was  urged  to  fall  upon,  and  complete  the  ruin 
of  this  beaten  corps,  thus  allowing  Ney  to  join  the  Emperor's  left  (Berthier's 
correspondence,  Arch.  Hist).  Jomini  (Vis  de  Napoleon,  ii.  357)  says  Lestocq 
lost  16  guns  and  many  prisoners. 

X  Napoleon  was  by  no  means  certain  what  troops  had  opposed  Ney.  This 
was  perhaps  due  to  the  fact  that  Lestocq  had  Russians  with  him  as  well  as 
Prussians.  The  Emperor  (Corr.  11,781)  writes  to  Talleyrand  that  his  only  fear 
is  that  it  is  nothing  but  the  Prussians  whom  Ney  has  intercepted. 

§  3000  men  (Wilson,  p.  93).  Davout  (p.  154)  puts  the  force  at  4  Russian 
regiments,  several  thousand  cavalry,  and  20  guns. 


154  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

cavalry,  a  mile  or  two  farther  on.  Murat,  after  aiding  in 
Key's  fight,  also  reached  Freymarkt. 

Davout  sent  Marulaz,  with  a  handful  of  cavalry,  to 
Heilsberg,  which  he  occupied  without  opposition,  but  was 
presently  driven  out  and  back  on  Keichenberg.  Morand's 
division  and  Gudin's  reached  Guttstadt;  Friant's,  with 
Davout  himself,  arrived  at  Benern  and  Freymarkt,  where  it 
joined  Soult.  On  its  march,  news  reached  it  of  Bennigsen's 
detachment  moving  to  Heilsberg. 

Continuing  his  retreat  during  the  night  of  the  5th-6th 
February,  Bennigsen  reached  Landsberg. 

On  the  morning  of  the  6th,  Napoleon  detached  Davout 
with  Morand's  division  against  Heilsberg;  Friant's  follow- 
ing on  Launau.  Just  as  Davout  had  succeeded  in  ejecting 
the  enemy  from  Heilsberg,  Friant  appeared  from  Launau  and 
took  up  the  pursuit,  with  Marulaz,  ^towards  Eylau,  inflicting 
some  injury  on  the  enemy  on  the  road.  Gudin  only  reached 
Heilsberg  after  it  was  captured. 

On  Davout's  left,  Durosnel's  light  cavalry  brigade  main- 
tained his  communication  with  the  corps  moving  on 
Landsberg.  The  latter  marched  in  a  single  column,  Murat 
in  advance,  followed  by  Soult  and  Augereau,  through 
Frauendorf. 

ACTION   OF   HOF,   6TH   FEBRUARY. 

Bennigsen,  himself  going  on  to  Landsberg,  had  left  his 
rearguard   between  Glandau  and  Hof.      Barclay  de   Tolly, 
there  commanded  4  infantry  regiments,  3  of  cavalry,  2  of 
cossacks,  and  a  horse  artillery  battery. 

In  his  front  he  stationed  1  battalion  of  jagers,  with  2 
squadrons  of  hussars,  and  2  guns. 

About  3  p.m.  the  head  of  the  French  column  appeared, 
led  by  Murat.  The  Bussian  advanced  force,  now  reinforced 
by  2  more  squadrons,  was  quickly  driven  in. 

Barclay,  finding  that  he  would  have  to  sacrifice  himself 
for  the  benefit  of  the  army,  drew  up  bis  little  force  in  front 


MOVEMENTS    UP   TO    TIIE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.       155 

of  Hof,  behind  a  marshy  stream.  Immediately  behind  the 
bridge,  he  placed  a  hussar  regiment,  supported  in  rear  by  2 
regiment*  of  infantry,  and  another  of  hussars.  On  the  wooded 
heights  to  his  right,  he  posted  a  jager  regiment  with  some 
hussars ;  on  his  left,  another  jager  regiment,  also  in  a  wood. 

The  French  skirmishers,  advancing  about  3  p.m.*  against 
the  Russian  left,  were  driven  back  when  their  opponents  had 
been  strengthened  by  one  of  the  jager  regiments  from  the 
centre. 

Murat  next,  leading  the  dragoons  he  had  with  him  and 
followed  by  d'Hautpoult's  cuirassiers,  hurried  across  the 
bridge.  Their  formation  constricted  by  the  narrow  defile,  the 
dragoons  were  overwhelmed,  before  they  could  reform  beyond 
it,  by  the  onslaught  of  the  Eussian  hussars  and  cossacks,  and 
were  carried  back  in  confusion  across  the  bridge.  The 
reserve  Russian  regiment,  following  over  the  bridge  without 
orders,  was  in  turn  overthrown  beyond  it,  and  pushed  back 
across  it  by  the  French.  The  flight  of  this  regiment  broke 
the  other  also,  and  both  were  hotly  pursued  until  their  horse 
artillery  brought  the  French  cavalry  to  a  halt,  and  compelled 
them  to  retire.f  Again  reinforced,  Murat  once  more 
advanced,  but  was  checked  by  an  infantry  regiment  in 
squares.  This  afforded  time  for  the  rally  of  the  Russian 
hussars  who  yet  again  drove  off  the  dragoons.  At  last,  the 
cuirassiers,  led  by  d'Hautpoult,  came  to  their  rescue,  and  by 

*  Wilson,  p.  95.  The  Russians  placed  8  picked  battalions  with  their  right 
on  Hof,  and  their  left  on  a  wood,  their  front  covered  by  a  deep  ravine  and  8 
guns.  The  Emperor  ordered  the  cavalry  to  attack  without  waiting  for  Soult 
(Marbot,  i.  254). 

t  Soult  says  the  first  cavalry  attacks  were  repulsed,  but  dHautpoult's 
cuirassiers  bore  down  everything  before  them,  and  broke  a  Russian  square. 
Ledru's  brigade  reached  the  Hof  plateau  at  the  same  time  as  the  cuirassiers 
{Arch.  Hist.).  Marbot  (i.  254)  says  the  Emperor  thought  it  better  to  attack 
with  the  cavalry  without  waiting  for  Soult.  The  light  cavalry  was  first 
repulsed,  then  the  dragoons ;  finally  d'Hautpoult's  cuirassiers  crashed  through  all 
opposition. 

Speaking  of  Murat's  handling  of  the  cavalry  at  Hof,  Jomini  (Vie  de 
Napoleon,  ii.  356)  remarks  that  he  insisted  on  passing  his  brigades,  in  succession, 
through  the  defile  of  a  marshy  brook,  thereby  exposing  them  to  defeat  in  detail. 


156  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

sheer  weight  bore  down  the  Russian  dragoons,  driving  them 
in  wild  confusion  on  the  infantry  squares,  killing,  wounding, 
and  capturing  many  of  the  Russian  horsemen.  Two 
standards  and  4  guns  also  fell  into  the  hands  of  the  victors.* 

Barclay  hastened  through  Hof  to  take  a  fresh  position  on 
the  other  side.  On  his  right  the  jager  battalion  on  the 
wooded  height  had  been  surrounded,  and  was  compelled  to 
force  its  way  with  the  bayonet  to  another  wood  in  rear. 
In  Hof,  Barclay  found  5  fresh  battalions,  which  Bennigsen 
had  sent  with  Dolgoruki  to  his  assistance.  Leaving  him 
there,  Barclay  went  to  his  left  wing,  where  the  French, 
strongly  attacking  the  wood,  were  endeavouring  to  cut  off 
from  Landsberg  the  battalion  stationed  in  it. 

At  the  same  time  Dolgoruki  was  attacked  in  the  centre. 
Reinforced  by  Gallitzin  f  with  two  cuirassier  regiments,  he 
succeeded  in  holding  his  ground  till  nightfall,  when  the 
whole  rear-guard  fell  back  over  the  little  brook  which  crosses 
the  road  between  Hof  and  Landsberg.  On  either  side  of  this, 
the  contending  armies  faced  one  another,  during  the  night,  in 
close  contact. 

The  Russian  loss  in  this  engagement  was  5  guns,  2 
standards,  and  more  that  2000  men 4  That  of  the  French 
was  rather  higher. 

*  The  Russian  regiment  thus  defeated  was  the  Petersburg  dragoons.  In  its 
flight  it  broke  two  of  the  supporting  battalions,  riding  over  them,  and  exposing 
them  to  terrible  loss  at  the  hands  of  the  pursuing  French  cavalry  ( Wilson,  pp. 
95,  96). 

t  This  Prince  Gallitzin,  whose  death  in  this  action  is  mentioned  by  Wilson, 
was  not  the  commander  of  the  Russian  cavalry,  but  a  younger  man  of  the  same 
name  who  had  just  joined  the  army. 

X  Soult  (Arch.  Hist.)  gives  the  Russian  loss  at  8000,  of  whom  3000  killed, 
and  1500  prisoners.  It  seems  that  this  must  be  an  exaggeration.  His  own 
losses  he  gives  at — 

Legrand's  division        1750 

Light  cavalry 210 

Totals        ...      1960 
but  this  takes  no  account  of  the  losses  among  the  dragoons  and  cuirassiers.    He 
also  gives  the  guns  taken  as  11.    The  Russian  losses  in  the  text  are  those  given 
by  Hccpfner  (iii.  216). 


MOVEMENTS   UP   TO    THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.      157 

On  this  day,  Ney  was  still  opposed  to  Lestocq,  who 
marched  to  Engelswalde,  near  the  Mehlsack-Zinten  road,  with 
his  rear-guard  at  Korpen  and  Bornitt,  towards  the  Passarge. 
He  was  not  molested  on  the  6th  by  Ney,  who,  from  Liebstadt, 
reached  Wormditt,  where  he  received  an  order  from  Napoleon 
to  march  on  Landsberg,  and  form  the  left  of  the  army  in  the 
battle  which  the  obstinate  resistance  at  Hof  had  led  the 
Emperor  to  believe  would  be  fought  next  day  at  Landsberg. 
Davout  was,  at  first,  ordered  to  march  on  Landsberg  on  the 
7th  for  the  expected  battle,  but  was  later  diverted  towards 
Eylau.* 

Napoleon  still  believed  that  Bernadotte  was  following,  and 
would  account  for,  the  Prussians.  As  a  matter  of  fact, 
Bernadotte,  owing  to  the  capture  of  the  despatch  of  the  31st 
January,  had  only  received  orders  on  the  3rd  February,  and 
was  still  two  marches  behind,  at  Mohrungen.f 

But  Bennigsen  had  no  intention  of  fighting  at  Landsberg. 
During  the  night  he  marched  for  Pr.  Eylau.  The  rear-guard, 
under  Bagration,  did  not  leave  Landsberg  till  8  a.m.,  when, 
after  an  hour's  fighting,  it  was  driven  out  by  Murat  and 
Soult. 

Bennigsen,  marching,  during  the  latter  part  of  the  night, 
in  a  single  column  on  the  Landsberg- Eylau  road,  was  com- 
pelled to  clear  it  by  sending  his  heavy  artillery  round  to 
the  left  to  rejoin  him  at  Eylau. 

Napoleon  promptly  followed  with  Murat,  Soult,  and 
Augereau,  countermanding  the  orders  to  Davout  and  Ney  to 
join  his  right  and  left  flanks  at  Landsberg.  Ney  was  ordered 
to  march  from  Landsberg  on  Kreuzburg.t 

*  Davout,  pp.  156, 157. 

t  Bernadotte,  Arch.  Hist.  His  marches  in  his  fresh  advance  were:  4th 
February,  Strasburg  to  Lobau ;  5th,  at  Lobau ;  6th,  Lobau  to  Osterode ;  7th, 
Osterode  to  Mohmngen;  7th,  Mohrungen  to  Reichertswalde. 

%  He  was  at  Liebstadt  on  the  5th ;  on  the  6th  at  Wormditt,  behind  the 
Drewenz  (the  small  stream  near  Wormditt),  with  a  detachment  at  Pr. 
Holland ;  on  the  7th  he  bivouacked  outside  Landsberg,  on  the  Kreuzberg  road 
(Ney,  Arch.  Hist.,  "  journaux  de  marche  ")• 


CHAPTEK  II. 

The  Battle  of  Eylau. 

(a)  ACTION  OF  THE  7TH  FEBRUARY. 

THE  road  from  Landsberg  to  Koenigsberg  passes,  for  the 
first  9  miles,  through  alternate  plain  and  forest,  finally 
emerging,  in  a  clearing,  about  a  mile  and  a  half  before  it 
reaches  the  large  village  of  Preussisch  Eylau.  In  front  of 
this  forest  there  stretches,  to  the  north,  east,  and  south,  an 
undulating  plain,  the  greatest  elevation  on  which  amounts 
to  no  more  than  a  hillock.  In  the  foreground,  on  the  left 
of  the  road,  is  the  lake  of  Tenknitten,  extending  half  a  mile 
north-west  to  the  village  of  the  same  name ;  to  the  right  is 
the  Waschkeiten  lake.  The  space  of  1000  yards  between 
the  two  lakes  is  occupied  by  slightly  elevated  ground,  with 
a  fairly  marked  height  across  the  road. 

Half  a  mile  before  the  road  reaches  Eylau,  it  begins 
to  descend  a  slope  to  the  valley,  in  which  the  village  is 
situated.  Viewed  from  this  point,  the  depression  bears 
a  strong  resemblance  to  some  of  the  open  valleys  of1 
Norfolk  and  Suffolk.*  The  height  of  the  near  edge  is 
inconsiderable;  that  of  the  farther  side,  beyond  Pr.  Eylau, 
still  less.  The  substantial  village  lies  chiefly  in  front, 
stretching  some  little  way  right  and  left  of  the  road. 
Towards  the  right  of  it,  the  church  and  cemetery  stand  on 
a  well-marked  mound.     The  houses,  as  well  as  the  church, 

*  Jomini  describes  the  valley  as  "an  undulating  plain  bounded  on  three 
sides  by  more  accentuated  country  and  hills,  among  which  are  several  lakes  " 
(Viede  Napoleon,  ii.  360). 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  159 

were,  in  1807,  solidly  constructed,  and  afforded  good  cover  to 
a  force  defending  them. 

Through  the  valley,  from  Eothenen  a  mile  south-east  of 
Eylau,  past  Althof  two  miles  north-west  of  it,  flows  a  little 
stream,  the  Pasmar.  Under  the  near  slope  of  the  valley  is  a 
long  marshy  lake.  There  are  several  other  ponds  in  the 
valley,  and  on  the  eastern  plateau. 

On  Eylau  converge  the  roads  from  Landsberg,  Kreuzberg, 
Koenigsberg,  Friedland,  Bartenstein,  and  Heilsberg.  Beyond 
the  village  the  ground  soon  begins  to  rise  again,  and  attains 
the  crest  of  the  opposite  plateau  at  a  distance  of  1000  paces 
from  the  outskirts  of  Eylau.  This  side  of  the  valley  resembles 
the  other  in  contour.  Its  crest  is  rather  lower  on  the 
Landsberg-Koenigsberg  road,  somewhat  higher  farther  east 
by  the  village  of  Serpallen,  where  the  highest  point  in  the 
neighbourhood,  the  Kreegeberg,  overlooks  the  whole  scene. 
On  the  arc  of  a  circle,  drawn  with  the  Eylau  church  as  its 
centre  and  a  radius  of  2500  yards,  will  be  found  the  village 
of  Schloditten,  on  the  Koenigsberg  road;  the  hamlet  of 
Anklappen  on  that  to  Domnau  and  Friedland ;  and  Serpallen 
in  the  valley,  a  little  to  the  left  of  the  road  to  Bartenstein. 
Behind  Schloditten  is  Schmoditten ;  *  behind  Anklappen 
lie  Kutschitten  and  Lampasch ;  to  the  north  of  Serpallen  is 
Klein  Sausgarten:  all  places  of  importance  in  the  great 
battle. 

The  horizon  beyond  Schmoditten  is  bounded  by  forest; 
there  are  extensive  birch  woods  in  the  centre  of  the  triangle, 
the  angles  of  which  are  represented  by  Anklappen,  Kutschitten, 
and  Klein  Sausgarten, — more  woods  beyond  Serpallen,  and 
between  ltothenen  and  the  western  edge  of  the  valley ;  behind 
the  spectator  is  the  forest  through  which  has  passed  the  road 
from  Landsberg.  In  summer,  all  this  scene  is  a  sheet  of 
ripening  wheat  and  rye,  interspersed  with  green  meadows, 
and  picked  out  by  the  darker  colours  of  the  woods,  and  by 

•  As  will  be  seen  presently,  Dumas  appears  to  have  confused  these  two  very 
similar  names. 


160  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

the  blue  of  the  lakes  and  ponds — a  scene  to  which  the  horrors 
of  war  seem  wholly  foreign.*  Very  different  was  the  view 
on  this  7th  of  February:  cold  and  desolate,  much  more 
appropriate  as  a  setting  to  the  bloody  scenes  which  were  to 
be  enacted  there  in  the  next  few  hours.  The  whole  surface 
of  the  country  was  wrapped  in  a  white  pall  of  deep  snow, 
against  the,  as  yet,  unstained  purity  of  which  the  black  woods, 
the  villages,  and  the  troops  f  stood  out  in  sharp  relief.  The 
undulations  and  the  elevations,  never  very  strongly  marked, 
were  even  less  discernible  than  when  colour  and  shade  were 
there  to  lend  assistance  to  the  eye. J  The  lakes  and  streams 
were  obliterated  by  the  thick  covering  of  snow  which  lay  on 
their  frozen  surface.  So  firmly  were  they  locked  in  the  grasp 
of  frost,  and  so  completely  concealed  by  the  snow,  that  troops 
of  all  arms,  horses,  waggons,  guns,  passed  over  their  frozen 
surface,  without  the  men  being  aware  that  water  lay  beneath 
their  feet.  There  was  no  repetition  of  the  shelling  of  the 
ice  at  Austerlitz,  which  played  such  ghastly  havoc  with  the 
Kussians  there.  The  gunners  knew  not  there  was  ice ;  had 
they  known  it,  it  is  by  no  means  certain  that  they  could  have 
broken  it  through  the  three  feet  or  more  of  snow  protecting 
it  from  all  but  a  plunging  fire  which  could  not  be  brought, 
in  that  flat  country,  to  bear  on  it.§ 

*  "  In  our  pursuit  of  the  Russians  (in  June)  we  passed  by  Eylau.  Three 
months  before,  we  had  left  the  fields  covered  with  snow  and  corpses ;  now, 
they  presented  a  lovely  carpet  of  green,  studded  with  flowers  "  (Marbot,  i.  276). 

t  Larrey  (p.  84)  remarks  that  Baron  Gros'  picture  of  Napoleon  at  Eylau 
very  correctly  shows  how  the  dead  and  wounded  on  the  field  showed  out  in ' 
sharp  contrast  to  the  background  of  snow. 

X  This  remark  is  based  on  a  photograph  taken  of  Eylau  from  the  descent  of 
the  Landsberg  road  in  March,  1901,  when  the  battlefield,  as  in  February,  1807, 
was  covered  with  snow.  The  picture  of  Napoleon  at  Eylau  by  Baron  Gros 
conveys  the  same  idea.  It  may  be  remarked  that  this  large  painting  appears  to 
represent  the  moment  just  before  the  attack  on  Eylau  on  the  7th.  Bagration's 
troops  are  passing  in  retreat  through  the  intervals  of  Barclay  de  Tolly's  division, 
drawn  up  to  cover  the  retreat,  with  guns  posted  on  the  small  elevation  in  front 
of  the  church. 

§  As  will  be  seen  shortly,  the  18th  Regiment  of  Soult's  corps  came  under 
artillery  fire  (chiefly  grape,  it  is  true),  when  on  the  ice,  without  its  being  broken. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  161 

Such  was  the  scene  which  met  the  eyes  of  Bennigsen's 
troops  as  they  wearily  left  the  forest,  after  their  9  miles 
night  march  from  Landsberg,  on  the  forenoon  of  7th  February. 

Passing  across  the  western  plain  and  the  valley,  Bennig- 
sen  carried  the  main  body  of  his  army  to  the  eastern  slope, 
and  there  ranged  it,  ready  for  the  great  battle  which  he 
had  determined  to  fight.  To  cover  his  operations,*  he  left 
a  strong  rear-guard  on  the  Ziegelhof  plateau,  as  that  to  the 
west  was  styled.  This  force  was  commanded  by  Bagration, 
who  posted  it  thus.f 

On  the  rising  ground  crossing  the  road,  a  short  way  after 
it  passes  the  hamlet  of  Grunhofchen,  was  the  horse  artillery, 
commanding  the  mouth  of  the  defile  between  the  woods. 
Immediately  behind  the  guns  were,  on  the  right,  standing 
on  the  frozen  surface  of  the  Tenknitten  lake,  one  grenadier 
regiment;  in  the  centre,  and  on  the  left,  two  musketeer 
regiments.  In  second  line  was  another  grenadier  regiment. 
In  front  of  the  guns,  covering  the  whole  of  this  line,  and 
passing  back,  leftwards,  to  and  along  the  north-western  shore 
of  the  Waschkeiten  lake,  a  jager  regiment  was  extended  in 
line  of  skirmishers.  Behind  the  Tenknitten  lake,  north  of 
the  road,  was  another  musketeer  regiment,  with  some  artillery 
in  front  of  it,  on  the  slope  down  to  the  lake.  Behind  this 
advanced  force,  not  far  from  where  the  descent  to  the  Eylau 
valley  commences,  were  ranged  the  troops  of  the  8th  division, 
their  left  resting  on  the  Heilsberg  road,  their  right  on  that 
of  Landsberg.  In  front  of  the  left  were  14  guns,  on  the 
edge  of  the  Waschkeiten  lake.  In  the  space  between  that 
lake  and  the  long  lake  at  the  foot  of  the  slope,  25  squadrons 

*  This  was  one  motive  assuredly.  Bennigsen  also  assigns,  correctly  no 
doubt,  as  his  motive  the  protection  of  the  line  of  march  of  his  heavy  artillery. 
Owing  to  his  having  to  march  from  Landsberg  on  a  single  road,  he  was  forced, 
in  order  to  avoid  blocking  his  column,  to  send  his  heavy  guns  by  a  more 
circuitous  route  to  the  north.  (See  Russian  official  account,  printed  by 
Wihon,  p.  238.) 

t  Bennigsen  began  his  retreat  from  Landsberg  at  dusk  on  the  6th,  and  was 
in  position  at  Eylau  by  noon  on  the  7th  (  Wihony  p.  96). 

M 


162  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

stood  in  three  lines.  On  the  right,  beyond  the  Landsberg 
road,  were  10  more  squadrons.  Further  to  the  right  front, 
behind  the  village  of  Tenknitten,  were  posted  the  Petersburg 
dragoons,  who  had  suffered  such  a  disastrous  defeat  on  the 
previous  day. 

Barclay  de  Tolly  was  charged  with  the  defence  of  Eylau 
itself.  Part  of  his  artillery  held  the  church  height  on  his  left, 
covered  by  infantry  in  front  and  on  the  left.  The  rest  of  his 
infantry  and  artillery  were  in  Eylau,  and  at  the  saw-mill  on 
its  right  rear. 

It  was  2  p.m.  when  Murat's  cavalry,  followed  by  the  head 
of  Soult's  corps,  began  to  arrive  at  the  edge  of  the  woods 
about  Griinhofchen.  After  the  experience  of  the  previous 
day  at  Hof,  the  cavalry  did  not  hurry  alone  to  the  attack 
of  the  position.  Soult  sent  forward  on  the  left  the  18th 
Infantry,  on  the  right  the  46th,  against  the  ridge  across  the 
road.*  Schinner's  and  Vivier's  brigades,  as  they  came  up, 
moved  to  the  right,  through  the  wood  to  Grunberg  farm,  to 
turn  the  Kussian  left.  Augereau,  arriving  later,  was  ordered 
to  turn  the  enemy's  right  by  Tenknitten.  At  first,  however, 
the  18th  and  46th  were  unsupported  in  their  attack  on  the 
centre.  The  18th,  somewhat  in  advance  of  the  46th,  crossed 
the  end  of  the  frozen  Tenknitten  lake  under  a  heavy  artillery 
fire.  Changing  direction  to  the  right,  against  the  Eussian 
position,  and  already  shaken,  they  were  charged  with  the 
bayonet.  To  complete  their  discomfiture,  the  Petersburg 
dragoons,  burning  to  avenge  their  overthrow  at  Hof,  crossedv 
the  lake  and  fell  impetuously  on  the  left  of  the  18th,  which 
had  not  time  to  form  squares.f     It  suffered  severely,  and 

*  This  action  is  described  in  Soult's  report,  Arch.  Hist. 

t  According  to  Hoepfner  (iii.  223)  both  battalions  of  the  18th  were  over- 
thrown by  this  charge.  Dumas  (xviii.  7)  says  only  one  battalion  was  broken. 
This  is  also  Napoleon's  version  (Corr.  11,796).  Soult's  report  (Arch.  Hist.)  is 
not  precise  on  the  point.  He  admits  the  18th  lost  one  of  its  eagles,  but  says  he 
believes  it  was  buried  in  the  snow  when  the  regiment  broke ;  it  might  be  found 
at  the  bottom  of  the  lake  near  the  road,  as  it  would  have  sunk  when  the  ice 
melted.  This  remark  shows  that  the  18th  were  actually  on  the  frozen  lake 
when  attacked,  and  that  artillery  fire  did  not  break  the  ice. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  ETLAU.  163 

was  thrown  into  complete  disorder.  Fortunately  for  this 
regiment,  Klein's  dragoons  came  on  the  scene,  and,  charging 
the  Kussians,  relieved  the  pressure  on  it,  though  not  till  the 
disaster  had  occurred. 

Just  after  this  catastrophe,  the  46th  reached  the  Russian 
front.  It  was  attacked  several  times,  but  succeeded  in  main- 
taining order  in  its  retirement. 

Soult,  placing  his  guns  on  the  rising  ground  about 
Scheweken  and  Griinhofchen,  opened  fire  on  the  Russians. 
Schinner  and  Vivier  had,  by  this  time,  got  forward  in  the 
wood  on  the  right,  which  had  delayed  their  progress. 
Augereau,  too,  was  moving  on  Tenknitten.  When,  therefore, 
the  attack  on  the  Russian  centre  on  the  road  was  renewed 
by  the  rest  of  the  divisions  of  Leval  and  Legrand,  supported 
by  St.  Hilaire's,  the  Russians,  feeling  the  danger  on  both 
flanks,  were  already  retiring  on  Bagration's  main  body  near 
the  edge  of  the  valley. 

Vivier  and  Schinner  moved  on  both  sides  of  the  Wasch- 
Jkeiten  lake.  The  former  overpowered  the  cavalry  between 
the  lake  and  the  valley,  thus  outflanking  Bagration  and 
compelling  him  to  retire  on  Eylau.  There  his  men  passed 
through  the  intervals  of  Barclay's  troops,  drawn  out  at  and 
in  front  of  the  village. 

Napoleon  was  now  master  of  the  whole  plateau — from  the 
forest  to  the  edge  of  the  valley.  His  loss  had  been  so  heavy 
that,  three  weeks  later,  when  the  Russians  again  returned  to 
Eylau,  they  found  a  hillock,  on  the  scene  of  Soult's  first 
attempt,  literally  cased  with  dead  bodies.*  The  opposing 
armies  were  ranged  on  opposite  sides  of  the  valley,  into 
which,  like  a  great  bastion  in  front  of  the  Russian  line, 
protruded  the  position  of  Barclay  de  Tolly. 

It  was  not  within  the  scope  of  Napoleon's  intentions  to 
storm  Eylau  that  night.  He  would  haVe  preferred  to  halt 
on  the  easily  defensible  position  of  the  western  plateau, 
until  the  arrival  of  Davout  on  his  right,  and  of  Ney  on  his 

*  Wilson,  p.  96. 


164  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

left,  should  enable  him  to  attack  Bennigsen  with  his  whole 
army.  Bernadotte,  he  hoped,  had  relieved  Ney  of  the  pursuit 
of  Lestocq.  Into  the  assault  of  Eylau  on  the  evening  of  the 
7th  he  was  forced  by  circumstances  beyond  his  control.  Part 
of  the  Keserve  cavalry  followed  the  retreating  Russians  into 
and  beyond  the  village,  so  did  some  of  Soult's  corps.  The 
action  there  became  so  severe  that  it  soon  reached  a  stage  at 
which  it  was  impossible  to  break  it  off.* 


*  The  statement  in  the  text  differs  from  most  of  the  previous  accounts,  and 
requires  proof. 

Wilson,  Alison,  Thiers,  Jomini,  and  Hcepfner,  all  assume  that  Napoleon 
designed  the  attack  on  Eylau  on  the  7th.  Dumas  goes  further,  saying, 
•'Napoleon,  gauging  the  necessity  of  its  (Eylau's)  occupation,  .  .  .  ordered 
Soult  to  drive  the  enemy  from  it." 

The  first  piece  of  evidence  in  favour  of  the  view  adopted  in  the  text  is  the 
statement  of  Marbot  (i.  255),  which,  taken  alone,  would  perhaps  not  outweigh 
the  authorities  quoted.  Marbot,  who  was  attached  to  Augereau's  staff, 
positively  states  that  he  heard  the  Emperor  remark  to  Augereau  on  the 
western  plateau,  "  They  wanted  me  to  carry  Eylau  this  evening,  but  I  do  not 
like  night  fighting ;  moreover,  I  do  not  wish  to  push  my  centre  too  far  forward 
before  Davout  has  come  up  with  the  right,  and  Ney  with  the  left.  I  shall  wait, 
therefore,  till  to-morrow,  on  this  high  ground,  which  can  be  defended  by 
artillery,  and  which  offers  an  excellent  position  for  our  infantry.  When  Ney 
and  Davout  are  in  line,  we  can  march  simultaneously  on  the  enemy."  In  this 
Augereau  expressed  his  concurrence.  Meanwhile,  the  Emperor's  personal 
baggage  having  come  up,  was,  owing  to  a  misunderstanding,  carried  forward 
into  Eylau.  The  Kussians  began  plundering  it,  Soult's  men  endeavoured  to 
rescue  it,  and  the  enemy,  believing  a  serious  attack  to  be  intended,  brought  up 
reinforcements.  The  battle  thus  developed  beyond  the  point  at  which  it  was 
possible  to  break  it  off.  Napoleon's  remark  is,  on  the  face  of  it,  eminently 
reasonable,  and  such  as  might  have  been  expected  from  him.  Augereau's 
report  makes  no  allusion  to  it ;  but,  it  must  be  remembered,  he  was  on  the  sick-: 
list  when  the  report  was  written,  and,  in  any  case,  he  would  not  necessarily 
record  a  remark  made  to  him  personally,  not  concerning  his  own  corps. 

The  next  item  of  evidence  is  the  Relation  d'un  Ttmoin  Oculaire.  This 
pamphlet  is  attributed  by  Sir  R.  Wilson  (p.  88,  note)  to  Napoleon  himself.  It 
was  published  in  Paris  in  1807,  and  obviously  must  have  been  approved  by  the 
Emperor,  if  not  inspired  by  him.  On  p.  9  the  following  remarks  occur :  "  The 
dispositions  for  turning  the  enemy's  rear-guard  were  no  longer  necessary  once 
the  rear-guard  had  rejoined  the  main  army.  The  Emperor  gave  orders  to 
remain  in  order  of  battle  on  the  plateau  of  Eylau.  But  Vivier's  brigade,  which 
had  been  ordered  to  turn  the  left  of  the  rear-guard,  advanced  to  the  Eylau 
cemetery,  and  there  found  itself  engaged." 

The  last  item  of  evidence  is  Soult's  account  of  the  operations  of  his  corps 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  165 

As  Bagration  and  Markow  retreated  through  Eylau,  they 
were  covered  by  Barclay's  men  and  guns  in  the  gardens  and 
houses  of  the  village.  Here  Markow  and  Bagavout  separated, 
the  latter  going  towards  Serpallen,  the  former  turning  to  the 
left  towards  Schloditten. 

Legrand's  and  part  of  Leval's  division,  both  of  Soult's 
corps,  arrived  in  front  of  Eylau  by  the  Landsberg  road,  and 
one  regiment  pushed  through,  but  was  promptly  charged  and 
driven  back.*  The  rest  encountered  a  strenuous  resistance 
from  Barclay's  infantry,  from  2  guns  at  the  junction  of  the 
Kreuzberg  and  Landsberg  roads,  and  from  the  artillery  in 
front  of  the  church. 

Whilst  they  were  vainly  endeavouring  to  get  forward  into 
the  streets,  Vivier's  brigade  was  reforming  in  several  columns 
on  the  ice-covered  lake  below  the  western  heights.  The  bank 
on  its  eastern  side  sheltered  them  from  the  artillery  at  the 
cemetery.  As  these  fresh  troops,  supported  by  St.  Hilaire's 
division,  advanced  to  the  storm  of  the  cemetery  and  church, 

(Arch.  Hist.).  He  says  the  Russians  were  followed  into  Eylau  by  part  of  the 
Reserve  cavalry  and  by  the  24th  infantry  of  his  own  corps,  which  pushed  into 
and  beyond  the  village,  but  was  driven  back  again.  An  impulse  had  been 
imparted  to  the  troops,  in  consequence  of  which  they  got  engaged  in  Eylau  to 
such  a  degree  that  it  was  impossible  to  withdraw  them  without  great  risk. 
Besides,  in  the  misery  in  which  the  troops  were,  Eylau,  with  its  shelter  and 
its  supplies,  was  an  irresistible  attraction  to  them.  Whatever  the  danger  of 
the  attack,  it  was  impossible  to  withdraw  the  infantry. 

The  whole  tone  of  the  report  (dated  Elbing,  15th  November,  1807)  is  that 
of  an  apology  for  a  movement  which  Soult  felt  to  be  undesirable,  and  knew  was 
against  the  Emperor's  wishes. 

The  cumulative  evidence  of  these  statements  of  eye-witnesses,  notwithstanding 
discrepancies  in  detail,  appears  to  lead  irresistibly  to  the  conclusion  that  the 
storming  of  the  village  was  forced  upon  the  Emperor  and  Soult  against  their 
better  judgment.  Once  taken,  Eylau  could  not  be  abandoned.  Besides,  by 
this  time,  the  Emperor  appears  to  have  been  led  to  believe  that  Bennigsen 
was  again  retreating  (Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  358). 

*  It  is  a  little  difficult  to  say  for  certain  what  happened  in  the  left  part  of 
Eylau.  Soult  (Arch.  Hist.)  says  the  24th  Regiment  passed  right  through  it, 
but,  being  attacked  on  the  farther  side,  was  driven  back  into  the  outskirts. 
This  seems  to  lend  some  colour  to  the  assertion  of  Wilson  (p.  96),  that  the 
village  was  at  first  evacuated  under  a  misapprehension  of  orders,  and  then 
re-occupied. 


166  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

the  combat  in  the  streets  became  more  and  more  embittered 
and  sanguinary.  At  5  p.m.  the  church  and  cemetery  were 
carried  by  storm,  Barclay  being  severely  wounded  in  the 
gallant  defence  which  he  made  there.  Vivier  had  previously 
succeeded  in  getting  into  the  cemetery,  but  had  been  forced 
out  by  a  counter-attack.  He  now  established  himself  in  the 
church  and  cemetery,  where  his  brigade  spent  the  night  sur- 
rounded by  the  dead  and  dying  victims  of  the  fearful  struggle.* 
Bagration  was  preparing  to  evacuate  the  rest  of  the  village, 
when  Somow,  with  the  4th  division,  was  sent  forward  from 
the  main  position  beyond,  to  retake  Eylau  at  any  cost.  Led 
by  Bagration  on  foot,  the  division  advanced  to  the  attack 
in  3  columns.  They  had  much  to  endure  from  the  French 
infantry  fire,  and  from  the  guns  which  swept  the  streets  with 
grape.  By  6  o'clock,  nevertheless,  they  had  succeeded  in 
recapturing  the  village.  Then  came  a  sudden  change.  At 
6.30,  Bennigsen  withdrew  the  4th  division  again  to  the  eastern 
heights,  covering  its  retirement  with  the  Archangel  regiment 
of  infantry  in  line  of  skirmishers,  and  with  two  battalions 
advanced,  on  its  right,  to  the  saw-mill.  Barclay  drew  off  to 
the  left  of  Bagavout  at  Serpallen;  and  Eylau,  once  more 
evacuated,  was  quietly  reoccupied  by  the  French  by  7  p.m.f 

The  firing  on  both  sides  died  fitfully  away  as  the  Bussians 
reached  their  station  on  the  uneven  edge  of  the  valley.  No 
attempt  to  follow  them  was  made,  but,  presently,  Napoleon 
moved  Legrand's  division  just  beyond  Eylau,  into  the 
space  between  the  Koenigsberg  and  the  Friedland  roads.. 
Schinner's  brigade  was  in  the  houses  near  the  church; 
Ferey's  held  the  left  of  the  village. 

From  the  church  height  towards  Bothenen,  St.  Hilaire's 
division  bivouacked  in  the  open.  Beyond  him,  on  the 
extreme   right,  Milhaud's   cavalry  occupied   the  ground  in 

*  Soult's  report,  Arch.  Hist. 

t  Dumas  fixes  the  final  occupation  of  Eylau  so  late  as  10  p.m.  (xviii.  8). 
Wilson  says  that  at  the  commencement  of  the  French  advance  on  Eylau  the 
village  was  evacuated  by  the  Russians,  owing  to  some  misapprehension  of  orders 
(  Wilson,  p.  96).    {Vide  supra,  p.  105,  note.) 


TEE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  167 

front  of  Kothenen  and  Zehsen.  Grouchy's  and  Klein's 
dragoons  were  behind  Eylau,  left  and  right  respectively  of 
the  Landsberg  road.  On  Ferey's  left,  were  the  cavalry 
brigades  of  Colbert,  Guyot,  Bruyere,  and  d'Hautpoult. 
Still  farther  to  the  left,  was  Durosnel's  cavalry  of  Augereau's 
corps. 

In  2nd  line  Augereau's  corps  bivouacked  in  and  in  front 
of  Storchnest  and  Tenknitten.  The  Guard  infantry  was  on 
the  heights  occupied  in  the  afternoon  by  Bagration's  main 
body ;  the  cavalry  of  the  Guard  on  the  right  of  the  Landsberg 
road,  in  line  with  its  infantry.* 

Bennigsen's  army  was  thus  disposed  for  the  night.  His 
first  line  extended  along  the  heights  from  Schloditten  to 
to  Serpallen,  passing  across  the  Friedland  road  at  a  distance 
of  only  1000  paces  from  Eylau.  f  The  ground,  it  must  be 
remarked,  was  not  an  even  glacis-like  slope,  such  as  was 
that  in  front  of  St.  Privat  in  1870.  It  was  a  series  of 
hillocks  and  slight  transverse  depressions,  like  that  of  the 
Suffolk  valley,  with  which  comparison  has  been  made.  The 
descent  on  the  French  side  was  similar.  On  the  extreme  right, 
commencing  from  Schloditten,  Markow  commanded  12 
cavalry  regiments,  with  6  more  somewhat  in  advance  of  his 
line.  Beyond  his  right  were  some  cossacks,  seeking  com- 
munication with  Lestocq.  From  his  left,  the  line  was 
continued  by  11  infantry  regiments,  each  with  two  battalions 
deployed  in  front,  t  and  the  3rd,  a  little  distance  in  rear,  in 

*  This  is  the  position  assigned  to  the  Guard  by  the  "  temoin  oculaire,"  whom 
there  is  no  reason  to  doubt  in  this  case.  Hoepfner  (iii.  228)  places  the  Guard 
cavalry  behind  Ferey,  and  next  to  Klein.  He  also  says  there  were  18  line 
regiments  of  infantry  with  the  Guard  on  the  western  heights. 

t  Wilson  (p.  98)  describes  the  Russian  position  as  about  two  miles  long  and 
one  deep,  bounded  by  fir  woods,  except  in  rear  of  the  right  and  in  continuation 
of  the  left.  Pr.  Eylau  had  no  species  of  work  to  protect  it,  and  was  in  a 
hollow  about  300  yards  in  front  of  the  Russian  right  centre  on  the  hill  which 
rose  above  the  village  so  as  to  overtop  the  houses. 

X  Jomini  (Art  of  War,  p.  295)  remarks  that  this  was  also  the  order  used  by 
Napoleon  at  the  Tagliamento.  It  is,  he  says,  ■  suitable  for  the  offensive- 
defensive,  because  the  first  line  pours  a  powerful  fire  upon  the  enemy,  which 
must  throw  him  into  more  or  less  confusion,  and  the  hoops  formed  in  columns 


168  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

column.  In  front  of  Serpallen  was  Bagavout,  with  2  infantry 
and  2  hussar  regiments.  There,  too,  was  what  remained  of 
Barclay's  force. 

In  2nd  line  were  10  regiments  of  infantry  in  column  at 
battalion  intervals. 

In  these  two  lines  were  the  2nd,  3rd,  5th,  7th  and  8th 
divisions.  The  4th  had  halted,  in  its  retirement,  across  the 
Koenigsberg  and  Friedland  roads,  in  front  of  the  main  line. 
The  3rd  line  consisted  of  5  regiments  of  infantry  of  the 
14th  division,  and  formed  the  reserve  in  front  of  Anklappen, 
under  Kamenskoi.* 

The  rest  of  the  cavalry  was  behind  the  centre  and  left 
wing,  partly  deployed,  partly  in  column. 

The  right  was  commanded  by  Tutchkow,  the  centre  by 
Sacken,  the  left  by  Tolstoi,  the  reserve  by  Dochtorow,  the 
cavalry  by  Gallitzin.f  Sixty  horse  artillery  guns  were  at 
Anklappen.J  The  rest  of  the  artillery  (400  guns  and 
howitzers)  was  ranged  in  front  of  the  1st  line,  but  behind 
the  advanced  position  of  the  4th  division.  There  was  a  great 
battery  of  70  heavy  guns  opposite  Eylau,  another  of  60  on 
the  right,  and  a  third  of  40  between  the  centre  battery  and 
Kl.  Sausgarten.  These  three  great  masses  of  guns  were  in 
addition  to  the  more  widely  distributed  batteries  along  the 
line. 

In  these  positions,  the  two  armies  prepared  to  pass  the 
night   following   the  terrible   combat   of  the  evening,  and 

may  debouch  through  the  intervals  and  fall  with  advantage  upon  him  while  in  - 
disorder." 

*  Quite  a  different  person,  of  course,  from  the  commander-in-  chief  of  the 
beginning  of  the  campaign. 

t  Bennigsen  had  7  divisions,  viz.  the  2nd,  3rd,  4th,  5th,  7th,  8th  and  14th. 
Sedmaratzki,  with  the  6th,  was  left  at  Goniondz,  and  the  two  divisions  which 
had  come  from  Moldavia  were  between  the  Narew  and  the  Bug.  The  1st  was 
the  Guard,  not  yet  at  the  front. 

X  The  idea  of  maintaining  a  separate  artillery  reserve  has,  in  modern  times, 
been  abandoned.  Regarding  this  reserve  at  Eylau,  Jomini  remarks  (Art  of 
War,  p.  289)  that  it  had  a  powerful  influence  in  enabling  Bennigsen  to  recover 
himself  when  his  line  had  been  broken  through  between  the  centre  and  the 
left. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  169 

preceding  the  far  more  awful  struggle  of  the  morrow.  It 
requires  a  strong  effort  of  the  imagination  to  picture  the 
horrors  of  that  night.  The  valley  and  the  heights  on  either 
side,  deeply  buried  in  snow,  were  lit  by  the  bivouac  fires 
of  120,000  men.  The  flames  flickered  in  the  icy  north  wind 
which  swept  along  the  positions,  carrying  with  it  the  smoke 
from  the  damp  wood,  and  the  constantly  falling  snow.  Not 
even  the  pale  light  of  all  these  hundreds  of  fires  could 
impart  warmth  to  this  arctic  scene.  The  men  crowded  round 
the  fires  for  warmth,  hardly  for  rest ;  for  what  rest  was  possible 
in  such  circumstances  ?  Between  the  opposing  lines  of  fires 
stood  the  outposts  of  the  armies,  and  the  sentries,  who,  on 
their  cheerless  posts,  must  have  thought  with  envy  even  of 
their  companions   behind  them.     So   close  were   the   main 

lines  that — 

"  The  fix'd  sentinels  almost  receive, 
The  secret  whispers  of  each  other's  watch : 
Fire  answers  fire ;  and  through  their  paly  flames 
Each  battle  sees  the  other's  umber'd  face."  * 

The  French  had  some  shelter  in  the  houses  and  in  the 
blood-stained  church  of  Eylau.  Milhaud's  men  were  protected 
by  Kothenen,  Augereau's  by  Tenknitten  and  Storchnest.  A 
large  proportion,  however,  had  no  means  of  guarding  them- 
selves from  the  bitter  blast  and  the  frequent  snowstorms. 
If  the  sufferings  of  the  French  were  great,  far  greater  were 
those  of  their  enemy.  Schloditten  and  Serpallen  could  only 
shelter  a  few  on  the  extremities ;  Anklappen  was  a  mere 
hamlet,  in  which  Bennigsen  and  his  staff  could  scarce  find 
accommodation.  During  the  night,  the  cold  increased  in 
intensity;  the  thermometer,  which  stood  at  14°  Fahr.  on 
the  evening  of  the  7th,  had  by  morning  fallen  to  2°  above 
zero.t  The  sufferings  of  the  wounded  were  terribly  aggravated 
by  the  cold.  In  Eylau,  a  hospital  had  been  extemporised  in 
the  largest  building.     In  the  morning,  when  the  village  was 

*  Shakespeare,  K.  Hen.  V.,  act  iv.,  chorus. 

t  Larrey,  iii.  p.  37.     The  temperatures  given  by  him  in  terms  of  Reaumur's 
scale  have  been  reduced  to  those  of  Fahrenheit's  for  the  text. 


170  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

no  longer  suitable,  temporary  hospitals  were  established  in 
barns  on  the  Landsberg  road;  but  the  straw,  and  even  the 
thatch,  had  been  taken  from  them  for  the  cavalry  horses, 
so  that  they  were  exposed  on  all  sides,  and  the  sufferers 
had  to  be  laid  on  the  remaining  debris  of  straw,  sprinkled  as 
they  were  with  snow.  So  intense  was  the  frost,  that  the 
very  instruments  fell  from  the  hands  of  the  attendants  as 
they  waited  on  the  operating  surgeons.* 

Food  was  lacking  to  both  sides.  In  the  villages  nothing 
was  left  but  potatoes  and  water.  Augereau  and  his  staff 
with  difficulty  obtained  a  loaf  or  two  of  bread.t  The  provision 
trains  had  not  been  able  to  follow  closely  the  long  French 
column,  marching  from  Landsberg  on  a  single  road.  The 
Eussians  suffered  still  more  severely  from  hunger  and  cold. 
For  days  previously  "  the  soldiers  had  to  prowl  and  dig  for 
the  buried  food  of  the  peasantry ;  so  that,  between  search  of 
provision  and  duty,  they  had  scarce  time  to  lie  down,  and 
when  they  did,  they  had  no  other  bed  than  the  snow,  no 
shelter  but  the  heavens,  and  no  covering  but  their  rags."  J 

If  the  French  commissariat,  on  which  Napoleon  had 
lavished  so  much  care,  was  unable  to  provide  his  army 
promptly  with  the  necessaries  of  life,  how  much  worse  must 
have  been  the  case  of  the  Eussians,  whose  commissariat 
arrangements  were  almost  non-existent !  How  terrible  must 
have  been  the  sufferings  of  their  wounded,  for  whose  relief 
on  the  battlefield  there  was,  at  present,  no  provision  ! 

The  man  to  whose  boundless  and  unscrupulous  ambition 
all  these  miseries  were  due,  Napoleon,  having  completed 
the  arrangement  of  his  army,  retired  to  a  house  in  Eylau, 
whence  the  most  staring  evidences  of  the  mortal  combat 
had  been  hastily  removed.  There,  sitting  on  a  chair,  he 
slept  for  some  hours  in  the  midst  of  all  the  carnage,  the 
dying,  and  the  dead.§     All  around,  his  men  were  pillaging 

*  Larrey,  iii.  38.  t  Marbot,  i.  256.  t  Wilson,  94. 

§  This  is  the  generally  accepted  version  (see  Alison,  vii.  347,  and  Thiers,  vii. 
415).     The  plan  of  the  battle  in  the  account  of  the  "  eye-witness"  shows,  as 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  171 

the  village,  and  ransacking  it  for  food.*  If  his  hopes  wen 
buoyed  by  visions  of  another  Austerlitz  or  Jena  on  the 
morrow,  he  still  had  ever  before  him  the  possibility  of 
another  Pultawa.  He  alludes  more  than  once,  in  his  corre- 
spondence from  Poland,  to  the  fate  of  Charles  XII.  He  had 
met  with  unexpected  resistance  at  Pultusk,  at  Golymin,  at 
Bergfried,  and  at  Hof.  Might  not  the  coming  battle  result 
in  defeat  ? 

Bennigsen,  too,  was  doubtless  full  of  apprehension. 
Whatever  he  might  have  written  of  his  previous  battles,  he 
knew  well  that  he  had  not  yet  won  a  real  victory.  Were  he 
decisively  defeated,  his  army,  driven  upon  Koenigsberg, 
might  be  ruined  and  compelled  to  surrender  in  the  cut  de  sac 
between  that  fortress,  the  sea,  and  the  Curisches-Haff.  On 
the  other  hand,  he  knew  that  Austria  was  only  waiting  for  a 
distinct,  not  necessarily  decisive,  defeat  of  the  French  to  throw 
in  her  lot  with  the  allies.  Now,  if  ever  he  was  to  have  it, 
was  his  chance  to  win  eternal  renown  by  a  victory  over  the 
hitherto  unconquerable  Emperor.  To  Bennigsen  defeat  meant 
the  possible  loss  of  an  army ;  to  Napoleon  it  meant,  not  only 

Napoleon's  sleeping-place,  on  the  nights  of  the  7th,  8th,  and  9th,  the  plateau 
where  his  Guard  were.  If  it  is  true  that  Napoleon  himself  was  the  author  of 
this  work,  there  is  an  obvious  reason  for  his  not  admitting  that  he  slept  in 
Eylau  on  the  7th,  and  more  than  a  mile  to  the  rear  on  the  8th.  The  admission 
would  imply  that  the  results  of  the  battle  of  the  8th  had  been  such  as  to  render 
Eylau  unsafe.  On  the  other  hand,  when  the  Guard  were  present,  the  Emperor 
usually  slept  in  their  midst.  On  this  occasion,  he  would  have  had  to  sleep  in  the 
open  to  be  with  the  Guard. 

Once  more,  in  favour  of  his  sleeping  in  Eylau,  is  Jomini's  (  Vie  de  Napoleon, 
ii.  358)  assertion  that  Murat  reported  the  enemy  to  be  in  retreat.  It  is  not 
certain  at  what  hour  the  news,  if  given,  was  ascertained  to  be  incorrect.  If  he 
believed  in  the  retreat,  the  head  of  his  army  was  the  best  place  for  Napoleon. 

De  Fezensac  (p.  145)  was  at  Eylau  on  the  night  of  the  7th-8th,  and 
mentions  Berthier's  being  in  the  village.  Presumably,  Napoleon  also  was  there, 
especially  as  de  Fezensac,  who  left  the  village  at  8  a.m.  on  the  8th,  mentions 
the  Emperor  mounting  his  horse  about  that  time,  as  if  he  himself  had  seen  it. 

The  matter  is  finally  disposed  of  by  Soult's  report  of  the  operations  of  the  4th 
Corps  (Arch.  Hist).  He  says  that  the  Emperor  fixed  his  headquarters  in 
Eylau,  where  he  and  Murat  had  the  honour  of  joining  him. 

*  "  The  total  pillage  of  a  town,  taken  as  Eylau  had  been,  can  scarcely  be 
avoided  "  (Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  358). 


172  NAPOLEONS   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

the  loss  of  his  army,  but,  possibly,  the  destruction  of  the 
military  despotism  which  he  had  built  up  with  such  infinite 
care  and  skilL  So  mighty  were  the  issues  which  hung  upon 
the  result  of  the  approaching  struggle. 

The  strength  of  the  forces  *  arrayed  against  one  another, 

*  To  commence  with  general  accounts,  the  following  numbers  are  given 
by  the  authors  named : — 


French. 

Enssians  and  Prussians. 

Alison  (vii.  pp.  345  note,  and 

344) 

80,000 

75,000  (including  10,000  Prussians). 

Thiers  (vii.  pp.  414,  415) 

... 

63,000 

90,000 

Dumas  (xviii.  9  and  12) 

68,000 

80,000 

Wilson  (pp.  98,  99) 

90,000 

60,000  (Russians  only). 

Plotho  (pp.  69,  70) 

90,000 

65,000  to  70,000  (Russians  besides 
Prussians). 

Bustow  (i.  316) 

69,000 

64,000 

Bennigsen,  in  his  official  account  {Wilton,  p.  238),  says  :  "  I  marched  out  of 
Landsberg  the  25th  January  (t\e.  6th  February,  new  style),  my  army  only  con- 
sisting of  70,000  men,  different  detachments  of  it  having  been  separated.'*  He 
plainly  does  not  include,  in  the  70,000,  either  Lestocq's  corps  or  the  detachment 
sent  to  Heilsberg.  The  latter  consisted  of  3000  men  (Ibid.,  pp.  93,  94),  but 
may  have  been  reduced  to  2000  by  the  fighting  at  and  near  Heilsberg.  Lestocq 
reached  the  field  with  about  7000  men,  including  those  he  left  in  Althof  to 
oppose  Ney  (he  had  5584  against  Davout  alone)  (see  Ibid.,  p.  106,  and  Hcepfner, 
iii.  235). 

Thus  there  would  appear  to  have  reached  the  field  between  2  pjn.  on  the 
7th  and  the  evening  of  the  8th,  about  72,000  Russians  and  7000  Prussians, 
say  78,000  in  all,  after  allowing  for  losses  on  the  march  from  Landsberg.  It  is 
far  from  clear  on  what  grounds  Wilson  reduces  the  Russians  to  60.000  in  face  of 
the  despatch  which  he  publishes.    Bennigsen  puts  Napoleon's  force  at  90,000. 

In  an  article  "  More  Light  on  St.  Helena,"  by  Sir  Herbert  Maxwell,  in  the 
CornhiU  Magazine,  for  January,  1901,  the  following  passage  occurs  :  "  In  answer 
to  a  question  put  to  him  (i.e.  to  Napoleon,  by  Sir  George  Cockburn)  relative  to 
the  greatest  number  of  men  he  ever  commanded,  he  said  he  had  180,000  at  the 
battle  of  Eylau,  and  1000  pieces  of  cannon.  The  allies  had  nearly  the  same 
number  n  (p.  31).  There  must  clearly  have  been  some  misunderstanding  here. 
It  is  beyond  the  possibility  of  doubt  that  Napoleon  had  not  100,000  men  at 
Eylau,  much  less  180,000.  The  most  hostile  chronicler  does  not  rate  his  number 
over  90,000,  and  all  are  agreed  that  his  guns  were  inferior  in  number  to  the 
460  of  Bennigsen.  The  numbers  given  in  the  article  are  about  what 
Napoleon  commanded  at  Wagram,  which  was  also  the  battle  in  which  he  had 
the  largest  army.  Is  it  not  possible  that  he  misunderstood  Sir  G.  Cockburn  s 
question,  or  that  the  latter  may  have  confused  the  name  Lobau,  used  in  con- 
nexion with  Wagram,  with  Eylau  % 

The  "  temoin  oculaire  "  (p.  11)  says  80,000  Russians  were  drawn  up  in  a  space 
sufficient  only  for  30,000. 

From  the  statements  of  the  strength  of  corps  in  February  in  the  Archives 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  173 

at  and  near  Eylau,  has  been  the  subject  of  most  contradictory 
nents.     On  full  consideration  of  the  various  accounts 

Historique*,  it  is  not  possible  to  arrive  directly  at  a  conclusion  as  to  the  French 
strength.  The  statements  are,  for  the  most  part,  noted  as  being  correct  up  to 
a  much  later  date  than  February  7th,  generally  the  end  of  March  or  beginning 
of  April.  By  that  date,  the  losses  of  Eylau  had  been  repaired  and  the  corps 
raised  to  a  greater  strength  by  troops  from  France  and  Italy. 

The  only  course  left  is  to  work,  as  Alison  did,  on  the  January  statements. 

The  strength  of  the  corps  which  took  part  in  the  battle  are  thus  shown  in 
the  statements  for  January,  the  latest  available  before  the  date  of  the  battle 
(statements,  Arch.  Hut.). 

Imperial  Guard  (excluding  Oudinot)       ...  9.199  of  all  arms  on  20th  January 

3rd  Corps  (Davout)             19,757  „          ..     15th  January 

4th      ..     (Soult) 19,643  1st  January 

5th     .,     (Ney)      16,039  1st  January 

7th     ..      (Augereau)         14,966  ..     15th  January 

Reserve  cavalry(excludingthe4th  dragoon* 

division,  with  Bernadotte,  and  the  5th 

with  Savary) 17.706  ..      1st  February 


Total  97,310 

For  Davout's  corps,  we  have  his  own  statement  of  the  strength  at  Eylau. 
after  deducting  losses  and  the  detachment  at  Myszienec,  viz.  15,100. 

Soult  lost  at  Bergfried  at  least  700,  at  Hof  he  admits  I960.  He  must  have 
lost  quite  3000  altogether  in  the  advance  to  Eylau. 

Ney  can  hardly  have  lost  less  than  1,500  at  Waltersdorf  and  the  other 
actions. 

Augereau's  loss  may  not  have  been  above  500,  as  he  had  little  fighting  in  the 
advance. 

The  Reserve  cavalry  fought  every  day  of  the  march  on  Eylau,  and  its  loss 
can  hardly  be  taken  at  under  2500.  It  suffered  .severely  at  Hof.  The  guard 
lost  little,  say  200. 

Deducting  these  losses,  and  taking  Davout's  corps  at  the  figure  he  gives,  the 
French  strength  is  reduced  to  the  following  round  figures : — 

Guard          9,000 

Davout         15,100 

Soult            16,750 

Ney 14,500 

Augereau 14,500 

Murat          15.200 


TotaT  85,050 

But  some  allowance  must  be  made  for  stragglers  and  detachments.  On  the 
whole,  it  is  improbable  that  Napoleon  had  much  over  82,000  or  83,000  men. 
Of  these,  29,600  (Ney  and  Davout)  were  not  on  the  field  at  daybreak  on 
the  8th. 

In  calculating  the  French  strength  at  that  hour,  the  losses  of  the  7th  must  be 


174  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

and  authorities,  it  will  not  probably  be  far  wide  of  the  mark 
to  take  the  forces  on  the  field  at  daybreak  on  the  8th 
February  at  67,000  Kussians  and  49,000  French.  Napoleon 
was  expecting  the  arrival  of  Davout,  with  15,100,  on  his 
right,  and  of  Ney,  with  14,500,  on  his  left.  To  join  Bennig- 
sen's right,  Lestocq,  facing  Ney  at  Hussehnen,  with  9000 
Prussians  and  Eussians,  was  under  orders  to  march,  as 
quickly  as  possible,  via  Althof,  to  Schloditten. 

(b)   THE  BATTLE  OF  THE  8TH  FEBRUARY. 

Bennigsen  was  astir  at  5  a.m.  He  directed  Dochtorow  to 
withdraw  the  4th  division  from  the  position,  towards  Eylau, 
which  it  had  occupied  during  the  night ;  also  the  7th 
division  from  its  place  in  the  line.  With  these  two 
divisions,  and  the  reserve  at  Anklappen  (14th  division)  he 
formed  two  deep  columns,  each  with  a  front  of  one  battalion, 
and  placed  them  on  a  height  behind  his  centre,  on  either 
side  of  the  Friedland  road.  The  Archangel  regiment  moved 
back  from  the  saw-mill  to  the  right  wing,  whilst  Markow 
filled  the  gap  left  in  the  line  of  battle  by  the  withdrawal  to 
the  reserve  of  the  7th  division. 

Napoleon  also,  now  convinced  that  Bennigsen  had  no 
intention  of  continuing  his  retreat  behind  the  Pregel,  made 
changes  in  the  positions  of  his  corps.     The  Guard  infantry, 

deducted.  They  were  probably  quite  4000,  therefore  they  had  not  more  than 
about  48,000  or  49,000  men. 

From  Bennigsen's  force  of  78,000,  must  be  deducted  7000  Prussians,  and  (say) 
4000  for  losses  on  the  7th.     This  leaves  him  67,000  at  the  same  hour. 

Hoepfner  (iii.*227)  allows  him  only  58,000,  but  there  seems  no  sufficient 
reason  to  disbelieve  Bennigsen's  own  statement  that  70,000  marched  from 
Landsberg,  besides  the  detachment  at  Heilsberg. 

The  total  allied  forces  Hoepfner  (iii.  235)  puts  at  63,500,  the  French  at 
80,000  (iii.  229). 

The  fairest  conclusion  seems  to  be  that  Napoleon  had  a  superiority  of  about 
4000  or  5000  in  numbers,  which  was  counteracted  by  the  superiority  of  110  guns 
on  the  other  side. 

The  strength  of  the  two  armies  was,  therefore,  approximately  equal.  Up  to 
11  or  12  on  the  8th,  Napoleon  was  decidedly  the  weaker;  he  was  not  the 
stronger  until  quite  the  end  of  the  battle,  when  Ney  had  arrived. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  17") 

and  artillery  moved  forward  from  its  bivouac  to  a  position 
behind  the  church.  Augereau's  corps  took  post,  in  columns 
of  brigades,  with  its  left  about  1000  paces  behind  the  church. 
At  8  a.m.  it  again  moved  forward  to  the  line  of  the  church, 
on  which  its  left  rested.  Desjardins'  division  (9  battalions) 
was  in  1st,  Heudelet's  (8  battalions)  in  2nd  line.  To 
make  room  for  Augereau,  St.  Hilaire,  with  8  battalions, 
moved  to  his  right,  and  formed  line  in  front  of  Milhaud's 
cavalry  (18  squadrons)  ;  Legrand  and  Schinner  were  in  front 
of  and  in  Eylau ;  Vivier  and  Ferey  extended  the  line  from 
the  left  of  Eylau  to  the  windmill  heights  in  front  of  the 
saw-mill. 

Behind  Augereau,  were  d'Hautpoult's  12  squadrons 
of  cuirassiers,  to  the  right  of  the  Guard  infantry.  Behind 
him  were  12  squadrons  of  the  Guard  cavalry,  and,  on  their 
right,  12  squadrons  of  Grouchy's  dragoons.  Klein  took 
Milhaud's  place  in  rear  of  St.  Hilaire,  and  Milhaud  moved 
to  the  right.  The  light  cavalry  took  post  on  the  left,  from 
the  windmill  height  towards  Althof.  It  comprised  the 
division  of  Lasalle  and  the  brigades  of  Bruyere,  Guyot, 
Colbert,  and  Durosnel. 

One  regiment  of  Guard  infantry,  the  18th  of  the  line, 
and  2  guns  remained,  in  reserve,  at  the  bivouac  between 
Tenknitten  and  Waschkeiten.  The  artillery  was  ranged 
along  the  whole  front,  from  opposite  Serpallen  to  the  saw- 
mill. The  Emperor  took  his  stand  near  the  church.  Day 
broke  gloomy  and  wild.  No  "  sun  of  Austerlitz,"  drawing 
off  the  morning  mists  and  exhilarating  the  men,  rose  in  front 
of  the  French  army.  Low,  heavy  clouds,  swept  across  the 
grey  sky  by  a  gusty  and  freezing  wind,  from  time  to  time 
discharged  their  snowy  contents  with  violence  in  the  faces  of 
the  shivering  soldiers.  At  such  times,  so  dark  became  the 
atmosphere  that  the  Eussians  could  hot  even  distinguish 
Eylau.*  The  snow  prevented  the  commanders  from  seeing 
their  troops,  the  howling  north  wind  rendered  it  impossible 

*  Hoepfner,  iii.  237. 


176  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

for  the  soldiers  to  hear  the  word  of  command.  At  times,  it 
was  not  possible  to  see  ten  yards  off.  The  action  at  such 
moments  had  the  character  of  a  night  attack.* 

In  the  midst  of  this  turmoil  of  the  elements,  before 
Napoleon  had  completed  his  last  arrangements,  Bennigsen, 
about  8  a.m.,  commenced  the  battle  with  a  tremendous 
artillery  fire  directed  on  Eylau.  The  French,  in  and  behind 
the  village,  were,  to  some  extent,  sheltered  by  the  houses 
and  by  the  mounds  which  closed  up  to  it.j  The  Kussians, 
on  the  other  hand,  standing  out,  when  the  atmosphere  was 
clear,  in  sharp  relief  against  the  white  snow  on  the  bare 
slope,  without  any  cover  whatever,  were  exposed  from  head 
to  foot  to  the  fire  of  the  French  guns.  J 

The  Eussian  fire,  at  first  somewhat  wild,§  increased  in 
intensity,  as  did  that  of  the  French.  The  preponderance  in 
numbers  of  the  Eussian  guns  made  up  for  the  inferiority  of 
the  marksmanship. 

Despite  the  awful  fire,  the  French  left  pushed  forward, 
whilst  the  centre  and  right  gained  the  slight  elevations  in 
front  of  the  Bartenstein  road.  The  light  cavalry,  on  the  left, 
got  as  far  forward  as  the  fulling-mill  on  the  stream,  500 
yards  below  the  saw-mill.  Legrand,  advancing  to  the  storm 
of  Tutchkow's  position,  was  met  in  front  by  two  infantry 
regiments  of  the  Eussian  right  wing,  and  charged  in  left 
flank  by  2  dragoon  regiments.  He  was  driven  back 
towards  Eylau  with  considerable  loss.  Napoleon,  thinking 
the  Eussians  meditated  the  recapture  of  the  windmill  height, 
and  an  advance  against  Eylau  from  that  direction,  sought  to 
disengage  his  left  by  an  advance  from  his  right.  ||  With  this 
object  in  view,  he  directed  St.  Hilaire  to  move  forward, 
bearing  off  somewhat  to  his  right,  whilst  Augereau  acted  in 
like  manner. *J     By  this  movement  St.  Hilaire  would  come 

*  Davout,  pp.  169-171.  t  Wilson,  p.  98. 

X  Wilson,  p.  101 ;  Marbot,  i.  257. 

§  Wilson,  p.  101.  ||  Hcepfner,  iii.  240. 

%  The  "  t&noin  oculaire "  defines  the  Emperor's  intention  as  being  that 


THE   BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  177 

into  touch  with  Davout,  who  was  now  gradually  coming  up, 
and  the  army,  pivoting  on  Eylau  and  wheeling  to  the  left, 
would  drive  in  the  Russian  left  wing.  It  was  soon  after 
10  a.m.*  when  this  advance  began.  At  that  moment,  a 
terrible  snowstorm  burst  upon  the  field.  The  snow,  driven 
full  in  the  faces  of  Augereau's  infantry,  blinded  them,  and 
caused  them  to  lose  all  sense  of  direction.  Instead  of  bear- 
ing to  their  right,  as  ordered,  Desjardins'  division,  followed 
by  Heudelet's,  took  a  direction  to  the  left,  towards  the 
Friedland  road.  They  thus  passed  partially  in  front  of 
the  batteries  at  Eylau,  which,  in  the  darkness,  fired  on 
their  own  troops.j  The  corps  thus  diverged  rapidly  from 
St.  Hilaire's,  which  had  kept  the  prescribed  line.  Presently 
it  found  itself,  unexpectedly,  close  in  front  of  the  Russian 
line,  at  the  point  where  the  right  wing  joined  the  centre. 
Augereau  had  the  leading  brigade  of  each  division  deployed, 
the  second  behind  it  in  squares.  One  battalion,  which  had 
gone  more  to  the  right,  was  alone  in  the  midst  of  the 
Russian  position.     The  corps  artillery  was  at  the  church. 

Desjardins  and  Heudelet  were  met  by  an  overwhelming 
fire  of  grape  from  the  great  central  battery,  which  was  alone, 
sufficient  to    disorder    them   and   cause   immense   losses.^ 

Augereau  should  join  St.  Hilaire's  left,  so  that  the  two  might  form  a  line  oblique 
to  that  of  the  enemy,  uniting  Davout  to  Eylau. 

*  St.  Hilaire,  quoted  by  Soult  in  his  report  (Arch.  Hist.),  says  it  was  10  ajn. 
when  he  received  the  order  for  his  advance.  St.  Hilaire's  division  was  practically 
taken  from  Soult's  command  on  this  day,  and  kept  under  the  Emperor's  direct 
orders.  Soult,  therefore,  incorporates  St.  Hilaire's  report  in  his  own,  which  deals 
with  the  action  of  the  other  two  divisions  (Legrand's  and  Leval's).  A  report 
(Arch.  Hist.)  by  Parmentier,  who  became  chief  of  the  staff  of  the  7th  corps  after 
Eylau,  gives  8  o'clock  as  the  time  when  Augereau  moved  to  the  line  of  the  church, 
and  8.30  as  the  hour  at  which  the  advance  commenced.  St.  Hilaire's  account 
seems  the  mere  probable. 

t  Marbot,  i.  257. 

X  u  Desjardins'  division  was  half  destroyed  by  grape  and  by  the  sabre ; 
Heudelet's  fared  no  better  "  (Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  360). 

In  the  Archives  Historiques  there  is  a  report  from  Compans,  who  succeeded 
temporarily  to  Augereau's  command,  showing  how  frightful  must  have  been  the 
losses  of  the  division.  In  the  first  place,  he  gives  a  list  of  about  30  officers  killed 
and  wounded;  but  this  only  includes  regimental  officers  of  and  above  the  rank 

N 


178  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND, 

Seeing  their  advance,  Bennigsen  had  moved  forward  part  of 
his  two  great  reserve  columns.  This  body,  after  firing  a 
volley  in  the  faces  of  the  shaken  French,  charged  with  the 
bayonet.  Simultaneously,  a  brigade  of  the  4th  division  and 
the  Russian  cavalry  came  upon  the  unhappy  French  corps. 
No  troops  could  withstand  such  an  onslaught  in  front  and  on 
both  flanks,  especially  when  the  Russian  cavalry  were  in 
their  midst  before  they  were  perceived  through  the  snow. 
Almost  every  regiment  was  broken  ;  the  whole  mass  fled  in 
the  wildest  confusion,  followed,  bayoneted,  sabred,  by  the 
victorious  Russians.  As  the  snow  cleared,  Augereau — of 
whom  Napoleon  said  that  he  wearied  even  with  a  day  of 
victory, — wounded,  ill,*  disheartened,  saw  the  remnants  of  his 
corps  pouring  back  into  Eylau  in  broken  detachments.  One 
regiment,  the  ill-fated  14th,t  was  still  on  the  slope,  formed  in 
a  rough  square  on  a  small  mound,  surrounded  on  all  sides  by 
infantry,  cavalry,  and  cossacks,  fired  into  by  musketry  and 
artillery,  stabbed  by  the  long  lances  of  the  cossacks,  sabred, 
suffering  every  conceivable  woe,  yet  gallantly  fighting  to  the 

of  chef  de  battalion  and  the  general's  staff.  It  goes  on :  "  Each  division  showed 
in  the  evening  only  about  700  men  present."  They  had  gone  into  action  7000 
strong  each !  Of  course,  many  stragglers  must  have  turned  up  later,  but  the 
remark  shows  the  utter  demoralization  of  the  corps. 

Augereau's  official  report  (Arch.  Hist.)  admits  a  loss  of  929  killed  and  4271 
wounded — total  5200.  This  takes  no  account  of  prisoners,  and  even  so  it  is,  per- 
haps, below  the  mark. 

Jomini  says  Augereau's  corps  found  that  they  were  at  a  great  disadvantage 
against  cavalry,  as  their  muskets  had  been  so  damped  by  the  snow  as  often  to 
fail  to  go  off  (Art  of  War,  p.  305). 

*  On  the  morning  of  the  8th  February  Augereau  sent  a  note  to  Napoleon, 
saying  he  was  too  ill  to  command  in  the  field  any  longer,  and  proposed,  with 
the  Emperor's  permission,  to  retire  that  day.  Napoleon,  in  reply,  requested  him 
to  keep  the  command  for  one  day  longer.  Meanwhile,  the  battle  had  begun, 
and  Augereau  sent  another  note,  to  say  that  he  would  be  with  his  corps  even  if 
he  had  to  go  on  to  the  field  in  a  sledge — a  mode  of  conveyance  which  he  actually 
did  employ  till  he  reached  his  corps.  He  retired  from  the  field  about  4  p.m. 
(Arch.  Hist,  daily  correspondence). 

f  It  had  led  Augereau's  advance  (Marbot,  i.  257).  It  was  the  regiment 
which  had  stormed  the  bridge  at  Kolozomb  on  the  24th  December,  having  its 
colonel,  Savary,  killed  there. 

The  snowstorm  cleared  off  after  half  an  hour  (Temoin  Oculaire,  p.  13). 


TEE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  179 

death.  The  marshal*  had  not  a  battalion  in  condition  to 
nipt  its  rescue.  He  sent,  in  succession,',the  officers  of  his 
staff  to  urge  the  14th  to  retreat  if  possible.  Two  of  them 
disappeared  in  the  hosts  of  the  enemy,  and  were  heard  of  no 
more.  At  last,  Marbot  succeeded  in  reaching  the  doomed 
regiment.  Retreat  was  impossible.  The  eagle  was  carried 
off  by  Marbot,  though  he  nearly  lost  his  life  in  doing  so. 
Firm  to  the  last,  the  isolated  regiment  fought,  unsupported, 
refusing  to  surrender.*  Not  one  officer  and  scarcely  a  soldier 
escaped. 

Napoleon,  from  the  church,  watched  the  course  of  this 
awful  disaster  to  Augereau  on  his  left,  whilst  he  saw  St. 
Hilaire,  on  his  right,  not  destroyed,  it  is  true,  but  checked, 
his  left  attacked  by  cavalry  in  the  gap  between  it  and 
Augereau's  corps,  unable  to  make  any  progress. 

The   triumphant   Russians,   following    on   the  heels   of 

Augereau's  ruined  corps,  were  breaking  into  Eylau.     Even 

they,  with  the  snowstorm  at  their  backs,  had  partly  lost  their 

way.     One  "  colonne  perdue,"   as   Napoleon   described  it,f 

which  he  estimates  at  4000  to  6000  men,  had  wandered  into 

the  western  street  of  Eylau,  and  had  approached  close  to  the 

position  of  the  Emperor.    Behind  him,  the  Guard  was  moving 

forward  to  his  rescue.     Beyond  the  Russian  column,  Bru- 

yere's  cavalry,  by  direction  of  Murat,  was  preparing  to  charge 

it  in  rear.     The  Russians  were  actually  amongst  the  French 

hospitals  in  the  barns  in  rear  of  Eylau.    The  terrified  wounded 

who  could  walk  were  endeavouring  to   escape.     Even  the 

others,  trying  vainly  to  follow  them,  were  only  induced,  by 

Larrey  and  his  assistants  expressing  loudly  their  intention  of 

remaining  where  they  were,  to  desist  from  the  vain  attempt.J 

The  Emperor  was  in  the  most  imminent  danger  of  death 

or  capture.     A   stray   bullet,   a  little,  more  hurry  by  [the 

Russian  column,  might  have  changed  the  whole  history  of 

Europe.     Napoleon  alone,  in  the  midst  of  all  this  confusion, 

*  Marbot,  i.  263,  etc.  f  Commentaires  de  Napoleon. 

X  Larrey,  iii.  40. 


180  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

standing  on  the  mound  with  only  his  staff  and  a  single 
squadron,  his  personal  guard,  maintained  his  calm  and  his 
presence  of  mind. 

Before  the  Guard  infantry*  could  reach  the  spot,  the 
Eussians  would  be  upon  him.  The  Guard  refused  to  fire ; 
they  considered  it  was  their  duty  to  charge  with  the  bayonet 
without  firing ;  f  they  were  blind  to  the  consequences  of  delay. 
Every  instant  gained  was  of  vital  importance  to  their 
Emperor.  He  employed  the  only  means  he  had  to  gain  a 
few  moments.  The  squadron  of  his  personal  guard  was 
ordered  to  charge.  Hushing  upon  almost  certain  death,  with 
loud  shouts  of  "  Vive  l'Empereur,"  this  little  band  of  heroes 
fell  furiously  on  the  head  of  the  Eussian  column.  It  was 
the  attack  of  the  pigmy  upon  the  giant,  but  it  gained  the 
necessary  time.  Before  this  squadron  was  exterminated,  the 
Guard  had  reached  with  the  bayonet  the  front,  Bruyere  with 
the  sabre  the  rear  of  the  Eussians.  Their  destruction  was 
inevitable,  and  was  as  complete  as  had  been  that  of  Augereau's 
larger  force.  The  latter's  corps  had  been  wiped  out.  Marbot 
goes  so  far  as  to  say  that  it  had  but  3000  men  left  out  of 

15,0004 

The  situation  of  the  French  centre — Davout  not  yet 
having  come  up  in  force  on  the  right,  Ney  being  still  far 
behind  on  the  left,  Soult's  division  repulsed,  Augereau's 
destroyed — was  most  critical.  Napoleon  recognised  that  only 
heroic  measures  could  save  him  from  destruction.  Bennigsen 
failed  to  see  that  now,  before  Davout  could  bring  substantial, 
help,  he  still  had  time  for  the  attack  with  superior  forces  of 
the  French  left,  rolling  it  up  on  the  centre. 

As  soon  as  the  Emperor  saw  the  formation  of  the  gap 
between  St.  Hilaire  and  Augereau,  due  to  the  latter's  false 

*  A  battalion  under  Dorsenne  was  in  front,  and  made  the  attack  (Dumas, 
xviii.  20  ;  Tfmoin  Oculaire,  p.  13). 

t  Te'moin  Oculaire,  p.  13,  and  Dumas,  xviii.  20. 

\  Marbot,  i.  257.  Hoepfner  (iii.  244),  with  more  exactitude,  states  Auge- 
reau's loss  at  929  killed  and  4271  wounded — total  5200.  This  is  Augereau's  own 
figure  (Arch.  Hist). 


TEE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  181 

direction,  he  ordered  Murat  to  place  himself  at  the  head  of 
the  cavalry  reserve,*  and,  followed  by  Bessieres  with  the 
Guard  cavalry,  to  make  a  supreme  effort  against  the  Russian 
centre  with  this  great  body  of  70  or  80  squadrons.f 

In  such  circumstances  Murat  showed  to  his  greatest 
advantage.  Splendidly  mounted,  in  gorgeous  uniform, 
surrounded  by  a  staff  only  second  to  himself  in  brilliancy, 
his  countenance  inflamed  with  the  lust  of  battle,  he  was  the 
beau-ideal  of  the  cavalry  leader. 

Grouchy's  dragoons,  moving  out  over  the  ground  beyond 
the  Bartenstein  road,  crashed  into  the  right  flank  of  the  Russian 
cavalry  which  had  repulsed  St.  Hilaire,  scattering  it  in  all 
directions.  Grouchy  himself  had  his  horse  killed,  but  was 
remounted  by  an  aide-de-camp.  Rallying  after  the  charge, 
he  again  led  his  2nd  brigade  to  support  his  lst.J  Milhaud, 
at  the  same  time,  faced  Bagavout's  detachment,  at  and  behind 
Serpallen  which  it  had  to  evacuate. 

Having  defeated  the  cavalry  on  the  flank  of  St.  Hilaire, 
Grouchy's  dragoons,  led  by  Murat  in  person,  wheeled  to  their 
left  against  the  cavalry  of  the  Russian  centre,  which  was  now 
brought  forward  to  meet  them. 

On  his  right,  Murat  was  joined  by  d'Hautpoult's  cuirassier 

*  "  A  commander  may  sometimes  feel  obliged  to  push  his  cavalry  forward 
alone,  but  generally  the  best  time  for  charging  a  line  of  infantry  is  when  it 
is  already  engaged  with  opposing  infantry.  The  battles  of  Marengo,  Eylau, 
Borodino,  and  several  others  prove  this  "  (Jomini,  Art  of  War,  p.  305). 

t  Murat's  report  (Arch.  Hist)  shows  as  engaged  on  this  day,  in  this  part  of 
the  field, — 

2nd  division  cuirassiers 

1st,  2nd,  3rd  dragoon  divisions 

These  may  be  taken,  roughly,  at, — 

2nd  cuirassier  division     1900 


1st  dragoon 
2nd      ., 
3rd       „ 
Guard  cavalry 


2000 
2200 
3100 
1500 


10,700 
X  Grouchy's  report,  Arch.  Hist. 


182  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

division,  and  this  great  line  of  cavalry,  followed  by  others, 
poured  in  successive  waves  up  the  slope. 

The  Kussian  cavalry,  going  down  before  the  shock,  were 
driven  back  upon  their  infantry.  Murat's  portion  of  the  line 
was  met  by  fresh  cavalry,  and  again  compelled  to  retire: 
d'Hautpoult's  heavier  horses  and  men  broke  through  every- 
thing. As  the  Kussian  horsemen  scattered  to  the  right  and 
left  of  him,  they  were  charged  in  flank  by  fresh  lines  of 
cuirassiers,  and  cut  to  pieces.  D'Hautpoult,  reckless  of  grape, 
of  infantry  fire,  and  the  bayonet,  fired  by  the  praise  he  had 
received  from  the  Emperor  for  his  action  at  Hof,  burst 
through  the  line  of  guns,  sabring  the  gunners,  or  forcing  them 
to  seek  shelter  under  their  pieces.  On  rode  the  cuirassiers 
through  the  first  line  of  infantry  where  one  battalion,  striving 
to  resist  by  force  this  line  of  steel-clad  warriors,  was  ridden 
over  by  them.  Through  the  2nd  line  they  forced  their 
way.  It  was  only  when  they  had  reached  the  reserves, 
standing  with  their  backs  to  the  Anklappen  woods,  that  the 
charge  had  expended  its  force,  after  passing  over  2500  yards.* 

Bessieres,  following  with  the  Guard  cavalry,  the  chasseurs 
in  1st  line,  and  joined  by  Grouchy,  who  had  been  checked 
by  the  Eussian  2nd  line  when  d'Hautpoult  passed  through 
it,  fell  upon  the  Eussians,  as  they  began  to  reform  behind  the 
cuirassiers,  again  carrying  death  into  their  ranks.  Joined  by 
the  5th  cuirassier  regiment  and  the  mounted  grenadiers,  this 
second  wave  of  cavalry  again  broke  through  the  two  Eussian 
lines  before  it  lost  its  force.  The  men  and  horses,  exhausted 
and  breathless  from  their  long  gallop  and  the  tremendous  exer- 
tions of  the  fight,  were  surrounded  by  the  Eussian  cavalry, 
infantry,  and  cossacks  reassembling  after  their  defeat.  Twice 
broken,  the  Eussian  lines  had,  with  indomitable  courage,  twice 
re-formed  behind  the  intruding  cavalry,  f    The  French  had  to 

*  Grouchy's  report,  Arch.  Hist. 

t  Jomini  remarks  that  the  retirement  was  as  difficult  as  the  advance,  for  the 
Russian  troops  re-formed,  facing  to  their  rear,  behind  the  French  cavalry  ( Vie 
de  Napoleon,  ii.  3G1  . 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  183 

Out  their  way  back  as  they  had  come.  Exhausted  cuirassiers 
of  d'Hautpoult's  division,  which  had  gone  the  farthest,  went 
down  before  the  lances  of  the  cossacks,  who  could  not  have 
resisted  them  for  a  moment  when  fresh.  Some  broke  back 
direct  in  the  line  by  which  they  had  come,  others,  passing 
behind  the  Kussian  lines,  rejoined  the  French  left;  very 
many  met  their  death  in  the  midst  of  the  Kussian  army. 
The  brave  d'Hautpoult  himself  received  his  death  wound.* 

This  tremendous  charge,  costly  though  it  had  been,  had 
yet  served  its  purpose  in  checking  the  ardour  of  the  Kussian 
centre,  thus  enabling  Napoleon  to  hold  his  own,  whilst  he 
anxiously  awaited  Davout's  turning  movement  on  the  right.f 
He  had,  besides  the  cavalry,  his  artillery,  Soult's  corps, 
seriously  reduced  in  numbers,  the  remnant  of  Augereau's, 
and  the  Guard.J  The  last-named  had  not  been  seriously 
engaged,  and  was  unshaken.  Augereau's  troops  assembled 
to  the  right  of  Eylau,  the  cavalry  reserve  more  towards 
Kl.  Sausgarten  with  Klein  in  1st,  Grouchy  in  2nd,  and 
d'Hautpoult  in  3rd  line.  The  Guard  infantry  was  midway 
between  Eylau  and  Serpallen;   the  Guard  cavalry   on   the 

*  "  A  regiment  of  French  cuirassiers  had,  during  the  storm,  gained  an  interval 
in  the  Russian  line  between  their  centre  and  left  wing ;  but  the  cossacks  and 
some  hussars,  immediately  as  they  were  perceived,  bore  down  upon  them.  The 
cuirassiers,  apparently  like  men  stupefied  by  the  magnitude  of  their  own  enter- 
prise, and  unprepared  for  success,  rushed  with  a  considerable  detour  through  the 
rear  of  the  camp,  and  then  turned  towards  the  right  of  the  Russian  right  wing, 
but  their  bodies  successively  tracked  the  course,  and  only  18  escaped  alive" 
(  Wilson,  p.  103). 

t  The  cavalry  charge  was,  on  a  far  larger  scale,  almost  as  desperate  a  remedy 
as  the  charge  of  Bredow's  brigade  at  Mars  la  Tour,  on  the  16th  August,  1870. 
The  loss  in  Murat's  charge  cannot  be  precisely  ascertained,  but  Grouchy  gives 
his  alone  at  nearly  250  killed  and  wounded.  There  were  engaged  in  this 
charge  on  the  French  side  one  division  of  cuirassiers,  three  of  dragoons,  and  the 
Guard  cavalry.  The  cuirassiers  lost  more  heavily  than  the  others.  Probably 
the  total  losses  of  the  reserve  cavalry  were  somewhere  between  1000  and  1500. 
Even  after  the  charge,  they  suffered  heavily  from  the  Russian  artillery,  under 
whose  fire  they  stood  all  day. 

X  "  At  11  a.m.  Soult's  corps  had  suffered  much  ;  Augereau's,  so  to  speak,  no 
longer  existed.  All  was  lost  but  for  the  firm  face  I  maintained  for  three  hours, 
at  the  cemetery,  with  the  Guard,  the  cavalry,  and  the  artillery,  which  I  myself 
directed  "  (Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  p.  366). 


184  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

right  of  the  infantry,  behind  the  reserve  cavalry.  The  left 
wing  remained  as  before.  It  was  now  about  11  a.m.  Till 
noon,  Napoleon  held  on  determinedly  to  Eylau  and  the  line 
of  the  Bartenstein  road.  After  that  hour,  Bennigsen  had  his 
hands  full  elsewhere,  and  the  battle  became  little  more  than 
an  artillery  duel  in  the  direction  of  Eylau.  The  tide  of 
victory  on  which  Bennigsen  had  so  far  floated  was  about  to 
ebb. 

DaYOut,  at  2  p.m.  on  the  7th,  had  received  orders  from 
Berthier  *  to  take  position,  in  column,  on  the  road  from 
Bartenstein,  so  as  to  have  the  head  of  his  column  at  a 
distance  of  about  3  miles  from  Eylau.  His  divisions, 
accordingly  bivouacked  in  these  positions  :  Friant's  between 
Perschen  and  Beisleiden,  about  4  miles  from  Eylau ; 
Morand  at  Zohlen,  a  short  way  in  rear;  Gudin,  near 
Bartenstein,  10  miles  from  Eylau.  Marulaz,  with  the  light 
cavalry  of  the  corps,  joined  Eriant  and  Davout,  from  the 
neighbourhood  of  Eylau,  after  Soult  had  taken  up  his 
position.f  All  these  divisions  were  ordered  to  march  for 
the  battlefield  two  hours  before  daybreak.  Friant,  with 
Marulaz  in  advance,  took  the  direction  of  Serpallen.  Morand 
followed.  Gudin  started  at  3  a.m.,  on  account  of  the  greater 
distance  he  had  to  march.  It  was  not  yet  day  when  the 
cavalry  encountered  and  drove  in  the  cossacks.  Soon  after 
sunrise,  Friant  drew  up  his  division  in  order  of  battle  on  the 
heights  short  of  Serpallen,  which  village  Bagavout  had 
evacuated  as  he  approached,  and  which  was  now  occupied  by 
some  companies  of  the  (French)  48th  regiment.J     Marulaz 

*  Davout,  p.  158. 

f  Davout  (p.  160)  states  the  strength  of  his  divisions  thus : — 

1st  division  (Morand)  about          6000 

2nd       „      (Friant),  less  111th  regiment  left  at  Myszienec    ...  4000 

3rd       „       (Gudin),  less  2nd  battalion  of  the  85th  at  Ortelsburg  4500 

1st  and  12th  chasseurs,  the  2nd  being  left  at  Myszienec         ...  600 


Total  15,100 
X  Bennigsen,  in  his  official  account  ( Wihon,  p.  238,  etc.),  says  Bagavout 


THE  BATTLE    OF  E7LAU.  185 

was  oil  the  right,  Morand  in  2nd  line,  behind  Friant.  There 
appears  to  have  been  some  delay  here,  waiting  for  the 
approach  of  Gudin,  for  Davout' s  attack  did  not  become 
serious  till  towards  noon.* 

Davout,  whilst  waiting,  caused  a  reconnaissance  to  be 
made,  searching  for  the  right  of  St.  Hilaire's  division,  with 
which  he  required  to  connect  his  own  left.  Between  eleven 
and  twelve,  a  body  of  cavalry  appeared  on  Friant's  right ; 
against  it  was  sent  Marulaz,  supported  by  the  33rd  regiment, 
and  followed,  in  the  direction  of  Klein  Sausgarten,  by  the 
rest  of  Friant's  division. 

Bagavout  had  been  reinforced  by  the  14th  division 
(Kamenskoi)  from  the  reserve.  The  cavalry  were  repulsed 
by  Marulaz  and  the  33rd,  but  were  immediately  supported 
by  infantry. 

Friant,  attacked  by  the  Eussian  infantry  and  by  the 
rallied  cavalry,  was  engaged  in  a  long  and  severe  combat. 
Finally,  the  enemy  retired  in  good  order  before  him,  covering 
their  retreat  by  a  heavy  artillery  fire  from  the  heights  behind 
Serpallen. 

Morand,  meanwhile,  sending  his  1st  brigade  to  the  left 
to  link  him  to  St.  Hilaire,  who  was  again  moving  to  the 
attack  of  the  heights  in  front  of  him,  took  the  2nd  brigade 
through,  and  by  the  left  of  Serpallen.  He  was  met  by  a 
heavy  artillery  fire  from  the  heights,  400  yards  in  front  of 
him.  To  this,  but  an  inadequate  reply  could  be  made  by  his 
light  artillery.  The  17th  regiment  was  on  his  right  in 
echelon  of  reserve.  The  51st  and  61st  |  were  kept  by 
Davout  ready  to  support  either  Morand  or  Friant,  as  circum- 
stances might  require,  until  the  arrival  of  Gudin's  main  body 

repulsed  an  attack  on  Serpallen  about  daybreak.  There  is  no  mention  of  this 
either  in  Hoepfner  or  Davout. 

Wilson  himself  (p.  102)  says  the  attack  was  repulsed  "  some  time  after  "  the 
defeat  of  Augereau,  and  that,  when  the  village  was"  fired,  the  snow  and  smoke 
drove  in  the  faces  of  the  Bussians.  If  so,  the  wind  must  have  gone  completely 
round  at  that  time. 

*  Jomini  (Art  of  War,  p.  198)  puts  the  hour  as  late  as  1  p.m. 

t  Both  of  Gudin's  division. 


186  NAPOLEON'S    CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

as  reserve  enabled  him  to  send  the  51st  to  support  Friant, 
the  61st  to  follow  Morand,  and  strengthen  the  union  of  his 
left  with  St.  Hilaire. 

Friant,  still  suffering  severely  from  the  guns  in  the 
direction  of  the  Kreegeberg,  received  orders  to!  take  Klein 
Sausgarten  with  one  battalion  of  the  33rd.  Lochet,  with 
this  battalion,  broke  his  way  into  the  village.  He  was  not  at 
once  supported,  and,  after  half  an  hour,  attacked  by  infantry 
and  cavalry,  which,  passing  from  the  left  wing  of  the  Eussian 
line  beyond  Kl.  Sausgarten,  reached  his  right  flank,  he  was 
forced  to  withdraw.  Outside  the  village,  he  and  Marulaz 
maintained  a  stationary  and  sanguinary  fight  amongst  the 
stockaded  enclosures  in  which  sheep  were  wont  to  be  folded 
at  night,  to  protect  them  from  wolves.  The  Eussian  cavalry 
were  thus  driven  off  by  the  33rd,  the  48th,  and  the  51st.  The 
enemy's  infantry  reinforced,  continued  to  gain  ground  as  they 
vigorously  assaulted  the  33rd,  the  48th  and  Marulaz's  cavalry. 
Lochet  was  killed  here.  At  last,  with  the  assistance  of  its 
artillery,  Friant's  division  succeeded  in  again  advancing  into 
Kl.  Sausgarten,  where  he  firmly  established  himself. 

Whilst  the  fight  thus  progressed  on  Davout's  right, 
Morand  and  St.  Hilaire,  in  front,  and  to  the  left  of  Ser- 
pallen,  had  to  sustain  very  heavy  fighting.  So  great  was 
the  loss  in  the  13th  light  infantry,  that  it  had  to  be 
replaced  in  the  fighting  line  by  a  battalion  of  the  17th  from 
the  reserve.  The  61st,  at  this  period,  took  post  on  Morand's 
right.  To  the  left  of  it  the  17th  and  30th  continued  the  line 
till  it  joined  the  right  battalion  (10th  light  infantry)  of  St. 
Hilaire.  At  first,  the  advance  of  St.  Hilaire  prospered. 
Firing  as  they  moved,  his  men  compelled  the  Eussians  to  yield 
before  them,  abandoning  30  guns,  which  fell  into  Morand's 
hands.  Suddenly,  in  the  midst  of  their  success,  the  10th 
light  infantry,  forming  the  link  between  the  two  divisions, 
was  charged  by  20  squadrons  under  Korff.  This  cavalry, 
which  had  been  concealed,  partly  by  the  inequalities  of  the 
ground,  partly  by  a  snowstorm,  coming  upon  the  left  of  the 


THE  BATTLE   OF  ETLAU.  1S7 

French  regiment,  drove  it  in  confusion  away  from  its  own 
division,  back  to  the  right  on  the  division  of  Morand.  Dis- 
order spreading  into  this  division  also,  it  was  pushed  back 
on  Serpallen.  The  arrival  of  Klein's  dragoons,  from  behind 
St.  Hilaire,  saved  the  situation,  and  drove  off  the  Kussian 
cavalry  which  had  done  so  much  harm. 

During  this  combat,  Davout  had  found  it  necessary  to 
again  strengthen  Friant,  on  his  right,  with  the  12th  regiment 
from  Gudin's  division.  On  this  side,  also,  the  Kussians  had 
executed  several  fierce  assaults,  accompanied  by  heavy  loss  to 
both  parties,  but  in  the  end  unsuccessful. 

Osterman  had  now  retreated,  from  in  front  of  Morand  and 
St.  Hilaire,  to  a  position  behind  the  Kreegeberg — a  movement 
which,  by  exposing  the  right  flank  of  Kamenskoi  and 
Bagavout  in  front  of  Klein  Sausgarten,  compelled  them  also 
to  retire  and  join  Osterman's  left. 

Nothing  could  stop  the  advance  of  Friant.  As  he  moved 
towards  Anklappen,  Morand  and  St.  Hilaire  were  able  to 
reoccupy  the  small  hills  beyond  Serpallen,  from  which  they 
had  been  driven,  as  just  described,  by  Korffs  cavalry, 
supported  by  infantry.  From  them  Morand  was  not  again 
ousted.  With  three  regiments  on  them,  he  served  as  a  pivot 
for  the  wheel  of  Davout's  right,  from  Kl.  Sausgarten  towards 
Kutschitten  and  Anklappen.  St.  Hilaire,  who  had  assisted 
in  the  recapture  of  these  heights,  was  now,  by  the  Emperor's 
order,  again  drawn  to  Morand's  left,  which  he  connected  with 
the  reserve  cavalry  (Klein  in  1st,  Grouchy  in  2nd,  d'Hautpoult 
in  3rd  line).  Beyond  the  reserve  cavalry,  were  the  remains  of 
Augereau's  corps,  on  the  right  of  Eylau.  The  Guard  infantry 
behind  these,  stood  halfway  between  Eylau  and  Serpallen ; 
on  its  right,  behind  the  reserve  cavalry,  was  the  cavalry  of 
the  Guard.  The  whole  left  wing  was  posted  as  in  the  morn- 
ing. Bennigsen,  who  had,  since  Davoutrs  attack  began,  been 
constantly  moving  troops  from  his  right  and  centre  to  the  aid 
of  his  left  wing,  now  ordered  the  latter  to  retire  behind 
Anklappen,  whilst  the  right  and  centre  held  fast  with  their 


188  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

diminished  forces.  Davout,  placing  a  battery  of  30  guns  on 
the  Kreegeberg  to  support  his  movement,  pushed  forward  his 
infantry  even  into  the  farmstead  of  Anklappen.  From  the 
latter  the  48th  regiment  was  again  forced  to  retire  by 
superior  numbers.  Whilst  this  first  attack  on  Anklappen 
was  proceeding,  Davout  had  detached  the  30th  towards  his 
right.  Milhaud's  dragoons  were  now  at  his  disposal.  Them, 
with  part  of  the  51st,  and  4  companies  of  the  108th,  he  sent 
against  the  Eussians  of  Bagavout  and  Kamenskoi  in  the  birch 
wood  to  the  right  of  Anklappen,  whence  they  drove  the 
enemy.  The  French  right  was  still  protected,  against  the 
attacks  of  the  cossacks,  and  cavalry,  by  Marulaz's  squadrons. 

The  Eussians,  driven  from  these  woods,  retreated, 
constantly  pursued,  on:  Kutschitten.  At  the  same  time,  the 
attack  on  Anklappen  was  renewed  by  Gauthier,  with  both 
battalions  of  the  25th,  whilst  the  little  wood,  on  the  left  of 
the  farm,  was  invaded  by  a  battalion  of  the  85th.  Both 
attacks  were  successful,  though  they  met  with  vigorous 
resistance.  The  troops  pursuing  the  defenders  of  the  larger 
wood  towards  Kutschitten,  were  equally  happy  in  taking 
that  village.  The  hour  was  about  5  p.m.,  the  Eussian  left 
wing  was  in  full  retreat.  With  the  loss  of  Kutschitten  the 
direct  road  to  Eussia  had  been  intercepted.  The  troops  began 
to  break  up ;  the  whole  plain  between  Kutschitten  and 
Schmoditten  was  covered  with  men,  mostly  wounded,  bend- 
ing their  steps  towards  Koenigsberg. 

The  French  left  wing  and  centre,  terribly  crippled  by  the 
morning's  events,  still  occupied  their  original  positions.  The 
Eussians,  in  this  part  of  the  field,  could  only  spare  enough 
troops  to  retain  their  own  line.  Neither  side  had  strength 
left  for  a  renewal  here  of  the  morning's  struggle,  the 
artillery  alone  continued  the  slaughter.  From  a  point  about 
1000  paces  south  of  Eylau,  Napoleon's  right  wing  and  the 
Eussian  left,  turned  at  right  angles  across  the  plateau  on  the 
Eussian  side.  The  French  front  extended  from  this  point  to 
Kutschitten,  with  a  kind  of  bastion  projecting  northwards 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  189 

from  its  centre,  where  Davout's  most  advanced  troops  held 
Anklappen.     The  battle  seemed  to  be  lost  for  Bennigsen. 

Another  startling  change  was  about  to  come  over 
the  fortunes  of  the  field.  Before  describing  it  we  must 
leave,  for  a  time,  the  armies  in  the  positions  described,  and 
turn  back  to  trace  the  movements  of  the  two  actors,  Ney 
and  Lestocq,  whose  appearance  on  the  scene  caused  the 
change. 

About  7  p.m.,  on  the  7th  February,  part  of  Lestocq's 
corps,  followed  and  harassed  by  Ney,*  had  reached 
Hussehnen,  about  7  miles  from  Eylau  to  the  north-west. 
His  rear-guard,  with  infinite  difficulty  in  cutting  a  road 
through  the  forest  for  its  artillery,  only  came  up  at  6  a.m. 
on  the  8th. 

At  3.30  a.m.  Lestocq  received  from  Bennigsen  an  order 
directing  him  to  march,  with  his  corps,  on  Pr.  Eylau,  and  to 
take  post  on  the  right  wing  of  the  Kussian  position. 

He  ordered  the  baggage  column  to  assemble,  at  5  a.m.,  at 
Bomben,  and  to  march,  north  of  the  fighting  column,  to  the 
Frisching,  en  route  for  Koenigsberg.  Colonel  Maltzahn, 
with  the  remnant  of  the  advanced  brigade  which  had 
suffered  so  heavily  at  Wattersdorf,  was  also  ordered  in  the 
same  direction,  to  cover  the  Koenigsberg  road.  One  bat- 
talion, and  one  squadron  were  sent,  by  Dollstadt  and  Muhl- 
hausen,  on  to  the  Eylau-Koenigsberg  road.  Esebeck,  with 
his  dragoons,  the  Kussian  Kaluga  regiment  of  infantry,  and 
half  of  a  horse  artillery  battery,  was  to  support  the  detach- 
ment at  Wittenburg.  All  the  heavy  batteries  were  ordered 
to  march  at  once,  by  Althof,  to  strengthen  the  Kussian 
artillery  on  the  battlefield. 

The  troops  which  had  not  yet  arrived  were  to  take  a 
short  rest  at  Hussehnen,  and  then  follow  Lestocq.  At  8  a.m. 
that  general  started,  with  35  squadrons,  10  battalions,  and 

*  Ney  reached  Landsberg  and  bivouacked  there  on  the  evening  of  the  7th. 
Thence  he  despatched  de  Fezensac  (at  that  time  Comte  de  Montesquiou)  on  a 
mission  to  Napoleon  at  Eylau.  The  6th  corps  appears  to  have  left  Landsberg 
in  the  small  hours  of  the  8th  (de  Fezensac,  p.  145). 


190  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  JN  POLAND. 

1}  batteries  of  horse  artillery,  to  march  on  Eylau  by  the 
direct  route,  via  Wackern,  Schlautienen,  Domiau,  Gorken, 
and  Poditten.  As  the  head  of  the  column  emerged  from  the 
forest  at  Schlautienen,  Ney  was  seen  approaching  their  right 
flank  from  Bornehnen.  To  stop  his  advance,  Lestocq  sent 
one  battalion,  whilst  he  pushed  another,  with  half  a  horse 
artillery  battery,  on  to  the  heights  running  east  from 
Schlautienen.  At  the  same  time,  the  direct  road  to  Althof 
was  abandoned,  in  favour  of  a  more  circuitous  one  by 
Pompicken  and  Graventien. 

As  Ney  drove  in  the  flanking  force  of  two  battalions,  he 
advanced  his  guns  towards  the  Schlautienen  heights  and 
Wackern.  He  had  received  orders  at  7  a.m.  to  march  on 
Kreutzburg,  and  to  drive  the  Prussians  from  the  Koenigsberg 
road  towards  Bernadotte,  who  was  supposed  to  be  marching 
direct  on  that  place. 

As  the  tail  of  the  Prussian  column  was  leaving  Wackern, 
the  head  of  another  French  force  was  seen  approaching  from 
the  south-west.  A  company  of  infantry  was  sent  into  the 
wood  in  front  of  Wackern,  to  delay,  as  much  as  possible,  this 
fresh  column.  So  vigorous  was  the  attack  of  this  company 
that  the  troops  behind  it  were  enabled  to  get  clear  of  the  village. 
As  the  French,  following  up  with  infantry  and  artillery, 
drove  in  this  weak  rear-guard,  they  occupied  Wackern.  One 
Prussian  company:had  to  force  its  way  out  with  the  bayonet. 
As  Ney's  men  passed  right  and  left  of  Wackern,  5  Prussian 
squadrons  and  a  half  battery  were  forced  aside,  on  to  the 
Kreuzburg  road,  notwithstanding  the  fire  of  their  guns. 
The  brave  stand  at  Wackern  had  given  time  to  the 
Prussians  left  to  rest  after  their  night  march  to  overtake 
the  rest  of  the  corps  at  Pompicken.  They  had  set  out  from 
Bomben  as  soon  as  they  heard  the  guns  at  Schlautienen. 

At  Pompicken  another  stand  was  made.  Ney  was,  once 
more,  delayed  while  Lestocq  pushed  steadily  on  with  his 
main  body,  by  Graventien,  to  Althof,  constantly  fending  off 
Ney's   advance   against   his    right   flank   and    rear,   whilst 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  191 

avoiding  a  general  *  action.  It  was  only  at  2  p.m.  that  Ney 
received  Napoleon's  orders,  directing  him  to  take  post  on  the 
left  of  the  army,  and  attack  the  Kussian  right.  The  orders 
had  been  despatched  at  8  a.m.,  but  the  officer  carrying  them 
was  delayed  by  various  circumstances,!  and  only  reached 
Ney  at  the  hour  named. 

The  marshal  would,  it  might  be  supposed,  naturally 
march  to  the  sound  of  the  700  or  800  guns  which  had  been 
thundering,  about  Eylau,  since  8  a.m.  Incredible  as  it  may 
seem,  no  sound  of  that  tremendous  conflict  reached  his 
ears.  The  wind  was  unfavourable,  and  it  is  agreed  by  all 
authorities  that  the  sound  did  not  travel  against  it  through 
the  snow-laden  atmosphere.J  Even  from  the  heights  be- 
tween Drangsitten  and  Graventien,  though  Lestocq  could 
clearly  see  the  flash  and  the  smoke  of  the  guns,  he  could 
hear  no  sound.  § 

It  was  1  p.m.  when  the  Prussians  approached  Althof. 
A  battalion  was  left  to  hold  the  village  and  bridge  of  Drang- 
sitten, ||  covering  the  march  of  the  corps  to  the  Russian 
right  wing  at  Schloditten.  Scarcely  had  Lestocq  formed  his 
troops  at  Althof,  when  an  urgent  message  reached  him  from 
Bennigsen,  requiring  him  to  march  to  the  aid  of  the  now 
retreating  Eussian  left  wing.      All  the  troops  he  now  had 

*  Lestocq  himself  says  he  had  the  greatest  difficulty  in  avoiding  being 
drawn  into  a  general  action  (see  his  report,  Wilson,  p.  257). 

f  The  officer  was  de  Fezensac,  who  has  left  a  full  account  of  his  journey 
(p.  145).  He  knew  Ney  was  marching  on  Kreuzburg,  as  ordered,  so  he  attempted 
first  to  join  him  direct,  via  Pompicken,  in  the  position  he  expected  the  marshal 
to  have  reached.  Finding  the  difficulties  too  great,  seeing  that  he  did  not  know 
the  country,  he  returned  to  Landsberg,  and  thence  followed  Ney,  whom  he 
reached  at  2  p.m.  He  adds  that  Thiers  asserts  that  Napoleon  sent  orders  on  the 
night  of  the  7th  to  Ney  and  Davout  to  march  on  Eylau.  In  so  far  as  concerns 
Ney,  he  vouches  for  the  incorrectness  of  this  statement,  and  for  the  fact  that  Ney 
received  no  such  orders  till  2  p.m.  on  the  8th.  As  regards  Davout,  it  is  admitted 
that  he  had  his  orders  on  the  7th. 

X  Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  364. 

§  Hoepfner,  iii.  235. 

||  The  stream  was,  of  course,  frozen,  but  its  bed  was  filled  with  deep,  soft 
snow  (Lestocq's  report,  Wilson,  p.  257,  note). 


192  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

available  for  this  purpose  were  9  J  battalions,  29  squadrons, 
and  2  horse  artillery  batteries — 5584  combatants .*  With 
this  small  force,  he  set  out,  through  Schmoditten,  for 
Kutschitten. 

The  scene  of  rapidly  increasing  disorder,  augmented  by 
the  ever-growing  fire  of  Davout's  batteries,  and  the  tri- 
umphant advance  of  his  right  against  the  Eussian  left,  has 
already  been  described.  Arriving  at  Schloditten  in  three 
columns,  the  Prussians  began  to  meet  Eussian  officers  (who 
openly  spoke  of  a  lost  battle  on  the  left),  and  disorganised 
bodies  of  troops,  leaving  the  battlefield.  These  Lestocq 
stopped,  and  gathered  up  to  return  with  him  to  Kutschitten. 
His  artillery,  coming  into  action  ahead  of  the  corps  beyond 
Schloditten,  beheld  the  heights,  between  Anklappen  and 
Kutschitten,  swarming  with  the  enemy's  skirmishers,  every 
man  standing  out  sharp  and  clear  against  the  background  of 
snow.  Heavier  bodies  occupied  Kutschitten  and  its  neigh- 
bourhood ;  behind  that  village  stood  Marulaz'  light  cavalry. 
The  Prussian  general  judged  that,  could  he  but  tear  Kuts- 
chitten from  his  grasp,  the  outflanking  enemy  would  himself, 
in  turn,  be  outflanked.  sfybor<L 

For  the  assault,  the  Eussian  Wyburg  regiment  took  post  a 
short  way  to  the  left  of  Schoning's  regiment ;  farther  to  the  left 
were  the  Euchel  and  Towarzycs  regiments,  with  200  cossacks 
who  had  rallied  to  the  Prussian  corps.  As  reserve,  behind 
these  columns,  followed,  deployed,  the  grenadier  battalion 
Fabecky.     Behind  again,  the  Prussian  cavalry  in  column. 

With  loud  cheers,  the  centre  column  moved  direct  on  the 
village,  the  other  two  passing  to  the  right  and  left  of  it. 
The  right  column  was  faced  by  French  infantry,  which  it 
drove  back  into  the  great  birch  wood.  The  centre  column, 
rushing  through  a  storm  of  grape,  chased  the  French  defenders 

*  Dumas  (xviii.  32)  estimates  that  9000  Prussians  left  Hussehuen,  and  2000 
were  left  at  Althof;  thus  Lestocq  arrived  on  the  field  with  7000.  But  he 
makes  no  mention  ef,  or  allowance  for,  the  detachments  towards  Koenigsberg. 
The  figures  accepted  in  the  text  are  those  of  Hoepfner,  based,  apparently,  on 
official  documents. 


TEE   BATTLE    OF  EYLAU.  193 

erf  Kutschitten  into  and  through  the  village.  These,  en- 
deavouring to  stand  behind  the  village,  found  themselves 
taken  in  rear  by  the  Prussian  left  column,  which,  after  driving 
off  Marulaz's  cavalry,  had  wheeled  to  its  right  and  come  down 
upon  the  back  of  the  village.  Of  the  51st  regiment  and  the 
four  companies  of  the  108th  in  Kutschitten,  hardly  a  man 
escaped.  Quarter  was  not  much  asked,  or  given,  in  the  deadly 
struggle.  Three  of  the  guns  which  Davout  had  taken  were 
re-captured. 

Kutschitten  successfully  stormed,  Lestocq  again  drew  out 
his  troops,  on  the  heights  beyond,  for  the  attack  of  the  birch 
wood,  wheeling  them  to  the  right  of  their  original  line  of 
advance. 

His  arrival,  and  the  firm  countenance  of  his  men,  had 
already  effected  wonders  in  restoring  the  Eussian  line 
behind  Anklappen.  On  the  right  he  posted  the  infantry 
regiment  Schoning,  then  the  grenadier  battalion  Fabecky, 
and  the  regiments  Kuchel  and  Wyburg.  His  cavalry  were 
in  2nd  line.  The  Towarzycs  regiment  protected  his  left,  the 
cossacks  held  in  check  the  French  cavalry  towards  Kl. 
Sausgarten. 

Their  spirits  raised  by  a  glimpse  of  the  setting  sun, 
supported  by  their  artillery  on  the  heights  to  the  right  and 
left,  the  line  marched  on  the  birch  wood.  The  frontal  attack 
drove  in  the  skirmishers,  and  carried  back  Friant's  columns 
50  yards  into  the  wood,  whilst  the  regiment  Kuchel  went 
against  their  right  flank. 

Stubborn  was  the  French  resistance;  for  half  an  hour 
the  issue  hung  in  the  balance.  At  last,  charging  and  charging 
again  with  the  bayonet,  the  Prussians  carried  the  wood,  and 
drove  Friant  into  the  open  between  it  and  Kl.  Sausgarten. 
Davout,  so  recently  riding  on  the  crest  of  the  wave  of  victory, 
now  felt  success  slipping  from  his  grasp.  He  had  lost 
Kutschitten  and  the  birch  wood;  and,  at  the  same  time, 
Bagavout  and  Kamenskoi,  rallying  beyond  Anklappen, 
supported  by  the  artillery  of  the  left  wing,  had  once  more 

o 


194  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  JN  POLAND. 

stormed  the  hamlet.  The  French,  driven  from  the  burning 
farm,  fell  back  in  disorder  towards  Kl.  Sausgarten.  Davout 
realised  fully  his  danger.  Collecting  his  guns  on  the  heights 
between  Kl.  Sausgarten  and  the  birch  wood,  he  rode  amongst 
the  disheartened  troops.  "  Here,"  he  cried,  "  the  brave  will 
find  a  glorious  death ;  it  is  the  cowards  alone  who  will  go  to 
visit  the  deserts  of  Siberia."  Not  in  vain  was  his  appeal 
made.  The  fire  of  his  artillery,  beating  upon  the  Prussians 
as  they  showed  themselves  on  the  edge  of  the  wood,  exhausted 
by  12  to  14  hours  of  continuous  marching  and  fighting,  at 
last  checked  them,  and  they  slowly  retired  into  the  wood. 
For  some  time,  the  artillery  combat  continued  in  the  darkness 
which  had  overshadowed  the  gloomy  scene.  Gradually  it 
died  away,  neither  side  being  fit  for  more  fighting.  It  was 
10  p.m.  as  the  last  shots  were  fired  on  this  side  of  the  field, 
now  once  more  illuminated  by  bivouac  fires.  Davout's  corps 
stretched  from  in  front  of  Kutschitten  on  its  right,*  past 
the  Kreegeberg,  in  the  direction  of  Eylau,  touching  St. 
Hilaire's  right. 

It  still  remains  to  narrate  the  movements  of  Ney, 
following  to  the  battlefield  Lestocq,  whom  he  had  failed  to 
drive  away  from  it. 

At  the  bridge  of  Drangsitten,  Ney  encountered  the  rear- 
guard left  by  Lestocq.  Falling  back  on  Althof  before  him, 
this  rearguard  once  more  stood  there.  Attacked  in  front  and 
on  both  flanks,  it  formed  square  and  slowly  retired  on  the 
main  body  of  its  corps,  which  it  reached,  near  the  Kutschitten^ 
birch  wood,  about  9  p.m. 

It  was  8  p.m.  when  Ney  formed  for  the  attack  of  Schlo- 
ditten,  with   Belair's   brigade  and  one  brigade  of  Lasalle's 

*  This  differs  from  the  French  accounts.  Davout  (pp.  168,  169)  affirms  that 
all  the  Russian  attacks  on  Anklappen  were  beaten  back  with  loss,  and  that  his 
left  held  the  hamlet  for  the  night.  Dumas  (xviii.  34)  tells  the  same  story. 
That  of  Hoepfner  (iii.  251)  and  of  Lestocq  himself  (quoted,  at  p.  259,  by  Wilson) 
lias  been  preferred  as  the  more  probable.  It  seems  clear  that  Davout's  left,  had 
it  remained  in  Anklappen,  would  have  been  in  a  position  far  more  exposed  than 
would  ever  have  been  suffered  by  so  able  a  tactician  as  that  marshal. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  195 

light  cavalry,  which  had  stood  all  day  on  Napoleon's  left. 
The  village,  filled  with  Russian  wounded  and  vehemently 
defended  by  their  troops,  was  only  carried  after  a  severe 
action.  The  rest  of  Ney's  corps  was  drawn  out  between 
Althof  and  Schloditten. 

The  latter  village,  being  on  the  road  to  Koenigsberg, 
Bennigsen  could  not  afford  to  leave  it  in  Ney's  hands.  To 
retake  it  he  sent  the  Taurisch  grenadier  regiment,  whilst  a 
Prussian  battery  continued  to  fire  on  it  from  the  heights 
towards  Kutschitten. 

Belair's  troops  stood,  covered  by  the  walls  and  houses  of 
Schloditten,  patiently  reserving  their  fire  till  the  Russians 
were  almost  on  them.  Then  they  opened  fire  with  such 
deadly  effect,  at  close  range,  that  the  attackers  quailed  before 
the  storm,  and  fell  back.*     But  it  was  no  part  of  Ney's 

*  Hoepfner  (iii.  253)  and  Bennigsen  (quoted  by  Wilson,  p.  241)  assert  that 
the  attack  was  successful,  Ney  being  driven  out  at  the  point  of  the  bayonet. 

Dumas  (xviii.  36),  and  other  French  authorities,  say  the  assault  was  repulsed. 
Dumas  falls  into  confusion  between  the  similar  names,  Schloditten  and  Schmo- 
ditten,  for  it  is  the  latter  which  he  represents  as  the  objective  of  the  Russians, 
though  Ney  never  occupied  it. 

Jomini  (  Vie  de  Napoleon,  iii.  364)  says  Ney  was  attacked  by  Sacken's  division, 
which  had  suffered  less  than  the  others,  and  that,  though  he  maintained  himself 
near  Schmoditten  («*c),  the  attack  imposed  upon  him,  and  he  took  position 
at  some  distance  from  the  Koenigsberg  road. 

The  historical  summary  in  the  Annual  Register  for  1807,  denies  the  Russian 
success  against  Schloditten. 

De  Fezensac  alleges  that  Belair  repulsed  the  assault  on  Schmoditten  (sic), 
and  Ney  and  his  staff  spent  the  night  there,  in  the  house  of  a  peasant  who  had 
been  killed.  He  adds  the  picturesque  detail  that  they  all  supped  off  one  wretched 
goose,  the  only  food  procurable,  which  Ney  generously  shared  with  his  staff 
(p.  148). 

The  plan  of  the  positions  at  the  end  of  the  battle  in  the  account  of  the 
u  te'moin  oculaire"  shows  Ney  as  holding  Schloditten  and  the  ground  behind  it ; 
Lasalle's  light  cavalry  between  Schloditten  and  Schmoditten. 

Careful  search  in  the  Archives  Historiques  has  resulted  in  the  version  of  this 
much-disputed  episode  given  in  the  text. 

From  Althof,  Ney  wrote  alpencil  note  to  Berthier  (Arch.  Hist.,  daily  corre- 
spondence) saying  he!  had  pushed  Lestocq  on  Schmoditten,  and  had  occupied 
Schloditten  with  the  1st  brigade  of  Marchand's  division  (Leger  Belair's),  but  he 
did  not  intend  to  hold  the  village  after  2  a.m.  if  the  enemy  remained  in  force  in 
his  front.     At  this  time  Marchand's   2nd    brigade  was   in   front  of  Althof 


196  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

intention  to  hold  Schloditten  against  the  enemy,  if  he  con- 
tinued in  force  there.  Presently  he  withdrew  his  brigade 
from  the  village,  which  was  entered,  about  2  a.m.,  by  the 
Russians,  without  opposition. 

Gradually,  with  dying  gasps  of  artillery  fire,  the  battle 
had  subsided  along  the  whole  line.  The  positions  of  the 
French  centre  and  left  remained  as  they  had  been  before 
Lestocq's  arrival,  except  that  the  line  had  been  prolonged  by 
Ney,  between  Althof  and  Schloditten. 

The  right,  too,  retained  its  position  as  far  as  the  crest  of 
the  eastern  heights.  Thence,  instead  of  extending  straight 
to  Kutschitten,  with  the  centre  advanced  to  Anklappen,  the 
extreme  right  passed,  in  front  of  the  Kreegeberg,  to  Klein 
Sausgarten,  and  the  rising  ground  in  front  of  the  village. 
Close  in  front  of  it  were  Lestocq's  Prussians  and  Russians. 

The  whole  valley,  its  slopes  and  the  plateaux  on  either 
side,   were   a   scene   of   the  most    appalling    carnage    and 

Gardanne's  2nd  brigade  was  behind  it — his  first  had  been  left  behind  to  watch 
the  Prussians  who  had  marched  from  Pompicken  on  Koenigsberg.  This  latter 
brigade  rejoined  Ney  just  as  he  closed  his  despatch.  Lasalle's  light  cavalry  and 
a  brigade  of  dragoons  were  behind  Althof.  This  despatch,  signed  by  Ney, 
appears  to  have  been  written  about  8.30  or  9  p.m.,  just  after  the  capture  of 
Schloditten. 

An  unsigned  paper,  probably  sent  by  Ney  at  a  later  hour,  distinctly  affirms 
the  repulse  of  the  Russians  at  Schloditten  at  10  p.m. 

In  the  correspondence  of  the  9th  February,  there  is  a  hasty  note  from  Soult 
to  Berthier,  dated  3  a.m.,  in  which  he  says  that,  though  the  enemy  had  occupied 
Schloditten,  he  appeared  to  be  diminishing  in  strength  on  Soult's  front.  He 
encloses,  for  Berthier's  information,  the  despatch  from  which  he  derived  the  news 
about  Schloditten.  It  is  a  pencil  note  from  Dutaillis,  Ney's  chief  of  the  staff. 
It  confirms  the  repulse  of  the  Russian  attempt  on  Schloditten  at  10  p.m.,  adding 
that  Ney  had,  later,  evacuated  the  village,  in  accordance  with  his  previously 
expressed  intention.     The  Russians  had  re-occupied  it  only  at  2  a.m. 

These  scraps  of  paper,  written  by  the  actors  in  the  midst  of  the  slaughter, 
for  the  information  and  guidance  of  brother  generals,  not  with  a  view  to 
publication,  bear  on  the  face  of  them  the  stamp  of  truth.  To  doubt  that  they 
are  a  genuine  expression  of  what  the  writer  believed  is  impossible.  He  might  be 
mistaken  in  some  matters,  but  it  is  incredible  that  he  should  be  so  in  regard  to  such 
a  patent  fact  as  the  success  or  failure  of  the  attempt  to  recapture  Schloditten. 

The  despatches  are  hidden  away  in  masses  of  correspondence  which,  probably, 
.have  not  been  searched  for  years. 


THE  BATTLE  OF  EYLAU.  197 

suffering,  the  outcome  of  this  fearful  struggle  of  two 
days.* 

Scattered  all  over  the  surface  lay  dead  and  wounded  men 
and  horses,  staining  with  their  life-blood  the  trampled  snow. 
In  places  where  the  battle  had  been  fiercest,  the  bodies  lay 
closer :  where  the  French  14th  regiment  had  fought  to  the 
last,  on  the  slope  in  front  of  Eylau,  their  position  was 
marked  by  a  square  of  corpses.  Outside  the  square  lay 
the  bodies  of  men  and  horses,  slain  in  their  attempts  to 
break  the  desperate  regiment.  The  same  scene  was  re- 
peated, in  reverse,  below  the  Eylau  church,  where  the  Kussian 
column  had  so  nearly  saved  Europe  from  years  of  the 
Emperor's  tyranny,  but  had  itself  been  exterminated.  In 
and  behind  Kutschitten,  lay  the  remains  of  its  800  French 
defenders,  of  Davout's  corps.  In  rear  of  the  French  position, 
the  eminence  near  Tenknitten  still  wore  its  ghastly  cuirass 
of  human  bodies. 

To  add  to  these  horrors,  the  ghouls  of  the  battlefield,  the 
followers,  and  even  the  transport  soldiers,  roamed  amongst 
the  dead  and  dying,  stripping  and  robbing  them  of  every- 
thing, down  to  their  very  boots.  The  wolves  from  the 
neighbouring  forests  only  awaited  the  satisfaction  of  these 
human  wild  beasts  to  enjoy  their  share  of  the  ghastly  feast. 
It  was,  to  quote  the  title  of  a  picture  in  the  Salon  of  1901, 
"  l'heure  des  fauves."  Marbot,  left  for  dead,  coming  to  his 
senses  when  his  boot  was  being  pulled  off  his  foot  by  a 
transport  soldier,  seems  to  consider  the  latter's  conduct  quite 
natural,  and  even  remarks,  almost  with  surprise,  that  his 
plunderer  was  ready  to  return  his  clothes,  when  he  found 
who  he  was,  and  that  he  was  not  yet  dead.f  The  starving 
Russians  were  still,  like  the  French,  in  search  of  what  food 
might  be  found  in   the   villages,   on*  the   dead,  anywhere. 

*  The  day  after  the  battle,  Ney,  riding  over  the  field,  viewing  all  this 
slaughter,  remarked  to  his  staff,  "  Quel  massacre !  et  sans  resultat " 
(de  Fezerwac,  p.  149). 

t  Marbot,^.  267. 


198  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Osterman  could  collect  only  2170  men  out  of  his  whole 
division.*     The  rest  were  dead,  wounded,  or  marauding. 

The  French  troops  were  almost  more  broken  in  spirit 
than  their  enemies,  who,  at  any  rate,  had  the  consolation  of 
having  scored  a  success  at  the  end  of  the  battle.  There  were 
no  enthusiastic  cries  of  "Vive  l'Empereur,"  as  there  had 
been  in  the  morning.  All  was  despondency,  gloom,  and 
misery. 

At  11  p.m.  a  strange  council  of  war  was  held  on  the 
Eussian  left  wing.  Bennigsen  had  summoned  his  generals, 
and  there,  in  the  midst  of  the  carnage  and  the  snow,  the 
situation  was  discussed  by  these  men  on  horseback.  The 
commander-in-chief  expounded  to  the  surrounding  circle  his 
views  and  intentions.  He  had,  he  said,  no  bread  t  to  feed 
his  troops,  no  ammunition  to  replenish  their  empty  pouches 
and  caissons.  He  had  no  course  open  but  retirement  on 
Koenigsberg,  where  he  would  find  stores  and  ammunition  in 
abundance. 

The  generals  besought  him  to  hold  on.  Knorring  and 
Tolstoi  offered  at  once  to  renew  the  attack,  and  complete 
the  victory,  which  they  believed  was  theirs.  Lestocq, 
summoned  to  the  council  whilst  he  was  actually  preparing 
again  to  move  against  Davout,  added  his  entreaties.  Ben- 
nigsen was  firm ;  he  knew  he  had  lost  at  least  20,000  men, 
and  he  did  not  know  that  the  French  loss  was  even  greater. 
He  insisted  on  retreat,  and  then,  exhausted  by  36  hours  on 
horseback,  he  sought  a  short  period  of  repose,  in  a  house 
resounding  with  the  shrieks  of  the  wounded  and  dying  who 
filled  it. 

About  midnight  the  Eussians,  about  2  a.m.  the  Prussians, 
began  reluctantly  to  abandon  the  field  which  they  had  so 

*  Hcepfner,  iii.  255. 

t  "  The  Prussians  had  provisions ;  but  the  Russians  had  no  other  sustenance 
than  the  frozen  snow.  Their  wants  had  induced  numbers,  during  the  battle, 
to  search  for  food  in  the  adjoining  villages,  and  the  plain  was  covered  by  foraging 
parties  passing  and  repassing  "  (  Wilson,  p.  109,  note). 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  199 

gloriously  held.*  Lestocq,  with  his  corps,  took  the  road 
towards  Domnau  and  Friedland.  The  rest  of  the  army  moved 
towards  Muhlhausen,  on  that  to  Koenigsberg.  Schloditten, 
evacuated  by  Ney,  was  held  as  a  protection  to  the  right 
flank. 

As  day  broke  on  the  9th,  Napoleon,  from  his  bivouac  on 
the  scene  of  the  first  encounter  of  the  7th,  scanning  with 
anxious  eyes  the  field  of  the  battle,  to  renew  which  his  army 
was  so  little  prepared,  saw  that,  this  time,  the  reported  retreat 
of  Bennigsen  was  indeed  true.  On  the  northern  horizon 
were  to  be  seen  groups  of  cossacks  covering  the  retreat  of 
the  army,  which  had  already  disappeared  in  the  forest 
beyond,  f 

Murat  was  at  once  launched  after  the  enemy,  but  liis 
cavalry,  broken  and  exhausted  by  their  exertions  of  the  pre- 
vious day,  were  in  no  condition  to  carry  on  a  pursuit  after  the 
heart  of  their  leader.^  It  may  be  said  that  they  followed, 
mther  than  pursued.  On  the  night  of  the  9th,  Bennigsen 
halted  at  Wittenburg,  beyond  the  Frisching ;  on  the  10th,  he 
continued  his  march  to  Koenigsberg,  there  taking  post  in 
front  of  the  Friedland  gate,  his  left  resting  on  the  Pregel, 
his  right  covered  by  the  detachments  made  from  the 
Prussian  corps  at  Hussehnen,  and  driven  from  it  at 
Pompicken.      Lestocq's   oorps,  marching  off  in   far   better 

*  It  was  about  3  a.m.  when  Soult  first  noticed  the  diminution  of  the  enemy 
in  his  front.  See  his  hurried  despatch  forwarding  that  of  Dutaillis,  quoted 
above,  p.  196,  note. 

t  Wilson  (p.  109)  says  that  Osterman,  owing  to  some  mistake  in  his  order  to 
retreat,  did  not  move  from  his  ground  till  9  a.m.  on  the  9th,  and  then  passed 
unmolested  across  the  French  front.  This  story  is  incompatible  with  the 
French  account,  and  is  not  mentioned  by  Hcepfner.  On  the  whole  it  seems 
improbable. 

X  The  "temoin  oculaire"  (p.  21)  says  the  French  would  have  marched  on 
Koenigsberg  on  the  9th,  but  for  a  change  of  weather,  which  rendered  the  roads 
impracticable  once  more. 

There  was  a  thaw  after  the  battle,  but  it  did  not  commence  till  the  middle 
of  the  day  on  the  10th.  Larrey,  who  appears  to  have  kept  a  regular  diary,  says 
(iii.  61)  that  a  fall  of  icy  rain  on  the  morning  of  the  10th  was  the  prelude  to  the 
thaw  which  set  in  during  the  day. 


200  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

order  than  the  Eussians,  reached  Domnau  on  the  9th,  and 
was  forced  beyond  it  by  Marulaz's  pursuit.*  On  the  10th, 
it  reached  Allenburg. 

The  losses  of  both  sides  in  this  sanguinary  battle  will, 
perhaps,  never  be  known  with  exactness.  The  best  esti- 
mate that  seems  possible,  on  a  consideration  of  the  various 
accounts,  would  put  the  loss  of  the  Eussians  and  Prussians 
at  about  25,000,  that  of  the  French  from  3000  to  5000  higher, 
in  killed  and  wounded.  Prisoners,  on  either  side,  were  com- 
paratively few.t  The  hand-to-hand  fighting  was  too  fierce 
to  allow  of  quarter  being  freely  asked  or  given. 

*  Lestocq  says  he  left  his  van  at  Domnau  and  established  his  headquarters 
at  Friedland  on  the  9th  (Wilson,  p.  261). 

f  Napoleon's  bulletins  are,  as  usual,  clearly  false  as  to  losses.  They  give 
them  at  1900  killed  and  5700  wounded  on  the  French  side :  at  7000  killed  and 
12,000  to  15,000  wounded  on  that  of  the  enemy.  The  latter  is  a  curious  under- 
estimate, for  Napoleon. 

Plotho  (p.  74)  gives  the  Russian  loss  as  25,000  killed  and  wounded. 
Altogether  in  the  campaign  he  thinks  they  lost  10,000  killed  and  25,000  wounded, 
and  the  total  loss  of  both  sides,  between  the  20th  of  January  and  the  9th  of 
February,  he  puts  at  the  appalling  total  of  60,000  killed  and  wounded. 

The  French  losses  at  Eylau  are  very  difficult,  the  Russian  almost  impossible 
to  estimate.  The  largest  loss  that  Napoleon  ever  admitted  was  18,000  (Melnoires 
pour  servir,  viii.  67). 

Davout  admits  that  his  corps  lost  5007. 

Augereau  gives  his  loss  as  5200,  exclusive  of  prisoners ;  it  was  probably 
higher.    Marbot  (i.  279)  goes  so  far  as  to  say  it  was  12,000  out  of  15,000. 

There  is  no  complete  statement,  in  the  Archives  Historiques,  of  the  loss  of 
the  cavalry  reserve.  Grouchy,  in  his  report  (Arch.  Hist.),  says  his  division  lost 
about  250  killed  and  wounded.  The  cuirassiers  lost  much  more  heavily.  It  will 
not  probably  be  too  high  an  estimate  to  take  the  loss  of  the  cavalry,  including 
that  on  the  left  and  the  Guard  cavalry,  at  2500. 

The  Guard  infantry  was  scarcely  engaged,  but  can  scarcely  have  lost  less 
than  1000.  It,  as  well  as  the  cavalry,  had  to  stand  all  day  under  the  fire  of  the 
Russian  artillery. 

Soult  admits  8250  killed  and  wounded  (report  in  Arch.  Hist).  He  probably 
lost  10,000. 

Ney  must  have  lost  quite  1500.  These  figures,  taking  Augereau  at  8000, 
give  a  total  of  28,000. 

Bennigsen's  despatch  (Wilson,  238-42)  gives  the  loss  on  his  side  at  12.0001 
killed  and  7900  wounded.  It  is  unlikely  that  the  wounded  were  less  than  the 
dead.    Assuming  they  only  equalled  them,  the  total  would  be  24,000. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  201 

(c)   STRATEGY   AND   TACTICS   OF  THE  EYLAU  CAMPAIGN. 

When  the  French  army  issued,  in  the  afternoon  of  the 
7th,  from  the  woods  towards  Landsberg  on  to  the  Ziegelhof 
plateau,  it  seemed  uncertain,  says  Soult,*  whether  the  whole 
Kussian  army,  or  merely  a  rear-guard,  was  in  front  of  it. 

The  conduct  of  the  action  against  the  Kussian  rear-guard 
was,  at  first,  somewhat  disjointed  on  the  side  of  the  French. 
Soult's  centre  moved  so  much  faster  than  his  right  wing  that 
the  frontal  attack,  on  the  Kussian  extreme  rear-guard,  com- 
menced and  failed  before  the  flanking  movement  was  ready. 
It  would  seem  that  the  assault  should  have  been  delayed, 
until  it  could  have  been  supported  by  Augereau  on  the  left, 
and  Schinner  and  Vivier  on  the  right,  as  it  eventually  was. 

It  has  been  shown  that  the  storming  of  Eylau,  on  the 
evening  of  the  7th,  was  probably  far  from  what  Napoleon 
desired.  The  remark  which  Marbot  alleges  he  heard  fall 
from  the  Emperor's  lips  admirably  sums  up  the  case. 
Napoleon  knew  that  Davout  could  hardly  be  in  a  position 
to  afford  help,  on  the  right,  before  the  following  day  was  well 
advanced.  Ney's  last  orders  had  directed  him  on  Kreuzburg, 
and  his  orders  to  march  to  the  battlefield  were  not  even 
despatched  till  8  a.m.  on  the  8th.  This  failure  to  call 
Ney  direct  from  Landsberg,  on  the  night  of  the  7th,  is 
an  omission,  on  the  part  of  the  Emperor,  which  it  is  very 
difficult  to  explain.  Ney  was  bivouacking  that  night  close 
to  Landsberg,f  ready  to  start  early  next  morning  for 
Kreuzburg,  as  he  actually  did.  Had  he  received  orders  by 
midnight  of  the  7th-8th,  instead  of  at  2  p.m.  on  the  8th, 
he  would  have  been  before  Schloditten  many  hours  sooner 
than  he  was,  and,  marching  on  the  shorter  line,  would  have 
anticipated  Lestocq  there.J 

Whatever  the  cause  of  this  neglect  may  have  beeD, 

*  Soult's  report  {Arch.  Hist.).  f  Ney,  Arch.  Hut. 

X  Napoleon  afterwards  said  that,  unless  Lestocq  had  been  pressed,  he  might 
have  fallen  on  the  French  left  and  rear  (Mfmoires  pour  servir,  etc.,  viii.  66). 
This  scarcely  seems  to  cover  the  case. 


202  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

it  was  clear  that,  if  Napoleon  occupied  Eylau  on  the  night 
of  the  7th-8th,  and  if  Bennigsen  held  firm  on  the  eastern 
heights,  the  French  centre  would  be  in  a  very  exposed 
situation. 

Nor  could  the  Emperor  hope  to  face  Bennigsen  with 
equal  forces.  He  was  nearly  30,000  men  short  of  his  full 
strength,  so  long  as  Davout  and  Ney  were  absent.  Ben- 
nigsen was  only  7,000  below  the  strength  he  developed  on 
the  arrival  of  Lestocq. 

With  his  superior  numbers,  on  the  morning  of  the  8th, 
Bennigsen,  had  he  been  a  commander  of  the  capacity  of  his 
adversary  or  even  of  that  of  Davout,  might  have  rolled 
Napoleon's  left  upon  his  centre,  and  the  whole  in  confusion 
on  Davout,  long  before  Ney  could  put  in  an  appearance. 
The  Emperor  had  not  infantry  to  properly  fill  the  posi- 
tion of  his  left  wing,  which  consisted  almost  entirely  of 
Lasalle's  light  cavalry  and  that  of  the  corps  of  Soult  and 
Augereau  with  part  of  the  cavalry  reserve.* 

For  four  hours  Napoleon's  centre  at  Eylau  was  in  the 
most  imminent  danger.  It  was  only  at  noon,  when  Davout's 
flank  attack  became  serious,  that  the  intensity  of  the  pressure, 
on  the  centre  and  left,  was  relieved.  When  Davout  moved 
forward  on  Kutschitten  and  Anklappen,  a  vigorous  attack 
from  Eylau  would  probably  have  decided  the  battle  in 
Napoleon's  favour,  but  the  French  troops  there  were  too 
shattered  and  exhausted,  by  the  events  of  the  morning,  to 
attempt  it. 

The  danger  to  the  left  wing  did  not  escape  the  observa- 
tion of  contemporary  critics.  Marbot  wonders  at  Bennigsen's 
failure  to  overwhelm  Eylau  before  Ney  and  Davout  arrived. 
Even  Soult  t  says  that,  so  late  as  the  arrival  of  the  Prussians, 
Bennigsen  should  have  attacked  the  French  left.    Napoleon's 

*  Soult's  report  (Arch.  Hist.)  says  there  was  nothing  but  cavalry  to  the  left 
of  Eylau.  The  village  was  a  somewhat  straggling  one,  and  it  was  a  little 
difficult  to  say  precisely  where  it  ended. 

f  Marbot,  i.  256.     Soult's  report,  Arch.  Hist. 


TEE   BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  203 

own  anxiety  for  it  is  shown  by  his  stupendous  efforts,  with 
St.  Hilaire's  division,  with  Augereau's  corps,  and  with  the 
cavalry  reserve,  to  distract  attention  from  it. 

At  St.  Helena  he  exhibits  his  sensitiveness  to  the  impu- 
tation that  he  had  attacked  at  Eylau  piecemeal.  He  tries  to 
prove  that,  if  he  had  two  corps  detached,  they  were  opposed 
by  equal  Russian  detachments.  He  distorts  the  facts.*  The 
Prussians,  it  is  true,  opposed  Ney,  but  they  were  much 
inferior  to  him  in  strength.  Davout,  Napoleon  says,  was 
opposed  by  a  force  equal  to  his  own,  which  he  drove  on 
to  the  field  in  front  of  him,  and  which  (and  not  troops 
from  Bennigsen's  right)  opposed  him  at  Serpallen  and 
Kutschitten.  This  is  a  misstatement.  Davout  found  only 
3000  men  at  Heilsberg,  and  they  had  all  joined  Bennigsen 
on  the  night  of  the  7th.  His  first  fighting  on  the  8th 
was  with  Bennigsen's  left  wing,  posted  overnight.  The  only 
possible  defence  for  an  advance  of  the  centre  into  the 
valley,  the  only  ground  on  which  Napoleon  could  accept 
it  with  equanimity,  appears  to  lie  in  the  false  information 
which  Jomini  f  alleges  he  received  from.  Murat,  that  Bennig- 
sen was  retreating  once  more,  as  he  had  already  done  from 
Jonkowo,  from  Wolfsdorf,  and  from  Landsberg.  The  report 
was  not  prima  facie  improbable ;  if  true,  it  would  have  been 
well  for  Napoleon  to  be  in  Eylau.  The  fact  that  he  left 
Augereau  and  the  Guard  on  the  western  plateau  during  the 
night,  seems  to  indicate  that  the  Emperor  believed  it,  for  a 
time  at  any  rate. 

Another  criticism,  to  which  Napoleon,  at  St.  Helena, 
showed  his  sensitiveness,  concerned  the  formation  of 
Augereau's  corps  in  its  disastrous  advance  at  10  a.m.  He 
asserts  that  the  corps  was  deployed  under  his  own  eyes, 

*  Menoire*  your  servir,  etc.,  vol.  viii.  p.  67.  Shortly  after  the  battle,  Napo- 
leon wrote  that  the  Russian  army  in  column  appeared  to  intend  outflanking  the 
French  left  when  Davout  appeared  on  the  field  (Corr.  11,796). 

t  "  Murat  announced  to  me  that  the  enemy  was  retreating,  which  supposi- 
tion was  rendered  plausible  by  the  loss  of  Eylau"  (Jomini,  Vie  de Napoleon, 
ii.  358). 


204  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

and  that  it  could  not  have  debouched  in  column  in  face 
of  the  heavy  fire.*  The  wings,  he  says,  were  supported 
by  columns. 

On  this  point  Augereau's  report  f  may  be  accepted.  He 
states  that  the  1st  brigade  of  each  division  was  deployed,  the 
2nd  formed  in  squares  in  support  of  it.  They  were  first 
overwhelmed  by  a  terrible  artillery  fire,  then  charged  by 
infantry,  and  finally  by  cavalry. 

In  the  constantly  recurring  darkness  of  the  snowstorms, 
the  only  way  to  maintain  concert  of  action  was  by  very  close 
contact  of  units,  a  rule  which  Davout  observed  in  his  attack.^ 
Had  this  plan  been  adopted  by  Augereau  and  St.  Hilaire, 
the  disastrous  deviation  to  his  left  of  the  former  would,  perhaps, 
not  have  occurred. 

The  great  cavalry  charge  was  a  desperate  remedy  for  a 
desperate  situation.  As  the  space  between  Augereau  and 
St.  Hilaire  opened  out,  it  became  necessary  to  fill  it  somehow. 
Both  outflanked,  Augereau  and  St.  Hilaire  were  being  driven 
in  opposite  directions.  All  that  Napoleon  had  left  was  his 
cavalry  and  the  Guard.  The  latter  was  his  last  reserve,  and 
he  was  always  reluctant  to  use  these  picked  troops  till  the 
last  moment;  therefore,  the  cavalry  had  to  be  sacrificed. 
Besides,  they,  with  their  superior  mobility,  played  a  part  in 
clearing  St.  Hilaire's  and  Augereau's  flanks,  which  could 
hardly  have  been  done  in  time  by  infantry.  The  moral  effect 
of  this  cavalry  incursion  into  his  very  centre  was,  probably  great 
on  Bennigsen,  and  damped  his  ardour  for  the  general  advance, 
which  Napoleon  had  such  reason  to  dread.  The  foolish  pride 
of  the  Guard  battalion,  which  insisted  on  charging  with  the 
bayonet,  nearly  cost  the  Emperor  his  life  or  his  liberty. 

By  noon,  the  French  centre  and  left  were  comparatively 

*  Mfmoires  pour  servir,  etc.,  viii.  68. 

t  Arch.  Hist. 

X  "  The  order  had  been  given  to  close  up,  and  not  even  to  leave  the  regula- 
tion interval  between  one  battalion  and  another  at  times  when  the  snow, 
falling  thickly,  prevented  the  discernment  of  objects  at  a  distance  of  ten  paces  " 
(Davout,  pp.  169,  170). 


TEE  BATTLE   OF  EYLAU.  205 

owing  to  the  vigorous  action  of  Davout,  whose  splendid 
corps  once  more  covered  itself  with  glory,  and  was  within  a 
hair's-breadth  of  completing  the  ruin  of  the  Russians.  Lestocq 
was  only  just  in  time  to  stop  the  growing  disorder.  Still, 
even  with  the  ground  he  regained,  the  Russian  position,  with 
its  left  wing  en  potencc,  and  with  Ney  holding  Schloditten  on 
the  other  flank,  on  the  road  to  Koenigsberg,  was  one  of  great 
peril 

Could  either  side  have  renewed  this  sanguinary  struggle 
on  the  9th,  is  a  question  impossible  to  answer.  Still,  Napoleon 
had  two  corps,  Ney's  and  the  Guard,  comparatively  ininjured, 
whilst  Bennigsen  had  none.  The  Russian  ammunition  had 
nearly  run  out.*  On  the  French  side,  Davout,  at  any  rate, 
had  got  up  his  ammunition  columns  and  replenished  his 
supply.f  Probably  the  reserve  ammunition  had  also  arrived 
by  the  Landsberg  road. 

Bennigsen's  retreat  was,  doubtless,  his  wisest  course.  He 
had  inflicted  enormous  loss  on  the  French  and  had  rendered 
it  impossible  for  them  to  pursue  with  any  vigour;  better 
still,  the  blow  to  Napoleon's  prestige  in  Europe  had  been 
very  heavy. 

The  Russian  general  appears  to  have  made  no  attempt 
to  fortify  his  selected  field  of  battle.  There  were  no  barricades 
or  abattis  in  Eylau,  none  in  Serpallen,  nothing  to  check  the 
progress  of  troops  in  the  woods.  In  the  prevailing  frost, 
the  ground  was,  of  course,  unworkable;  but  is  it  not 
possible  that  something  might  have  been  done  with  the  snow? 
Might  it  not  have  been  utilised,  at  least,  to  afford  some 
concealment  to  the  Russians  on  the  bare  face  of  the  heights  ? 
As  it  was,  they  were  silhouetted  clearly  against  the  snow, 
and,  when  the  sky  was  clear,  offered  a  splendid  target  to  the 
French  artillery.  Anything  in  the  form  of  trenches  in  the 
snow  would  have  seriously  incommoded  Murat's  cavalry. 
The  fact  appears  to  be  that  it  was  not  the  way  of  the  Russians 
to  use  the  spade,  even  on  a  defensive  field  of  battle,  at  this 

*   Wilson,  p.  107.  t  Davout,  p.  171. 


206  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

period,  and  they  were  probably  not  supplied  with  tools. 
Had  the  will  to  entrench  been  present,  they  might,  no  doubt, 
have  worked  the  soft  snow  without  proper  tools. 

Strategically,  the  plans  of  Bennigsen  and  Napoleon  had 
alike  miscarried.  The  Eussian  commander  aimed  at  cutting 
off  Bernadotte ;  he  stumbled  upon  Ney  in  a  position  where 
he,  as  well  as  Bernadotte,  might  have  been  destroyed,  had 
the  opportunity  been  properly  utilised.*  As  it  was,  Key's 
foolish  advance  towards  Koenigsberg  probably  saved  Berna- 
dotte by  the  delay  which  it  caused  to  the  Eussian  march ; 
his  escape  was  indeed  a  narrow  one. 

As  he  and  Ney  fell  back,  Bennigsen  became  infected 
with  the  delusion  that  the  most  important  part  of  his 
scheme  had  succeeded,  that  the  Emperor  was  in  full  retreat 
across  the  Upper  Vistula,  his  retirement  being  covered 
by  the  two  marshals. 

Napoleon's  scheme  was  ruined,  it  is  hardly  too  much  to  say, 
entirely  by  the  capture  of  the  despatch  of  the  31st  January. 
It  gave  Bennigsen  warning  of  what  was  coming  quite  twenty- 
four,  if  not  forty-eight,  hours  before  he  could  have  gathered  it 
otherwise.  The  importance  of  even  twenty-four  hours  gained 
or  lost  at  such  a  moment,  was  incalculable.  It  certainly  saved 
Lestocq,  who  was  the  nearest  to  Thorn  and  the  Vistula. 
Even  if  Bernadotte  had  got  a  second  copy  of  the  despatch, 
there  would  have  been  a  great  alteration  in  the  subsequent 
course  of  events.  Wanting  instructions,  he  was  left  hope- 
lessly behind.  At  Eylau,  Napoleon  was  deprived  of  the 
services  of  his  corps  which,  if  it  had  pursued  Lestocq  closely, 

*  "Unfortunately,  General  Bennigsen  was  not  acquainted  with  the  full 
security  in  which  General  Ney  confided,  or,  by  directing  the  march  on  Warteni- 
burg,  instead  of  Bischof stein,  the  whole  of  the  marshal's  corps  would,  probably, 
have  been  obliged  to  capitulate"  {Wilton,  p.  84). 

Instead  of  falling  on  the  rear  of  his  (Ney's)  corps,  disseminated  in  columns 
of  regiments  over  25  leagues,  it  (the  Russian  army)  made  a  long  detour  to  gain 
its  head,  and  drive  it  back  on  its  line  of  retreat;  this  fault  allowed  it  to 
concentrate  in  an  excellent  position  at  Gilgenburg"  (Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon^ 
ii.  353). 


THE  BATTLE    OF  EYLAU.  207 

would  probably,  with  the  aid  of  Ney,  have  disposed  completely 
of  him. 

Even  with  his  adversary's  scheme  laid  bare  before  hi 
eyes,  Bennigsen  risked  much  in  marching  on  Jonkowo, 
instead  of  on  Liebstadt.*  Till  he  was  well  past  the  latitude 
of  Guttstadt,  he  was  in  the  most  imminent  peril  of  being  cut 
from  Koenigsberg,  and  driven  on  the  Frisches-Haff.  In 
favour  of  his  delay,  it  must  be  said  that  he  was  apparently 
influenced  by  a  loyal  desire  to  give  Lestocq  time  to  rejoin 
him  on  liis  right.  Even  at  Eylau,  Davout's  attack  very  nearly 
drove  the  Eussians  off  the  Koenigsberg  road.  Napoleon's 
expressed  hopes  of  piercing  the  hostile  centre,  driving  one 
half  on  the  Niemen,  and  the  other  on  the  Vistula  and  Frisches- 
Haff,  failed  completely ;  yet  it  was  one  of  his  boldest  and 
best-conceived  schemes. f  It  has  not  attracted  such  general 
attention  as  the  march  on  Ulm  or  on  Jena,  because  it 
failed,  whilst  they  succeeded.  In  conception  it  equalled 
them ;  in  execution  it  failed,  chiefly,  if  not  wholly,  through 
the  contretemps  in  connexion  with  Bernadotte.  One  result 
of  the  campaign  was  to  cause  the  Emperor  to  transfer  his 
advanced  base  to  the  middle  and  lower  Vistula,  and  his  main 
line  of  communications  from  the  Posen- Warsaw  road  to  that 
of  Thorn.  J 

*  Bennigsen  "  saw  the  impossibility  of  continuing  at  Jonkowo,  and  regretted 
his  movement  from  Mohrungen,  since  he  now  had  to  retire  in  presence  of  an 
enemy,  and  General  Lestocq's  corps  was  exposed  to  imminent  hazard"  (Wilton, 
p.  91). 

f  "  In  these  campaigns  I  saw  more,  I  understood  more,  I  learnt  more  of  war 
than  I  had  in  my  preceding  campaigns,  and  even  than  I  did  in  those  which 
I  saw  afterwards.  Napoleon  owed  there  nothing  to  chance.  Everything  was 
arranged  and  foreseen.  He  did  not  seek  to  conquer  only,  or  to  invade;  he 
sought  to  surpass  a  great  warrior  who  had  operated  before  him  in  those  countries." 
"  I  have  studied  Napoleon  on  other  theatres,  but  it  is  in  this  campaign  that 
he  seemed  to  me  greatest,  the  man  born  a  general,  calculating  calmly  what 
was  possible,  difficult,  or  impossible.  The  last  he  left  to  the  enemy  ;  from  the 
others  he  derived  his  own  advantage  and  glory"  (Comeau,  pp.  228,  290). 

X  Writing  to  Daru  on  the  12th  February,  he  says  that  the  line  of  communi- 
cation will  now  pass  through  Thorn,  not  Warsaw  (fiorr.  11,804). 


CHAPTER  III. 

Events  on  the  Narew  in  January  and  February. 

NO  mention  has,  so  far,  been  made  of  the  movements  on 
the  extreme  French  right,  where  Savary  was  left  in 
command  of  the  5th  corps,  to  guard  the  approaches  to  Warsaw 
by  the  Narew  and  Bug,  and  to  cover  the  right  rear  of  the 
movement  northwards.  The  corps  at  his  disposal  consisted  of 
Suchet's  and  Gazan's  divisions,  with  Becker's  dragoon  division; 
in  all,  about  18,000  men.  Opposed  to  him,  between  the 
Narew  and  the  Bug,  were  the  two  divisions  from  the  army  of 
Moldavia,  under  Essen  I.  There  was  also  Sedmaratzki's  6th 
division  at  Goniondz,  which  might  have  to  be  reckoned  with. 
Savary's  instructions  *  were,  if  he  found  Essen  only  in 
small  force  about  Nur,  to  attack  him.  If,  on  the  contrary, 
the  Russian  general  had  been  reinforced,  Savary  would  only 
hold  Brok  and  Ostrolenka  with  cavalry.  In  any  case  his 
object  was  to  cover  the  right  bank  of  the  Narew,  from  the 
mouth  of  the  Omulew  to  Sierock,  and  to  guard  the  latter 
place  strongly,  as  well  as  the  course  of  the  Bug  between 
it  and  the  Austrian  frontier.  He  was  to  bridge  the  Bug 
near  Sierock,  and  to  press  on  the  completion  of  the  tete  de 
pont  at  Pultusk.  If  forced  to  retire  on  Pultusk  with  the 
bulk  of  his  force,  he  would  require  a  regiment  to  guard  the 
Bug  from  Sierock  to  the  Austrian  frontier.  The  cavalry 
in  Ostrolenka  would  require  a  small  infantry  force  to 
support  it. 

*  Berttrier  to  Savary,  dated  Prasznitz,  31st  January,  1807 ;  printed,  Dutnas, 
xviii.  377. 


EVENTS   ON   THE  NAREW.  209 

Essen,  meanwhile,  had,  on  the  27th  January,  advanced 
liom  Bransk  to  Wyoki  Mazowiecki,  whence  he  reinforced 
Sedmaratzki  with  3  infantry  regiments  from  the  9th  division. 

On  the  3rd  February,  the  French  were  driven  out  of 
Ostrow.  About  this  time,  Savary  received  orders  to  abandon 
Brok  and  retire  upon  Ostrolenka,  so  as  to  strengthen  his 
communication  with  the  Emperor's  army.  Davout,  it  will 
be  remembered,  had  left  a  detachment  at  Myszienec.  Oudinot 
also  was  on  the  march  from  Lowicz  to  Prasznitz,  to  assist  in 
filling  the  gap  with  his  grenadier  division. 

When  Savary  took  command  of  his  corps,  he  found 
himself  in  the  unpleasant  position  of  being  junior  to  his 
divisional  generals.  It  is  not  very  clear  why  Suchet,  a  tried 
lieutenant,  should  have  been  superseded  by  him.  He  found  the 
troops  suffering  severe  privations,  marauding  in  large  numbers 
in  search  of  food.  Therefore,  in  order  to  facilitate  supplies^ 
he  marched  to  Ostrolenka  by  Pultusk,  which,  as  he  himself 
admits,  exposed  Becker,  between  the  rivers,  to  great  risk.* 

After  Eylau,  Essen  was  ordered  by  Bennigsen  to  drive 
back  Savary,  who,  at  the  same  time,  had  made  up  his  mind 
to  assume  the  offensive.  The  French  advanced  cavalry 
captured  a  copy  of  Bennigsen's  despatch.  Savary  also 
received  information  that  Essen  had  sent  4000  or  5000  men 
across  the  now  frozen  Narew,  at  Tykoczyn,  to  turn  his 
left. 

He  decided  to  hold  Ostrolenka  on  the  defensive,  whilst 
he  assumed  the  offensive  on  the  right  bank  of  the  river. 
This  was  on  the  15th  February.  In  the  low  hills  outside 
Ostrolenka  he  left  3  brigades,  flanking  them  with  batteries 
on  the  opposite  bank.  On  the  morning  of  the  16th,  he  moved 
out  against  the  Eussian  force  coming  down  the  right  bank. 

*  Savary  remarks  that,  luckily  for  him,  the  Emperor's  attention  was  too 
much  taken  up  with  the  events  in  his  own  front  to  allow  him  to  give  much 
consideration  to  details  on  the  Narew.  But  for  this,  he  says,  more  forcibly  than 
elegantly,  "  j'aurais  eu  la  tfite  lave'e  de  main  de  inaitre  pour  m'y  Stre  me'pris  '* 
{Savary,  iii.  46). 

P 


210  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND, 

Gazan,  meeting  the  enemy  on  the  march,  drove  them  back 
on  a  narrow  road  between  two  woods,  before  they  had  a 
chance  of  deploying.     They  were  pursued  for  some  5  miles. 

In  the  meanwhile,  a  brisk  artillery  fire,  at  Ostrolenka, 
warned  Savary  that  his  troops  on  the  left  bank  were  engaged. 
The  Russians  moving  forward  in  three  columns  had  been 
firmly  met  by  Reille,  commanding  the  three  brigades  in 
Ostrolenka,  amongst  which  were  part  of  Oudinot's  grenadiers. 
Though  he  was  driven  into  the  town,  the  flanking  artillery 
fire  from  across  the  river  had  already  checked  the  Kussians. 
Savary  now  passed  the  river  with  the  rest  of  Oudinot's 
grenadiers  and  Suchet's  division,  the  latter  called  in  from 
the  Omulew.  Issuing  from  the  town,  Savary  drew  up  his 
troops  in  two  lines.  On  the  left,  leaning  on  the  river,  the 
grenadiers,  and  the  cavalry ;  in  the  centre,  Suchet ;  on  the 
right,  Campana's  brigade  (Gazan's  division).  In  this  for- 
mation he  moved  against  the  Russian  position  on  the  sand 
hills.  Thence  he  dislodged  them  with  a  loss  of  about  1000 
men  and  7  guns.* 

The  Russian  advance  on  the  right  bank  had  not  been  in 
as  great  force  as  Essen  had  intended.  Sedmaratzki's  division 
had  been  summoned  to  join  Bennigsen,  and  there  remained 
only  the  3  regiments,  under  Wolkonski,  which  Essen  had 
sent  to  reinforce  him.  After  their  repulse  by  Gazan,  they 
also  were  ordered  to  join  Bennigsen.  After  the  failure  of  his 
attempt  on  Ostrolenka,  Essen  fell  back  again,  on  the  17th,  to 
Wyoki  Mazowiecki.  Savary,  under  orders  from  the  Emperor,^ 
holding  Ostrolenka  with  a  detachment  and  repairing  the 
bridge  there,  confined  himself  generally  to  the  occupation  of 
winter  quarters  along  the  right  banks  of  the  Omulew  and 
Narew  down  to  Sierock.  Oudinot,  who  had  temporarily 
turned  aside  to  assist  Savary,  resumed  his  march  to 
Willemburg. 

Savary' s  action  at  Ostrolenka,  though  not  anything  very 
remarkable  as  a  victory,  had  been  useful  in  disclosing  the 

*  Hcepfner  (iii.  285)  says  only  2  guns. 


EVENTS   ON  THE  NAREW.  211 

fact  that  the  Russians  were  in  no  great  strength  on  this  side, 
and  that  Napoleon  had  little  to  fear  from  any  attempt  to 
strike  his  communications  with  Warsaw.  When  he  had 
Massena  in  command  of  the  5th  corps,  on  the  marshal's 
arrival  from  Italy,  there  was  little  need  for  anxiety,  especially 
looking  to  the  great  entrenched  camps  which  had  been 
created  at  Sierock,  Warsaw,  and  Modlin. 


PART  IV. 

WINTER  QUARTERS,  AND  DANZIG. 


CHAPTER   I. 

The  Eeturn  to  Winter  Quarters,  and  the  Recruitmf.n t 
of  the  Armies. 

(a)  the  return  to  winter  quarters. 

WHETHER  the  terrible  struggle  at  Eylaujwere  a  victory 
for  the  French  or  not,  the  very  fact  of  its  incom- 
pleteness was  sufficient  to  inflict  a  severe  blow  on  the 
reputation  for  invincibility  of  Napoleon,  which  had  already 
been  somewhat  shaken  by  the  indecisive  results  of  Pultusk 
and  Golymin,  and  the  promptitude  with  which  Bennigsen 
had  resumed  the  offensive.* 

It  was  absolutely  necessary  for  the  Emperor  to  convey  to 
Europe,  especially  to  Austria,  the  impression  that  he  had 
conquered.  The  Poles,  too,  might  be  inclined  to  think  that 
their  hero  was  not  invincible  if  he  retreated  too  soon  after 
the  battle. 

Anxious,  therefore,  though  he  was  to  give  his  troops  their 
well-earned  rest  in  cantonments,  the  Emperor  was  con- 
strained by  political  considerations  to  remain  some  days  on 
or  near  the  battlefield,  thereby  showing  that,  if  his  army  was 

*  Many  French  writers  even  do  not  attempt  to  represent  Eylau  as  a  victory. 

'• The  battle  was  long,  very  bloody,  and,  despite  the  paeans  of  victory  and 
the  bulletins,  it  is  one  of  those  which  I  have  always  held  lost"  (Comeau, 
p.  284). 

Savary  (iii.  64)  says  that  it  could  be  considered  a  victory  only  if  the  retention 
of  the  battlefield,  and  the  retreat  of  the  enemy,  can  be  considered  alone  to  con- 
stitute victory. 

Ney's  exclamation, "  Quel  massacre !  et  sans  resultat ! "  (de  Ftzemac.  p.  149) 
shows  what  that  marshal  thought  of  it. 


21 6  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND, 

too  much  shattered  for  him  to  dare  a  fresh  advance  on 
Koenigsberg,  the  Kussians  were  equally  not  in  condition  to 
retrace  their  footsteps  westwards. 

Even  had  the  French  corps  been  fit  for  a  renewal  of  the 
campaign,  its  difficulties  would  have  been  vastly  increased  by 
the  break-up  of  the  frost  on  the  10th  February. 

One  more  reason  for  delay  was  the  necessity  for  clearing 
the  country,  by  sending  to  the  hospitals  in  rear,  the  many 
thousands  of  wounded  French  and  Eussians  who  were  lying 
in  every  village  near  the  scenes  of  the  series  of  actions 
culminating  at  Eylau.  Little  or  no  attempt  to  bury  the 
dead  was  made :  they  were  left  to  the  beasts  and  birds  of 
prey.  As  Plato w  grimly  remarked,  when  an  armistice  was 
proposed  for  this  purpose  after  an  action  in  March,  the 
weather  was  so  cold  that  there  was  no  fear  of  pestilence  from 
this  source.*  Besides,  so  long  as  the  ground  was  unthawed, 
burial  was  almost  a  physical  impossibility. 

Napoleon  at  once  issued  orders  for  the  removal  of  the 
wounded,  no  easy  matter  where  carriages  were  scarce  and 
could  only  be  dragged  through  the  snow  and  mud  by  double 
and  treble  teams. f  Their  sufferings,  jolted,  and  shivering  in 
the  bitter  cold,  on  open  carts  or  sledges,  must  have  been 
aggravated  to  a  frightful  degree.     It  was  no  short  distance 


*  Wilson,  p.  125.  Platow's  words,  according  to  this  authority,  were  that 
*  the  weather,  being  cold,  there  was  no  danger  of  any  inconvenience  from  their 
want  of  interment,  and  that  he  should  give  himself  no  thought  about  their 
obsequies,  but  he  warned  off,  in  future,  all  such  frivolous  messengers,  unless  they 
wished  to  increase  the  number  of  the  unburied."  Perhaps  Sir  R.  Wilson  would 
have  better  consulted  the  reputation  of  his  hero  by  omitting  this  anecdote,  which 
smacks  strongly  of  the  barbarian. 

+  Marbot,  one  of  the  wounded  himself,  describing  his  journey,  says :  "  So 
long  as  we  were  in  that  horrible  Poland  it  required  12,  sometimes  16  horses,  to 
draw  the  carriage  at  a  walk  through  the  bogs  and  quagmires"  (Marbot,  i.  271). 

"  The  wounded,  obliged  to  be  moved  in  sledges  in  the  open  air  to  a  distance 
of  50  leagues "  (Napoleon  to  his  brother  Joseph,  dated  1st  March,  1807:  see 
Confidential  Correspondence  with  Joseph,  No.  278,  p.  231). 

"  We  had  to  add  to  our  spring  carriages,  sledges  and  bad  carts,  the  move- 
ment of  which  became  more  or  less  difficult  with  the  thaws  and  frosts  which 
alternated  "  (Larrey,  iii.  48). 


THE    RETURN   TO    WINTER    QUARTERS.  217 

that  they  had  to  traverse,  for  the  Emperor  had  resolv. 
any  rate,  to  abandon  his  forward  position,  where  the  difficulty 
of  supplying  his  army  was  already  felt.*  He  was  uncertain 
even,  whether  he  would  be  able  to  maintain  himself  beyond 
the  Vistula  at  all.  Therefore,  he  ordered  the  establishment 
of  his  hospitals  at  Posen,  Thorn,  Bromberg,  and  Gnesen,  on 
or  behind  the  great  river.f  So  anxious  was  he  that  he  sent 
Bertrand  to  open  negotiations  with  the  Prussian  king,  offer- 
ing terms  far  more  favourable  than  any  suggested  since 
Jena,  and  than  those  he  subsequently  granted,  when  he  was 
in  a  position  to  dictate  conditions.  X  To  the  credit  of  the 
king  and  his  advisers,  the  offer  was  rejected. 

On  the  11th  February,  Bernadotte  at  last  reached  Eylau, 
and  was  sent  on  to  the  road  to  Kreuzberg.§  Murat  was 
ordered  to  watch  beyond  the  Frisching,  supported  by  Ney  on 
the  Eylau-Koenigsberg  road.  Davout  took  up  cantonments 
at  Domnau,  with  cavalry  towards  Friedland.  Soult  was  in 
the  villages  on  the  battlefield,  the  Guard  at  Eylau,  and  the 
remnant  of  Augereau's  corps  on  the  Bartenstein  road. 

Bennigsen  called  in  the  Prussians  from  Allenburg,  but 
left  some  2600  cavalry  there  and  at  Friedland.  The  latter 
place  Davout  seized  on  the  13th.  The  events  of  the  next 
two  or  three  days  are  of  no  interest  or  importance ;  there 

♦  Corr.  11,805,  dated  12th  February,  1807. 

t  Corr.  11,804,  to  Daru,  dated  12th  February,  1807. 

X  Corr.  11,810,  dated  12th  February,  giving  instructions  to  Bertrand.  That 
officer  was  to  offer  the  restitution  of  the  Prussian  territories  practically  intact. 
He  was  to  point  out  that,  even  if  the  position  of  Prussia  were  restored  through 
Russia,  the  king  would  be,  so  to  speak,  a  vassal  of  the  Czar,  which  would  suit 
neither  Prussia  nor  France.  Napoleon  would  prefer  to  make  the  restoration 
himself,  but  he  absolutely  declined  the  idea  of  a  conference  at  which  England 
should  be  represented.  Such  a  course  would  involve  endless  delay,  and  might 
spread  over  the  next  two  years.  Prussia  was  necessary  to  Europe,  as  well  as  to 
France,  as  a  barrier  against  Russia.  The  throne  of  Berlin  must  be  filled  shortly, 
whether  by  a  member  of  the  house  of  Brandenburg,  or  by  some  one  else.  The 
person  to  whom  it  fell  must,  however,  clearly  understand  that  it  was  the  gift  of 
Napoleon  alone. 

§  Bernadotte's  headquarters  on  the  11th,  12th,  13th  were  at  Gorken ;  on  the 
14th,  15th,  16th  about  Kreuzburg. 

"  Joumaux  inilitaires,"  1st  corps,  Arch.  Hist. 


218  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

were  a  few  small  combats  of  cavalry,  but  neither  side  was  in 
a  condition  to  undertake  any  serious  operation.  Napoleon 
was,  in  fact,  preparing  everything  for  retreat  to  the  position 
behind  the  Passarge,  which  he  hoped  to  be  able  to  gain  un- 
perceived,  and  to  hold  during  the  rest  of  the  cold  season. 

On  the  16th,  the  wounded  having  for  the  most  part  been 
removed,  the  Emperor  considered  he  had  stayed  long  enough 
near  the  scene  of  the  great  battle  to  show,  at  least,  that  he 
had  not  been  defeated.  The  orders  for  retreat  were  issued, 
therefore,  on  that  date  to  the  following  effect : — * 

On  the  16  th  reserve  parks,  baggage,  sick,  and  everything 
that  would  delay  the  march,  to  gain  a  start  of  8  or  10  miles 
in  the  line  to  be  followed  by  the  respective  corps.  The 
march  to  commence  on  the  17th,  all  outposts  remaining  as 
they  were,  so  as  to  deprive  the  enemy  of  any  knowledge  of 
the  movement  going  on  behind  them. 

Ney,  commanding  the  rear-guard,  with  his  own  corps, 
with  the  cavalry  divisions  of  Lasalle  and  Klein  and  the 
brigade  of  Guyot,  would  reach  Eylau  on  the  17th,  Landsberg 
on  the  18th,  and  Freymarkt  on  the  19th.  Campans, 
with  the  remains  of  Augereau's  corps,  was  to  start  on 
the  16th  for  Heilsberg,  with  two  battalions  sent  on  as  far 
as  possible  towards  Guttstadt,  to  which  place  he  would 
follow  with  the  rest  on  the  17th. 

Davout  to  reach  Bartenstein  on  the  17th,  Heilsberg  on 
the  18th,  Guttstadt  on  the  19th.  The  battalion  of  the  85th, 
which  he  had  left  at  Oertelsberg,  would  rejoin  him  at 
Heilsberg. 

Bernadotte  was  to  reach  Schlautienen  on  the  17th, 
Seefeld  on  the  18th,  Wormditt  on  the  19th.  The  country 
on  his  left,  towards  Zinten  and  Mehlsack,  to  be  watched  by 
light  cavalry ;  from  Seefeld  more  light  cavalry  to  be  sent  to 
Orschen.f     Ney  was  to  be  kept  fully  informed  of  what  was 

*  Dumas,  xviii.  54-60,  and  the  detailed  orders  printed  at  pp.  432-439  of  the 
same  volume. 

f  On  Bernadotte's  pointing  out  the  difficulty  of  moving  his  artillery  by  this 


THE  RETURN  TO    WINTER    QUARTERS.  219 

happening  in  Bernadotte's  direction.  Soult  to  reach  Lands- 
berg  the  17th,  Frauendorf  18th,  and  Liebstadt  19th. 

Bessiere's  marches,  with  the  Guard,  were  to  Landsberg  on 
the  17th,  to  Freymarkt  on  the  18th,  and  to  Liebstadt  on  the 
19th. 

By  these  movements  the  army  would,  on  the  19th,  be  on 
the  line  Wormditt — Liebstadt — Guttstadt,  with  Ney  some- 
what in  advance  at  Freymarkt.  It  will  be  observed  that 
Augereau's  and  Soult' s  corps,  which  had  been  so  shattered  at 
Eylau,  were  kept  well  away  from  any  pursuit  the  Kussians 
might  attempt,  if  they  discovered  the  movement  before  it  was 
complete.  The  brunt  of  the  pursuit  would  fall  on  the  un- 
shaken corps  of  Ney  and  Bernadotte.  Napoleon  clearly 
thought  it  unlikely  that  Bennigsen  would  interfere  with  his 
right.  He  hoped,  and  the  event  justified  him,  that  the 
retreat  would,  owing  to  the  maintenance  of  the  outposts  to 
the  last  moment,  remain  undiscovered  till  it  was  complete. 

It  was  only  on  the  19th  that  Bennigsen  realised  that  his 
enemy  was  gone.  Platow,  on  that  date,  entering  Eylau, 
found  there  1500  Kussians  and  a  few  hundred  French,  whose 
wounds  were  so  bad  as  to  render  their  removal  impossible. 

On  the  20th,  the  main  body  began  to  advance.  The 
Prussians  occupied  Domnau  and  Bartenstein.  Here  they 
were  joined  by  Sedmaratski,  who  had  now  arrived  and 
marched  on  their  left  to  Seeburg.  That  evening,  Lestocq 
received  orders  to  send  part  of  his  force  to  act  as  the  right  of 
the  allied  army,  holding  the  French  left  in  check. 

On  the  21st,  the  Eussian  advanced  guard  reached  Lands- 
berg, where  more  of  the  most  severely  wounded  were  found. 
There  was  some  fighting  between  the  cossacks  and  the 
retiring  French  outposts  in  the  village.  The  main  body  was 
at  Eylau  with  its  second  line  behind  Kreuzburg  ;  the  reserve 
still  behind  the  Frisching. 

route,  he  was  allowed  to  move  by  the  Mehlsack  road,  provided,  always,  he  took 
good  care  to  cover  that  to  Landsberg  (Berthier  to  Bernadotte,  16th  February ; 
printed,  Dumas,  xviii.  437). 


220  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

The  Prussians  were  now  partly  on  the  right,  partly  on  the 
left  of  the  advance,  while  Bennigsen  moved  in  a  single 
column.  Plotz,  on  the  extreme  right  with  part  of  the 
Prussians,  crossed  the  Lower  Passarge  at  Braunsberg. 
Encounters  with  the  last  rear  guards  of  the  French  frequently 
occurred. 

Napoleon,  before  he  retreated,  had  announced*  to  his 
army,  by  proclamation,  his  intention  of  taking  up  his  quarters 
nearer  the  Vistula.  He  boasted  loudly  the  success  of  his 
operations  against  Bennigsen.  The  latter,  at  Landsberg,  on 
the  25  th  February,  in  turn,  appealed  to  his  army  with  an 
equally  exaggerated  account  of  his  alleged  successes,  f 

*  "  Pr.  Eylau,  February  16th.  Soldiers,— We  had  begun  to  enjoy  a  little 
repose  in  our  winter  quarters  when  the  enemy  attacked  the  first  corps,  and 
showed  themselves  on  the  Lower  Vistula.  We  broke  up,  and  marched  against 
him.  We  have  pursued  him,  sword  in  hand,  80  miles.  He  has  fled  to  his 
strongholds,  and  retired  beyond  the  Pregel.  In  the  battles  of  Bergfried,  Deppen, 
Hof,  and  Eylau,  we  have  taken  from  him  65  pieces  of  cannon,  and  16  standards, 
besides  his  loss  of  more  than  40,000  men  in  killed,  wounded,  and  taken 
prisoners.  The  heroes  who,  on  our  side,  remain  in  the  bed  of  honour,  have  died 
a  glorious  death.  It  is  the  death  of  a  true  soldier.  Their  relatives  will  always 
have  a  just  claim  to  our  care  and  benevolence.  Having  thus  defeated  all  the 
enterprises  of  the  enemy,  we  shall  return  to  the  Vistula,  and  resume  our  winter 
quarters.  Those  who  may  dare  to  disturb  these  quarters  shall  have  reason  to 
repent;  for,  whether  beyond  the  Vistula  or  on  ihe  other  side  of  the  Danube, 
whether  in  the  middle  of  the  winter,  or  in  the  beginning  of  autumn,  we  still 
shall  be  found  French  soldiers  and  soldiers  of  the  Grand  Army  "  (Proclamation, 
quoted,  Wihon,  p.  200). 

t  "  Soldiers, — As  I  was  informed  by  my  outposts  that  the  enemy  flattered 
himself  he  would  cut  us  from  our  frontiers,  I  caused  the  army  to  take  a  different 
position,  so  as  to  mar  their  plans.  The  French,  deceived  by  this  movement,  fellv 
into  the  snare  which  I  had  spread  for  them.  The  roads  by  which  they  followed 
us  are  strewn  with  their  corpses.  They  were  drawn  on  to  the  field  of  Eylau, 
where  your  incomparable  valour  surpassed  my  hopes ;  and  you  have  shown  them 
all  that  Eussian  heroism  can  do. 

"  In  that  battle  more  than  30,000  French  met  their  death.  They  have  been 
forced  to  retire  from  every  point,  leaving  us  their  wounded,  their  standards,  and 
their  baggage. 

"I  vainly  endeavoured  to  draw  them  under  the  walls  of  Koenigsberg — there 
to  complete  their  destruction.  Only  eleven  regiments  dared  to  advance.  They 
have  been  destroyed,  or  taken  prisoners. 

"  Warriors  J  you  have  now  rested  after  your  exertions ;  let  us  pursue  these 
disturbers — let  us  crown  our  great  deeds,  and,  after  having,  by  fresh  victories, 


TEE  RETURN   TO    WINTER    QUARTERS,  221 

Benuigsen  hoped  that  Napoleon  was  still  in  retreat  across 
the  Vistula,  but  was  not  strong  enough  to  dare  to  push  him 
hard ;  the  Emperor  had  no  intention  of  repassing  the  river  it' 
he  could  help  it,  but  he  was  far  from  certain  that  Bennigsen 
might  not  compel  him  to  do  so. 

He  at  once  proceeded  to  issue  orders  for  the  assumption 
of  winter  quarters  as  he  desired  to  hold  them.  His  main 
line  of  communications  was  now  changed.  The  route  by 
Warsaw  ceased  to  be  his  principal  line,  being  replaced  by 
that  of  Thorn.  The  chief  depot  on  that  line  would  be  Posen, 
whence  canals  afforded  excellent  communications,  in  open 
weather,  with  Magdeburg  in  rear,  and  Bromberg  in  front.* 

The  Warsaw  line  was  by  no  means  given  up.  It  was 
necessaiy  on  all  grounds,  military  as  well  as  political,  to 
retain  the  Polish  capital.  Savary's  success  at  Ostrolenka 
had  cleared  the  country,  and  allowed  of  the  establishment  of 
direct  communication  between  Warsaw  and  the  main  army 
on  the  Lower  Vistula,  instead  of  forcing  convoys  to  hug  the 
bank  of  the  river,  f  To  strengthen  the  force  at  Ostrolenka, 
Jerome  was  ordered  %  to  send  to  it  a  Bavarian  division  of 
about  10,000  men,  as  well  as  about  5000  or  6000  Polish 
levies.  Napoleon  had  also  added  to  it  a  tower  of  strength 
in  the  person  of  Mass^na,  whom  he  had  summoned  from 
Italy  to  take  the  command  of  his  right.  Massena's  relations 
with  King  Joseph  at  Naples  had  not  been  too  cordial,  and 
he  welcomed  the  summons  to  more  active  duties  in  the  field. 


given  peace  to  the  world,  we  will  re-enter  our  beloved  country.  Our  monarch 
awaits  us  to  recompense  your  incomparable  valour.  In  the  arms  of  our  wives  and 
children,  we  shall  console  ourselves  for  all  the  misfortunes  which  have  afflicted 
our  dear  country  "  (Bennigsen's  Proclamation,  quoted,  Dumas,  xviii.  66,  67). 

*  Corr.  11,804,  dated  12th  February,  to  Daru. 

t  On  the  19th  February,  the  Emperor  sent  orders  for  the  construction  of  a 
good  road  from  Warsaw  to  Osterode,  behind  the  Ukra,  passing  through  Zakroc- 
zin,  Plonsk,  Raciaz,  Soldau,  and  Gilgenburg  (Corr.  11,831).  Osterode  was 
to  be  the  principal  depot  beyond  the  Vistula,  and  the  construction  there  of  great 
bread  and  biscuit  bakeries  was  directed  (Corr.  11,830,  dated  February  19th). 

X  Corr.  11,811,  dated  13th  February,  and  orders  of  24th  February  to  Mas- 
se'na  (Duma*,  xviii.  467). 


222  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

He  was,  however,  disappointed  to  find  himself  relegated  to 
a  secondary  part  of  the  theatre  of  war.  He  remarked  to 
the  Emperor,  "  Then,  sire,  it  is  a  simple  corps  of  observation 
that  I  am  to  command,  on  the  rear  of  the  Grand  Army  ?  "  * 
The  complaint  was  scarcely  fair,  for  it  was  by  no  means 
impossible  that  the  command  might  become  of  supreme 
importance,  should  the  Russians  once  more  attempt  an 
advance  on  Warsaw.  Moreover,  as  Napoleon  explained  to 
Massena,  he  could  hardly  supersede  men  who  had  borne  the 
brunt  of  the  campaign  in  favour  of  the  last  comer,  even  if  he 
were  Marshal  Massena.  Massena's  objects  were  (a)  to  cover 
Warsaw ;  (b)  to  hold  in  check  the  enemy's  left ;  (c)  to 
protect  the  country  against  incursions  of  cossacks,  and  to 
maintain  the  communications  of  the  army.f 

On  the  opposite  flank,  the  capture  of  Danzig  was 
urgently  necessary,  and  orders  were  issued  to  Lefebvre,  so 
early  as  the  18th  February, J  to  proceed  to  its  investment. 
The  siege  would  be  carried  on,  even  if  a  retreat  to  the  left 
bank  of  the  Vistula  were  forced ;  in  that  case  it  could  not  be 
so  effectually  covered.  Lefebvre  would  have  the  Poles, 
already  assembled  on  the  left  bank,  Menard's  division  of 
French  troops,  which  ought  to  have  arrived,  and  the  Saxons, 
about  to  march  from  Posen. 


*  Maufna,  v.  316. 

f  See  full  instructions  to  Massena,  dated  Osterode,  25th  February ;  printed, 
Dumas,  xviii.  467,  etc. 

He  was,  if  possible,  to  maintain  the  line  of  the  Omulew,  with  an  advanced 
guard  in  Ostrolenka,  and  the  main  body  in  Pultusk,  Makow,  and  Prasznitz.  If 
forced  to  do  so,  he  could  fall  back  successively  on  the  lines  of  the  Orezyc  and 
the  Ukra.  In  the  last  resort,  he  would  have  to  defend  the  great  entrenched 
camp  at  Praga  and  Warsaw.  In  the  event  of  the  Emperor's  deciding  to  resume 
the  offensive,  he  would  send  Massena  special  orders.  If  the  Russian  main  body 
acted  offensively  against  the  Emperor,  Massena  would  take  the  offensive,  with 
a  view  to  detaining  Essen  on  the  Narew,  or  to  follow  him  if  he  slipped  away. 
Were  Massena's  corps  attacked  in  great  force,  he  would  require  to  let  go  Pultusk, 
but  should  hold  the  bridge  at  Sierock  as  long  as  possible.  By  so  doing,  he  would 
be  in  a  position  to  follow  the  force  which  had  driven  him  back,  should  it  turn 
northwards  against  the  Emperor. 

X  Corr.  11,826,  dated  Landsberg,  18th  February,  to  Lefebvre. 


THE  RETURN   TO    WINTER    QUARTERS.         223 

To  cover  this  great  siege,  and  the  blockades  of  Graudenz 
and  Colberg,  the  following  orders  for  cantonments  were 
issued,  on  the  20th  February.* 

Osterode  was  fixed  as  the  rallying-point  for  all  the  corps 
of  the  centre  and  left,  in  the  event  of  the  enemy  again 
advancing.  Augereau's  corps  ceased  to  exist,  the  small 
portion  of  it  which  had  escaped  at  Eylau  being  distributed  to 
others. 

To  Bernadotte  was  assigned  the  Lower  Passarge,  from  its 
mouth  to  Spanden.  He  was  to  occupy  Braunsberg  and 
Saalfeld,  with  his  troops  cantoned  in  columns  between  the 
two ;  headquarters  at  Pr.  Holland.  Infantry  and  cavalry 
posts  along  the  Passarge,  watching  all  the  passages  so  as  to 
prevent  a  crossing  by  the  enemy's  light  cavalry. 

Soult  would  take  up  the  line  on  Bernadotte's  right, 
holding  Wormditt,  Liebstadt,  Mohrungen,  and  Liebemuhl, 
having  only  advanced  guards  across  the  Passarge,  and  guard- 
ing its  course  from  Spanden  to  Deppen.  His  troops, 
generally,  would  be  in  column  from  Wormditt  to  Liebemuhl. 

Ney  was  to  occupy  Guttstadt  and  Allenstein,  keeping 
cavalry  and  infantry  posts  between  the  Alle  at  Guttstadt  and 
the  Passarge  at  Elditten,  watching  the  passages  of  the  former 
river  from  Guttstadt  to  Allenstein.  His  park,  ambulances, 
etc.,  somewhere  between  Allenstein  and  Osterode. 

Davout  was  to  occupy  cantonments  from  Hohenstein  to 
Gilgenburg,  watching  the  country  towards  Passenheim  and 
Willemburg  with  detachments. 

These  four  corps  were  thus  spread  out  like  a  fan,  radiating 
from  the  centre  at  Osterode  to  the  arc  through  Braunsberg, 
Wormditt,  Guttstadt,  Allenstein,  and  Gilgenburg.  The 
Guard,  and  Oudinot's  grenadiers,  were  ordered  to  Osterode, 
Lobau,  Rosenthal,  Neumark,  etc.,  forming  a  general  reserve. 

The  headquarters  of  the  cavalry  reserve  were  also  at 
Osterode.  Sahuc's  dragoons  were  made  over  to  Bernadotte, 
another   dragoon   division  to   Ney,   Millhaud's   to  Davout. 

*  Orders  printed  in  full,  Dumas,  xviii.  448,  etc. 


224  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Klein  was  to  occupy  cantonments  at  Elbing,  and  on  the  road 
to  Pr.  Holland.  There  also  Durosnel  was  to  refit  his  light 
cavalry.  That  under  Lasalle  was  to  go  to  Neidenburg  and 
the  neighbourhood.  The  three  cuirassier  divisions,  which  had 
suffered  heavily  before  and  at  Eylau,  were  sent  to  the  rear, 
about  Eiesenburg,  Freystadt,  Bischofswerder,  Strasburg,  etc. 

The  movements,  commencing  on  the  21st,  were  to  be 
completed  by  the  23rd,  except  in  the  case  of  Bernadotte. 

Each  corps  was  to  have  a  small  hospital  on  the  right  bank 
of  the  Vistula,  besides  a  larger  one  on  the  left. 

At  Osterode,  food  was  to  be  stored  sufficient  for  the  army 
for  10  days ;  two  points  between  Osterode  and  Thorn  were 
also  to  be  selected,  and  kept  stored  with  5  days'  supplies 
at  each. 

At  Thorn,  20  days'  more  supplies  were  to  be  collected  and 
kept  up,  thus  making  40  days'  altogether  in  reserve.* 

(b)  napoleon's  measures  for  increasing  his  force. 

This  seems  to  be  the  most  convenient  moment  at  which 
to  interrupt  the  narrative  of  events  for  the  purpose  of  sketch- 
ing briefly  the  measures  which,  during  the  next  four  months 
after  Eylau,  the  Emperor  took  for  the  purpose  of  reinforcing 
his  army  to  a  strength  which  should  place  beyond  all  doubt 
the  result  of  the  campaign  in  the  spring  or  summer.  He 
felt,  too,  that  his  prestige  had  suffered  so  severely  that  he 
must  so  strengthen  himself  in  Germany  as  to  render  it 
almost  impossible  for  Austria  to  dare  the  risk  of  interference, 
and,  at  the  same  time,  to  guard  against  an  English  descent, 
in  support  of  the  Swedes,  on  his  left  rear. 

Such  a  descent  he  had  always  thought  possible,  though 
he  estimated  25,000  men  as  the  utmost  number  the  expe- 
dition was  likely  to  muster,  f     In  the  earlier  stages  of  the 

*  Berthier  to  Daru,  20th  February,  1807,  Dumas,  xviii.  453. 

t  Corr.  12,135,  dated  23rd  March,  1807,  to  his  brother  Louis.  Also  Corr. 
12075,  dated  18th  February,  in  which  he  tells  Clarke  that  it  is  even  possible 
Berlin  might  be  temporarily  occupied  by  a  raid  from  the  sea. 

The  estimate  of  numbers  was  certainly  a  liberally  high  one. 


TEE  RECRUITMENT  OF  TEE  ARMIES.  225 

war  the  possibility  of  its  landing  on  the  coasts  of  France  was 
greater  than  it  was  now  that  the  Emperor  had  transferred 
the  seat  of  war  to,  and  beyond  the  Vistula. 

Under  these  circumstances,  the  Emperor  felt  that  he 
could  venture  on  a  further  denudation  of  the  French  and 
Dutch  ports,  and  of  the  reserve  at  Paris,  the  void  being 
filled  by  conscripts  of  1807  and  1808 ;  for  he  contemplated 
another  draft  on  the  military  reserves  of  the  future.* 

Each  of  the  5  battalions  in  Paris,  and  the  6  at  Brest,  was 
reduced  to  600  men,  all  above  that  number  being  drawn  for 
the  nucleus  of  fresh  provisional  regiments.  The  depots  of  the 
65th  and  72nd,  in  Holland,  were  required  to  provide  160  men 
each  for  the  same  purpose.f  Zayonchek's  Polish  corps, 
which  was  destined  to  fill  the  gap  between  Massena  and  the 
main  army,  was  ordered  to  be  recruited  up  to  25,000  men. 

Napoleon's  design  was  to  create  an  army  of  observation 
in  Germany,  to  be  placed  under  the  orders  of  Brune. 
Kaising  it  to  60,000  or  70,000  men,  and  having  available  on 
its  wings  the  corps  of  Mortier  in  Pomerania,  and  of  Jerome  in 
Silesia,  he  would  have  at  his  disposal  at  least  100,000  men 
in  rear  of  his  army  on  the  Vistula.  This  great  force  could  be 
moved  forward  on  the  Vistula,  back  upon  the  Elbe,  north  to 
the  coast,  or  south  against  Austria,  as  circumstances  might 
requke. 

The  conscripts  of  1808  were  demanded  by  a  message 
to  the  Senate,  dated  20th  March,  1807,  about  one  and  a  half 
years  before  they  were  due 4  Their  distribution  was  laid 
down  precisely,  the  principle  of  sending  them  where  they 


*  Corr.  12080,  dated  19th  March,  to  Lacue'e,  in  which  Napoleon  says  he 
proposes  demanding  the  conscription  of  1808.  Reckoning  it  at  80,000,  he  would 
send  36,000  to  5  legions  of  reserve,  and  24,000  to  complete  the  3rd  battalions  at 
home.  Thus  the  boys  of  under  20  would  be  kept  back  from  the  scene  of  active 
operations,  for  which  he  thought  them  unfit.  Writing  to  Kellerman  on  the  4th 
June,  he  says  that  the  conscripts  of  1808  are  too  young  for  work  at  the  front. 
(Corr.  12,722.) 

t  Corr.  11,901,  dated  28th  February,  to  Dejean. 

X  Corr.  12,100. 


226  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

were  not  likely  to  see  active  service  being  carefully  ob- 
served.* 

From  Italy  were  drawn,  for  the  army  of  observation,  the 
French  divisions  of  Boudet  and  Molitor,t  and  other  troops. 
Spain  was  called  on  to  supply  15,000  men  for  the  army  of 
observation.  The  Prince  of  Peace  had  been  organising 
Spanish  troops,  nominally  to  be  able  to  assist  Napoleon  if 
required,  really  to  be  prepared  for  action  in  the  event  of  his 
defeat.  The  Spaniard's  hand  was  forced  by  the  Emperor's 
demand,  and  he  meekly  sent  the  troops. 

In  the  latter  half  of  April,  the  ports  were  once  more 
drawn  on  for  four  divisions,  to  be  replaced  by  the  reserve 
legions  and  by  conscripts.  These  four  divisions  would 
march  parallel  to  the  coast,  following  the  English  move- 
ments, and  ready  at  any  moment  to  meet  a  descent  from  the 
sea  on  their  left.J  To  embarrass  England,  Admiral  Decres 
was  ordered  to  make  preparations  in  Brest,  as  if  for  a 
descent  on  Ireland.  The  Emperor  believed  an  English  expe- 
dition to  be  starting  at  the  end  of  April. §     Very  complete 

*  The  distribution  was  thus — 

(20,000  for  the  5  legions. 
15,000  to  Italy. 
25,000  for  the  rear  of  the  Grand  Army. 
!  10,000  to  the  legions. 
5,000  to  Italy. 
5,000  to  the  Grand  Army. 

(Corr.  12,228,  dated  30th  March.) 

t  Corr.  12,232,  dated  30th  March. 

%  Corr.  12,435,  dated  21st  April,  1807,  to  Lacue'e.  The  Emperor  again  says 
he  does  not  believe  England  able  to  embark  more  than  25,000  men.  If  the 
expedition,  which  he  believed  to  be  starting  shortly,  should  appear  to  be  making 
for  the  Baltic,  the  four  divisions  would  march  off  thus,  following  its  movement, 
and  being  replaced  as  they  started  by  the  legionaries  and  conscripts : — 

1st  division  from  Boulogne       7,680  men 

2nd     „  „    St.  Lo  6540    „ 

3rd      „  „    Pontivy         7000     „ 

4th      „  „    Camp  Napoleon       4,480     „ 

25,700 
§  Corr.  12,486,  dated  29th  April,  to  Decres. 


TEE  RECRUITMENT  OF   TEE  ARMIES.  227 

instructions  were  sent  to  Brune  for  his  action  in  every  pos- 
sible case.* 

More  cavalry  was  drawn  from  the  army  of  Italy  in 
May ;  f  and,  as  the  season  for  the  resumption  of  hostilities 
approached,  urgent  orders  were  sent  to  Clarke  J  to  hurry 
forward  the  provisional  regiments  ;  to  Jerome,  to  forward  all 
recovered  invalids,  especially  cavalry,  from  Silesia ;  §  to 
the  Fusiliers  of  the  Guard  (2  regiments),  to  hasten  their 
march  through  Germany,  using  carts  as  far  as  Brom- 
berg.|| 

Immense  efforts  were  made  to  increase  the  supply  of 
horses.  Napoleon  expected  to  have  80,000,  of  which  56,000 
would  be  with  the  Grand  Army.  IT 

To  the  increase  of  his  artillery  he  gave  special  attention, 
even  going  so  far  as  to  cast  guns  of  a  different  calibre  to 
utilise  the  ammunition  captured  from  the  Prussians.** 


*  Corr.  12,494,  to  Brune,  dated  29th  April. 

His  corps  of  observation,  irrespective  of  Mortier's  and  Jerome's  corps,  would 
for  the  present  consist  of  20,000  French  troops  (Boudet's  and  Molitor's  divisions 
from  Italy),  14,000  Dutch  and  14,000  Spaniards :  the  new  draft  from  Spain  could 
not  arrive  before  June.    (Corr.  12,465.) 

The  left  of  this  corps  should  be  between  the  Elbe  and  the  Weser,  the  centre 
between  Lubeck  and  Demmin,  the  right  between  Demmin  and  the  Oder,  Molitor 
and  Boudet  at  Magdeburg,  the  Spaniards  in  Hanover.  If  the  English  landed 
in  Holland,  Brune  would  move  on  that  country.  If  they  made  for  Hamburg, 
Brune  would  also  go  there.  If  Danzig  was  their  objective,  he  would  move  to 
his  right.  Should  they  go  still  further  east,  he  would  lean  on  Stettin,  leaving 
but  a  small  force  to  resist  a  possible  diversion  towards  Hanover. 

Corr.  12495,  dated  29th  April,  instructed  Mortier  to  besiege  Colberg  and 
cover  the  coast  from  the  Oder  to  the  Vistula.  If  a  landing  were  attempted  at 
the  mouth  of  the  Oder,  the  marshal  would  lean  to  his  left  and  support  Brune ; 
if  at  Colberg,  all  his  forces  (about  18,000)  must  unite  to  cover  the  siege,  Brune 
supporting  him. 

If  Danzig  or  Koenigsberg  were  the  landing-place,  Mortier  would  march  on 
the  former,  Brune  moving  up  behind  him. 

t  Corr.  12,543,  dated  6th  May,  to  Eugene,  and  Corr.  12,567,  dated  10th  May. 

X  Corr.  12,542,  dated  6th  May. 

§  Corr.  12,541,  dated  6th  May. 

||  Corr.  12,038,  dated  15th  March,  to  Dejean. 

IT  Corr.  12,038,  dated  15th  March. 

**  Jomini,^4rf.  of  War,  p.  318. 


228  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

By  these  and  similar  measures  *  the  Emperor  would 
have,  in  the  middle  or  end  of  May,  in  addition  to  the 
garrison  at  home  and  the  army  on  the  Vistula,  the  strength 
of  which  will  be  dealt  with  later,  roughly  speaking,  the 
following  forces  directly  or  indirectly  covering  him  against 
possible  aggression  of  the  English  and  Swedes  in  the  north,  of 
Austria  in  the  south  of  Germany,  and  of  England  in  the 
south  of  Italy — 

(a)  Brune's  army  of  reserve  with  the  corps  of  Mortier  and 

Jerome     100,000  f 

(I)  The  army  of  Northern  Italy,   with  Marmont's  corps  in 

Dalmatia,  both  threatening  Austria's  southern  frontier      72,000  J 

(c)  Army  of  Naples        52,000§ 

Altogether  Napoleon  cannot  have  had  less  than  600,000 
men  in  different  parts  of  France  and  Europe — a  gigantic 
army  at  that  period. 

The  issue  of  all  the  numerous  orders  necessary  for  these 
preparations  was  alone  a  heavy  piece  of  work ;  but  it  was 

*  A  new  provisional  regiment  was  formed  from  the  3rd  battalions  of  the 
59th  and  69th  (Corr.|12,485,  dated  29th  April.) 

There  were  16  provisional  regiments  from  which  to  recruit  the  army  on  the 
Vistula  {Corr.  12,472,  dated  25th  April). 

Also  7  new  provisional  garrison  regiments  {Corr.  12,433,  dated  21st  April). 

On  the  21st  April,  Napoleon  notes,  in  a  letter  to  Lacue'e,  that,  out  of  160,000 
fresh  troops  expected  by  him,  113,000  had  already  arrived  (Corr.  12,434,  dated 
21st  April). 

t  This  does  not  appear  to  include  the  French  troops  marching  up  parallel  to 
the  coast  from  Boulogne,  etc.,  but  they  would  about  compensate  for  the  move* 
ment  of  Mortier  across  the  Vistula  at  the  re-opening  of  the  campaign. 

On  the  30th  May,  the  Emperor,  writing  to  Brune  (Corr.  12,704),  says  that 
marshal  will  have,  by  July,  60,000  infantry,  6000  cavalry,  and  7000  or  8000  men 
in  the  provisional  battalions  at  Hameln,  etc.  This  army,  left  in  his  rear,  was  not 
meant  merely  to  check  England.  Should  Austria  move,  it  would  have  to  go  to 
Silesia  and  Gallicia,  in  which  case  it  would  be  reinforced  by  20,000  Poles,  and 
20,000  men  in  Silesia,  and  would  have  100  guns.  Its  composition  is  summarised 
as :  (o)  Dutch  troops ;  (b)  Spaniards  from  Etruria ;  (c)  Spaniards  arriving  in 
June  from  Spain ;  (d)  Molitor's  and  Boudet's  divisions/,  (e)  Loison  from  before 
Colberg. 

X  Corr.  12,543,  dated  6th  May,  to  Eugene. 

§  Letter  to  Joseph,  dated  1st  March,  1807,  No.  278,  at  p.  231,  vol.  i.,  Corr. 
icith  Joseph. 


THE  RECRUITMENT  OF   THE  ARMIES.  229 

only  a  portion  of  what  the  Emperor  got  through,  in  his 
seclusion  from  the  distractions  of  the  gay  world,  at  Osterode 
or  Finkenstein.*  He  had  to  deal  with  troubles  at  home, 
panic  and  a  fall  in  the  funds,f  with  matters  of  diplomacy  all 
over  Europe  and  in  Persia,  with  a  thousand  great  questions : 
yet  he  found  time  to  watch  every  detail  concerning  his 
army,  its  communications,  and  its  supplies.  Nothing  seemed 
to  escape  him.  It  was  he  who  called  attention  to  the 
omission  from  a  return  of  two  regiments  which  had  been 
overlooked  at  Luxembourg ;  X  it  was  he  who,  by  comparing 
hospital  with  regimental  returns,  discovered  how  many  of 
his  men  were  marauding  all  over  the  country.  All  this 
time  he  was  being  urged,  by  Murat  and  the  other  generals  at 
Osterode,  to  retire  to  the  left  bank  of  the  Vistula. §  Napo- 
leon's correspondence  during  March  and  April,  teems  with 
complaints  of  insufficient  information  from  his  generals, 
with  orders  for  the  establishment  of  bakeries,  for  forwarding 
supplies  of  all  sorts,  for  the  establishment  of  hospitals  and 
the  removal  of  the  wounded,  with  demands  for  more  shoes, 
and  with  instructions  for  reconnaissances  and  surveys. 
There  is  hardly  any  point  on  which  he  insists  more  strongly 
than  the  provision  of  ample  supplies  of  shoes.  The  principal 
central  depot  for  shoes  and  uniforms,  as  well  as  other  stores, 
would  now  be  Posen ;  thence,  they  could  go  by  canal  to  Brom- 
berg,  and  so  to  the  army  beyond  the  Vistula.  || 

As  the  hospitals  at  the  front  became  crowded  with  the 
sick  and  wounded,  the  less  serious  cases  were  transferred  to 
Breslau  and  Glogau,  where  fine  barracks  gave  good  accommo- 
dation.lF  In  this  way  the  congestion  of  the  main  hospitals  was 
relieved.  To  facilitate  communications,  bridges  at  Thorn, 
Marienburg,  and  Marienwerder  were  built  or  completed. 

*  "  If  the  Emperor,  instead  of  sitting  in  a  hole",  like  Osterode,  had  gone  to 
a  large  place,  he  would  have  taken  three  months  to  do  all  he  actually  did  in  one  " 
(Savary,  iii.  65). 

t  Savary,  p.  65.  \  Corr.  12,485.  §  Savary,  65. 

||  Corr.  11,804,  dated  12th  July,  to  Daru. 

%  Corr.  12v102,  dated  20th  March,  to  Jerome. 


230  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 


(c)   EVENTS  ON  THE  MAIN   FRONT  IN   FEBRUARY, 
MARCH,   AND  APRIL. 

In  seeking  to  take  up  the  winter  quarters  prescribed  by 
Napoleon,  on  the  20th  February,  the  corps  of  Davout,  Ney, 
Soult,  the  Guard,  and  the  cavalry  reserve,  had  nothing  but  a 
rearward  movement  to  make.  With  Bernadotte  the  case  was 
different,  for  he  had  to  spread  his  corps  down  the  Passarge 
to  Braunsberg. 

On  the  25th  February,  the  Emperor  received  information 
that  the  Prussians  were  marching  on  Elbing  with  about  4000 
men,  and  also  on  Guttstadt.  His  first  care  was  to  guard 
with  Soult's  corps,  the  bridge  on  the  Passarge  at  Aiken.* 
He  seriously  apprehended  a  general  advance  of  the  enemy, 
and  he  expressed  his  intention,  in  that  event,  of  fighting  a 
great  battle  on  the  Osterode  plateau,  where  he  calculated  he 
could  collect  95,000  men  in  thirty-six  hours,t  whilst  he 
reckoned  the  enemy's  whole  strength  at  55,000.  % 

On  the  25th,  the  Prussians  had  passed,  in  part,  the 
Passarge  at  Braunsberg,  and  had  pushed  cavalry  and  infantry 
into  and  beyond  Stangendorf  and  Zagern.  Lestocq  was 
moving  on  the  Passarge  through  Wormditt,  which  the  French 
had  evacuated,  towards  Aiken  and  Spanden. 

His  right  was  ordered  to  move  cautiously,  on  the  26th, 
towards  Muhlhausen.     On  that  day,  however,  Bernadotte 

*  Corr.  11,877,  dated  25th  February,  to  Soult. 

t  Corr.  11,882,  dated  26th  February,  and  11,889  of  the  same  date,  both  to 
Soult. 

X  Hcepfner  (iii.  293)  gives  the  allied  strength  as — 

Russians     39,545 

Prussians 11,300 


50,845 


which  the  expected  arrival  of  Sedraaratzki  would  raise  to  about  61,000  regular 
troops,  and  6,300  cossacks. 


THE  RECRUITMENT  OF   TEE  ARMIES.  231 

sent  Dupont' s  division,  with  three  light  cavalry  regiments 
under  Lahoussaye,  and  a  dragoon  brigade  from  Muhlhausen, 
to  force  the  Prussians  back  across  the  Passarge  at  Brauns- 
berg.  Before  these  troops  they  retired.*  Dupont,  sending 
the  9th  infantry  and  the  5th  chasseurs  to  his  right  on 
Petelkau,  himself  moved  direct  on  Braunsberg  with  3  infantry 
and  2  cavalry  regiments.  He  found  the  Prussians  drawn  up 
behind  Stangendorf,  with  their  left  resting  on  Zagern.  That 
village  being  carried  by  the  French  right  column,  the 
Prussians  took  up  another  position,  behind  a  ravine,  between 
it  and  Braunsberg. 

Dupont,  meantime,  had  carried  the  position  behind 
Stangendorf.  Once  more  the  Prussians  formed  on  the  heights 
in  front  of  Braunsberg.  Hence,  again  overpowered,  they 
were  driven  across  the  river  beyond  the  town. 

On  the  27th,  Dupont  retired  to  the  left  bank,  burning  the 
Braunsberg  bridge,  and  established  himself  at  Braunsberg, 
Frauenburg,  and  Tolkemit.  The  Prussians  lost  at  least  800 
men  in  these  actions. 

On  the  1st  March  the  Prussians  and  Eussians  took  up 
the  following  positions : — 

Russians  : — 

Advanced  guard  (PJatow)  at  and  about  Arensdorf,  supported  by  the 
mass  of  the  cavalry  under  Gallitzin,  at  Benern. 

1st  line — 5th  division  (Tutchkow),  Mehlsack. 
8th  division  (Essen  III.),  Frauendorf. 
3rd  division  (Sacken),  Raunau. 

2nd  division  (Osterman  Tolstoi),  Reichenburg,  beyond  the 
Alle. 

2nd  line — 7th  division  (Dochtorow),  Plauten. 

14th  division  (Kamenskoi),  Stabunken. 
4th  division  (Somow),  Heilsberg. 

Headquarters :  Heilsberg. 

*  They  retired  to  Heiligenbeil  and  Mehlsack,  with  outposts  at  Wormditt 
"  The  loamy  ground  was  so  slippery  from  the  thaw  that  cavalry  and  artillery 
were  useless  "  (Wihon,  p.  246). 


232  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Prussians : — 

1st  advanced  brigade,  Grunau  and  towards  Braunsberg. 

2nd  advanced  brigade,  Schalmen,  Anken,  &c. 

3rd  advanced  brigade,  Langwalde  and  along  the  Passarge. 

Supports  in  Plaswich,  Lindenau,  Damerau,  &c. 

Main  body  in    the   neighbourhood  of  Hohenfurst  and   along  the 

Mehlsack-Braunsberg  road. 
Reserve  about  Lilienthal,  &c. 
Headquarters  :  Peterswalde. 

Ney,  during  these  days,  on  the  26th  February,  sending 
one  brigade  forward  again  from  Guttstadt  into  the  Schmolainen 
forest,  had  badly  cut  up  an  advanced  Russian  regiment. 
Reinforced,  the  Russians  turned  the  tables  on  him,  forcing 
him  to  evacuate  Guttstadt  in  the  following  night.  The  town 
was  of  importance  to  the  French,  as  a  support  for  the 
advanced  portion  of  their  line,  and  Napoleon  was  annoyed 
at  Ney's  retirement  from  it  as  there  were  only,  the 
Emperor  believed,  4000  or  5000  of  the  enemy  in  front  of 
him.* 

For  its  recapture  measures  were  now  taken.  Ney  had 
fallen  back  to  a  position  with  Deppen  on  his  left,  and  the 
Emperor  was  inclined  to  think  the  enemy  contemplated  an 
advance  against  the  right  of  the  Grand  Army.  In  that  case, 
he  would  reply  by  a  movement  from  Braunsberg,  which 
would  soon  alarm  Bennigsen  for  his  communications  with 
Koenigsberg,  and  put  a  check  on  the  movement  of  the 
opposite  wing.  Bernadotte  was  therefore  to  support  Dupont 
by  a  division  at  Muhlhausen.f  To  fill  the  gap  between 
Davout  and  Massena,  Zayonchek's  Poles  were  ordered  to  the 
neighbourhood  of  Neidenburg.J 

*  Corr.  11,895,  dated  27th  February,  to  Soult. 

t  Corr.  11,905,  dated  28th  February,  to  Bernadotte. 

X  Corr.  11,909,  dated  1st  March.  This  force  should  amount  to  10,000  or 
12,000  (Corr.  11,925,  dated  4th  March).  It  was  afterwards  ordered  to  be  raised 
to  25,000.  Its  mission  was  to  guarantee  the  flank  from  Neidenburg  to  Allenstein, 
to  keep  touch  also  with  Massena,  and  to  protect  the  road  on  the  right  bank  of 
the  Vistula  from  Warsaw  to  Mlawa,  Soldau,  and  Osterode  (Corr.  11,957  and 
11,958,  dated  6th  March). 


THE  RECRUITMENT  OF  THE  ARMIES.  233 

Davout  was  now  at  Mohrungen,  not  within  reach  of  Ney  ; 
but  Soult  could  support  Ney  at  Deppen,  being,  in  turn, 
supported  by  Davout,  *  behind  whom,  again,  would  be  the 
Guard  and  Oudinot. 

On  the  3rd  March,  whilst  Bernadotte  and  Soult  made 
demonstrations  on  the  Passarge,  Ney  moved,  with  about 
18,000  men,  on  Queetz,  which  he  occupied  without  much 
difficulty.  On  the  4th  he  continued  his  movement  through 
Guttstadt  on  Schmolainen. 

There,  finding  Sacken  had  concentrated  at  Launau,  he 
stopped,  and,  on  the  5th,  retired  again  to  Guttstadt,  whilst 
Bernadotte  and  Soult,  Ney's  object  having  been  effected, 
recrossed  the  Passarge. 

The  Emperor  was  still  apprehensive  of  a  movement 
against  his  right,  but  was  most  anxious  to  hold  on  to  his 
cantonments,  and  ordered  them  to  be  fortified  as  far  as 
possible.  "  II  faut  remuer  de  la  terre  et  couper  du  bois,"  he 
wrote  to  Soult,  on  the  5th  March.f  He  now  broke  up  and 
distributed  to  other  corps  the  shattered  remnant  of  the  corps 
of  Augereau,  who  had  himself  been  allowed  to  return  to 
France  to  get  cured  of  his  wounds.  \ 

Napoleon  had  now  discovered  that  there  were  many 
stragglers  from  the  army,  including,  he  heard,  even  officers. 
For  the  arrest  of  these,  and  their  return  to  the  army,  he 
issued  stringent  orders  to  Bapp,  now  governor  of  Thorn,  and 
to  Clarke.  § 

Another  point  on  which  orders  were  issued  was  the 
strict  blockade  of  the  garrison  of  Graudenz   by  the  Hesse 

*  Corr.  11,915,  dated  2nd  March,  to  Soult. 

t  Corr.  11,939  and  Corr.  11,9G2,  dated  6th  March,  to  Lefebvre. 

X  The  corps  was  distributed  thus : — 

16th  Light  Infantry,  63rd,  and  24th  of  line,  to  Bernadotte. 

7th  Light  Infantry  to  Davout. 

14th  (almost  destroyed)  and  105th  to  Soult. 

44th  to  Lefebvre  (Corr.  11,951,  dated  6th  March,  to  Daru). 

§  Corr.  11>951  and  11,955,  both  dated  6th  March. 


234  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Daxmstadt  troops.*  They  were  placed  under  Victor,  who 
was  exchanged  against  Blucher  early  in  March,  t 

Bennigsen  appears  really  to  have  intended  a  further 
advance  against  Ney,  and  Napoleon  considered  it  desirable 
to  alarm  him  in  the  direction  of  Willemburg,  where  he 
thought  it  possible  that  there  might  be  part  of  Essen's 
troops,  whom  it  was  Massena's  duty  to  retain  on  the 
Narew.J  He  accordingly  sent  Murat  with  about  6000 
cavalry,  part  of  Oudinot's  grenadiers,  and  some  of 
Zayonchek's  Poles  against  it.  The  movement  was  sup- 
ported by  Davout  from  Allenstein  and  Hohenstein.  Murat, 
finding  only  cavalry  at  Willemburg,  occupied  it  on  the 
10th.§  He  was  ordered  ||  to  advance  as  far  as  Wartemburg, 
and  then,  after  waiting  a  day  to  pick  up  stragglers,  to  fall 
back  again  to  Osterode.f 

After  this  period,  comparative  peace  reigned  in  front  of 
the  enemy's  army.  There  were  trifling  outpost  skirmishes 
here  and  there  which  are  not  worth  detailing,  but  the 
Bussian  army  had  settled  into  winter  quarters.  On  the 
20th  March  its  positions  were: — ** 

Bagration,  with  advanced  guard,  altogether  about  11,000  men,  besides 

artillery  and  cossacks,  at  Launau. 
Markow,  with  the  cavalry  of  the  right  wing,  about  Reimerswalde  and 

Heilsberg. 
Right  bank  of  Alle : — 

Gallitzin's  cavalry  of  the  left  wing  about  Kerwienen,  Kiewitten,  etc. 

2nd  division  (Osterman),  Lauterhagen,  Roggenhausen,  Krekollen. 

14th  division  (Kamenskoi),  Gallingen,  Kraftshagen,  etc. 

»  Corr.  11,904,  dated  28th  February. 

t  The  exchange  is  mentioned  as  having  been  effected  in  Corr.  11,976,  dated 
8th  March. 

%  Corr.  11,978,  dated  9th  March.  §  Corr.  12,000. 

||  Corr.  12,008,  dated  12th  March. 

%  Gazan's  division  from  Massena's  corps  was  sent  to  Willemburg.  The 
objects  of  this  were  explained  by  the  Emperor  to  Masse'na  as:  (1)  that  the 
division  might  be  available  on  the  third  day  at  Osterode,  should  the  enemy  move 
in  that  direction;  (2)  to  maintain  communications  between  Masse'na  and  the 
Emperor,  and  to  hold  Willemberg,  which  was  the  key  of  Omulew  (Corr.  12016, 
dated  13th  March). 

**  Hcepfner,  iii.  325,  etc. 


THE  BECBU1TMENT  OF   THE  ARMIES.  235 

Reserve  ■ — 

4th  division  (Soraow) :  Tolks,  Albrechtsdorf,  Borken,  etc.,  on  the  left 

bank  of  the  Alle. 
7th  division  (Dochtorow)  about  Tormitten,  on  the  right  bank* 
Tolstoi  about  Wargitten  and  towards  Seeburg. 
Platow  with  cossacks  at  Oertelsburg  and  Passenheim. 
Headquarters :  Bartenstein.     Point  of  assembly :  Schippenbeil. 

Bennigsen  had,  by  the  middle  of  March,  received  re- 
inforcements of  about  10,000  men,  partly  fresh  regiments, 
partly  stragglers  and  recovered  invalids. 

The  Prussians  were  about  Heiligenthal,  Zinten,  and 
Plauten,  with  advanced  guards  towards  the  lower  Passarge. 

Napoleon  held  to  his  old  line,  vigorously  pressing  the 
siege  of  Danzig  and  the  strengthening,  by  fortification,  of  his 
main  front. 

Lefebvre  was  ordered  to  occupy  the  Nogat  island,  be- 
tween the  branches  of  the  Vistula,  and  to  drive  the  enemy 
as  far  up  the  Nehrung  as  possible,  blocking  his  return  by 
fortifications.* 

Massena  was  required  to  send  Gazan  towards  Willem- 
burg,  which  was  the  key  of  the  Omulew,  and  where  he 
would  strengthen  the  link  with  the  centre.! 

Even  on  the  22nd  March,  the  Emperor  did  not  feel  sure 
that  he  could  maintain  himself  on  the  right  bank  of  the 
Vistula.  J  He  was  still  intent  on  the  idea  of  a  great  battle, 
about  Saalfeld  or  Osterode,  should  the  enemy  advance, 
and  he  ordered  positions  for  the  purpose  to  be  carefully 
surveyed.  § 

*  Corr.  11,962,  dated  6th  March. 

t  Corr.  12,016,  dated  13th  March,  to  Masse'na  (see  note,  p.  234). 

X  On  that  date  he  wrote  to  Daru  that  the  country  in  which  he  was  could 
not  long  feed  his  army.  When  the  bridges  and  bridge  heads  at  Marienburg, 
Marienwerder,  and  Sierock  were  quite  complete,  it  would  be  necessary  to  con- 
sider  whether  he  would  not  be  constrained  to  lead  his  army  to  the  left  bank,  in 
which  case  his  chief  positions  would  be  Dirschair,  Mewe,  Schwetz,  Bromberg, 
Thorn,  and  Wroclawik.  Then  the  Marienwerder  bridge  would  be  of  special 
importance  (  Corr.  12,120,  dated  22nd  March). 

§  Corr.  12,321,  dated  6th  April.  A  most  interesting  document,  showing  how 
fully  the  Emperor  appreciated  the  advantages,  to  the  defensive,  of  the  lakes  and 
marshes,  as  a  protection  against  turning  movements. 


236  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

In  these  positions  the  main  armies  may  be  left  whilst 
we  describe,  as  fully  as  space  will  allow,  the  great  siege 
which  it  was  Napoleon's  object  to  cover,  Bennigsen's  to 
raise.  The  operations  in  Silesia  and  Pomerania  will  also  be 
very  briefly  indicated  to  their  conclusion. 


CHAPTER  II. 
The  Siege  of  Danzig. 

SPACE  will  allow  of  but  a  brief  account  of  this  great 
siege,  which  would  require  a  volume  to  itself  if  it  were 
to  be  fully  described.* 

Scarcely  was  the  battlefield  of  Eylau  cleared  when,  on 
the  18th  February,!  Napoleon  commenced  his  arrangements 
for  the  siege,  which  had  been  interrupted  by  Bennigsen's 
advance,  necessitating  the  recall  of  Lefebvre  to  guard  Thorn. 
Troops  were  already  on  the  move  in  that  direction. 

The  10th  corps,  under  Lefebvre,  had  to  deal  with  the 
sieges  of  Danzig,  Colberg,  and  Graudenz.  It  consisted  of  two 
Polish  divisions  under  Dombrowski,  the  Baden  contingent, 
a  Saxon  corps,  two  Italian  divisions,  and  various  French 
troops  —  altogether  about  27,000  men  and  3000  horses. 
About  10,000  men  were  French,  the  rest  auxiliaries.  The 
numbers  available  for  the  principal  siege  (Danzig)  varied 
according  to  the  requirements  of  the  others,  with  which  it  is 
not  proposed  to  deal.  Graudenz  was  blockaded ;  but  it  was 
after  all  but  a  small  fortress,  and  no  great  vigour  seems  to 
have  been  exhibited  in  the  siege.  It  sufficed  to  effectually 
mask  the  place. 

On  the  18th  February,  Menard  and  Dombrowski,  near 

*  This  account  is  based  on  that  of  Dumas  (xviii.  pp.  123-198)  of  Kirgener 
Director  of  Attacks  (Precis  du  siege  de  Dantzich,  Paris,  1807),  and  of  Hcepfner 
(iii.,  pp.  335-529). 

t  Corr.  11,826,  to  Lefebvre,  directing  him  to  invest  Danzig,  and  remarking 
that  Menard's  French  division  should  now  be  at  hand,  that  the  Saxons  were  at 
Posen,  and  the  Poles  long  ago  ready. 


238  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Mewe,  drove  back  part  of  the  Danzig  garrison  which  had 
moved  out  in  that  direction. 

A  more  serious  affair  occurred  on  the  23rd,  when  the 
same  two  generals  attacked  the  Prussians  in  Dirschau.  A 
body  of  1500  was  cut  off  in  the  town,  where  they  made  a 
brave  resistance.  Overwhelmed  by  numbers,  they  were 
almost  entirely  destroyed  by  the  Poles,  who,  exasperated  by 
race  hatred  and  by  the  long  resistance  offered,  gave  but  little 
quarter. 

With  this  effort,  the  endeavours  of  the  garrison  of 
Danzig  to  keep  the  enemy  at  a  distance  ceased,  and  they 
settled  down  in  and  about  the  city  for  the  siege.  Lefebvre, 
not  considering  himself  strong  enough  to  commence  the 
siege,  did  not  move  beyond  Dirschau  till  the  9th  March. 

At  that  period,  the  civil  population  of  Danzig  numbered 
about  45,000.  The  city  had  somewhat  declined  in  import- 
ance of  late  years,  yet  was  still  a  very  important  port  and 
market.  Its  fortifications  had,  in  1806,  been  much  neglected, 
and  were  in  very  bad  repair.  It  was  only  when  the  Prussian 
power  collapsed,  in  the  autumn  of  that  year,  that  a  siege 
began  to  seem  probable.  Then  every  effort  was  made  to 
repair  and  strengthen  the  fortress.  Much  assistance  in  this 
respect  was  derived  from  the  great  stores  of  wood  in  the 
place.  Palisades  and  earthwork  formed  a  great  feature  in 
the  new  defences. 

The  fortress  itself  was  situated  in  the  low  ground  on  the 
south  bank  of  the  left  branch  of  the  Vistula,  which  here 
flows  from  east  to  west  before  it  finally  turns  north,  just 
below  Danzig,  to  the  sea.  Through  the  town  flows  the  little 
river  Mottlau,  by  damming  which  it  was  practicable  to 
inundate  the  country  for  some  distance  from  the  fortifica- 
tions of  the  east  and  south  sides.  In  these  directions  the 
place  could  be  rendered,  in  those  days,  practically  impreg- 
nable. On  the  north  side,  it  was  protected  from  close 
approach  by  the  river,  from  which  it  was  only  separated  by 
300  yards  of  marshy  land  intersected  by  channels.      The 


THE  SIEGE   OF  DANZIG.  239 

enceinte  consisted  of  bastioned  fronts.  On  the  west  side, 
the  land  rose  above  the  enceinte  to  a  height  which 
commanded  the  town.  On  this  height  was  constructed, 
with  earth  and  palisades,  another  front,  protecting  the 
western  enceinte,  which,  without  it,  would  have  been  easily- 
subdued.  This  outer  line  of  works  extended  from  the 
inundated  south  side  to  the  Vistula. 

The  dominating  parts,  separated  from  one  another  by  a 
valley,  were  those  on  the  southern  height  of  the  Bischofsberg 
and  the  northern  the  Hagelsberg.*  In  front  of  the  line, 
where  it  joined  the  Vistula,  projected  the  large  redoubt  of 
Kalk,  lying  in  the  low  ground  with  a  smaller  work  beyond 
it.  Even  the  Bischofsberg  and  the  Hagelsberg  fronts  were 
not  on  the  highest  parts  of  the  rising  ground,  and  were,  to 
some  extent,  commanded  by  the  ground  in  front  of  them. 
This  was  obviated  by  the  great  height  of  the  works 
themselves.f 

*  "  As  compared  with  the  Hagelsberg,  the  front  of  the  Bischofsberg  was 
broader  and  the  trace  better.  The  Hagelsberg  ditches,  on  the  other  hand,  were 
deeper.  The  two  works  and  their  continuations  formed  a  continuous  connected 
line;  once  the  last  palisade  at  any  point  was  passed,  the  besieger  would 
command  the  whole  line.  The  weakest  point  was  between  the  Hagelsberg  and 
the  river,  but  an  attack  on  that  was  flanked  by  the  Kalk  redoubt.  There  the 
ground  was  level  and  open.  In  front  both  of  the  Hagelsberg  and  the  Bischofs- 
berg it  was  broken,  hilly,  and  difficult  for  works  of  approach. 

In  conclusion,  if  the  Bischofsberg  and  the  Hagelsberg  fronts  had  both  abutted 
on  a  plain,  the  former  would  have  been  the  stronger.  The  nature  of  the  ground 
in  front  reversed  their  value.  The  besieged,  perceiving  this,  continued  to 
occupy  the  orchards  and  suburbs  before  the  Bischofsberg,  until  the  besieger  was 
irretrievably  committed,  by  the  progress  of  his  works,  to  the  attack  of  the 
Hagelsberg  "  (Kirgener,  concluding  observations,  pp.  38-47). 

t  The  commanding  engineers  of  the  attack  and  defence  were  respectively 
Chasseloup  de  Laubat,  and  Bousmard,  both  famous  in  the  annals  of  fortification, 
and  each  the  inventor  of  a  new  system.  The  two  systems  were  alike  in  their 
use  of  ravelins  advanced  beyond  the  glacis  ;  but  neither  of  the  fronts  attacked 
at  Danzig  was  traced  in  this  manner.  These  two  fam'ous  engineers  directed  the 
operations  of  attack  and  defence,  and,  as  is  natural,  the  contest  between  two 
such  representative  men  is  full  of  interest. 

Lefebvre  knew  nothing  whatever  of  military  engineeriug,  and  was  ordered 
to  act  entirely  on  Chasseloup's  opinion  in  technical  matters.  Chasseloup,  who 
had  other  work  on  hand,  was  ably  represented  in  the  details  of  the  siege  by 
Kirgener,  who  was  constantly  on  the  spot. 


240  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Beyond  the  river,  on  the  north,  was  the  western  extremity 
of  the  low  island  known  as  the  Frische-Nehrung,  stretching 
away  east  as  far  as  Pillau,  near  Koenigsberg.  The  extreme 
western  corner  of  the  Frische-Nehrung,  at  the  point  where 
the  Vistula  changes  its  course  from  west  to  north,  was  separated 
from  the  rest  by  the  navigable  canal  of  Laake,  connecting 
Danzig  with  the  lower  reach  of  the  river.  The  triangular 
island  of  Holm,  so  formed,  was  of  great  importance  in  the 
siege.  So  long  as  the  canal  remained  open,  Danzig  was 
directly  connected  with  the  sea.  The  mouth  of  the  Vistula 
was  guarded  on  its  right  bank  by  the  fort  of  Weichselmunde. 
Opposite  to  this  fort  was  a  large  entrenched  camp,  at  Neu- 
fahrwasser,  having  the  greater  part  of  its  front  protected  by 
the  Sasper  lake,  and  the  channel  joining  it  to  the  Vistula. 
It  was  further  guarded  by  a  double  line  of  works. 

Between  Weichselmunde  and  Danzig,  on  the  Nehrung, 
there  was  a  large  wood.  The  island  of  Holm  and  the  Laake 
canal  were  defended  by  several  redoubts  and  other  works, 
which  spread  down  the  banks  of  the  Vistula,  connecting 
Danzig  with  Weichselmunde. 

The  artillery  of  the  fortress  consisted  of  303  guns,  20 
howitzers,  and  26  mortars.     In  addition,  there  were  28  guns, 

1  howitzer,  and  3  mortars  at  Weichselmunde,  and  51  guns, 

2  howitzers,  and  3  mortars  at  Neufahrwasser. 

The  two  forts  of  the  Bischofsberg  and  the  Hagelsberg,  on 
which  the  French  approaches  were  afterwards  directed,  had 
40  pieces  each. 

The  garrison  numbered  nearly  16,000  men,  including 
about  1600  cavalry.  About  11,000  were  in  the  fortress,  the 
rest  at  Weichselmunde,' Neufahrwasser,  on  the  Holm  island, 
and  on  the  Nehrung.*  The  besiegers  are  given  by  Hcepfner 
as  24,105,f  at  the  beginning  of  the  siege.  Dumas  denies 
that  Lefebvre  had  more  than  16,000  men  at  his  disposal.! 
The  truth  lies,  perhaps,  somewhere  between  the  two. 

*  Hcepfner,  iii.  371-380.  f  Ibid.,  hi.  382-384. 

X  Dumas,  xviii.  144.    See  following  note. 


THE  SIEGE   OF  DANZIG.  241 

The  troops  of  the  garrison  were  far  from  being  of  the 
first-class,  as  is  admitted  by  both  sides.*  Lefebvre  gradually 
completed  the  investment  of  the  place,  occupying  the  whole 
of  the  Nogat  island,  which  was  useful  to  Napoleon  as  a 
remount  depot,  f  and  disposing  his  troops  in  the  villages 
west  and  south-west  of  the  fortress.  Many  of  his  troops, 
too,  were  not  of  the  best  quality,  and  Napoleon  inculcates  on 
him  the  necessity,  with  such  troops,  for  strengthening  his 
front  with  field  works.  J 

On  the  16th  March,  the  Schidlitz  suburb,  in  the  valley 
separating  the  Bischofsberg  and  Hagelsberg  ridges,  was 
stormed  and  fortified.  On  the  18th,  Danzig  was  completely 
invested,  except  on  the  north  side.  On  that  date  Field- 
Marshal  Kalkreuth,  commanding  the  garrison,  joined  it  by 
the  Nehrung,  bringing  some  Russian  reinforcements. 

Napoleon  had  already  urged  the  necessity  of  cutting  this 
last  open  line,  which  was  of  the  greatest  importance;  of 
occupying  the  western  part  of  the  Nehrung,  and  of  separating 
Danzig  from  Weichselmunde  and  the  sea.§  In  execution  of 
this  order,  General  Schramm,  with  about  2000  men  and  6  guns, 
was  sent  to  Furstenwerder  on  that  branch  of  the  Vistula 
which  falls  into  the  western  end  of  the  Frisches-Haff.  Cross- 
ing silently  in  the  early  morning  of  the  20  th  March,  the  French 
troops  reached  the  northern  bank  unperceived.  Thence  they 
advanced  in  two  columns,  driving  the  Prussian  posts  partly 
towards  Pillau,  partly  towards  Danzig.  The  latter  only  rallied 
towards  Danzig,  at  Wondelen  and  Bohnsack.  Thence,  though 
reinforced,  they  were  driven  along  the  Nehrung  to  Weichsel- 
munde.    The  other  French  columns,  meanwhile,  protected 

*  Napoleon,  on  the  4th  March,  wrote  to  Lefebvre  that  there  were  only  8000 
young  troops  in  Danzig,  against  18,000  with  him  {Corr.  11,921). 

Again,  on  the  29th,  he  says  Lefebvre  has  plenty  of  troops.  There  are  no 
good  troops  in  Danzig,  and,  even  if  there  were,  Lefebvre's  are  their  equals  {Corr. 
12,213). 

t  Corr.  12,062,  dated  17th  March. 

X  Corr.  11,962,  dated  6th  March. 

§  Corr.  12,012,  dated  12th  March. 

R 


242  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Schramm's  rear,  towards  Pillau.  About  7  p.m.  Kalkreuth 
attempted,  by  a  sortie  on  the  Nehrung,  to  prevent  Schramm's 
establishment,  but  was  beaten  off.  Measures  were  at  once 
taken  to  secure  Schramm's  position  by  field  works  in  all 
directions :  towards  Pillau,  towards  Danzig,  and  towards 
Weichselmunde.  A  bridge  over  the  Vistula  was  constructed 
above  Danzig. 

A  general  sortie  attempted  by  the  garrison,  with  the 
object  of  destroying  such  works  as  the  besiegers  had  already 
constructed,  was  repulsed.  Lefebvre  had  now  collected 
sufficient  troops  to  warrant  him  in  opening  the  regular 
siege.* 

The  question  was  debated  as  to  the  point  of  attack,  and 
was  really  decided  by  Chasseloup,  the  well-known  engineer, 
to  whose  counsels  Lefebvre  was  directed  to  defer  in  all 
technical  matters.  The  decision  was  that  the  real  attack 
should  be  on  the  Hagelsberg  front.  To  divert  attention,  a 
false  attack  was  to  be  made  on  the  Bischofsberg  front,  and 
another  on  the  entrenched  camp  of  Neufahrwasser.f 

It  was  also  very  necessary  to  subdue  the  works  on  the 
left  bank  of  the  Lower  Vistula,  connecting  Danzig  and 
Weichselmunde.  The  ground  about  them,  marshy,  and  cut 
up  by  canals,  was  extremely  unfavourable  to  the  construction 
of  solid  works  of  approach.  Schramm  was  now  securely 
fortified  in  the  Nehrung,  his  left  supported  by  a  village 
towards  the  Lower  Vistula,  his  right  resting  on  the  sea.  His 
orders  were,  as  far  as  possible,  to  intercept  communication 
between  Danzig  and  Weichselmunde. 

On  the  night  of  the  1st  to  2nd  April,  the  first  parallel 
was  opened,  to  a  length  of  400  yards,  on  the  crest  of  the 
Ziganckenberg,  at  a  distance  of  1600  yards  from  the  enemy's 
works  of  the  Hagelsberg.     The  operation  was  completely 

*  Napoleon  was,  so  early  as  the  31st  March,  urging  expedition  in  the  siege 
on  Lefebvre  (Corr.  12,245). 

On  the  previous  day,  he  had  appointed,  to  command  the  artillery  of  the  siege, 
Lariboisiere,  a  trusted  officer  (Corr.  12,234,  dated  30th  March). 

t  For  reasons  as  to  the  best  point  of  attack,  see  note  ante,  p.  239. 


THE  SIEGE   OF  DANZIG.  243 

covered  from  the  defenders'  observation  by  a  vigorous  attack 
on  the  village  of  Aller,  to  the  left.  An  attempt,  next  day, 
by  the  besieged  to  establish  themselves  in  rear  of  the  parallel, 
at  Ziganckendorf,  failed. 

During  the  2nd  April,  the  parallel  was  completed,  not- 
withstanding a  heavy  fire  from  the  artillery  of  the  Hagelsberg 
and  Bischofsberg.  During  the  following  night  the  French 
advanced  by  zigzags  from  the  parallel,  and,  at  the  same  time, 
stormed  the  Kalk  redoubt,  on  the  bank  of  the  river  in  front  of 
the  main  works.  Kalkreuth,  however,  in  the  early  morning, 
recaptured  this  important  fort,  which  for  the  present  the 
French  were  unable  to  take  again.  On  the  3rd  April,  the 
first  parallel  was  extended  farther  to  the  left,  and  was 
supported  by  various  works  and  batteries,  whilst  the  advance 
from  it  was  pushed  forward.  On  the  9th,  the  first  parallel  of 
the  false  attack  on  the  Bischofsberg  was  opened.  The 
besiegers,  meanwhile,  had  been  working  at  a  counter  approach 
against  the  left  flank  of  the  true  attack,  and  it  was  necessary 
to  put  a  stop  to  them.  At  10  p.m.,  on  the  10th,  500  French 
attempted  an  assault  on  the  besiegers'  work,  only  80  yards 
from  the  enceinte.  Overwhelmed  by  its  fire,  they  were 
driven  ,off.  Renewing  the  assault  at  1  a.m.,  they  succeeded 
in  taking  and  destroying  the  work. 

During  the  night  of  the  11th  to  12th,  the  second 
parallel  was  commenced  by  flying  sap.  Next  day,  the 
batteries  and  redoubts  commanding  the  river  on  the  left 
were  partially  armed.  A  commencement  of  the  bombard- 
ment of  the  city  was  made  with  two  howitzers. 

But  the  garrison  was  commanded  by  a  man  of  great 
energy  and  activity.  The  works  of  counter  approach  were 
again  taken  in  hand,  the  French  were  driven  from  them,  and 
a  new  redoubt  in  front  of  the  Hagelsberg  was  thrown  up. 
Attacked  by  the  Saxons,  this  new  work  was  taken  and 
retaken  three  times,  finally  remaining  in  the  possession  of 
the  besiegers.  The  French  works  were  still  too  distant  to 
allow     of    their    maintaining    themselves  in    the    counter 


244  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

approach.*  They  were  not  left  undisturbed.  On  the  13th, 
so  determined  an  assault  was  made  upon  the  captured  work 
that,  not  only  were  the  Saxons  ejected  from  it,  but  the  head 
of  the  French  trenches  was  gained,  and,  for  a  moment,  they 
were  in  great  peril.  The  situation  was  saved  by  Lefebvre, 
who,  himself  heading  the  44th  regiment,f  fell,  sword  in  hand, 
on  the  Prussians. 

Once  more  the  tide  of  victory  turned  before  this  vigorous 
onslaught,  supported  by  the  now  rallied  Saxons.  The 
Prussians  were  again  forced  from  the  redoubt,  now  strewn 
with  the  dead  and  wounded  of  this  bitter  conflict. 

On  the  14th  April,  the  French  second  parallel  was  com- 
pleted, and  two  redoubts  to  support  it  were  begun.  During 
the  ensuing  night,  the  works  were  pushed  leftwards,  and 
batteries  were  constructed  to  fire  upon  the  Hagelsberg,  and 
the  extremity  of  the  Schidlitz  suburb. 

Another  important  point  was  gained  on  the  north  bank  of 
the  Vistula  by  Gardanne,  who  established  himself  and  con- 
structed two  works  at  the  north  entrance  to  the  canal  of 
Laake,  thus  interrupting  communication  by  it.{  On  the  16th, 
a  powerful  sortie  from  Weichselmunde  was  directed  on  these 
works.  Heavy  fighting,  lasting  seven  hours,  ended  in  its 
repulse,  when  the  works  were  resumed  and  completed.  They 
had  to  be  protected  from  the  enemy's  fire  from  Weichsel- 
munde in  one  direction,  and  the  island  of  Holm  on  the  other. 

At  this  time,  three  separate  attacks  were  in  progress :  (1) 
the  true  attack  on  the  Hagelsberg ;  (2)  the  false  attack  on 

*  Kirgener,  p.  3. 

f  This  regiment  had  been  at  Eylau,  part  of  Augereau's  unfortunate  corps.  It 
was  next  to  the  14th  in  the  fatal  attack,  and  appears  to  have  lost  its  eagle.  There 
is,  in  the  Archives  Historiques,  a  long  correspondence  between  the  two  regiments 
as  to  which  it  was  that  had  lost  its  eagle.  The  decision  was  in  favour  of  the  14th, 
whose  eagle  was  saved  by  Marbot,  according  to  his  own  account.  In  glancing 
over  this  correspondence,  the  author  did  not  observe  any  mention  of  Marbot's 
exploit. 

X  These  two  redoubts  were  about  600  yards  apart,  on  the  right  bank  of  the 
canal,  and  were,  on  the  17th,  connected  by  a  double  parapet  (Dumas,  xviii. 
p.  154). 


TEE  S1E0E  OF  DANZIG.  245 

the  Bischofsberg ;  (3)  another  attack  on  the  defender's  works 
on  the  Lower  Vistula. 

Using  the  flying  sap,  a  movement  forward  from  the 
second  parallel  was  made  on  the  17th,  and  a  place  of  arms 
was  constructed  on  a  plateau  only  80  yards  from  the  Hagels- 
berg  front.  The  batteries  and  redoubts  were  completed,  and 
their  armament  advanced.  On  the  17th,  a  work  on  the  left 
bank  of  the  river,  designed  to  cross  lire  with  Gardanne's 
works  on  the  right  bank,  was  thrown  up,  and  an  English 
corvette,  attempting  to  ascend  the  river,  was  forced  to  desist. 

Whilst  zigzags  on  the  left  of  the  second  parallel  were  con- 
structed, a  great  battery  was  commenced  on  the  Stolzenberg, 
with  a  view  to  bringing  a  reverse  and  enfilading  fire  to  bear 
on  the  Hagelsberg. 

The  19th,  20th,  and  21st  April  were  days  of  rain  and 
snow,  which  filled  the  French  works,  and  stopped  all  progress. 
The  whole  of  the  20th  was  spent  in  clearing  the  snow  from 
the  trenches.  On  the  21st,  a  second  place  of  arms  in  front  of 
the  right  of  the  parallel  was  constructed.* 

The  night  of  the  22nd-23rd  was  bright,  and  the  French 
suffered  heavily  from  the  Prussian  fire,  as  they  pushed 
forward  in  the  moonlight,  by  flying  sap,  from  the  right-hand 
place  of  arms.  By  the  24th,  the  French  had  69  guns, 
howitzers,  and  mortars  firing  on  the  Hagelsberg  and  the  city 
beyond  it.  The  defenders  replied  with  equal  vivacity,  but 
were  overmatched.  A  summons  to  surrender  was  refused 
by  Marshal  Kalkreuth. 

On  the  23rd,  the  sapheads  were  overthrown  by  a  small 
sortie.  Another  battery,  against  the  Bischofsberg  was  con- 
structed on  the  southern  slope  of  the  Stolzenberg.  Artillery 
and  ammunition  were  now  arriving  from  Warsaw,  f 

The  day  of  the  26th  was  one  of  heavy  artillery  fire  on 

*  Kirgener,  p.  8. 

t  Napoleon,  writing  to  his  brother  Joseph,  on  the  24th  April,  mentions  that 
he  has  80  pieces  of  artillery  before  Danzig,  of  which  60  were  siege  guns.  He 
also  indirectly  estimates  the  garrison  at  18,000,  and  the  besieging  corps  at 
25,000  (CW.  12,469). 


246  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

both  sides.  About  7  p.m.,  that  of  the  Prussians  suddenly 
ceased,  a  fact  which  aroused  suspicions  that  they  were  about 
to  attempt  a  sortie,  to  meet  which  preparations  were  made. 
These  suspicions  were  justified  by  the  event,  for,  about 
10  p.m.,  the  French  advanced  posts,  rushing  in,  announced 
the  issue  of  the  enemy. 

Six  hundred  Prussian  troops,  followed  by  200  workmen, 
whose  duty  it  was  to  destroy  the  works  when  captured,  fell 
upon  the  head  of  the  French  trenches.  Menard,  prepared 
for  the  coming  storm,  met  it  with  the  bayonet  in  front,  whilst 
detachments,  which  he  had  placed  on  his  right  and  left, 
charged  the  Prussians  in  flank.  The  Prussian  loss  was 
heavy,  and  the  sortie  completely  failed. 

A  truce  of  two  hours,  for  the  burial  of  those  killed  in  this 
sortie,  afforded  the  French  an  opportunity  of  surveying  the 
ground  in  front  of  them,  and  selecting  sites  for  new  batteries. 

On  the  Lower  Vistula,  the  attack  was  pushed  from  the 
mouth  of  the  Laake  canal ;  the  extremity  of  the  Holm  island 
was  seized  by  Sabatier  from  the  left  bank  of  the  Vistula,  and 
defended  by  a  channel  cut  across  it  from  the  canal  to  the 
river.  Communication  was  thus  established,  in  this  direction, 
between  the  right  and  left  banks  by  boat  bridges  across  the 
river  and  the  canal. 

On  the  25th,  the  third  parallel  in  front  of  the  Hagelsberg 
had  been  commenced,  40  yards  from  the  covered  way  on  the 
crest  of  the  rising  ground.  On  the  26th  and  27th,  it  was 
continued,  in  the  face  of  sorties  on  both  days.  At  10  p.m., 
on  the  28th,  the  garrison  made  a  fresh  sortie  in  force.*  Their 
attack  on  the  left  of  the  third  parallel  was  beaten  off,  the 
assailants  being  pursued  to  the  covered  way.  A  battalion  of 
Prussian  grenadiers  on  the  other  side  was,  at  first,  more 
successful  in  penetrating  to  the  head  of  the  trenches,  where, 
however,  they  met  the  French  reserves.  Thrice  was  the 
attack  renewed  before  the  Prussians  were  compelled,  with 
heavy  loss,  to  seek  again  the  shelter  of  their  fortress. 

*  2000  men,  according  to  Kirgener  (p.  13). 


THE  SIEGE   OF  DANZIG.  247 

On  the  29th,  the  tliird  parallel  was  extended  right  and  left. 
On  the  30th,  the  bombardment  was  continued,  and  Danzig  was 
fired  in  several  places,  though  the  besieged  replied  with  vigour. 

During  the  night,  notwithstanding  the  illumination  by 
the  defenders  of  the  enemy's  works  by  means  of  fire  balls,  the 
communications  between  the  second  and  third  parallels  were 
completed,  and  the  French  commenced  to  approach,  by 
double  sap,  from  two  points  in  the  third  parallel  towards 
the  capital  of  the  ravelin. 

Ox  the  earthworks  of  the  place  the  French  artillery 
was  pioducing  but  little  effect,  and  the  destruction  of  the 
palisades  became  necessary  before  an  assault  could  be 
ventured  on. 

The  approaches  progressed  on  the  2nd  May,  and  next 
night  they  were  united  near  the  parallel.  One  more  sortie 
against  the  works  was  beaten  off. 

Early  on  the  morning  of  the  4th,  the  Prussian  artillery 
brought  the  saps  to  a  standstill,  until  it  was  silenced  by  the 
batteries  of  the  second  parallel. 

On  the  5th  and  6th,  the  saps  were  continued,  though 
constantly  interrupted  by  the  fire  of  the  fortress.  They 
reached  to  a  distance  of  only  12  yards  from  the  salient  of 
the  ravelin. 

The  Holm  island  was  still  held  by  the  garrison,  with  the 
exception  of  the  extremity  captured  on  the  26th  April. 
Until  the  French  could  get  possession  of  it,  they  were  unable 
do  establish  satisfactory  batteries  taking  in  reverse  the  works 
of  the  Hagelsberg.  Chasseloup  insisted  on  the  necessity  for 
3eizing  it;  Lefebvre  decided  to  do  so  on  the  night  of  the 
6th-7th.  Its  garrison  consisted  of  1500  men,  15  guns,  a 
mortar,  and  a  howitzer.* 

The  main  attack  was  to  be  made  by  Drouet  from  the  left 

*  Hcepfner,  iii.  466. 

Dumas  gives  only  1000  men  besides  artillery.    He  says  there  were  as  many* 
howitzers  and  mortars  as  guns,  but,  as  only  17  pieces  were  captured,  this  seems 
to  be  a  mistake  (Duma*,  xviii.  167).     The  numbers  in  the  text  are  given  by 
Hoepfner  (iii.  446). 


248  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

bank  of  the  Vistula,  whilst  Gardanne  seconded  him  from  the 
direction  of  the  canal. 

At  10  p.m.,  12  boats,  containing  300  men  in  all,  pushed 
off  from  the  left  bank,  followed  shortly  by  a  second  detach- 
ment. Landing  unperceived,  the  French  stormed  two 
redoubts,  driving  their  defenders  to  the  south  end  of  the 
island.  At  the  same  time,  the  Kalk  redoubt  was  attacked 
and  taken.  The  enemy's  retreat  was  cut  off  by  Gardsnne, 
who  had  crossed  the  canal.  The  second  detachment,  from 
the  left  bank,  was  equally  successful  in  capturing  a  large 
redoubt.  All  the  works  on  the  island  were  seized  in 
succession,  the  garrison  being  almost  entirely  destroyed  or 
captured.  Surrounded  as  they  were,  escape  was  scarcely 
possible. 

The  island  was  a  most  valuable  prize ;  it  was  promptly 
fortified,  and  its  guns  turned  against  Danzig,  the  defences  of 
which  they  took  in  reverse.  A  bridge  of  rafts  joining  it  to 
the  left  bank,  just  below  the  angle  of  the  river,  was  hurried 
on.*  The  flying  bridge  connecting  Danzig  with  the  island 
was  gallantly  cut  adrift,  by  a  miner  named  Jacquemart, 
under  a  heavy  fire. 

The  works  and  palisades  of  the  Hagelsberg  were  at  last 
suffering  severely  from  the  heavy  fire  of  the  besiegers,  and,  on 
the  7th,  the  crowning  of  the  covered  way,  opposite  the  salient 
of  the  ravelin,  was  successfully  effected  in  the  face  of  a  storm 
of  grape,  which  cost  the  French  100  men.  The  situation  of 
the  mines  constructed  by  the  besieged  was  discovered,  and 
they  were  occupied. 

The  defenders  of  the  covered  way  were  forced,  by  the 
fire  of  two  batteries,  to  evacuate  the  whole  of  that  part  of  it, 
except  a  blockhouse  in  the  re-entrant  angle  of  the  right  face 
of  the  ravelin. 

*  Kirgener  (p.  18)  summarises  the  advantages  of  the  capture  of  the  island 
and  the  Kalk  redoubt  as :  (a)  the  improved  reverse  fire  which  was  possible  from 
the  island ;  (fc)  the  saving  of  the  necessity  for  numerous  traverses  in  the  trenches 
to  protect  the  workers  from  the  enfilading  fire  from  the  Kalk  redoubt. 


THE  SIEGE   OF  DANZIG.  249 

On  the  8th,  the  left  sap  was  advanced  to  the  capital  of 
the  bastion. 

Lefebvre  was  now  for  attempting  an  assault,  for  which 
the  place  was  not  yet  ripe.*  Reconnaissances  soon  satisfied 
him  that  this  was  so.  Yet  his  works  of  approach  had  reached 
a  stage  when  the  early  surrender  of  the  fortress,  unless  relief 
reached  it  from  outside,  was  a  matter  of  certainty. 

The  state  of  affairs  was  known  to  Bennigsen,  and  he  had 
resolved  on  a  supreme  effort  to  save  the  fortress  by  an 
expedition  from  the  sea. 

Napoleon,  too,  had  inferred  that  this  must  come,  and 
had  made  his  arrangements  accordingly,  f  For  some  days 
past  the  presence  of  Prussian  vessels  in  the  Frisches-Haff 
had  been  observed.  Napoleon  had  constituted,  for  the  purpose 
of  combating  any  such  attempt  at  relief,  a  new  reserve  corps, 
of  which  the  command  was  given  to  Lannes.  It  consisted  of 
the  picked  grenadier  division  of  Oudinot,  and  of  the  division 
of  Verdier :  altogether,  between  15,000  and  16,000  men. 

This  corps  had  been  detained  for  the  assistance  of  Lefebvre, 
on  the  distinct  understanding  that  it  was  to  be  used  only 
against  a  relieving  force,  not  for  the  ordinary  work  of  the  siege.t 

*  This  was  Napoleon's  opinion  on  the  5th  May,  when  he  sent  Bertxand 
to  Danzig  to  inspect  the  works  and  bring  a  personal  report  (Corr.  12,534). 

Lefebvre,  on  the  9th,  gave  notice  to  his  commanders  of  his  intention  to  assault 
(Kirgener,  p.  20).    It  was  suspended  next  day. 

t  So  early  as  the  23rd  April  he  warns  Lefebvre  to  be  on  his  guard  against  a 
descent  from  the  Frisches-Haff,  which  the  enemy  commands  (Corr.  12,458). 

On  the  11th  May  he  again  writes,  indicating  the  probability  of  an  attempt 
to  relieve  the  fortress  from  the  sea,  but  says  he  sees  no  movement  in  his  own  front, 
such  as  might  be  expected  (Corr.  12,572). 

X  Corr.  12,536,  dated  5th  May,  to  Berthier,  orders  the  formation  of 
the  corps  from  Oudinot's  and  Verdier's  divisions.  The  Emperor  hopes,  by 
the  end  of  May,  to  raise  its  strength  to  20,000  by  the  addition  of  an  Italian 
division. 

In  Corr.  12,572,  dated  11th  May,  Napoleon  tells  Lefebvre  that  Oudinot  is 
available  at  Marienburg,  but  is  not  under  Lefebvre's  orders. 

In  a  letter  from  Berthier  of  the  same  date,  Lefebvre  is  censured  for  having 
ordered  up  Oudinot ;  and  it  is  remarked  that  the  Emperor  does  not  believe  that 
more  than  a  diversion  with  a  small  force  will  be  attempted  by  the  Nehrung. 
The  great  effort  he  expected  from  the  sea.    (Printed,  Dumas,  xix.  288.) 


250  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Mortier  was  also  ordered  to  Danzig.*  Lefebvre  had  desired 
Oudinot  to  send  a  brigade  into  the  Nogat  island  from 
Marienberg,  where  the  corps  was  assembled.  He  had  also 
warned  Schramm,  on  the  Nehrung,  to  be  on  his  guard. 

On  the  10th  and  11th  May,  57  transports,  crowded  with 
Eussian  troops,  appeared  off  Weichselmunde.  They  were 
the  relief  force,  under  Kamenskoi,  detached  from  the  main 
army,  and  sent  by  sea  from  Pillau. 

On  the  whole,  it  seems  improbable  that  Kamenskoi 
commanded  more  than  7000  or  8000  men,t  including  the 
garrisons  of  Weichselmunde  and  Neufahrwasser.  He  dis- 
embarked on  the  11th,  at  Neufahrwasser.  He  was,  till  he 
landed,  unaware  of  the  loss  of  the  island  of  Holm,  which 
seriously  compromised  his  plans. 

Lannes'  leading  division  (Oudinot)  only  arrived  at  Danzig 
on  the  12th,  as  Kamenskoi  landed.  The  besiegers  were  in 
imminent  peril  had  Kamenskoi  attacked  promptly,  before  the 
arrival  of  the  whole.  Lefebvre's  address  to  his  men  shows 
that  he  felt  his  danger.  "  Comrades,"  he  said,  "  as  long  as 
we  live,  we  will  abandon  nothing  to  the  enemy ;  let  every 
man  defend  his  post  to  the  death." 

But  Kamenskoi  was  disturbed  at  finding  the  island  gone, 
and  he  hesitated,  wasting  precious  hours  and  days. 

The  delay  gave  time  for  the  French  reinforcements  to 
arrive,  and  for  arrangements  to  be  completed.  With  the 
reserve  corps  at  hand,  it  was  still  not  so  easy  for  Lefebvre  to 
decide  on  the  best  mode  of  employing  it.  To  Kamenskoi, 
holding  Weichselmunde  and  Neufahrwasser,  with  free  com- 
munication   between    them    across  the  river,  two   courses 

*  Berthier  to  Mortier,  Dumas,  xix.  288,  dated  12th  May.  On  the  same 
date  Oudinot  is  ordered  to  Danzig,  but  to  leave  a  battalion  at  Furstenwerder  to 
construct  a  bridge  (Berthier  to  Lannes,  Dumas,  xix.  287). 

On  the  14th,  Napoleon  writes  to  Lefebvre  that  Launes  is  only  to  be  used 
against  a  relieving  force  from  the  sea  (Corr.  12,881). 

f  Dumas  (xviii.  174)  puts  the  number  as  high  as  11,000  to  15,000,  but  seems 
uncertain. 

Kirgener  (p.  25)  only  estimates  his  force  at  7000  or  8000. 

Hoepfner  (iii.  483)  gives  6600. 


THE  SIEGE   OF  DANZIG.  251 

were  open.  Being  safe  behind  the  works,  he  could  elect  to 
act  against  Schramm  in  the  Nehrung,  or  against  the  left 
flank  of  the  French  works  on  the  left  bank.  In  the  latter 
case,  he  could  hope  for  the  co-operation  of  the  garrison  from 
the  Hagelsberg  and  Bischofsberg.  This  was  the  more 
promising  scheme,  as  it  was  the  more  dangerous  to  Lefebvre. 
Attacked  in  front  and  flank,  there  was  considerable  risk  of 
the  besiegers  on  the  left  bank  being  rolled  up  from  their  left. 
If  Schramm  were  attacked,  he  might  be  destroyed  before  he 
could  be  succoured  ;  but  he  was  well  protected  by  works,  and 
it  was  unlikely.  It  is  true  that  the  French  had  a  bridge 
across  the  river  near  its  bend  ;  still,  a  disaster  might  occur  to 
Lefebvre  before  Lannes,  if  he  were  on  the  Holm  island,  could 
cross.  It  was  decided  to  keep  him  on  the  left  bank,  whence, 
if  the  storm  burst  on  the  Nehrung,  he  might  be  able  to  pass 
in  time. 

Kamenskoi  wasted  four  days,  concerting  measures  by 
signal  from  Weichselmunde,  keeping  his  troops  in  Neufahr- 
wasser.  On  the  13th,  the  besieged  force  increased  the 
vigour  of  their  fire  on  the  works  of  approach ;  a  sortie,  in  the 
evening,  penetrated  into  the  head  of  the  sap  before  it  was 
repulsed. 

Work  was  continued  on  the  14th  by  the  French  against  the 
bastion  on  their  left,  but  the  difficulties  were  great.  A  mine 
was  also  started  against  the  blockhouse  in  the  re-entrant 
angle  of  the  covered  way.  At  last,  at  4  a.m.  on  the 
15th  May,  Kamenskoi  issued  from  Weichselmunde  against 
Schramm  and  Gardanne,  whose  troops  were  drawn  up  about 
the  redoubts  facing  Weichselmunde. 

The  Russian  movement  was  made  in  four  columns : — 

1st :  6  battalions,  1  squadron,  200  cossacks,  and  4  guns,  on 
the  left,  along  the  seashore  against  the  wood. 

2nd :  5  battalions  against  the  work  ■  at  the  head  of  the 
wood,  in  the  centre. 

3rd :  6  battalions,  120  cossacks,  4  guns  along  the  Vistula, 
on  the  right. 


252  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

4th :  4  battalions,  100  cossacks,  6  guns,  in  reserve  in  front 
of  the  fort. 

At  the  same  time,  a  demonstration  with  a  few  hundred 
men  was  made,  on  the  opposite  bank,  by  the  Neufahrwasser 
garrison. 

In  Danzig,  1000  men  were  ready  to  cross  to  the  Holm 
island  when  it  should  be  attacked  from  Weichselmunde. 

The  English  ships  were  to  endeavour  to  assist  in  the 
river. 

On  the  other  side,  Schramm  had,  on  his  right,  the  2nd 
light  infantry ;  in  the  centre,  a  Saxon  infantry  brigade ;  on  the 
left,  towards  the  canal,  his  Polish  infantry ;  in  reserve,  the 
Paris  infantry  regiment. 

The  first  assault  was  on  Schramm's  left  and  centre,  about 
5  a.m.  Seeing  them  yielding  ground,  Lefebvre  sent  over  a 
battalion  to  his  aid.  Four  times  did  the  Eussians  attack ;  on 
the  last  occasion  they  were  nearly  successful.  As  they 
retired,  the  battle  was  restored  by  the  use  of  the  reserve. 

At  this  moment,  Lannes  and  Oudinot  arrived  with  the  first 
column  of  [the  reserve  corps ;  the  engagement  became  very 
hot  and  sanguinary.  Oudinot's  horse  was  killed,  and,  falling 
against  Lannes,  the  latter  also  was  unhorsed.  The  two 
generals  continued  the  fight  on  foot. 

The  Eussians  were  now  overmatched,  and  were  presently 
driven  back  upon  Weichselmunde,  with  a  loss  of  over  1500 
killed  and  wounded.     The  French  lost  about  equally.* 

Kalkreuth  had  not  supported  Kamenskoi  by  a  sortie  against 
the  works,  but  had  contented  himself  with  a  heavy  bombard- 
ment. He  asserted  that  he  was  prepared  for  an  attack  on 
the  island,  when  Kamenskoi's  advance  collapsed,  and  rendered 
it  useless,  f 

To  support  the  sortie  from  Weichselmunde,  Bulow,  with 
4  battalions,  2  companies  of  artillery,  and  100  cavalry,  sailed 

*  Hcepfner,  iii.  486.    He  says  that  the  loss  (1530)  was  equal  to  about  one- 
fourth  of  Kamenskoi's  force, 
t  Hapfner,  iii.  487. 


THE  SIEGE   OF  DANZIG.  253 

on  the  Frisches-Haff  from  Pillau.  He  was  late,  and  Kamen- 
skoi  was  already  defeated  when  he  landed  and  came  upon 
Schramm's  outposts  at  Kalberg.  They  fell  back  on  Fursten- 
werder,  whilst  the  Prussians  marched  along  the  south  side  of 
the  Nehrung  to  the  western  extremity  of  the  Haff.  Against 
them,  from  Furstenwerder,  there  came  the  battalion  of 
Oudinot's  grenadiers  in  the  Nogat  island,  with  Beaumont's 
dragoons.*  Meeting  Bulow,  they  defeated  him,  and  drove 
him,  with  heavy  loss,  25  miles  along  the  Nehrung. 

The  attempt  to  relieve  Danzig  had  failed  disastrously, 
owing  largely,  as  it  would  appear,  to  Kamenskoi's  delay,  as 
well  as  to  the  insufficiency  of  his  force.  It  was  not  renewed. 
The  Eussians  remained  in  their  entrenchments  at  the  mouth 
of  the  river. 

The  besiegers'  works  against  the  Hagelsberg  had  suffered 
no  interruption.  On  the  evening  of  the  16th,  the  mine  under 
the  blockhouse  was  fired,  but  without  completely  destroying 
it,  though  it  was  much  damaged.  A  fresh  mine  was  com- 
menced from  the  crater  formed,  and  was  continued  on  the 
17th.  A  small  sortie,  in  the  evening,  resulted  in  the  spiking 
of  a  French  howitzer  opposite  the  salient  of  the  bastion,  but 
it  was  unspiked  after  the  sortie  had  been  repulsed. 

On  the  18th,  19th,  and  20th,  a  covered  descent  into  the 
ditch  was  worked,  and  endeavours  were  made,  without  much 
success,  to  destroy  the  enormous  palisades  in  the  ditch.t 

On  the  19th,  an  English  corvette,  trying  to  ascend  the 

*  In  Berthier's  letter  to  Lannes,  of  the  12th  May  (Dumas,  xix.  287),  he  is 
ordered  to  leave  at  Furstenwerder  the  battalion  of  grenadiers  which  had  been 
sent  there  to  construct  a  bridge  and  guard  the  crossing.  All  the  correspondence, 
about  this  date,  from  Berthier,  insists  that  any  movement  from  Pillau  along  the 
Nehrung  can  be  nothing  but  a  diversion,  and  that  the  real  relieving  force  will 
come  by  sea.  (See  despatches  from  Berthier  to  Lefebvre  on  the  11th,  and  to 
Lannes  on  the  12th,  Dumas,  xix.  284-288.) 

t  The  Hagelsberg  ditch  was  found  to  be  27  feet  deep,  and  the  slope  of  the 
breach  in  the  left  face  of  the  bastion  was  very  steep.  Endeavours  to  make  it 
less  so  were  made  from  the  covered  descent.     (Kirgener,  p.  28.) 

The  covered  descent  was  made  with  gabions  on  either  side,  roofed  in  with 
fascines  and  earth. 


254  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

river,  grounded,  and  was  captured.*  The  guns  of  the  fortress 
were  still  firing  with  considerable  effect  on  the  works  of 
approach. 

Kalkreuth's  last  sortie  was  made  on  the  night  of  the 
20th.  After  succeeding  in  destroying  the  work  of  the  pre- 
ceding day,  it  was  finally  driven  back  with  the  aid  of 
reinforcements. 

On  the  21st,  Mortier  joined  Lefebvre  with  all  his  corps, 
except  what  he  had  left  in  front  of  Colberg.  In  the  night 
of  the  21st,  Vallet,  a  private  of  the  12th  infantry  of  the  line, 
ventured  on  a  gallant  enterprise.  On  the  crest  of  the  breach, 
in  front  of  the  covered  descent  of  the  ditch,  the  Prussians  had 
arranged  three  great  beams,  retained  by  ropes,  ready  to  be 
rolled  down  on  the  assailants  issuing  from  the  descent. 
Vallet  alone  climbed  the  breach  to  cut  the  cords.  He 
succeeded,  though  wounded,  in  his  desperate  business.  The 
beams  rolled  into  the  ditch,  and,  under'the  constant  fire  from 
the  French  guns,  it  was  impossible  to  replace  them. 

The  Hagelsberg  was  now,  or  very  shortly  would  be,  in  a 
condition  to  warrant  an  assault,  which  was  ordered  by 
Lefebvre  f  at  Napoleon's  instance.  Before  delivering  it,  he 
sent  a  final  summons  to  Kalkreuth.  That  officer  had  made  a 
resistance  distinguished  by  that  activity  which  is  essential  to 
every  able  defence  of  a  fortress ;  prolongation  could  only 
result  in  the  garrison  of  the  Hagelsberg  being  subjected  to 
the  horrors  of  a  storm.  The  advantages  were  certainly  not 
commensurate  with  the  terrible  loss  of  life  which  must  ensue 
to  both  sides.  It  is  true  that  the  Hagelsberg  was  only  an 
outer  defence,  but  from  it  the  city  and  the  enceinte  would  lie 
at  the  mercy  of  the  captors.  A  few  hours,  or  at  most  a  day 
or  two,  of  bombardment  must  compel  a  surrender  on  terms  far 

*  The  plan  at  the  end  of  Kirgener's  work  shows  the  scene  of  this  event  at  a 
point  about  halfway  between  the  angle  of  the  river  and  the  northern  extremity 
of  the  Holm  island. 

t  Napoleon,  at  last,  thought  the  time  for  assault  had  arrived,  and  that  more 
men  were  being  lost  in  the  daily  bombardments  and  sorties  than  would  fall  in  a 
storm  (Berthier  to  Lefebvre,  18th  May,  Dumas,  xix.  298). 


TEE  SIEGE   OF  DANZIG.  255 

less  favourable  than  the  French  might  be  expected  to  grant 
in  view  of  the  avoidance  of  the  losses  of  an  assault.  A  few 
more  days  of  resistance  could  now  make  no  appreciable 
difference  to  Bennigsen.  Kamenskoi's  attempt  to  relieve  the 
place,  supported  by  an  insufficient  army,  and  ruined  by 
hesitation,  had  failed,  and  there  was  no  hope  of  its  renewal 
Bennigsen's  feeble  demonstrations  in  front  of  Napoleon  had 
shown  the  futility  of  expectations  from  that  quarter. 
Kalkreuth,  therefore,  was  perfectly  justified  in  his  acceptance 
of  Lefebvre's  proposals  to  treat  for  a  capitulation. 

He  declined  to  treat  for  the  surrender  of  Neufahrwasser 
and  Weichselmunde,  pointing  out  that,  separated  as  he  was 
from  them,  he  could  not  control  their  garrisons. 

If  he  was  in  a  position  which  compelled  him  to  desire  a 
capitulation  on  honourable  terms,  Napoleon  was  still  more 
inclined  to  grant  them.*  The  summer  was  now  commencing, 
and  the  Emperor  was  anxious  to  reopen  the  campaign,  which 
he  dared  not  do  with  Danzig  still  holding  out  in  his  rear. 
He  wanted,  too,  the  troops  besieging  it. 

After  three  days  of  negotiation,  the  terms  of  surrender 
were  fixed.  The  garrison  was  to  march  out  with  all  the 
honours  of  war,  with  drums  beating,  matches  lighted,  and 
standards  flying,  taking  two  light  guns  with  them.  They 
were  to  be  conducted  to  the  Prussian  outposts  before  Pillau. 
On  the  other  hand,  they  engaged  not  to  fight  against  the 
French  and  their  allies  for  a  year. 

The  actual  surrender  was  arranged  for  the  26th  May,  on 
the  formal  condition  that  the  place  was  not  relieved  from 
outside  before  then.  At  noon  on  that  day,  the  western  works 
were  handed  over  to  the  French.     Next  day  the  garrison 

*  Corr.  12629,  dated  22nd  May,  to  Lefebvre.  The  Emperor  grudges  the 
loss  of  the  garrison,  whom  he  estimates  at  10,000  or  12,000,  as  prisoners  of  war ; 
but  has  clearly  weighed  with  care  the  considerations"  in  favour  of  obtaining  an 
immediate  surrender.  He  lays  down  the  terms  to  be  granted,  which  are 
practically  those  accepted  by  the  governor  of  Danzig.  The  Emperor  still 
thought  it  might  take  another  15  days  to  compel  an  unconditional  sur- 
render. 


256  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

marched  off  along  the  Nehrung  for  Pillau,  whilst  Lefebvre 
made  his  formal  entry  into  Danzig.* 

Kamenskoi  had  set  sail  from  Weichselmunde,  and,  shortly- 
after,  the  garrison  of  the  fort  surrendered. 

Thus  ended  this  memorable  siege,  the  conduct  of  which 
was  shortly  afterwards  acknowledged  by  the  conferment  on 
Lefebvre  of  the  Dukedom  of  Danzig.f  The  defence  had 
redounded  to  the  credit  of  Kalkreuth  and  his  garrison,  who, 
contesting  almost  every  inch  of  the  besiegers'  progress,  had 
held  out  over  seven  weeks  against  open  trenches. 

The  one  blot  on  the  defence  would  appear  to  be  the 
failure  to  support,  by  sorties,  Kamenskoi's  relieving  force. 

The  siege  is  a  typical  example  of  the  regular  approach  of 
a  bastioned  front  with  dry  ditches ;  for  water,  of  course,  was 
not  available  for  those  of  the  outer  line  of  works. 

The  besiegers,  too,  had,  many  difficulties  to  contend 
against.;  they  were,  at  first,  in  inferior  force,  both  in  men  and 
guns  ;  the  perimeter  to  be  guarded  was  great ;  there  was  no 
proper  plan  of  the  defences ;  the  ground  on  the  front  of  attack 
was  difficult  to  reconnoitre  in  advance  of  the  siege  works. 

The  island  of  Holm  was  all-important  to  them,  as  en- 
abling fire  to  bear  on  the  reverse  of  the  front  of  attack.  The 
desirability  of  its  early  capture  is  admitted  by  Kirgener,  the 
French  engineer,^  but  he  points  out  the  difficulties  of  an 
attack  on  it,  so  long  as  the  garrison  held  the  Kalk  redoubt, 
so  often  taken  and  retaken,  on  Lefebvre's  left.  It  was  for- 
tunate for  the  French  that  they  held  that  island  when 
Kamenskoi  fell  upon  Schramm  in  the  Nehrung.  Without  it, 
and  the  bridge  uniting  it  to  the  left  bank  of  the  Vistula,  his 
relief  by  Lannes  and  Oudinot  would  scarcely  have  been 

*  The  number  that  marched  out  is  given  by  Hoepfner  (iii.  523)  as  335 
officers,  12,448  men,  1275  horses.  This  takes  no  account  of  the  garrisons  of 
Weichselmunde  and  Neufahrwasser. 

t  Corr.  12666,  dated  28th  May,  being  Napoleon's  message  to  the  Senate 
regarding  the  creation  of  a  new  order  of  nobility. 

X  See  Kirgener's  conclusions,  quoted  in  Dumas,  xviii.  191,  etc.  They  are  at 
pp.  38-47  of  Kirgener's  prfcis. 


THE  SIEGE  OF  DANZIG.  257 

possible.  The  capture  of  Neufahrwasser  and  Weichselmunde, 
thus  separating  Danzig  from  the  sea,  was  also  very  desirable. 
Kirgener,  however,  points  out  that  all  the  artillery  available 
was  required  at  the  Hagelsberg,  and  they  could  only  be  taken 
with  the  aid  of  siege  guns.  He  also  discusses  fully  the 
respective  merits  of  an  attack  on  the  Hagelsberg  and  on  the 
Bischofsberg.*  The  reasons  in  favour  of  the  former  are 
technical,  and  apparently  forcible. 

From  famine  or  shortness  of  supplies  or  ammunition  the 
garrison  had  never  suffered.  Enormous  quantities  of  stores 
of  every  description  remained  in  the  place,  and  were  of  the 
utmost  service  to  the  French. 

*  Vide  supra,  p.  239,  note. 


CHAPTER    III. 

Operations  in  Silesia  and  Pomerania,  on  the  Narew, 
and  on  the  Vistula. 

March  to  May,  1807. 

(a)  SILESIA. 

THE  operations  in  Silesia  were  left  at  the  surrender  of 
Breslau  on  the  7th  January. 

Brieg,  invested  by  Vandamme  with  the  Wurtemburg 
division  and  a  few  Bavarian  battalions  towards  the  end  of 
January,  surrendered,  with  large  quantities  of  artillery  and 
ammunition,  on  the  8th  February. 

The  Prince  of  Anhalt-Plessis  was  still  in  the  field.  He 
was  attacked  and  driven  into  Glatz  by  the  Bavarian  cavalry 
under  Lefebvre-Desnouettes,  who  remained  in  observation 
of  the  fortress,  whilst  Vandamme  laid  siege  to  Kosel, 
Neisse  and  Schweidnitz.  The  last-named  surrendered  on  the 
11th  April.  A  vigorous  attempt  to  succour  Neisse  from 
Glatz  was  beaten  off,  but  the  fortress  held  out  bravely  till 
the  16th  June.  Glatz  was  then  attacked,  and  surrendered  on 
the  28th  June. 

The  army  of  Silesia  had,  as  already  noted,  been  weakened 
by  a  Bavarian  division  sent  to  Masse'na,  in  place  of  which 
Jerome  was  directed  to  recruit  8000  Poles.* 

It  is  unnecessary  to  go  farther  into  the  details  of  the 

♦  Corr.  12,305,  dated  5th  April. 


OPERATIONS  IN  POMERANIA.  259 

operations  in  Silesia.*  As  the  fortresses  fell,  the  artillery 
captured  in  them  was  utilised  for  the  sieges,  not  only  of 
the  other  Silesian  fortresses,  but  also  for  those  of  Danzig, 
Graudenz,  and  Colberg.  The  Emperor  further  drew  from 
Silesia  immense  resources  in  kind  and  in  money. f 

(b)   POMERANIA. 

In  Pomerania,  Mortier  was  last  mentioned  as  holding,  up 
to  the  end  of  January,  the  line  of  the  Peene. 

A  good  deal  of  trouble  was  experienced  from  the  enterprise 
of  the  Prussian  garrison  of  Colberg,  which  sent  raiding 
expeditions  far  and  wide. 

In  the  middle  of  February  an  Italian  division,  under 
Teulie,  was  sent  to  blockade  the  place,  which  it  succeeded  in 
doing  after  some  sharp  actions  during  its  advance. 

On  the  28th  January,  Mortier,  deciding  to  blockade 
Stralsund,  passed  the  Peene  at  Anklam  and  Demmin,  and 
between  them.  Granjean  on  the  right,  driving  the  Swedish 
outposts  before  him,  reached  Greifswalde,  which  he  carried 
with  slight  loss.  Dupas,  on  the  left,  advanced  parallel  to 
Granjean,  without  encountering  any  resistance.  The  two 
columns  next  day,  after  a  slight  combat,  arrived  in  front 
of  Stralsund.  On  the  30th,  the  blockade  of  the  land  side 
was  completed,  but  the  communications  by  sea  with  the 
island  of  Kugen  remained  open,  and  Mortier  was  much 
annoyed  by  fire  from  gunboats. 

For  two  months  he  continued  before  Stralsund,  completing 
the  lines  of  investment,  and  occasionally  engaging  in  small 

*  Very  full  details  of  the  sieges  will  be  found  in  Hoepfner  (vol.  iv.),  who, 
as  a  Prussian,  was  specially  interested  in  them,  and  who  gives  throughout  much 
fuller  accounts  of  Prussian  than  of  Russian  movements. 

t  By  June,  Jerome's  corps  had  been  very  much  reduced  by  drafts  to  Masse'na. 
etc.    The  return  for  the  15th  June  (Arch.  Hist.)  gives  his  strength 

Bavarians  2629 

Wurtemburgers  5640 

8269 


260  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

combats  with  the  garrison,  which  was  by  no  means  inactive. 
During  this  period  3  French  infantry,  and  1  cavalry  regiment 
were  taken  from  him  to  the  Vistula,  and  replaced  by  Dutch 
troops. 

On  the  29th  March,  he  was  ordered  to  leave  only  Granjean's 
division  *  before  Stralsund,  and  to  proceed,  with  the  rest  of 
his  corps,  to  Colberg.  No  sooner  was  he  gone  than  Essen, 
the  Swedish  general  in  command  of  Stralsund,  issued  from 
the  place,  with  greatly  superior  numbers,  against  the  weak 
division  of  Granjean.  The  latter,  attacked  in  front  and 
threatened  on  his  left,  was  compelled  to  fall  back  by  Greifs- 
walde  on  Anklam  across  the  Peene.  Attacked  there  on  the 
3rd  April,  he  was  again  driven  on  Uckermunde.  Once 
more  threatened  on  both  flanks  with  interruption  of  his 
line  to  Stettin,  he  retired  to  that  place,  reaching  it  on  the 
7th  April.  He  now  received  orders  from  Mortier  to  move 
on  Passe  walk.  The  marshal  himself  started  on  the  11th  to 
his  assistance  at  Stettin,  which  he  reached  on  the  13th  with 
one  French  and  one  Italian  infantry  regiment,  and  a  regiment 
and  a  half  of  cavalry.  Granjean  was  reinforced  the  same 
day  by  a  French  infantry  regiment  from  Berlin. 

Mortier,  including  Granjean's  division,  now  had  12,000 
or  13,000  men,  about  equal  to  the  strength  of  the  Swedes. 

Leaving  at  Passewalb  a  provisional  regiment  which  had 
just  arrived,  Mortier  advanced  against  the  enemy,  and,  in  a 
series  of  actions,  drove  him  upon  Anklam.  The  weather  was 
very  bad,  constant  hail  and  rain,  but  the  Swedes  were  steadily 
forced  back  across  the  Peene  on  the  17th  April. 

Mortier  had  been  authorised  to  propose  to  Essen  an 
armistice,  and  to  raise  the  blockade  of  Stralsund.  The  Swedes 
were  discontented  at  the  want  of  support  from  England,  and 
the  French  successes  decided  Essen,  with  the  consent  of  his 
sovereign,  to  treat. 

Between  the  18th  and  the  29th  April,  the  negotiations 
ended  in  an  armistice  terminable  only  after  a  month's  notice, 

*  Two  French  and  two  Dutch  infantry  regiments,  and  one  of  Dutch  cavalry. 


OPERATIONS  ON  THE  VISTULA  AND   NAREW.      261 

and  confining  the  Swedes  to  the  line  of  the  Peene.  They 
also  made  over  to  the  French  the  islands  of  Usedom  and 
Wollin,  engaging  to  render  no  assistance  to  the  beleaguered 
garrisons  in  Colberg  and  Danzig. 

This  armistice  was  a  great  relief  to  Napoleon,  enabling 
him,  as  it  did,  to  utilise  the  greater  part  of  Mortier's  corps  on 
the  Lower  Vistula.  No  further  mention  of  operations  in 
Swedish  Pomerania  will  be  necessary.  Mortier  may  hence- 
forward be  considered  as  forming  part  of  the  main  army  on 
the  Vistula. 

(c)  ON  THE  VISTULA  AND  THE  NAEEW. 

When  Napoleon,  satisfied  that  the  enemy  in  front  of  him 
was  at  last  settling  down  for  the  rest  which  both  armies  so 
badly  needed,  had  himself  withdrawn  his  corps  to  their 
cantonments,  he  adhered  generally  to  his  original  scheme  of 
the  20th  February. 

He  carried  on,  during  this  period  of  rest,  some  desultory 
negotiations,  not  so  much,  probably,  with  any  hope  or  desire 
of  success,  as  with  the  wish  not  to  irritate  Austria  by  a 
refusal  of  her  mediation,  which  had  been  offered  and  accepted.* 
He  was  busy,  as  ever,  directing  the  siege  of  Danzig,  and 
ordering  the  fortification  of  his  line  of  cantonments  f  so 
that  the  position  became  almost  impregnable. 

Supplies,  which  had  been  very  scarce  in  February  and 
March,J  now  arrived  regularly,  as  the  means  of  transport 

*  Corr.  12,391,  dated  16th  April. 

t  Corr.  12,144,  dated  24th  March,  gives  detailed  orders  regarding  the 
entrenched  camp  at  Praga.  Corr.  12,321,  dated  6th  April,  again  alludes  to  the 
strengthening  of  the  front  about  Osterode.  Davout  fortified  the  chateau  at 
Allenstein  (Davout,  pp.  187  and  190).  Bridge-heads  were  constructed  at 
Braunsberg  and  Spanden.  Ney  fortified  Guttstadt.  The  ground  being  generally 
frozen,  wood  and  manure  were  used  for  works  (Davout,  p.  187).  Numerous  other 
works  on  the  Alle  were  constructed  (ibid.,  p.  190). 

X  m  The  Russians  appear  to  be  like  us,  and  not  to  have  eaten  for  several 
days"  (Corr.  11,895,  dated  27th  February).  More  complaints  of  shortness  of 
food  (Corr.  11,897,  dated  27th  February).     Ney  is  told,  on  the  7th  March,  that 


262  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

were  organised  and  improved.     The  Imperial  headquarters 
were  removed  on  the  1st  April  to  Finkenstein.* 

It  was  only  on  the  11th  Mayf  that  Napoleon  saw 
indications  of  an  early  attempt  to  relieve  Danzig  from  the 
sea.  The  measures  which  he  took  to  reinforce  Lefebvre  have 
already  been  described  in  the  history  of  the  siege. 

Though,  on  the  11th  May,  there  were  no  signs  visible  to 
Napoleon  of  a  movement  in  his  own  front,  he  was  naturally 
not  surprised  when  they  appeared  a  few  days  later.  It  was 
to  be  expected  that  a  demonstration  at  least,  if  not  a  serious 
attack,  would  be  made  by  Bennigsen  to  withdraw  the 
Emperor's  attention  from  Danzig,  and  to  prevent  him,  if 
possible,  from  reinforcing  Lefebvre.  On  the  same  day,  11th 
May,  there  were  assembled  at  Heilsberg  the  Eussian  1st,  2nd, 
3rd,  and  14th  divisions,  and  the  cavalry  of  the  left  wing; 
whilst  the  7th  and  8th  divisions,  with  the  right  wing  cavalry, 
concentrated  at  Burgers walde.  On  the  13th,  a  forward 
movement  was  made  from  Heilsberg  to  Launau,  and  from 
Burgerswalde  towards  Wormditt  and  Arensdorf ;  but,  as  it 
was  reported  that  Napoleon  also  was  on  the  point  of  advancing 
in  great  force,  the  movement  was  abandoned ;  on  the  14th, 
the  troops  returned  to  their  former  cantonments. 

On  the  13th,  Plato w  had  successfully  attacked  a  Polish 
post  and  had  driven  in  Gazan's  outposts  in  front  of  Willem- 
burg.J  A  somewhat  more  decided  movement,  to  be  described 
presently,  had  been  made  against  Massena ;  but,  on  the  whole, 
the  diversion  to  cover  the  operations  for  the  relief  of  Danzig 
by  Kamenskoi  was  most  feeble.  Napoleon  had  expected 
something  much  more  serious,  and  was  prepared  for  it. 

Had  it  been  more  positive  in  its  nature,  Ney  was   to 

he  must  be  patient  in  his  deficiency  of  supplies,  which  are  at  Osterode,  detained 
by  want  of  transport  (Corr.  11,967).  Even  on  the  27th  March  it  is  noted  that 
Ney  is  hard  up  for  food  {Corr.  12,194). 

*  Corr.  12,263,  dated  Finkenstein,  2nd  April. 

t  Corr.  12,572,  dated  11th  May.  Even  then  Napoleon  saw  no  signs  of  an 
advance  in  front  of  himself. 

%  MasuTna,  v.  328. 


OPERATIONS   ON  THE    VISTULA   AND    NAREW.      203 

concentrate  in  a  strongly  entrenched  position  about  Guttstadt 
and  Wolfsdorf.  Davout  in  similar  positions  at  Hohenstein, 
Allenstein,  and  Osterode;  Soult  at  Elditten;  Bernadotte  on 
the  Lower  Passarge.  Murat,  with  a  great  part  of  his  cavalry 
reserve  supported  by  infantry,  would  advance  through 
Willemburg  and  Wurtemburg,  followed  by  Zayonchek  from 
Neidenburg,  and  with  Gazan  moving,  on  his  right,  from 
Willemburg  on  Oertelsberg,*  thus  threatening  that  left  wing 
which,  since  the  operations  before  Eylau,  had  always  been  a 
source  of  anxiety  to  Bennigsen. 

After  these  futile  threats  on  the  part  of  Bennigsen,  both 
armies  settled  down  again  into  a  tacit  cessation  of  hostilities 
until  the  time  came,  early  in  June,  for  the  opening  of  the 
final  campaign. 

During  the  months  from  the  battle  of  Ostrolenka  till  June, 
the  course  of  events  on  the  Narew  had  not  been  very  active. 

On  the  8th  March,  the  Bavarian  division  which  Napoleon  had 
ordered  from  Silesia  reached  Warsaw,  between  7000  and  8000 
men,  under  the  Crown  Prince  of  Bavaria  and  General  Wrede. 

Massena  fixed  his  headquarters  at  Prasznitz.  The  Bavarian 
division  he  posted  with  one  brigade  on  the  Narew,  from 
Sierock  to  Pultusk ;  the  other,  and  the  cavalry,  partly  at  Praga, 
partly  at  Prasznitz.  Suchet's  division  held  the  Narew  from 
Pultusk  to  the  Omulew  at  Zawady.  Along  the  Omulew 
from  Zawady  to  Willemburg  was  Gazan's  division,  with 
Becker's  dragoons  between  Janow  and  Chorzel.  The  link 
between  Gazan's  left  and  Davout's  right,  at  Allenstein,  was 
supplied  by  Zayonchek's  Poles.  A  third  brigade  of  Bavarians, 
arriving  early  in  April,  remained  at  Warsaw.  On  the  Russian 
side,  a  line  of  cossack  posts  watched  the  French  on  the 
Omulew,  and  had  behind  it  Wolkonski's  troops  in  support. 
More  Russians,  between  the  Narew  and  the  Bug,  watched  the 
course  of  the  former  river  from  Ostrolenka  to  Sierock.  On 
the  14th  April,  t  the  Emperor  directed  Massena  to  clear  the 
space  in  front  of  the  Pultusk  and  Sierock  bridges.     This  was 

*  Hatfner,  iii.  529.  t  Corr.  12,378,  dated  14th  April. 


264  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

done  by  200  Polish  cavalry  driving  back  the  cossacks  on 
Wyszkowo,  whilst  Leinarrois,  from  Warsaw,  followed  in  the 
same  direction  on  the  10th  May.  Popowo  was  reached 
that  day,  and  the  Kussians  concentrated  on  Wyszkowo.  On 
the  12th  they  moved  out,  under  General  Loewis,  against  the 
Bavarians,  pushing  them  back  on  Nowavics,  and,  on  the 
following  day,  to  the  bridge-head  at  Sierock.* 

Massena,  to  check  this  movement,  sent  troops  across  the 
river  at  Pultusk,  towards  Poplawy  and  Psary.j  Before  the 
superior  forces  now  arrayed  against  them,  the  Kussians  fell 
back  after  a  sharp  fight. 

After  this,  Massena  cleared  the  peninsula  between  the 
Bug  and  the  Narew  for  some  distance,  and  was  not  seriously 
molested  during  the  rest  of  the  month  of  May.J 

*  Massena's  memoirs  (Koch)  say  that,  on  the  12th  May,  another  attack  was 
made  at  the  mouth  of  the  Omulew,  which,  though  successful  at  first,  was 
eventually  repulsed  by  Girard.  On  this  day  Gazan,  as  already  mentioned, 
was  also  attacked  at  Willemburg.  Massena  himself  was  in  front  of  Chorzel 
with  a  Bavarian  force,  to  prevent  the  turning  either  of  Suchet  on  his  right  or 
of  Gazan  on  his  left  (Massfna,  v.  328). 

f  The  date  of  this  action  is  given  in  the  memoirs  of  Masse'na  as  the  16th 
May  (Masufna,  v.  329). 

%  Napoleon's  fresh  instructions  to  Massena  are  well  worthy  of  study  (Corr. 
12,596,  dated  17th  May,  1807).  His  duties  are  laid  down  as:  (a)  to  cover 
Warsaw ;  (6)  to  form  the  right  of  the  army ;  (c)  to  hold  an  offensive  position, 
alarming  the  enemy  for  his  left,  and  preventing  him  from  weakening  it  to 
support  his  centre  and  right. 

The  enemy  could  advance  on  Warsaw  either  by  the  Bug  or  by  the  Narew. 
To  cover  the  city,  therefore,  Sierock  would  be  the  best  point.  The  next  best 
position  would  be  astride  of  the  Narew,  between  Pultusk  and  Rozan,  at  the 
extremity  of  the  great  bend  which  was  only  8  or  9  miles  from  the  Bug. 
The  third  best  would  be  Pultusk,  but  it  would  be  inferior  owing  to  its  distance 
from  the  Bug.  Last  of  all  would  come  Ostrolenka :  it,  however,  would  be  as 
far  from  there  to  Brok  as  to  Sierock. 

But  there  was  also  to  be  taken  into  consideration  Massena's  third  object,  and 
for  that  Ostrolenka  would  be  by  far  the  best  position.  Therefore,  Suchet  should 
occupy  the  right  bank  in  force,  with  outposts  in  forts  at  Ostrolenka.  Seven 
Bavarian  battalions  should  hold  Ostrykow,  at  the  angle  of  the  Narew,  three 
should  be  at  Krasnosielsk,  two  at  Pultusk,  two  at  Sierock,  a  light  infantry 
battalion  in  Ostrolenka.  "  Should  it  be  asked  why  Ostrolenka  is  to  be  occupied, 
the  answer  is  simple ;  it  is,  in  the  first  place,  that  the  enemy  may  not  occupy  it ; 
next,  it  is  in  order  to  occupy  both  banks  of  the  Narew,  without  the  navigation 
of  which  it  is  impossible  to  live ;  lastly,  the  occupation  of  both  banks  acts  as  a 
menace  to  the  enemy." 


PART  V. 


THE  FINAL   TRIUMPH— HEILSBERG— 
FRIEDLAND— TILSIT. 


CHAPTER  I. , 

The  Renewal  of  the  Campaign  and  its  Peogress  to  the 

9th  June. 

(a)  the  russian  advance. 

NAPOLEON  had  begun  to  contemplate  a  renewal  of  the 
campaign  so  early  as  the  29th  April,  when  he  wrote  to 
Soult  to  send  his  sick  to  the  rear,  preparatory  to  a  general 
advance.*  But  he  did  not  wish  to  push  on  towards  Russia  so 
long  as  Danzig  remained  untaken  on  his  rear,  and  he  was  dis- 
appointed as  to  the  progress  of  the  siege.  By  the  8th  May, 
he  was  able  to  judge,  approximately,  when  Danzig  would  fall. 
He  wrote  that  he  hoped  to  have  it  by  the  20th,  and  to  com- 
mence his  general  movement  in  the  first  half  of  June.  He 
had  fixed  on  the  10th,  thinking  that,  now  Danzig  had  fallen, 
it  was  extremely  improbable  the  enemy  would  take  the 
initiative,  f  So  little  did  he  apprehend  this,  that  he  paid  a  two- 
days'  visit  to  Danzig  so  late  as  the  31st  May.J  Everything 
was,  however,  in  readiness,  whether  for  an  advance  or  for 
meeting  an  attack  by  the  enemy. 

Rapp,  now  appointed   Governor   of  Danzig,    had    been 

*  Corr.  12,496. 

t  On  the  afternoon  of  the  5th  June,  Napoleon  wrote  to  Soult,  "  Everything 
leads  to  the  belief  that  the  enemy  is  on  the  move,  though  it  is  ridiculous  on  his 
part  to  engage  in  a  general  action  now  that  Danzig  is  taken.  ...  I  shall  be 
very  glad  if  the  enemy  spares  us  the  trouble  of  going  to  him.  My  design  was 
to  set  myself  in  motion  on  the  10th  "  (Corr.  12,731). 

X  In  Corr.  12,710,  dated  2nd  June,  the  Emperor  writes  that  he  had  been  two 
days  at  Danzjg,  and  was  returning  that  evening  to  Finkenstein. 


268  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

instructed  to  put  the  place  in  a  state  to  stand  a  fresh  siege 
from  the  sea  or  from  the  Nehrung.*  Pile  bridges  were 
under  construction  at  Dirschau  and  Marienburg,  which 
had  acquired  an  entirely  new  importance  as  lines  of  com- 
munication, since  the  capture  of  Danzig.f  The  fullest 
instructions  had  been  issued  for  the  collection  and  forwarding 
of  supplies.^ 

All  the  troops  required  for  the  front  had  arrived,  or 
were  on  the  march,  and  the  corps  recently  engaged  in  the 
siege  of  Danzig  were  now  available,  except  in  so  far  as  they 
were  required  for  a  garrison  for  the  fortress.  Lefebvre's 
corps  was  distributed  to  the  garrison  and  to  the  corps  of 
Lannes  and  Mortier.§ 

Facing  one  another  on  the  line  of  the  Passarge  and  the 


*  Corr.  12,728,  dated  5th  June.  This  seems  to  be  merely  a  written  reminder ; 
for  the  Emperor,  during  his  visit  to  Danzig,  had,  no  doubt,  discussed  this  question 
fully. 

t  Corr.  12,662  and  12,663,  dated  28th  May. 

X  These  instructions  to  Daru  (Corr.  12,689,  dated  29th  May)  are  a  good 
example  of  Napoleon's  methods.  He  states  that  he  wishes  to  provision  his  army 
for  eight  months.  He  will  require,  therefore,  for  current  expenditure  and 
collection  of  a  reserve,  a  daily  supply  of  80,000  rations  at  Warsaw  for  the  right, 
of  100,000  at  Thorn,  Wroclavik,  and  Bromberg  for  the  centre,  and  of  80,000  for 
the  left  at  Danzig,  Marienburg,  Elbing,  Marienwerder,  etc.  The  first  thing  to 
be  done  is  to  settle  and  mark  on  a  map  the  areas  from  which  each  point  is  to  be 
supplied.  To  Warsaw  would  be  assigned  a  breadth  extending  from  Warsaw  to 
Wroclavik,  and  a  depth  including  the  districts  (arrondUsements)  of  Warsaw 
and  Kalisch ;  for  the  centre,  the  districts  of  Posen  and  Bromberg  to  a  breadth 
represented  by  the  line  Wroclavik-Graudenz ;  the  left  would  draw  from  the 
country  between  Marienwerder  and  the  sea,  with  a  depth  including  the  whole 
of  Pomerania.  Next,  the  best  places  for  magazines  must  be  selected  in  each 
circle. 

Of  supplies  there  are  five  sources :  (1)  what  is  actually  in  existence  on  the 
1st  June ;  (2)  what  can  be  supplied  by  each  Polish  district ;  (3)  what  can  be 
demanded  from  Pomerania;  (4)  what  can  be  brought  up  from  magazines  in 
rear;  (5)  what  must  be  brought  to  supply  the  existing  Polish  markets  or  to 
start  new  ones.  Before  setting  up  a  market,  a  careful  calculation  of  cost  of 
carriage  from  Breslau,  Custrin,  or  Magdeburg  must  be  made,  and  compared  with 
the  cost  of  supplies,  if  any,  procurable  in  the  neighbourhood,  the  cheapest  being 
chosen.  Then  follow  detailed  remarks  as  to  the  best  way  of  starting  markets 
and  searching  out  the  resources  of  a  country. 

§  Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  403. 


RENEWAL  AND  PROGRESS    OF   TEE   CAMPAIGN. 


Alle,  on  the  Omulew  and  the  Narew,  were  220,000  French 
and  auxiliary  troops,  and  115,000  Kussians  and  Prussians.* 

*  The  numbers  of  the  Russians  and  Prussians  are  given  in  detail  by 
Hoepfner  (iii.  555,  etc.),  and  his  statement  may  probably  be  accepted  as  fairly 
correct.    It  shows  these  numbers. 

On  the  Lower  Passarge  15,000  Prussians,  exclusive  of  a  detachment  on  the 
Nehrung.  In  support  of  them  was  Kamenskoi's  division,  returned  from  Danzig^ 
at  Lilienthal.  The  total  of  this  right  wing  is  estimated  at  20,000  and  78  guns, 
including  7500  cavalry.  There  were,  far  in  rear,  the  garrison  of  Koenigsberg 
and  6000  reserve  troops  at  Gumbinnen. 

The  Russian  main  armv  was  as  follows  :— 


Bagration  (Launau),  advanced  guard 
Uwarow  (cavalry  of  right  wing)   ... 

Dochtorow,  7th  division       

Sacken,  3rd  division  

Essen  III.,  8th  division       

Osterman  Tolstoi,  2nd  and  14th  divisions 
Galitzin,  cavalry  of  left  wing 
Gortchakow,  6th  division  and  cossacks     . 
Guard,  Grand  Duke  Constantine  ... 
Platow's  flying  column,  chiefly  cossacks  . 
On  the  Narew,  under  Tolstoi 


12,537 
3,836 
4,653 
6,432 
5,670 
9,615 
2,982 

10,873 

17,000 
6,347 

15,800 


Another  30,000  men,  under  Labanow,  were  on  their  way,  but  were  still  far 
behind  the  Russian  frontier. 

Altogether,  allowing  for  sick,  stragglers,  etc.,  there  were  about  87,000  regular 
troops  (11,000  of  them  cavalry),  and  8,000  cossacks  facing  Napoleon. 
Including  the  force  on  the  Narew,  there  were  thus  about  111,000,  not 
reckoning  the  Koenigsberg  and  Graudenz  garrisons,  the  6000  at  Gumbinnen, 
the  detachment  on  the  Nehrung,  and  the  reinforcements  under  Labanow. 
Dumas  (xviii.  221)  puts  the  allies  at  118,000,  including  the  detachment  on  the 
Narew.  Danilewski  (see  note,  Hoepfner,  iii.  562)  gives,  as  the  combined  force 
in  the  middle  of  May,  125,000.  The  discrepancies  are  not  very  marked,  and 
it  seems  safe  to  take  the  army  at  the  numbers  given  in  the  text.  Jomini 
(Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  400)  says  that  the  Russians,  during  the  three  months 
after  Eylau,  had  been  reinforced  by  an  infantry  division  and  the  Guard.  Still 
they  were  not  above  120,000  or  130,000,  including  Lestocq  and  the  corps  on 
the  Narew. 

The  French  numbers,  according  to  the  table  at  the  end  of  Dumas,  vol.  xviii., 
were,  on  the  Vistula  : — 


Infantry  ... 
Cavalry  ... 
Artillery  ... 


123,073 

30,390 

4,909 


158,372 

This  does   not    include   officers.     Adding   for  these,  and   for  Dombrowski's 
division  of  the  8th  corps,  the  numbers  of  which  are  not  stated,  it  is  probable 


270  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

For  the  operations  north  of  Massena's  charge  there  were 
190,000  under  the  Emperor  in  person,  against  100,000 
under  Bennigsen. 

On  the  2nd  June,  Bennigsen,  having  determined  to 
attack  the  advanced  corps  of  Ney,  had  concentrated  his 
army  about  Heilsberg,  excepting  the  advanced  guard,  Platow's 
flying  column,  and  the  right  wing  under  Lestocq. 

His  plan  for  the  destruction  of  Ney  was  extremely  com- 
plicated. Whilst  Lestocq  held  the  French  on  the  Lower 
Passarge,  6  columns  were  to  converge  on  Ney. 

1st  column — Dochtorow,  with  24  battalions  and  4  batteries, 
the  7th  and  8th  divisions — was  to  advance  from  Olbers- 
dorf  *  (Albrechtsdorf),  south  of  Wormditt,  driving  the  French 
across  the  Passarge  and  barring  their  return  with  small 
detachments.  He  was  then  to  ascend  the  right  bank  of  the 
stream,  and  take  up  a  position  between  Elditten  and 
Schwendt  (Schwenkitten),f  opposite  the  bridge  of  Pithenen. 
He  would  thus  prevent  the  junction  of  Soult  and  Ney. 

2nd  column — Sacken,  with  the  2nd,  3rd,  and  14th 
divisions,  and  the  cavalry  of  both  wings,  in  all  42  battalions, 
140  squadrons,  and  9  batteries  % — was  to  march  by  Arensdorf, 
and  attack  Ney,  supporting  the  advanced  guard  and  the 
1st  column. 

that  the  army  beyond  the  Lower  Vistula  was  quite  170,000  strong,  with  about 
300  guns.  Massena  had  about  30,000  on  the  Narew,  and  Zayonchek,  connecting 
the  two,  had  perhaps  20,000  Poles.  The  latter  were  afterwards  used  to  replace 
the  French  at  Osterode,  Guttstadt,  etc.,  as  the  Emperor  advanced.  The  exact 
French  numbers  at  this  period  are  of  comparatively  little  importance,  for  there 
can  be  no  doubt  that  their  total  beyond  the  Lower  Vistula,  excluding  the 
garrison  of  Danzig  and  Zayonchek's  Poles,  exceeded  those  of  Bennigsen  by 
at  least  65,000  or  70,000. 

Rustow  (i.  319)  gives  Napoleon  only  158,000,  against  101,000  Russians  and 
Prussians  on  the  Vistula,  but  he,  apparently,  does  not  include  the  troops  from 
Danzig. 

*  So  the  name  is  written  in  all  the  old  accounts  and  maps.  In  the  modern 
map  of  1881,  as  well  as  in  the  copy  of  the  staff  map  in  Moltke'g  Tactical 
Problems  (Map  No.  27),  from  which  the  1881  map  is  reduced,  it  is  written 
"  Albrechtsdorf." 

t  "  Schwenkitten  "  on  modern  maps. 

X  Of  12  to  14  guns  each  =  (say)  120  guns. 


RENEWAL  AND  PROGRESS   OF   THE   CAMPAIGN.      271 

3rd  column — Bagration's  advanced  guard,  42  battalions, 
10  squadrons,  and  6  regiments  of  cossacks — leaving  its  sup- 
port about  Peterswalde,  to  march  by  Grunau  and  Altkirch,  so 
as  to  cut  off'  the  troops  which  Ney  had  in  Peterswalde.  As 
soon  as  Altkirch  should  be  taken,  the  supports  to  advance 
and  uphold  the  main  body,  attacking  the  enemy  between 
Knopen  and  Glottau. 

4th  column— G-ortchakow,  with  the  6th  division,  12  bat- 
talions, 20  squadrons,  and  3  regiments  of  cossacks — passing 
the  Alle  above  Guttstadt,  to  fall  upon  Ney's  right,  detaching 
a  brigade  towards  Seeburg  in  support  of  Platow. 

5th  column — Platow,  3  battalions,  10  squadrons,  9 
regiments  of  cossacks,  and  12  guns,  besides  the  brigade 
(Knorring's)  above  mentioned — masking  his  movement  from 
Massena's  (Gazan's)  outposts  about  Willemburg,  to  pass  the 
Alle  at  Bergfried,  and  assist  in  the  envelopment  of  Ney. 

6th  column — the  Grand  Duke  Constantine,  with  the 
1st  division  (Guard),  28  battalions,  28  squadrons,  3  batteries — 
to  follow,  as  reserve,  in  two  columns  from  Benern,  Arensdorf, 
and  Sommerfeld  to  Petersdorf. 

Lestocq,  meanwhile,  would  advance  against  Bernadotte  on 
the  Passarge  from  Braunsberg  to  Spanden,  holding  him  there, 
preventing  him  from  crossing  to  the  right  bank,  and,  at  the 
same  time,  covering  the  roads  to  Zinten  and  Koenigsberg. 

The  scheme  had  in  its  favour  the  fact  that  Ney,  his  front 
being  surrounded  by  forests,  could  not  see  what  was  going 
on  at  any  considerable  distance.  Nevertheless,  he  obtained 
sufficient  information  from  his  outposts  to  convince  him  that 
some  serious  movement  was  in  progress  before  him.  He 
accordingly  took  measures  for  the  concentration  of  his  corps, 
with  the  intention  of  taking  up  a  position  behind  Ankendorf, 
and  there  holding  out  till  he  could  receive  support  from  the 
rest  of  the  army.  He  also  requested  Soult  to  support  his 
left  from  Elditten,  and  Davout  to  strengthen  his  position  at 
Bergfried  on  the  right. 

Bennigsen,  originally  intending  to  attack  on  the  4th  of 


272  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

June,  had  sent  orders  to  Lestocq  to  alarm  the  enemy  on  the 
Lower  Passarge  on  that  day.  He  now  postponed  the  move- 
ment till  the  5th,  informing  Lestocq,  but  does  not  seem  to 
have  formally  cancelled  his  previous  order  for  the  4th.  On 
that  day,*  therefore,  the  Prussian  outposts  and  their  supports 
advanced,  whilst  the  main  body  moved  somewhat  to  its  left, 
so  as  to  be  more  in  touch  with  the  Eussians,  and  available 
for  their  assistance  in  the  hour  of  battle. 

Rembow's  division  was  assembled  in  the  night  of  the 
3rd-4th,  behind  Mehlsack,  in  all  about  3000  infantry,  1500 
cavalry,  and  2  batteries.  At  1  a.m.  it  started  for  Spanden  in 
four  columns. 

The  attack  on  the  bridge-head  had  already  commenced 
when  a  message  from  Dochtorow  at  Wormditt,  inquiring  the 
cause  of  the  cannonade,  showed  clearly  that  the  attack  was 
premature.  Rembow,  accordingly,  broke  off  the  action  and 
retired,  leaving  strong  outposts  watching  Spanden. 

On  the  same  day  Dupont  had  been  bombarded  at  Zagern. 

These  unfortunate  premature  attacks  had  no  other  effect 
than  to  put  Bernadotte  on  the  alert,  and  give  him  time  to 
prepare  against  a  serious  advance. 

On  the  5th  June,  about  10  a.m.,  the  attack  on  the 
Spanden  bridge-head  was  renewed.*  The  works  there 
crossed  the  neck  of  a  peninsula  re-entrant  towards  the 
French.  A  central  redoubt,  about  1000  paces  from  the 
bridge,  was  connected  by  parapets  with  the  river  on  either 
side.  Behind  this,  immediately  in  front  of  the  bridge,  was 
another  work,  open  at  the  gorge,  covering  the  bridge 
completely. 

*  Victor  (PrCcis  of  operations,  1st  corps,  Arch.  Hist.)  dates  these  operations 
the  3rd,  which  seems  to  be  an  error. 

*  In  a  despatch,  dated  5th  June,  to  Lanues,  Berthier  gives  the  hours  at 
which  the  various  attacks  commenced  that  day  on  the  French  corps : — 

1st  corps    ...    Bernadotte    ...     10  a.m. 
3rd  corps    ...     Davout  ...      9  a.m. 

4th  corps    ...     Soult 8  a.m. 

6th  corps    ...     Ney 6  a.m. 

{Arch.  Hist.) 


RENEWAL  AND  PROGRESS  OF  THE   CAMPAIGN.      273 

The  direction  of  the  river  facilitated  the  flanking  of 
the  work  by  troops  on  the  left  bank ;  but  as  it  was,  in 
this  neighbourhood,  and  at  this  season,  fordable  in  places, 
its  value  as  a  defence  was  much  impaired.  In  the  works 
beyond  the  bridge  was  the  27th  light  infantry,  with  4  guns, 
and  one  howitzer.  On  the  left  bank,  partly  above  and 
partly  below  the  bend,  was  the  rest  of  Villatte's  division  and 
artillery.* 

After  two  hours'  heavy  bombardment  of  the  outer  work, 
the  Prussians  moved  to  the  assault.  Waiting  till  the  enemy 
were  at  point-blank  range,  the  27th  received  them  with  such 
a  murderous  fire  that  they  were  driven  off  with  heavy  loss,f 
and  pursued  by  the  17th  dragoons  issuing  from  the  bridge, 
towards  Wusen. 

In  this  fight  Bernadotte,  wounded  in  the  head  by  a 
musket  ball,  had  to  make  over  command  of  the  corps  to 
Dupont,  who,  next  day,  handed  it  over  to  Victor.  J 

Whilst  this  combat  was  in  progress,  Dupont  was  held 
fast,  at  Petelkau  and  Zagern,  by  another  considerable  body  of 
Prussians.  § 

These,  of  course,  were  only  false  attacks ;  the  real  one  fell 
upon  the  advanced  corps  of  Ney,  and  on  that  of  Soult  on  his 
left. 

During  the  night  of  the  4th-5th  Dochtorow  had  moved  on 

*  The  precise  dispositions  are  thus  given  by  Victor  (Arch.  Hist.) : — 

Girard's  brigade  (94th  and  95th  regiments)  on  the  left,  in  a  wood  between 
Spanden  and  Schlodien. 

63rd  regiment,  on  heights  behind  the  bridge. 

17th  dragoons,  with  the  63rd  infantry. 

2  guns,  on  a  height  behind  the  works. 

19th  dragoons,  in  front  of  Deutschendorf. 

18th  and  20th  dragoons,  in  front  of  Schlodien,  on  the  left  of  Girard's  brigade. 

t  500  killed  and  wounded  (Hcepfner,  iii.  575)..  700  or  800  according  to 
Dumas  (xviii.  234). 

X  Dumas,  xviii.  234.  Hcepfner,  iii.  575.  Victor,  Arch.  Hist.  Victor's 
appointment  was  ordered  in  Corr.  12,743,  dated  7th  June,  in  which  the 
Emperor  mentions  that  he  is  assembling  all  his  reserves  at  Mohrungen,  and  hopes 
to  make  an  end  of  the  enemy,  who  seems  to  be  striking  a  mad  blow. 

§  Victor  (Arch.  Hist).  ' 


274  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Wormditt.  At  6  a.m.  he  issued  from  the  forest  at  Albrechts- 
dorf  towards  Lomitten,  driving  in  the  French  outposts. 
The  bridge  here  was  covered  by  a  work,  as  at  Spanden, 
except  that  the  advanced  work  consisted  of  redoubts  at 
either  extremity  of  a  breastwork,  another  work  thrown 
forward  on  the  high  ground  on  the  right  bank,  and  another 
on  the  corresponding  ground  of  the  left  bank.  On  the 
left  front  of  the  bridge,  the  wood  had  been  fortified  by 
abattis. 

One  battalion  of  the  57th  was,  with  4  guns,  in  the  bridge- 
head and  works ;  the  other  held  the  wood  on  the  left.  A 
battalion  of  the  24th  light  infantry  was  in  the  wood  on  the 
Liebstadt  road,  on  the  left  bank.  The  other  watched  the 
river  from  Sporthenen  to  Aiken.  The  remainder  of  Carra 
St.  Cyr's  division  was  on  the  plateau  in  front  of  Liebstadt, 
and  from  it  reinforcements  of  3  battalions,  and  2  guns,  were 
sent,  as  soon  as  the  artillery  duel  began. 

The  battle  was  opened,  at  8  a.m.,*  by  the  Eussians 
advancing  against  the  abattis  and  the  works  in  3  columns, 
whilst  part  of  the  cavalry  forded  the  river  near  Sporthenen, 
and  a  detachment  of  infantry  with  artillery  threatened  a 
passage  lower  down,  towards  Aiken. 

In  the  wood,  and  before  the  works,  a  long  and  sanguinary 
fight  ensued.  The  abattis,  carried  at  the  first  onslaught,  was 
recaptured  from  the  Eussians  by  French  reinforcements. 
Against  the  enemy  who  had  passed  at  Sporthenen,  the  24th 
light  infantry  charged  with  the  bayonet,  driving  them  again 
to  the  right  bank,  and  burning  the  bridge  which  they  had 
partially  constructed. 

Meanwhile  the  abattis  had  once  more  fallen  before  the 
Eussian  attack,  and  the  victors  were  about  to  force  the 
passage  at  Lomitten  when  the  reinforcements  sent  by  St.  Cyr 
came  up.  The  2nd  battalion  of  the  57th  once  more  cleared 
the  wood,  and  for  four  hours  maintained  itself  behind  the 
abattis.  At  the  same  time,  a  battalion  of  the  46th,  and  one  of 
*  See  p.  272,  note. 


RENEWAL   AND  PROGRESS   OF   THE   CAMPAIGN.      275 

the  24th  drove  off  the  enemy  from  in  front  of  the  bridge  at 
Lomitten. 

Again  and  again  the  Russians  attempted  the  storm  of  the 
bridge-head.  This  fierce  combat  had  raged  for  eight  hours 
when  a  final  effort  was  made  in  a  single  column.  Success 
was  almost  within  its  grasp,  when  a  splendid  charge,  by  two 
French  battalions,  snatched  victory  from  it. 

Dochtorow,  during  this  action,  marched  off  with  the 
greater  part  of  his  troops,  towards  Kalkstein  and  Elditten, 
with  the  intention  of  seconding  the  attack  on  Ney's  left. 
The  motive  of  his  movement  was  correctly  appreciated  by 
Soult,  who  was  informed  of  it  by  St.  Hilaire,  standing  with 
his  division  behind  the  bridge  at  Pithenen.  Measures  were 
at  once  taken  for  defending  the  passage  at  this  place,  which 
had  been  protected  by  earthworks.  St.  Cyr,  at  Lomitten, 
was  told  to  confine  himself  to  the  defence  of  the  bridge-head, 
and  even  to  retire  to  the  left  bank,  if  hard  pressed.  He 
evacuated  the  wood  on  his  left,  and  was  finally  forced  to 
leave  the  earthworks  on  the  right  bank,  which  had  become 
untenable  owing  to  the  destruction  wrought  on  them  by  the 
enemy's  artillery,  and  by  the  fires  which  it  had  caused  in  the 
village  of  Lomitten.  The  bridge,  protected  by  the  works  on 
the  left  bank,  still  remained  closed  to  the  Russians.  About 
8  p.m.  the  action  died  out,  and  the  Russians  fell  back  on 
Albrechtsdorf. 

According  to  French  accounts,  St.  Cyr  lost  about  1200 
men,  the  enemy  2800.* 

Dochtorow  does  not  appear  to  have  made  any  attempt  on 
Pithenen,  finding  it  too  strongly  held. 

The  actions  at  Spanden  and  Lomitten  were  but  a  cover 
to  the  more  serious  attempt,  which  was  simultaneously 
made,  to  cut  off  Ney's  corps  in  its  exposed  position  about 

*  Hcepfner,  iii.  579.  The  same  authority  alleges  that  Soult  admitted  that 
he  had  been  so  severely  engaged  as  to  be  unable  to  assist  Ney.  I  have  been 
unable  to  find  the  letter  to  Napoleon  referred  to  by  Hoepfner  (iii.  579,  note), 
but,  in  a  letter  to  Ney  (Arch.  Hist.),  dated  June  6th,  3  a.m.,  the  marshal  makes 
the  statement  referred  to. 


276  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Guttstadt.  If  the  attack  had  many  points  in  its  favour,  it 
had  the  disadvantage  of  being  opposed  by  a  general  who  was 
a  consummate  master  of  the  art  of  conducting  a  rear-guard 
action,  and  of  delaying,  to  the  last  safe  moment,  the  enemy's 
march. 

Key's  positions  were — 

At  Guttstadt:  headquarters  and  Marchand's  division, 
which  was  also  partly  in  Altkirch  and  Neuendorf,  and  had  one 
cavalry  and  one  infantry  regiment  in  front  of  Schmolainen ; 

Bisson's  division  occupied  Queetz,  Lingnau,  Glottau, 
and  Knopen. 

Leaving  his  supports  to  watch  the  Schmolainen  wood  in 
front,  Bagration,  with  the  rest  of  the  advanced  guard,  moved, 
about  6  a.m.,*  on  Altkirch,  which  he  took  without  much 
difficulty,  driving  its  defenders  on  Guttstadt,  where  Mar- 
chand's division  now  concentrated. 

At  Altkirch,  Bagration  halted,  waiting  for  Sacken  and 
Gortchakow,  who  had  started  too  late  to  keep  in  line  with 
him,  and  without  whose  help  he  did  not  feel  strong  enough 
to  continue  his  enveloping  movement  against  Guttstadt. 
Sacken  was  only  between  Dietrichsdorf  and  Petersdorf  when 
Altkirch  was  stormed. 

Ney,  seeing  the  danger  to  which  his  advanced  cavalry 
and  infantry  at  Schmolainen  were  exposed,  seized  the 
opportunity  to  withdraw  them  to  Guttstadt.  To  cover  the 
retirement,  and  his  concentration,  Ney  made  a  strong  counter- 
attack on  Bagration,  causing  him  a  loss  of  about  500  killed 
and  wounded. 

As  Sacken  arrived,  the  marshal,  finding  himself  greatly 
outnumbered,  fell  back  in  first-rate  order  on  Ankendorf, 
fighting  every  step  of  the  way,  and  holding  every  fold  of 
the  ground  with  strong  swarms  of  skirmishers ;  Gortchakow, 
meanwhile,  occupied  Guttstadt,  which  Ney  had  abandoned. 

*  See  note,  p.  272.  Also  Corr.  12,729,  dated  5th  June,  2  p.m.,  in  which  the 
Emperor  rightly  assumes  that  the  attack  on  Bernadotte  was  a  feint,  and  that 
the  real  assault  would  be  on  Ney. 


RENEWAL   AND   PROGRESS   OF  THE   CAMPAIGN.     277 

At  Ankendorf,  and  Heiligenthal  Ney  halted,  whilst  the 
Russians  took  post,  towards  3  p.m.,  about  Queetz,  with 
Gortchakow  in  reserve. 

Platow,  who  had  crossed  the  Alle  at  Bergfried,  and 
arrived  nearly  in  Ney's  rear,  joined  the  left  of  the  position 
at  Queetz. 

Ney,  leaning  his  right,  at  Ankendorf,  on  a  wood  which 
he  held,  was  covered  by  the  Queetz  lake  on  his  right.  His 
centre  and  left  extended,  along  a  marshy  brook,  to  the 
Passarge.  In  front  of  his  left,  where  the  road  from  Walters- 
muhl  to  Deppen  crosses  the  brook,  was  a  small  wood.  His 
retreat  lay  over  two  bridges,  one  behind  either  wing.  He 
had  still  about  16,000  men ;  he  had  lost  heavily,  some  400 
killed  and  wounded,  and  1600  prisoners,  besides  2  guns,  and 
a  great  part  of  his  baggage.  The  Russian  loss  had  been 
about  2000  killed  and  wounded,  amongst  the  latter  being 
Osterman  Tolstoi,  and  Somow. 

On  the  morning  of  the  6th,  the  Russian  advanced  guard 
found  Ney  still  in  position. 

The  attack  was  thus  ordered:  on  the  right,  a  column, 
under  Gallitzin,  moved  on  the  small  wood  in  front  of  Ney's 
left,  seeking  to  drive  it  on  the  bridge  at  Deppen,  and  cut 
off  the  retreat  there.  Sacken  was  sent  against  the  centre, 
Gortchakow  against  the  right,  whilst  Bagration  and  the 
Grand  Duke  Constantine  served  as  reserve.  Fighting  com- 
menced at  5  a.m. 

Gortchakow  assaulted  the  wood  on  the  French  right 
front,  but  was  brought  to  a  standstill  by  Ney's  moving 
forward  there  also. 

Steady  progress  was  made  by  the  Russian  centre  and 
right  columns.  Gortchakow,  after  his  failure  at  the  wood, 
wandered  round  the  further  side  of  the  "Queetz  lake,  hoping 
to  turn  Ney's  right,  and  avoid  the  wooded  marshy  land  in 
front  of  it.  He  thus  put  himself,  for  several  hours,  out  of 
action,  and  left  Ney's  right  in  safety.  The  marshal,  who, 
foiling    back    of   necessity  before    the    enemy's    immense 


278  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND, 

superiority,  had  already  passed  Heiligenthal,  at  once  saw  the 
fault  of  Gortchakow,  and  utilised  it  by  returning  to  Heili- 
genthal with  his  right,  thus  covering  the  retreat  of  his  centre 
and  left  into  the  valley  and  across  the  Passarge.  His  whole 
corps  got  safely  across  with  small  loss. 

Bennigsen  was  furious  at  the  ill-success  of  his  plan,  and 
seems  to  have  expressed  himself  so  freely  that  Sacken  left 
the  army  temporarily.* 

The  Prussians  and  Kamenskoi  did  nothing  during  this 
day  beyond  assembling  about  Mehlsack.  On  the  evening 
of  the  6th,  Bennigsen's  advanced  guard  was  on  the  right 
bank  of  the  Passarge,  headquarters  at  Heiligenthal,  the 
reserve  behind  it.  Gortchakow  at.Guttstadt  and  Knopen, 
with  a  detachment  observing  Davout;  Dochtorow,  leaving 
cossacks  to  watch  the  Passarge  from  Elditten,  had  joined  the 
Bussian  right  wing. 

(b)  napoleon's  resumption  of  the  offensive. 

Bennigsen's  offensive  had  expended  its  force  and  come  to 
a  standstill. 

Napoleon  had  not  been  idle.  He  had,  as  soon  as  he 
heard  of  the  attack  on  Ney,  on  the  5th,  directed  Murat  to 
assemble  his  reserve  cavalry  at  Marienburg,  Christburg, 
Elbing,  Bischofswerder,  Strasburg,  and  Soldau.t 

The  guard  cavalry  to  assemble  at  Finkenstein.J 

Lannes  to  march  at  once  on  Christburg,  where  he  should ' 
arrive  by  9  a.m.  on  the  6th.  § 

Mortier  to  march  towards  Christburg,  halting  5  or  6  miles 
short  of  it  for  orders.  || 

On  the  6th,  Soult  was  ordered,  if  he  had  been  forced  to 

*  Hapfner,  iii.  583. 

t  Berthier  to  Murat,  printed,  Dumas,  xix.  317. 

X  Berthier  to  Bessieres,  ibid.,  xix.  318. 

§  Berthier  to  Lannes,  ibid.,  xix.  318  and  321.  In  the  first  despatch  the 
Emperor  was  uncertain  if  the  enemy  meant  seriously ;  in  the  second,  he  was 
certain. 

||  Berthier  to  Mortier,  ibid.,  xix.  323. 


RENEWAL   AND   PROGRESS   OF  THE   CAMPAIGN.     279 

retreat,  to  cover  Mohrungen  as  long  as  possible,  utilising  the 
defiles  between  the  lakes.* 

Ney's  retreat  to  Deppen  was  approved.  If  he  was  again 
attacked,  he  would  defend  the  defile  south  of  the  Narien 
lakat     Davout  would  support  his  right.  J 

Similarly,  Bernadotte,  if  forced  back,  would  gain  time 
by  a  slow  retreat  on  Pr.  Holland.§ 

Writing  to  Davout,  at  8  p.m.  on  the  6th,  ||  Napoleon  asks 
whether  the  enemy  will  dare  to  march  on  Allenstein  with 
the  French  on  their  flank  at  Deppen  and  Leibstadt.  If  the 
enemy  advances  on  Osterode,  Davout  will  choose  a  position 
for  its  defence  on  the  Eussian  flank.  Above  all,  he  must 
"  maintain  Alt  Ramten,  for  it  is  the  head  of  Osterode."  In 
this  despatch,  the  Emperor  mentions  that  his  lines  of  opera- 
tions are  through  Marienwerder,  Marienburg,  and  Danzig. 

Gazanlf  and  Zayonchek**  had  already  been  ordered  to 
concentrate. 

All  commanders  were  required  to  fill  up  ammunition 
and  supply  waggons,  and  see  that  their  men  had  plenty  of 
cartridges.  The  Emperor  himself,  sending  his  heavy  baggage 
to  Danzig,  went  to  Saalfeld  and  Seegerswalde,  at  which  latter 
place  he  gave  up  his  carriage  and  mounted  his  horse.tt 

*  Berthier  to  Soult,  Dumas,  xix.  325. 
t  Berthier  to  Ney,  ibid.,  xix.  326.    Also  Corr.  12,736. 
%  Corr.  12,730,  dated  5th  June. 
§  Berthier  to  Bernadotte,  ibid.,  xix.  327. 
||  Corr.  12,741. 

^[  Berthier  to  Gazan,  ibid.,  xix.  321. 
**  Berthier  to  Zayonchek,  ibid.,  xix.  321. 

ft  Corr.   12,735,  dated  Finkenstein,  6th   June.     The  movements  of  the 
Emperor's  headquarters  were  as  follows,  up  to  the  19th  June : — 


6th,  Finkenstein. 

7th,  Mohrungen. 

8th,  Klein  Krickau. 

9th.  Guttstadt. 
10th,  in  front  of  Heilsberg. 
11th,        „ 
12th,  Pr.  Eylau. 


13th,  Pr.  Eylau. 
14th,  Friedland. 
15th,  near  Wehlau. 
16th,  Wehlau. 
17th,  Toplicken. 
18th,  Schwarzlauken. 
19th,  Tilsit. 


(Itinerary  of  route  of  Imperial  headquarters  kept  by  Berthier,  Arch,  llist.). 


280  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Davout  had  been  fully  alive  to  the  situation.  When 
Platow,  on  the  5th,  had  forced  the  bridge  at  Bergfried,  he  had 
threatened  the  connexion  between  Ney  and  Davout.  The 
latter,  anticipating  the  order  received  on  the  6th  from  the 
Emperor,  assembled  the  1st  and  3rd  divisions  at  Allenstein, 
and  sent  the  2nd  on  to  the  Passarge  above  Kamten.* 

On  the  morning  of  the  7th,  he  marched  his  1st  and  3rd 
divisions  to  the  left,  taking  up  a  position  on  a  small  tributary 
of  the  right  bank  of  the  Passarge,  thus  effectually  threatening 
the  left  flank  and  rear  of  the  Kussians  in  front  of  Deppen.  On 
the  previous  evening,  he  had  sent  a  despatch  to  Ney,  saying 
that,  if  the  enemy  continued  his  movement,  he  would  have 
Davout  with  40,000  men  on  his  rear.  This  was  a  consider- 
able exaggeration  of  numbers  for  the  benefit  of  Bennigsen. 
Davout  took  care  to  send  the  despatch  by  a  route  on  which 
the  luckless  bearer  was  certain  to  be  captured,  as  he  actually 
was.t 

Bennigsen  had  gone  to  Guttstadt  in  the  night  of  the 
6th-7th,  leaving  the  Grand  Duke  in  command.  His  lieu- 
tenants, thinking  the  offensive  movement  was  to  continue, 
were  preparing  to  march  on  the  Passarge  and  on  Allenstein, 
when  the  commander-in-chief,  returning  on  the  evening  of 
the  7th,  ordered  a  retreat. { 

Napoleon,  informed  of  the  hesitation  of  the  enemy  to 
advance  against  Ney,  himself  went  to  Deppen,  sending  orders 
to  Victor  and  Soult  to  force  the  passage  of  the  Passarge  in 
their  front. 

The  Guard  and  Mortier  were  ordered  to  march  on  Deppen, 
as  well  as  the  cavalry  of  Lasalle,  Grouchy,  and  Nansouty. 
Espagne's  and  Saint  Sulpice's  cavalry  to  Mohrungen. 

*  Davout,  p.  192,  and  Friant's  report,  dated  Lochen,  7th  June,  1807,  at 
p.  352  of  the  same  volume. 

t  Ibid.,  p.  193.    He  gives  his  real  strength  as  28,891,  p.  194. 

\  The  Emperor  at  first  found  it  difficult  to  believe  Bennigsen  really  meant 
a  serious  offensive.  He  says  it  seems  impossible  that  he  should  do  so,  after 
letting  Danzig  fall  without  an  attack  on  the  main  army  (Corr.  12,731,  dated 
the  5th  June). 


RENEWAL  AND  PROGRESS   OF  THE  CAMPAIGN.     281 

Latour-Maubourg's  cavalry  was  placed  at  the  disposal  of 
Soult,  Milhaud's  at  that  of  Davout.  Zayonchek's  division 
was  ordered  to  occupy  the  now  deserted  Osterode. 

On  the  morning  of  the  8th,  there  was  no  longer  any  doubt 
that  the  Russians  were  retreating.*  Napoleon  took  up  the 
offensive. 

Soult  had  his  light  cavalry  at  Waltersdorf,  where  he  had 
sent  it  after  the  affair  at  Lomitten  on  the  5th. 

On  the  morning  of  the  8th,  his  whole  corps  passed  the 
Passarge  at  Elditten,  and  Pithenen,  marching  on  Wolfsdorf , 
the  left  covered  by  Latour-Maubourg's  cavalry.  To  Guyot, 
commanding  his  light  cavalry,  Soult  sent  orders  to  confine 
himself  to  observing  the  enemy.  That  general,  however, 
incautiously  involving  himself  in  an  action  at  Kleinenfeld, 
without  making  a  proper  reconnaissance,  was  surrounded  by 
cossacks,  and  his  brigade  very  severely  handled,  he  himself 
being  killed.t 

Legrand  and  St.  Hilaire  (both  of  Soult's  corps),  seiz- 
ing Wolfsdorf,  held  fast  there,  with  St.  Cyr  in  second 
line. 

This  movement  against  his  right  flank  finally  determined 
Bennigsen  to  retreat. 

The  news  reached  him  about  midday,  when  he  had  already 
seen  great  masses  of  French  assembling  on  the  farther  side 
of  the  Passarge.  They  confined  themselves,  however,  to 
reconnaissances,  and  there  was  no  fighting  worth  mention. 

Gortchakow  was  now  ordered  direct  to  the  entrenched 
camp  at  Heilsberg,  by  the  right  bank  of  the  Alle,  sending  a 
detachment  of  two  infantry  regiments,  and  one  of  cavalry, 
with  some  cossacks  and  6  guns,  under  Barasdin,  to  hold  the 
defile  of  Launau  on  the  left  bank.     The  rest  of  the  army  fell 

*  Corr.  12,744,  dated  8th  June,  to  Soult.  The  Emperor  says  he  has  forced 
the  enemy  to  disclose  a  body  of  13,000  infantry  and  7000  or  8000  cavalry,  and 
he  learns  from  prisoners  that  the  rest  are  at  Guttstadt. 

t  Soult,  reporting  on  this  affair,  under  date  8th  June,  treats  it  as  a  serious 
reverse.  He  attributes  it  entirely  to  Guyot's  carelessness.  The  losses  he  puts 
at  25  killed  and  250  prisoners.     (Soult  to  Berthier,  8th  June,  Arch.  Hist.) 


282  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

back  on  Guttstadt,  except  Bagration  with  the  rear-guard,  who 
only  moved  in  the  evening  to  Queetz. 

At  noon,  orders  were  sent  to  Lestocq  to  watch  the  Lower 
Passarge,  as  well  as  Soult's  movement.  At  3  p.m.,  another 
order  was  sent,  announcing  that  Bennigsen  meant  to  fight  a 
battle  at  Guttstadt  next  day,  and  desiring  Lestocq  to  advance 
against  Soult.  The  bearer  of  this  despatch,  passing  through 
Mehlsack,  came  upon  Kamenskoi  there.  There  was  a  good 
deal  of  confusion  on  this  side,  with  orders  and  counter-orders, 
the  final  result  being  that  Kamenskoi  and  Lestocq  were  left 
behind,  intending  to  attack  Soult's  left  and  rear  in  the  battle 
which  they  expected  next  day  at  Guttstadt. 

On  the  morning  of  the  9th,  Bennigsen  drew  up  his  army 
for  battle  at  Guttstadt.  Finding  the  position  not  sufficiently 
satisfactory,  he  changed  his  mind,  and  retreated  by  the  right 
bank  of  the  Alle  to  Heilsberg,  which  he  reached  in  the 
evening.  Expecting  the  French  to  follow  on  the  right  bank, 
he,  at  first,  only  passed  over  one  division  to  the  left  bank  at 
Heilsberg,  as  a  support  to  Barasdin's  detachment  at  Launau. 
Bagration's  rear-guard  was  left  to  cover  the  retreat. 

At  3  a.m.  on  the  9  th,  Napoleon  commenced  the  passage 
of  the  Passarge  at  Deppen,  moving  towards  Guttstadt.  Murat 
led  the  way,  supported  by  Ney.  Behind  him  came  Lannes 
and  the  Guard.  Mortier  was  still  a  day's  march  in  rear, 
at  Mohrungen.  Davout  passed  the  river  at  and  above 
Hasenburg,  for  he  had  fallen  back  on  its  left  bank  on  the  8th, 
one  division  going  so  far  as  Osterode,  whilst  the  others  were 
at  the  southern  extremity  of  the  Schilling  lake.  He  had,  on 
the  8th,  received  his  orders  to  cross  the  Passarge  next  day. 
Soult,  also,  was  ordered  to  Guttstadt.  Just  as  he  was  starting, 
Kamenskoi  appeared,  from  the  direction  of  Dietrichsdorf,  on 
his  left  rear. 

St.  Hilaire's  division,  the  nearest,  was  moved  against  the 
enemy,  whilst  the  light  cavalry,  and  Latour-Maubourg,  went 
against  Dietrichsdorf. 

Kamenskoi's    men    had    already  passed    the    wood    of 


RENEWAL   AND   PROGRESS   OF  TEE   CAMPAIGN.     283 

Dietrichsdorf,  and  were  approaching  Wolfsdorf.  A  powerful 
battery,  which  he  had  established  in  front  of  the  latter  village, 
was  quickly  silenced  by  the  French  guns.  St.  Hilaire,  at 
this  moment,  impetuously  attacked  the  Kussians  with  the 
bayonet,  and  drove  them  back,  with  heavy  losses,  in  confusion. 
The  cavalry  continued  the  pursuit  to  Wormditt.  Soult  did 
not  allow  himself  to  be  diverted  from  his  march  on  Guttstadt. 
Kamenskoi,  unmolested  beyond  Wormditt,  after  a  few  hours' 
rest  there  behind  the  Drewenz  stream,  continued  his  march  to 
Heilsberg  by  Migenen,  Raunau,  and  Keimerswalde,*  arriving 
there  next  morning,  after  a  very  long  march.  Meanwhile, 
Murat  was  following  Bagration,  who  halted  at  Glottau  to 
fight  an  action  covering  the  passage  of  the  rest  of  the  army  at 
Guttstadt.  Bravely  supporting  him,  Platow's  cossacks  were 
at  first  driven  back  towards  the  Alle,  and  began  to  lose  order. 
Platow,  seeing  the  danger,  himself  dismounted,  and,  by  his 
personal  example,  restored  order.  Bagration's  cavalry,  too, 
made  a  gallant  resistance ;  it  was  only  when  Ney's  infantry 
arrived  in  support  that  Murat  finally  succeeded  in  driving 
Bagration  into  Guttstadt.  The  Russian  general  successfully 
passed  the  river,  covered  and  followed  by  Platow's  cossacks, 
who  destroyed  the  bridges  behind  them.f 

On  the  night    of  the  9th,  the    French   occupied  these 
positions : — 

*  According  to  Hoepfner  (iii.  599),  the  French  victory  was  hardly  so  com- 
plete here  as  is  alleged  by  Dumas  (xviii.  261).  Kamenskoi,  he  says,  retreated 
in  good  order  to  Wormditt,  which  he  reached  at  1  p.m.  It  was  only  at  2  p.m. 
that  he  received  a  despatch  from  Bennigsen  announcing  his  abandonment  of  the 
intention  to  stand  at  Guttstadt. 

t  There  were  two  bridges  in  the  town,  and  three  had  been  constructed  above 
it  (Wilson,  p.  141). 

Platow,  who  had  been  on  the  left  on  the  5th-7th,  passed  to  the  right  on  the 
8th  (ibid.  p.  140). 

In  the  rear-guard  action  of  the  9th,  the  forces  engaged  on  the  Russian  side 
were : — 

Bagration     ...      Pnf^         500° 

(Cavalry         1500 

Platow         ...        Cossacks        2000 

During  the  night,  Bagration  fell  back  about  halfway  to  Heilsberg,  covered  by 

the  cossacks  (ibid.,  pp.  141-143). 


284  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Soult  at  Altkirch ; 

Ney,  Murat,  and  the  Guard  at  Guttstadt ; 

Davout  held  the  left  bank  of  the  Alle  above  Guttstadt, 
and  the  villages  of  Knopen  and  Ankendorf ; 

Mortier  was  approaching  Guttstadt. 

Napoleon's  design  now  was,  cutting  the  Eussian  army 
from  Koenigsberg  and  its  resources,  to  drive  it  from  the  sea 
and  across  the  Pregel. 

While,  therefore,  he  proposed,  next  day,  to  attack  Bennig- 
sen  in  front  with  50,000  men  forming  Murat's  cavalry,  Soult's, 
Lannes',  and  Ney's  corps,  and  Savary's  grenadiers,  he  would 
keep  in  hand,  at  Guttstadt  and  Altkirch,  the  corps  of  Mortier 
and  Davout,  destined  to  be  interposed  between  Bennigsen's 
right  and  Koenigsberg.  The  Guard  in  reserve.  Victor,  on 
the  Lower  Passarge,  would  retain  there  the  Prussians,  and 
presently  force  them  back  on  Koenigsberg,  where  they  would 
be  hopelessly  severed  from  their  allies. 


CHAPTER  II. 

The  Battle  of  Heilsberg,  and  Operations  of  the 
11th-13th  June. 

THE  small  town  of  Heilsberg,  situated  on  the  left  bank  of 
the  Alle,  was  connected  by  several  bridges  with  a 
poor  suburb  on  the  opposite  side.  From  the  hollow  in  which 
the  town  lies,  the  ground  rises  to  the  north,  east,  and  south, 
to  a  curved  line  of  heights  of — for  this  generally  flat  country 
— fairly  commanding  elevation.  The  ridge  crosses  the 
river,  which  divides  it  about  a  mile  below  the  town.* 

On  the  right  bank,  the  heights  curve  back  rather  sharply, 
till  they  meet  the  marshy  brook  flowing  from  south  to  north, 
through  the  suburb,  to  the  Alle.  On  this  side,  their  elevation 
is  greater  than  that  of  their  northward  continuation  beyond 
the  river,  and  they  form  quite  a  respectable  height.  In  the 
brook,  with  its  marshy  bed,  to  the  south  they  find  a  strong 
support  from  the  point  of  view  of  an  army  defending  them. 
In  this  direction  they  can  only  be  turned  with  difficulty,  by  a 
considerable  detour.  North  of  the  Alle,  the  line  of  hills  is  less 
strongly  marked ;  it  sweeps  away  from  the  river,  almost  at 
right  angles,  for  a  distance  of  nearly  a  mile  and  a  half,  before 
turning  back  towards  the  village  of  Konegen.     Two  and  a 

*  This  account  of  the  battle  of  Heilsberg  is  based  on  those  of  Dumas, 
Hcepfner,  Soult  (Arch.  Hist),  and  Savary.  Kausler's  atlas  and  text  has  also 
been  consulted.  The  text  must  be  accepted  with  caution,  for  it  commits  a 
glaring  error  in  representing  Lannes'  corps  as  consisting  of  the  divisions  of 
Gazan  and  Suchet.  Those  divisions  formed  Lannes'  old  corps,  the  5th,  which 
was  at  this  time  on  the  Narew,  under  Masse'na. 


286  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

quarter  miles  north  of  Heilsberg,  to  the  left  of  the  Koenigs- 
berg  road,  there  is  a  considerable  sheet  of  water  on  the  shore 
of  which  is  situated  the  village  of  Grossendorf. 

The  heights  are  bare  on  their  outer  slope. 

It  was  this  line  of  rising  ground  which  Bennigsen  had, 
during  the  spring,  carefully  fortified  as  a  support  to  his  army. 
The  portion  on  the  right  bank  was  by  nature  stronger  than  that 
on  the  left.  It  was  also  that  to  which  the  Eussian  engineers 
had  devoted  most  care  and  attention.  Its  crest  and  outer  slope 
were  covered  with  a  series  of  redoubts  and  other  works  which, 
combined  with  the  protection  afforded  by  the  marshy  stream 
on  its  left  flank,  rendered  it  almost  impregnable  to  anything 
but  a  regular  siege. 

On  the  left  bank  of  the  river,  where  it  passes  through  the 
heights,  there  was,  at  the  foot  of  their  slope,  a  work  designed 
for  the  protection  of  the  bridges  above  it.  Some  500  paces 
from  the  river,  on  a  projecting  spur,  was  redoubt  No.  1 ; 
900  paces  farther  in  the  same  line  was  redoubt  No.  2. 
No.  3  was  1500  paces  farther,  on  the  right  rear  of  No.  2. 
A  small  earthwork  was  constructed  across  the  Koenigsberg 
road,  700  paces  south  of  the  Grossendorf  lake.  These,  with 
two  or  three  interspersed  fleches  or  minor  works,  were  all  the 
fortifications  on  this  side  of  the  river.  In  front  of  the 
position  on  the  right  bank,  the  country  was  thickly  wooded 
along,  and  to  some  distance  from,  the  river. 

On  the  north  side,  an  undulating  plain  stretched  in  all 
directions.  It  was  intersected  by  the  semicircular  course  of 
the  Spuibach,  forming  the  outlet  of  the  Grossendorf  lake  to 
the  Alle.  On  the  left  bank  of  this  brook,  rather  more  than 
2  miles  north-west  of  Heilsberg,  was  the  wood  of  Lawden. 
Half  a  mile  south-west  of  the  wood  was  the  village  of  the 
same  name.  Continuing  the  line  between  the  wood  and  the 
village,  the  next  point  reached  is  the  village  of  Langwiese, 
more  than  half  a  mile  from  Lawden ;  proceeding,  always  in 
the  same  south-westerly  direction,  another  full  half-mile,  the 
village  of  Bewernick  is  reached ;  a  short  distance  beyond  that 


THE  BATTLE  OF  HEILSBERQ.  287 

the  Alle,  about  three  miles  below  the  line  of  Bennigsen's 
fortifications.  Along  the  south  side  of  Bewernick  passes  the 
road  from  Guttstadt,  by  the  left  bank,  on  which,  at  a  short 
distance  from  the  river,  it  continues  to  Heilsberg. 

On  the  fortified  heights  on  both  banks,  Bennigsen,  on  the 
10th  June,  ranged  his  army  for  battle.  On  the  left  bank, 
with  its  left  flank  resting  on  the  work  near  the  river,  stood 
the  8th  division.  Next  to  it,  on  the  right,  the  6th  took  up 
post.  Beyond  this  the  4th  and  5th  divisions,  and  27 
squadrons  of  Prussian  cavalry,  continued  the  line  behind  the 
redoubts.  From  the  Mehlsack  road  the  position  bent  back 
towards  redoubt  No.  3,  at  which  point  the  infantry  line  ended. 
It  was  a  continuous  double  line,  in  which  each  regiment  had 
its  1st  and  2nd  battalions  deployed  in  first  line,  and  the  3rd 
in  column  as  second  line. 

Behind  the  left  wing  and  centre  stood,  as  reserve,  12 
battalions,  drawn  up  in  three  columns.  A  few  more 
battalions  were  in  front  of  the  left,  in  and  about  redoubt 
No.  1.  Kamenskoi's  infantry  garrisoned  redoubts  Nos.  2 
and  3,  the  former  of  which  had  16  Eussian  guns,  partly  in, 
and  partly  near  it.  No.  3  was  held  by  a  6-pr.  battery  (14 
guns).  Behind  No.  2,  in  support  of  its  garrison,  was  the  2nd 
battalion  Towarzycs  regiment  (cavalry). 

The  Russian  cavalry  extended  the  infantry  line  from 
redoubt  No.  3  towards  Konegen,  ending  with  the  main  body 
of  the  cossacks.  The  rest  of  the  Prussian  cavalry  was 
stationed  thus  :  5  squadrons  behind  the  right  of  the  infantry 
line  ;  10  squadrons  (Zieten's  dragoons)  and  a  horse  artillery 
battery  behind  the  left  flank  of  the  Eussian  cavalry  ;  farther 
to  the  rear,  2  squadrons  of  hussars  and  the  first  battalion 
Towarzycs  regiment,  in  reserve,  behind  the  centre  of  Kamen- 
skoi's infantry.  Beyond  the  lake,  5  regiments  of  cossacks 
held  Grossendorf. 

At  the  commencement,  there  were,  on  the  right  bank,  the 
1st,  2nd,  3rd,  7th,  and  14th  divisions.  As  the  day  advanced, 
all  these  passed  to  the  left  bank  except  a  few  regiments. 


288  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

The  2nd  division  held  the  left  of  the  southern  position, 
resting  on  the  marshes ;  the  1st,  on  its  right,  extended  to  the 
Alle.  The  others,  at  first,  were  at  the  three  redoubts  nearest 
the  river.  The  Guard  hussar  regiment  was  out  in  front  on 
the  Guttstadt  road,  2  more  cavalry  regiments  on  that  leading 
to  Seeburg,*  where  Knorring,  with  a  flying  column,  main- 
tained communication  with  the  force  on  the  Narew.  To 
connect  the  two  portions  of  his  position  across  the  river, 
Bennigsen  had  a  permanent  bridge  behind  his  work  on  the 
left  bank,  3  pontoon  bridges  a  little  above  it,  and  5  per- 
manent bridges  in  the  town. 

Between  9  and  10  a.m.,  the  Kussian  commander-in-chief 
received  information  from  Barasdin's  outposts  at  Launau, 
about  6  miles  towards  Guttstadt  on  the  left  bank,  that  the 
French  were  advancing  in  force  in  that  direction.  He  at 
once  despatched  2  jager  and  1  musketeer  regiments,  with 
a  militia  battalion,  a  dragoon  regiment,  and  2  light  guns 
towards  Launau.  At  the  same  time,  he  sent  orders  to 
Bagration,  who  was  retiring  on  the  opposite  side  of  the  river 
from  Keichenburg,  to  cross  by  the  pontoon  bridges,  and  to 
move  again  up  the  left  bank  and  fend  off  the  enemy. 

At  Bewernick,  Bagration  met  Barasdin,  and  the  force  sent 
to  his  support,  retiring  before  Murat.  Rallying  them,  he 
posted  himself  behind  the  depression  in  which  Bewernick  and 
Langwiese  lie.  He  had  three  columns  of  infantry,  and  one 
of  cavalry,  on  the  near  side  of  the  valley,  with  cossacks  and 
skirmishers  in  front,  along  and  behind  the  Bewernick  brook ; 
more  cavalry  and  a  battery  towards  Langwiese.  Two  batteries 
occupied  the  heights  behind  Bewernick,  where  the  infantry 
columns  were. 

Murat,  followed  by  Soult,  Savary's  grenadiers,  and 
Lannes'  corps  in  the  order  named,  had  left  Guttstadt  early 
in  the  morning.     As  already  mentioned,  he  had  driven  in 

*  This  cavalry  was  withdrawn  to  the  cavalry  reserve,  when,  towards 
evening,  it  became  certain  that  an  attack  was  to  be  apprehended  on  the  right 
bank  (llcepfner,  iii.  605). 


THE  BATTLE  OF  EEILSBERQ.  289 

l.arasdin's  outposts,  about  8  a.m.,  at  Launau ;  about  2  p.m., 
he  again  drove  back  on  Bewernick  the  reinforcements  which 
Bennigsen  had  sent.  His  further  progress  was  arrested  by 
the  batteries  which  Bagration  had  posted  behind  Bewernick. 
He  was  compelled  to  wait  for  Soult's  infantry  and  artillery 
to  open  a  road.  The  latter  placed  36  guns,  part  on  a  height 
across  the  Liebstadt  road,  part  on  heights  on  the  left,  about 
500  yards  from  Bewernick.  The  fire  of  these  overpowered 
and  silenced  that  of  the  Russian  batteries,  and  cleared  the 
way  for  an  advance  on  Bewernick,  from  which  the  hostile 
skirmishers  had  retired. 

Shortly  after  leaving  Launau,  Legrand's  division  had 
borne  off  to  the  left,  on  the  direct  line  to  Langwiese ;  Savary 's 
grenadiers,  on  the  left  rear  of  Legrand,  skirted  the  woods 
north-west  of  Bewernick.  In  front  of  that  village,  Soult  had 
St.  Cyr's  division  in  1st,  St.  Hilaire's  in  2nd,  line ;  Murat's 
cavalry  on  the  left.  The  objective  of  Legrand,  Savary,  and 
Murat,  was  Lawden  and  the  wood  beyond  it.  Soult's  own 
cavalry  supported  St.  Cyr  and  St.  Hilaire. 

Under  the  protection  of  Soult's  36  guns,  St.  Cyr  occupied 
Bewernick  about  3  p.m.,  and,  deploying  beyond  it,  became 
involved  in  a  long,  severe,  and  slowly  advancing  conflict  with 
Bagration's  infantry,  in  which  he  had  to  seek  support  from 
St.  Hilaire  to  enable  him  to  advance.  Whilst  this  combat 
was  proceeding  on  the  Russian  side  of  Bewernick,  Murat  was 
moving  on  Langwiese ;  Legrand,  followed  by  Savary,  on 
Lawden,  which  he  had  nearly  reached. 

Bagration's  cavalry  attacked  Murat  before  he  reached 
Langwiese  ;  it  was  defeated  and  pursued  through  the  village, 
losing  2  guns  on  the  left  of  it. 

Before  he  had  completely  reorganised  his  cavalry  beyond 
Langwiese,  after  their  passage  through  it,  Murat  was 
attacked  by  a  large  force  of  cavalry.  Bennigsen,  seeing  the 
French  progress  towards  Langwiese  and  Lawden,  had  ordered 
Uwarow,  with  25  squadrons  and  3  jager  regiments,  to  support 
Bagration. 


290  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Crossing  the  Spuibach  in  two  columns,  Uwarow,  with  the 
3  jager  regiments,  and  a  few  cavalry,  went  to  the  right  towards 
Lawden.  He  found  the  village  already  occupied,  and  came 
under  artillery  fire  from  a  French  battery  on  the  Gaberberg. 
Making  a  circuit  out  of  range,  he  occupied  the  wood  with  the 
jagers. 

The  other  column,  commanded  by  Koschin,  who  had  so 
distinguished  himself  at  Pultusk,  and  Fock,  crossed  the 
Spuibach  at  the  main  road,  just  as  Bagration's  men  were 
retreating  before  St.  Cyr.  Turning  to  its  right,  the  column 
fell  upon  Murat's  cavalry,*  as  it  was  deploying,  and,  at 
the  first  onset,  carried  it  away  in  confusion  back  towards 
Langwiese.  Napoleon,  seeing  the  advance  of  the  Eussian 
cavalry,  had  sent  Savaryt  to  support  Murat  with  his  two 
fusilier  regiments  and  12  guns.  In  order  to  reach  the  plain 
where  Murat  was  manoeuvring,  Savary  had  to  pass  a  long 
defile  between  marshes,  and  through  the  village  of  Lang- 
wiese. This  defile,  he  perceived,  was  also  the  only  line  of 
retreat  of  the  cavalry,  should  they  be  defeated.  Had  he  met 
them  in  it,  the  results  must  have  been  disastrous  ;  he  hurried 
forward  as  fast  as  possible.  He  had  scarcely  deployed,  two 
battalions  in  front  and  the  rest  in  columns  on  his  flanks, 
when  he  was  almost  carried  away  by  Murat's  cavalry,  fleeing 

*  The  "  journaux  de  marche  "  of  the  cavalry  reserve  (Arch.  Hist.)  show,  as 
engaged  at  Heilsburg — 

2nd  and  3rd  divisions  heavy  cavalry, 
1st  division  dragoons ; 

in  all,  between  6000  and  7000  sabres. 

t  Some  French  writers  have  endeavoured  to  ignore  the  presence  of  Napoleon 
on  the  battlefield.  It  is,  however,  proved  (a)  by  Savary's  statement,  as  in  the 
text,  in  his  account  of  his  action  (lii.  79-81) ;  (&)  by  a  statement  on  p.  162, 
vol.  xvii.,  of  the  work,  Victoires,  Conquetes,  etc.,  des  Francais,  published  at 
Paris  in  1818,  and  certainly  not  prejudiced  against  Napoleon ;  (c)  by  a  picture 
of  the  battle  in  the  museum  at  Versailles. 

Hoepfner  (iii.  609)  says  he  arrived  at  the  front  at  10  a.m.  It  is  curious  that 
Hoepfner  makes  no  mention  of  Savary's  part  in  this  cavalry  action.  It  is  also 
difficult  to  believe  that  he  has  not  (iii.  607)  understated  the  strength  of 
Uwarow's  attacking  cavalry  at  1000.  He  had  most  of  25  squadrons,  besides  the 
rallied  cavalry  of  Bagratiou. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  HEILSBERQ.  291 

before  the  victorious  Russians.  He  opened  a  steady  artillery 
and  infantry  fire,  refusing  to  obey  Murat's  orders  to  advance 
with  the  bayonet.  According  to  his  account,*  the  Russian 
cavalry  were  supported  by  infantry  and  artillery,  which  he 
with  difficulty  beat  off,  thanks  to  the  excellent  service  of  his 
own  artillery,  under  Grenier.  Murat,  rallying  behind  him, 
and  reinforced  by  more  cavalry,  turned  the  tables.  Koschin 
was  killed,  Fock  wounded,  and  the  Russian  cavalry  swept 
back  behind  the  Spuibach. 

The  final  repulse  of  this  cavalry  exposed  the  right  flank 
of  Bagration,  still  on  the  French  side  of  the  Spuibach,  and 
compelled  him,  pressed  in  front  by  St.  Cyr,  to  retreat  in 
some  confusion  across  it.  He  might  have  suffered  a  serious 
disaster  but  for  the  prompt  action  of  the  Grand  Duke 
Constantine  on  the  right  bank  of  the  Alle.  That  commander 
pushed  forward  a  powerful  battery  to  the  river  below  the 
infall  of  the  brook,  the  right  bank  of  which  he  was  thus  able 
to  sweep,  causing  heavy  loss  to  St.  Cyr  and  St.  Hilaire.  St. 
Cyr,  alone,  was  unable,  after  several  attacks,  to  cross  the 
brook  against  Bagration,  now  drawn  up  on  its  farther  side. 
He  accordingly  gave  place  to  St.  Hilaire's  division,  which, 
after  a  desperate  combat,  succeeded  in  getting  to  its  left  bank. 
Whilst  this  struggle  was  going  on  between  Bagration  and 
St.  Cyr,  Legrand,  supported  by  Savary,  moved,  under  cover  of 
his  artillery  at  and  behind  Lawden,  to  the  attack  of  the 
Lawden  wood.  In  it  the  French  met  Uwarow's  3  jager 
regiments,  who  fought  fiercely  with  the  bayonet.  It  was 
only  after  a  protracted,  well-sustained  combat  that  Legrand 
succeeded  in  ejecting  the  enemy,  and  strongly  occupying  the 
wood,  which  was  an  invaluable  support  to  the  left  of  the 
French  line. 

Bagration  and  Uwarow  had  now  played  to  the  bitter  end 
their  part  in  warding  off,  as  long  as  possible,  the  French 
troops  from  the  main  position.  So  long  as  they  were  on  the 
plain  in  front  of  it,  they,  necessarily,  masked  the  fire  of  the 

*  He  probably  alludes  to  the  infantry  and  artillery  on  Bagration's  right. 


292  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

powerful  artillery  ranged  on  the  heights  before  Heilsberg. 
The  curtain,  which  so  far  had  protected  the  French  from  this 
fire,  was  now  drawn  aside.  Bagration's  infantry,  worn  out 
by  a  long  march  followed  by  a  severe  action,  retired  by  the 
line  of  the  main  road.  His  jagers  stopped  to  occupy  the 
earthwork  on  the  left  bank  of  the  river,  the  rest  passiDg 
the  Alle,  took  up  their  stand  in  the  centre  of  the  southern 
area.  Bagration  himself  joined  Kamenskoi  in  the  northern 
redoubts.  His  cavalry,  united  with  that  of  Uwaro w,  proceeded 
to  the  right  wing  of  the  army. 

It  was  at  this  time  that  Bennigsen  brought  over  the  7th 
division,  followed  by  the  3rd  and  14th,  from  the  right  bank 
to  the  left,  their  place  being,  to  some  extent,  filled  by 
Bagration's  infantry.  The  1st  and  2nd  divisions  formed  a 
new  reserve  on  the  left  bank.  Bagration's  retreat  began 
between  5  and  6  p.m. ;  by  the  latter  hour,  the  plain  in  front 
of  the  Kussian  entrenchments  was  cleared  of  their  advanced 
troops. 

The  French  on  the  Spuibach  plain,  at  Lawden,  and  in 
front  of  the  wood,  were  now  exposed  to  the  full  fury  of  a 
cannonade  from  all  the  guns  on  the  northern  heights,  as  well 
as  from  those  in  many  of  the  works  on  the  south  bank,  and 
the  battery  on  the  river's  edge  opposite  the  mouth  of  the 
brook.  Their  own  artillery  was  not  sufficient  to  reply  with 
great  effect  to  the  150  pieces  brought  to  bear  on  them. 
Inaction  under  such  a  fire  would  have  been  intolerable.  St. 
Hilaire's  division  on  the  right,  followed  by  St.  Cyr's  and  by 
the  cavalry,  pushed  on  over  the  plain,  towards  redoubt  No.  1, 
passing  through  an  ever-increasing  storm  of  artillery  fire. 

Simultaneously  with  their  advance,  Legrand,  on  the  left, 
and  Savary,  issued  from  the  Lawden  wood,  sending  forward 
the  26th  light  infantry  to  the  storm  of  redoubt  No.  2.  Passing 
through  the  depression  in  front  of  the  work,  they  suffered 
from  a  most  efficacious  grape  fire,  and  from  the  musketry 
of  the  two  battalions  at  the  redoubt.  Nothing  could  stop 
the  impetuous  charge  of  the  26th.     The  redoubt  was  carried 


THE  BATTLE   OF  HEJLSBERO.  293 

about  7  p.m.,*  the  infantry  driven  back,  and  the  1st  battalion 
of  the  Towarzycs  regiment  (cavalry),  which  had  attempted 
to  attack  the  French  left,  was  forced  to  give  way  by  the 
musketry  fire  which  it  encountered. 

Grohlmann,  who  commanded  here,  finding  his  troops 
forced  out  of  the  work,  the  palisades  of  the  gorge  of  which 
had  been  broken  to  facilitate  the  withdrawal  of  the  guns,  at 
once  sent  to  Warneck  in  rear,  imploring  him  to  fall  upon 
the  intruding  French,  before  they  could  be  supported,  or 
establish  themselves  firmly  in  the  captured  redoubt. 

Most  readily  did  Warneck  bring  forward  the  Perm  and 
Kaluga  regiments.  Moving  in  perfect  order,  joined  by  the 
Sonsk  regiment,  on  their  left,  they  saw  the  French,  in  and 
about  the  redoubt,  not  yet  firmly  settled  in  it,  endeavour- 
ing to  prepare  for  its  defence.  As  the  Eussian  regiments 
marched  forward,  they  received  a  heavy  fire  of  grape  from 
the  guns  of  the  work,  now  turned  against  them.  Warneck, 
struck  by  a  musket-ball,  fell,  as  he  bravely  led  forward  his 
men.  His  place  was  instantly  filled  by  Grohlmann,  who  was 
personally  well  known  to  the  men.  With  a  loud  cheer  he 
placed  himself  at  their  head.  Bravely  though  the  French 
fought,  they  could  not  stand  against  the  bayonets  of  the 
Eussian  infantry.  Broken  and  in  disorder,  they  fled  to  the 
rear,  pursued  by  their  triumphant  conquerors.  As  Warneck 
charged,  the  1st  battalion  of  the  Zieten  dragoons,  supported 
by  the  1st  battalion  of  the  Towarzycs  regiment,  and  the  now 
rallied  2nd  battalion,  galloped  forward  on  his  right.  Bring- 
ing forward  their  right  shoulders,  this  body  of  cavalry  fell  on 
the  cuirassier  division  of  Espagne  halted  between  the  Lawden 
wood  and  the  infantry.  Then  ensued  a  deadly  hand-to-hand 
struggle,  ending  in  the  defeat,  with  great  loss,  of  the  cuiras- 
siers. The  Prussian  horsemen  pursued  "them  into  the  midst 
of  their  batteries,  hewing  down  the  gunners.  It  was  not 
until  they  were  met  by  a  heavy  infantry  fire  that  the 
Prussians  were  forced  to  retire  to  their  original  position. 

*  Wilson,  p.  146. 


"294  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

St.  Hilaire,  seeing  the  defeat  of  the  26th  at  redoubt  No.  2, 
had  sent  to  support  it  the  55th  regiment  from  his  left. 

Charged  by  more  Prussian  cavalry,  whose  approach  was 
concealed  by  the  thick  smoke,  disordered  by  the  beaten 
26th  and  the  Russian  infantry,  their  colonel  killed,  this 
regiment,  too,  was  overthrown,  and  lost  'its  eagle.  Not  till  a 
fresh  French  chasseur  regiment  came  to  its  aid,  was  it  dis- 
engaged from  the  Prussian  cavalry,  now  forced  to  a  rapid 
retreat  through  the  Russian  infantry  lines.  On  this  wing 
there  was  an  indescribable  scene  of  confusion.  Legrand's 
and  Savary's  infantry — formed  in  hollow  squares,  containing 
the  Russian  prisoners,  arranged  checkerwise  and  intermixed 
with  the  reserve  cavalry — were  attacked  in  all  directions  by 
Russian  and  Prussian  cavalry  again  pushing  forward.  Slowly 
they  gave  way,  their  squares  moving  without  being  broken, 
again  across  the  Spuibach.  But  for  the  timely  arrival  at  this 
juncture,  on  their  left,  of  Verdier's  division  of  Lannes'  corps, 
and  the  support  offered  by  St.  Hilaire  on  their  right,  they 
could  hardly  have  avoided  total  defeat. 

As  Legrand  and  Savary  were  forced  back,  they  necessarily 
exposed  the  left  flank  of  St.  Hilaire  and  St.  Cyr.  Those 
generals  had  arrived  close  in  front  of  redoubt  No.  1,  but,  met 
in  front  by  the  Russian  defenders,  and  their  left  flank 
exposed  as  above  described,  they  had  found  themselves 
unable  to  go  farther.  They,  too,  fell  back,  suffering  appalling 
losses. 

The  assault  on  redoubt  No.  2  had  occurred  soon  after 
7  p.m. ;  *  by  9  p.m.  the  whole  French  line  was  again  driven 
behind  the  Spuibach,  though  they  still  held  the  Lawden 
wood  beyond  it.  The  Russians  had  retired,  after  their  victory, 
to  their  entrenched  positions ;  the  battle  seemed  over  for 
the  night.     Not  so  thought  Lannes,  who  had  now  reached 

*  Napoleon's  78th  bulletin  (Corr.  12,747)  says  it  was  9  p.m.  when  St. 
Hilaire  was  in  front  of  the  Russian  position.  Jomini  (Vie  de  Napoleon, ii.  408), 
apparently  following  the  bulletin,  gives  the  same  hour.  Wilson  (p.  146)  says 
Legrand  moved  foward  "  about  7  p.m." 


Till-:   BATTLE  OF  HE1LSBERG.  295 

the  field.  He  resolved  on  one  more  attempt.  Collecting 
Verdier's  division,  he  sent  it  forward  once  more  against 
redoubt  No.  2,  from  the  Lawden  wood,  about  10  p.m.  Warned 
by  a  deserter  *  of  the  impending  assault,  the  Eussians  were 
prepared  to  meet  it.  As  Verdier,  supported  by  the  75th  of 
Legrand's  division,  moved  out  across  the  plain,  he  was 
received  with  such  a  storm  of  artillery  fire  that  his  division 
withered  before  it.  The  attack  collapsed,  the  troops  once 
more  fell  back  on  the  wood. 

The  18th  regiment  of  Legrand's  division  had  been  pushed 
forward  in  the  afternoon  towards  Grossendorf,  to  threaten 
Bennigsen's  communications  with  Koenigsberg.  There  it 
had  been  set  upon  by  the  cossacks.  Formed  in  battalion 
squares,  it  had  for  hours  resisted  every  attack  with  success. 

When  the  fighting  was  over  on  his  own  front,  Legrand 
sent  out  two  more  battalions  to  its  aid.  With  their  help, 
it  was  able  to  rejoin  the  main  French  line. 

After  the  failure  of  Verdier's  attempt,  a  few  Kussian  light 
infantry  were  sent  in  the  darkness  against  the  Lawden 
wood ;  they  found  the  French  too  strongly  posted  there  to 
give  any  hope  of  their  being  driven  out. 

It  was  11  p.m.  before  the  last  sounds  of  fighting  died 
away,  and  were  succeeded  by  silence,  broken  only  by  the 
shrieks  and  groans  of  the  many  thousand  wounded,  strewing 
the  plain  between  the  contending  armies. 

The  honourable  warfare  of  the  day  gave  place  to  a  scene 
which  was  equally  disgraceful  to  either  army.  Swarms  of 
followers,  the  scum  of  the  armies,  skulked  out  from  either 
side  into  the  plain,  not  intent  upon  mutual  destruction, 
but  united  in  a  common  warfare  against  the  defenceless  dead 
and  wounded.  The  clouds,  which  had  been  threatening 
during  the  day,  discharged  a  heavy  fall  of  rain,  as  though 
Heaven  itself  wept  over  this  dreadful  sight.  When  morning 
broke,  the  soldiers  of  the  two  armies,  inured  as  they  were 
to   the   horrors  of  war,  were  yet   struck   with   dismay   at 

*  Wilson,  p.  140. 


296  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

the  sight  which  met  their  eyes  on  the  plain  between  them. 
Thousands  upon  thousands  of  naked  bodies  lay  upon  it; 
many  dead ;  many  still  shivering  with  fever  after  the  night 
of  rain.*  The  dead  and  wounded  alike  had  been  stripped 
of  clothes,  and  everything  they  had,  by  the  foul  human 
beasts  of  prey  who,  during  the  hours  of  darkness,  had 
glutted  themselves  with  the  plunder  of  the  sufferers  and 
the  dead.  So  great  was  the  horror  inspired  by  this  dis- 
graceful scene,  that,  by  mutual,  though  unspoken  consent, 
French  and  Russian  met  peacefully  on  the  ghastly  plain  to 
bury  the  dead  and  remove  the  wounded. 

The  loss  in  this  great  battle  was  enormous  on  both  sides. 
Soult's  corps  alone  admittedly  lost  6601,t  the  total  loss  of  the 
French  was  probably  at  least  10,000.  Yet  there  were  engaged 
on  their  side  only  the  corps  of  Soult,  Murat,  and  one  division 
of  Lannes'. 

The  Russians  had  lost  2000  or  3000  killed,  and  5000  or 
6000  wounded ;  in  all,  not  less  than  7000  or  8000,  besides 
prisoners.^  The  1st  and  2nd  divisions,  and  the  greater  part 
of  the  Russian  cavalry,  had  not  been  engaged  at  all. 

With  such  losses,  it  is  easy  to  judge  how  fierce  was  the 
struggle. 

Was  this  awful  loss  of  life  justified  by  the  possible 
results  on  either  side  ?     It  seems  doubtful. 

From  Napoleon's  point  of  view,  it  is  certain  that  his 
object,  in  so  far  as  it  consisted  in  compelling  the  Russian 
general  to  evacuate  the  position  he  had  prepared  with  such 
care,  could  have  been  attained  with  trifling  loss  on  the 
succeeding  day.   As  Davout  and  the  other  corps  of  the  French 

*  At  the  time  of  Heilsberg  and  Friedland  the  days  were  oppressively  hot, 
the  nights  damp  and  cold  (Larrey,  iii.  85).  The  weather  on  the  night  of  the 
10th  June  was  bad  (ibid.,  iii.  78). 

t  Soult's  report,  Arch.  Hist.  Hoepfner  (iii.  615)  gives  the  number  as 
8286,  and  Lannes'  losses  as  2284.  The  total  loss  he  puts  at  1398  killed,  10,359 
wounded,  and  864  prisoners.     Total,  12,621. 

X  Hap/tier,  iii.  615.  Plotho  (p.  162)  says  the  Russian  loss  was  9000. 
After  the  battle  he  gives  their  strength  as  still  76,000. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  EEILSBERG.  297 

left  appeared  beyond  Bennigsen's  right,  there  can  be  no 
doubt  that  he  would  have  felt  himself  bound,  as  he  actually 
did  on  the  11th,  to  seek  temporary  safety,  once  more,  on  the 
right  bank  of  the  Alle.  Attacked  in  front,  he  was,  no  doubt, 
bound  to  defend  liimself  as  he  did.  But  his  victory — for  such, 
in  a  tactical  sense  it  undoubtedly  was, — to  use  Sir  Robert 
Wilson's  words,  "  had  not  an  influence  beyond  the  moment, 
for  the  redundant  power  of  the  French  was  still  unimpaired, 
and  they  could  traverse  by  the  right  of  the  position,  move  on 
Koenigsberg,  or,  by  throwing  bridges  over  the  Alle,  surround 
and  blockade  the  Russian  army,  who  had  not  two  days'  bread 
in  their  camp,  or  in  those  magazines  of  whose  capture 
Buonaparte  vaunts ;  whilst  contagion  from  the  putrid  loads 
that  polluted  the  atmosphere,  would  have  augmented  the 
evils  of  famine."  * 

Of  the  tactics  of  the  French  in  this  terrible  combat,  there 
is  not  much  that  is  favourable  to  be  said.  Napoleon  attacked 
a  very  strong  position  with  very  inferior  forces,  for  it  was  not 
till  too  late  in  the  day  to  save  the  situation,  that  Lannes' 
corps,  Ney,  and  the  Guard  could  reach  the  battlefield.  The 
two  latter  took  no  part  in  the  fighting,  and  merely  served  as 
a  support  on  which  the  beaten  corps  in  front  could  fall 
back. 

With  Soult's  endeavours,  in  face  of  an  overwhelming 
enemy,  no  fault  could  be  found.  But  for  Napoleon's  pre- 
sence on  the  field,  it  is  not  impossible  that  that  cautious 
marshal  would  have  refrained  from  pressing  his  attack  much 
beyond  Bewernick,  until  the  turning  movement  on  the 
Russian  right  should  take  effect. 

Murat,  on  this  day,  appeared  to  no  advantage.  Savary 
relates  how  the  cavalry  commander  urged  him,  against  his 
better  judgment,  to  advance  with  the  bayonet,  when  a  steady 
fire  was  the  only  hope  for  him,  as  well  as  for  the  cavalry .f 

*  Wilson,  p.  149. 

t  Savary,  iii.  82,  83.    He  describes  how,  in  the  evening,  when  every  one 
was  out  of  temper  at  the  ill  success  of  the  day,  he  told  the  Emperor  plainly  that 


298  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Napoleon  was  disgusted  with  the  behaviour  of  his 
cavalry  ;  "  they  did  nothing  I  ordered,"  he  said.* 

Lannes'  final  attack,  at  10  p.m.,  was  mere  waste  of  life ; 
it  could  not  reasonably  be  expected  to  succeed  with  a  single 
division! 

On  the  other  side,  Bagration's  conduct  of  his  rear-guard 
action  against  Soult  was  as  admirable  as  his  fight  on  the 
previous  evening  before  Guttstadt.  His  steadfast  resistance 
wore  out  the  enemy,  before  they  even  arrived  within  striking 
distance  of  Bennigsen's  line  of  battle.  Similarly,  Uwarow, 
and  the  Prussian  cavalry  behaved  magnificently  towards 
Lawdeo  against  Murat,  Savary,  and  Legrand. 

The  promptitude  with  which  the  Grand  Duke  Con- 
stantine  supported  Bagration,  by  his  battery  on  the  right 
bank  of  the  Alle,  must  not  be  forgotten. 

On  the  morning  of  the  11th  June,  the  armies  again  faced 
one  another  in  order  of  battle ;  but,  beyond  some  cannonading 
of  St.  Cyr's  division,  on  the  French  right,  by  the  Russian 
batteries  beyond  the  river,  no  fighting  occurred.  Napoleon, 
had  resolved  on  dislodging  Bennigsen  by  manoeuvring,  as  he 
might  have  done  equally  well,  without  making  a  serious 
frontal  attack  on  his  position,  on  the  previous  day.f 

About  noon  Bennigsen  received  information  that  Davout's 

his  brother-in-law  was  "  un  extravagant  qui  nous  fcrait  perdre  un  jour  quelque 
bonne  bataille ;  et  qu  eufin  il  vaudrait  niieux  pour  nous  qu'il  fut .  inoins  bravo. 
«t  cut  un  ]>cu  plus  do  sons  conunun."  The  Emperor  silenced  him,  saying  he 
was  in  a  temper,  but,  nevertheless,  remembered  the  words  and  tho  still  more 
unmeasured  terms  of  Lannes. 

*  See  Wilson,  p.  149.  note,  who  says  this  remark  was  made  to  a  "person  in 
high  authority,"  whose  name  he  cannot  disclose. 

t  According  to  llivpfner  (iii.  015,  note)  the  French  themselves  admit 
Lannes*  loss  as  2284  killed,  wounded,  and  prisoners.  Most  of  this  must  have 
(Mvuncd  in  the  night  attack. 

X  "In  renewing  the  fight  next  day,  I  should  have  risked  the  destruction  of 
ps  destined  for  it  ;  there  was  all  the  less  reason  for  my  exposing  myself  to 
this  in  that,  by  manoeuvring  on  Koenigsberg,  I  was  sure  to  displace  the  enemy 
without  striking  u  blow.  For  a  moment  1  hesitated  whether  I  would  march 
with  the  corps  of  Ney  and  Davout,  by  my  right,  to  Hischofstoiu  ;  the  motives  I 
have  already  indicated  determined  me  to  take  the  opposite  direction  *' (Jomini. 
Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  408). 


OPERATIONS    OF  JUNE  11-13. 

corps  had  been  sighted  on  the  Landsberg  road.*  When  the 
marshal  presently  appeared  at  Grossendorf,  Bennigsen,  now 
seriously  alarmed  for  the  safety  of  his  right  flank  and  rear, 
with  supplies  running  low,  and  with  the  prospect  of  his 
position  becoming  untenable,  if  only  from  famine,  and  the 
terrible  odour  of  the  corpses  festering  in  the  sun,  determined 
on  retreat  during  the  ensuing  night,  by  the  right  bank  of  the 
river. 

At  9  p.m.,  Kamenskoi  was  ordered  to  pass  the  Alle  with 
9000  men,  to  march  on  Bartenstein,  and  thence  to  join 
Lestocq  behind  the  Frisching.  He  arrived  at  Barter 
(13  miles)  early  on  the  morning  of  the  12th.  Starting  again 
it  7  a.m.,  he  made  another  13-mile  march  to  Lampasch. 
Prussian  cavalry,  reconnoitring  on  his  left  flank,  found  a 
strong  column  of  the  enemy  already  in  Pr.  Evlau.  Kamen- 
skoi's  troops  were  weary,  but,  after  two  hours'  rest,  they 
once  more  set  out,  more  to  their  right,  to  avoid  the  enemy, 
and  to  seek  Lestocq. 

nnigsen,  with  the  rest  of  the  army,  crossing  the  Alle  at 
midnight,  unperceived  by  the  French,  marched  in  4  columns 
for  Bartenstein. 

Bagration.  once  more,  with  Platow's  cossacks,  took  the 
post  in  which  he  had  already  shown  such  marked  cap 
the  command  of  the  rear-guard.     It  was  not  till  the  morning 
of  the  18th  was  well  advanced  that  the  last  troops   had 
passed  the  river,  burning  the  bridges  behind  them,f  as  well 

•  Bennigsen  at  first  failed  to  appreciate  the  true  significance  of  Da 
appearance  in  this  position.  He  "  conceived  that  the  enemy  were  moving  on 
Koenigsberg.  and  that  General  Lestocq,  who  had  been  ordered,  in  the  morning, 
to  Zinten  from  Heiligenbeil,  on  which  he  had  fallen  back,  might  not  be  strong 
enough  to  resist  the  advance  of  the  enemy  and  cover  Koenigsberg ;  he  therefore 
detached  General  Kamenskoi.  with  WOO  men.  to  join  him,  and  ordered  General 
Lestocq  to  fall  back  upon  Koenigsberg  with  all  expedition  and  maintain  that 
city,  as  he  (Bennigsen)  %oa$  moring  upon  Wehlau  with  the  army  to  eupport  the 
line  of  the  Pregel"  (Wilton,  pp.  Hi».  150).  The  last  words  are  worthy  of 
mrilg  that,  at  this  time.  Bennigsen  had  no  idea  of  returning 
to  the  left  bank  of  the  Alle  at  Friedland. 

t  Hoppfner  (iii.  622)  says  11  a.m.:  Wilson  ^p.  1M\  7  a.m.     The  latter 
authority  thinks  that  the  rear  of  the  Russians  might  well  have  been  involved  in 


300  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

as  the  camp  on  the  right  bank.  Soult  presently  occupied 
Heilsberg,  where  he  found  numbers  of  Russian  wounded  and 
magazines — the  latter  full  according  to  French  accounts,* 
empty  according  to  Wilson.f  The  retreating  Russians  were 
followed  and  watched,  not  pursued,  by  only  one  division  of 
dragoons,  and  two  of  light  cavalry  4 

Napoleon,  meanwhile,  had,  on  the  11th,  again  ordered 
Davout  from  Grossendorf  on  Preussisch  Eylau,  which  he 
reached  on  the  12  th,  his  advanced  guard  meeting,  as  has  been 
related,  the  hussars  on  Kamenskoi's  left.  As  he  left  Grossen- 
dorf, his  rear-guard  had  a  few  slight  skirmishes  with  Platow's 
cossacks.  The  3rd  division,  in  advance,  took  post  on  the 
12th  at  Rothenen ;  the  2nd,  delayed  by  having  to  make  way 
for  the  3rd,  as  well  as  for  Oudinot's  grenadiers,  only  arrived 
at  Eylau  at  8  p.m. ;  the  1st  took  up  its  quarters  at  Wasch- 
keiten.  Marulaz  made  reconnaissances  on  the  Eichorn- 
Bartenstein  road,  whilst  waiting  to  act  as  escort  to  the  reserve 
park. 

Ney,  from  Launau,  marched,  early  on  the  12th  to 
Eichorn,  halfway  between  Heilsberg  and  Eylau.  § 

a  terrible  disaster,  had  the  French  been  more  alert,  for  at  sunrise  (soon  after 
3.30  a.m.)  there  were  still  three  Russian  divisions  on  the  left  bank.  But  it  must 
be  remembered  that  Soult's  corps  alone  was  at  this  time  facing  Heilsberg,  and  it 
was  no  part  of  Napoleon's  programme  to  draw  the  Russians  on  it.  "  At  day- 
break on  the  11th  my  army,  defiling  in  two  columns,  marched  for  Landsberg 
and  Pr.  Eylau.  A  single  corps  was  left  in  front  of  Heilsberg  to  cover  my  move- 
ment. I  did  not  conceal  from  myself  the  possible  danger  of  this  course  ;  for  in 
undertaking  it  I  left  my  own  communications  in  the  power  of  the  enemy,  who, 
basing  himself  on  the  camp  of  Heilsberg,  could  operate  on  our  rear  and  shut  us 
in  between  his  own  army,  the  Lower  Pregel,  and  the  sea"  (Jomini,  Vie  de 
Napoleon,  ii.  409). 

*  78th  bulletin  (Corr.  12,747). 

t  Wilton,  p.  149,  note. 

%  Wilson,  p.  151.  Latour-Maubourg's  dragoon  division  and  the  light 
cavalry  divisions  of  Durosnel  and  Wattier  (Hoepfner,  iii.  622;  also  Dumas, 
xviii.  283). 

§  This,  it  will  be  observed,  does  not  quite  agree  with  Jomini's  account  (Vie 
de  Napoleon,  ii.  409)  just  quoted.  Hoepfner  (iii.  619,  note)  justly  remarks  on 
the  extreme  difficulty  of  fixing  with  certainty  the  French  movements  before  and 
after  Heilsberg,  as  well  as  during  the  battle  itself.    In  this  case,  however,  there 


OPERATIONS  OF  JUNE  11-13.  301 

Napoleon's  headquarters  were  at  Eylau  on  the  12th,  and, 
Bennigsen  being  now  gone  from  Heilsberg,  Soult  and  Murat 
were  ordered  to  follow  the  other  corps  towards  Eylau.* 
Mortier  reached  Heilsberg  from  Altkirch,  the  Guard  also  was 
at  Heilsberg.  Napoleon,  with  the  mass  of  his  army,  was 
now  nearer  to  Koenigsberg  than  Bennigsen,  whom  he  could, 
moving  on  the  chord  of  the  arc  which  the  Russians  were 
following,  by  the  right  bank  of  the  Alle,  intercept  at 
Friedland. 

To  bring  the  position  up  to  date,  it  is  necessary  to  turn 
back  to  the  movements  of  Lestocq  and  Victor  on  the  Lower 
Passarge.f 

The  latter  general,  on  the  10th,  made  a  general  recon- 
naissance from  Spanden,  towards  Wusen  and  Baarden. 
Wusen  was  abandoned  by  the  Prussians.  Heavy  artillery 
fire  at  Baarden  indicated  that  they  were  in  force  towards 
Mehlsack. 

On  the  11th  June,  Lestocq  intercepted  a  despatch,  from 
Berthier  to  Victor,  directing  the  latter  to  attack  the  Prussians, 
to  seize  Mehlsack,  and  to  be  prepared  to  march  either  on 
Drewenz  and  Landsberg,  or  direct  on  Koenigsberg.J  Seeing 
the  danger  to  his  left  flank,  Lestocq,  at  3  a.m.  on  the  12th, 
marched  his  1st  division  from  Heiligenbeil  to  Zinten,  where 
it  took  position. 

During  the  same  night,  Victor  debouched  by  the  Spanden 

is  no  room  for  doubt,  as  Napoleon's  order  (Corr.  12,745)  is  dated  Heilsberg. 
12th  June.  It  directs  Ney  to  march  on  Eylau,  and  to  be  rejoined  by  two 
regiments  which  be  had  left  at  Guttstadt.  At  the  same  time  Zayonchek's  Poles 
were  to  occupy  Guttstadt,  now  evacuated  by  the  advancing  army. 

*  To  Murat,  the  Emperor  wrote  that  Soult,  passing  by  Landsberg,  was  sweep- 
ing the  Prussians  before  him.  Murat  was  to  reconnoitre  the  country  on  his  right, 
by  parties,  on  Bartenstein  and  Friedland.  He  was  not  to  disperse  his  troops, 
and  was  to  call  in  the  regiment  on  his  left  so  as  to  give  him  more  troops  for 
his  right. 

t  Dumas,  xviii.  284  ;  Haepfner,  iii.  623;  Victor.  Arch.  Hist 
X  Berthier  to  Victor,  dated  10th  June,  Guttstadt,  10  a.m.     The  despatch  is 
given  in  full  by  Hoepfner  (iii.  627).     Berthier  does  not  seem  to  have  repeated 
his  error  of  January  by  sending  only  one  copy,  for  another  reached  Victor 
safely. 


302  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

bridge,  towards  Mehlsack,  driving  in  the  Prussian  outposts, 
which  retired  towards  Zinten.  Dupont's  division,  with  two 
regiments  of  cavalry,  marching  from  Frauenburg  and  Brauns- 
berg,  up  the  Passarge,  followed  the  rest  over  the  Spanden 
bridge. 

One  Prussian  brigade  had  been  left  behind  to  watch 
Braunsberg.  Victor  was  compelled  to  leave  the  24th  regiment, 
with  2  guns,  at  Spanden,  to  oppose  it.* 

During  the  night  of  the  12th-13th,  Lestocq  received 
Bennigsen's  despatch,  informing  him  of  his  own  retreat,  and 
of  the  detachment  of  Kamenskoi  towards  Muhlhausen  and 
the  Frisching.  Lestocq  also  heard  of  the  arrival  of  the 
French  at  Eylau. 

Early  on  the  morning  of  the  13  th  he  set  out  on  his  march 
to  join  Kamenskoi  behind  the  Frisching.  At  3  p.m.  on  that 
day  he  came  upon  the  head  of  the  Kussian  column  at  Gollau, 
a  little  way  short  of  Koenigsberg  ;  here,  for  the  moment,  he 
may  be  left. 

Rapp,  Governor  of  Danzig,  had  received  orders  to  clear 
the  Frische-Nehrung,  with  a  column  of  2500  men  and  4  guns, 
up  to  the  Pillau  channel.  Behind  this  column  followed  the 
sailors  of  the  Guard  from  Elbing. 

Bennigsen,  finding  his  right  more  and  more  outflanked, 
halted  at  Bartenstein  but  a  few  hours,  to  rest  his  troops, 
before  continuing  his  march  to  Schippenbeil  at  midnight  of 
the  12th-13th.  He  marched  in  three  columns.  Kollo- 
gribow,  with  the  Poissian  Guard,  marched  by  the  right  bank. 
The  second  column,  of  three  divisions,  and  the  cavalry  of  the 
left  wing,  took  the  road  along  the  left  bank.  The  third,  of 
two  divisions,  acted  as  support  to  the  rear-guard,  composed 
of  one  division  and  the  cavalry  of  the  right  wing.  The 
cossacks  guarded  the  flanks. 

The  head  of  the  column  reached  Schippenbeil  at  4  a.m.  on 
the  13th.  As  the  troops  passed  through  the  town,  they  took 
position,  as  if  for  battle,  behind  it,  between  the  Alle  and  its  • 

*  Operations  of  1st  corps,  by  Victor,  Arch.  Hist. 


OPERATIONS  OF  JUNE  11-13.  303 

tributary,  the  Guber.  But  there  was  no  rest  for  Bennigsen  s 
troops,  wearied  though  they  were  with  more  than  a  week  of 
constant  marching  and  fighting,  for  he  now  learnt  that  the 
French  were  already  about  Domnau.  Trembling  for  his 
communications  with  Lestocq  and  Koenigsberg,  he  again 
resumed  his  march  at  midday. 

On  the  13th,  early  in  the  morning,  Napoleon  directed 
Murat  on  Koenigsberg,  with  St.  Sulpice's,  and  Milhaud's 
dragoons,  and  Lasalle's  light  cavalry.  This  force,  with 
Davout's  corps  in  support,  marched  by  the  direct  road  ; 
Soult,  also  in  support,  to  the  left,  by  Kreuzberg.  The  object 
of  this  detachment  was  to  place  a  strong  force  between 
Bennigsen  and  Koenigsberg  in  any  case.  At  the  same 
time,  Lannes  was  directed  on  Friedland  through  Domnau. 
Mortier,  Ney,  and  the  Guard,  following  Lannes,  took  post 
between  Eylau  and  Domnau.     Victor  arrived  at  Eylau.* 

The  three  cavalry  divisions,  which  had  followed  Bennig- 
sen to  Bartenstein,t  crossed  the  river  there,  and  moved  on 
Domnau. 

*  At  11  a.m.  on  the  13th,  the  Emperor,  at  Eylau,  summarises  the  position 
of  his  army  in  a  letter  to  Murat  (Corr.  12,749).  Lannes  was  advancing  on 
Lampasch,  Davout  on  Wittenburg,  Soult  had  started  at  10  a.m.  for  Kreuzburg, 
Victor  was  at  Landsberg,  Ney  and  Mortier  just  arriving  at  Eylau.  If  Murat 
found  himself  able  to  enter  Koenigsberg,  he  was  to  use  Soult  for  the  purpose,  as 
Napoleon  wished  to  have  his  extreme  left  in  Koenigsberg.  If  the  enemy  should 
arrive  to-day  at  Domnau,  Murat  would  still  push  Soult  on  Koenigsberg,  placing 
Davout  so  as  to  head  the  Russians  between  Domnau  and  Koenigsberg.  In  case 
Bennigsen  should  march  thus  by  Domnau,  it  would  be  necessary  for  Soult  to 
make  sure  of  the  town  of  Brandenburg,  so  that  there  might  be  no  anxiety  for 
the  Emperor's  communications,  which  would  be  by  his  left.  Half  an  hour  later 
(Corr.  12,750)  he  writes  to  the  same  effect  to  Soult,  and  expressly  states  that 
there  are  indications  of  the  enemy's  intention  to  concentrate  on  Domnau. 
Brandenburg,  in  these  circumstances,  would  be  important,  as  it  would  protect 
the  left  if  the  right  were  exposed. 

By  3  p.m.  (Corr.  12,751)  the  Emperor  had  heard  that  Bennigsen  was 
retreating  on  Schippenbeil,  and  he  tells  Lannes  to  move  on  Domnau  with 
cavalry  towards  Friedland. 

f  Vide  supra,  p.  300,  note  \. 


CHAPTER  III. 
The  Battle  of  Fkiedland. 

(a)  LANNES*  ACTION — 3  A.M.  TO  NOON. 

DURING  the  last  four  miles  of  the  route  from  Domnau 
to  Friedland,  the  general  slope  of  the  country  is  down- 
wards towards  the  Alle,  on  the  left  bank  of  which  stands  the 
little  town  of  Friedland.*  Two  miles  before  it  is  reached,  a 
slight  elevation,  in  rear  of  Posthenen,  affords  a  clear  and 
uninterrupted  view  over  the  whole  battlefield,  and  down  to 
Friedland,  lying  directly  to  the  spectator's  front.  On  the 
right  front,  some  500  paces  from  the  village  of  Posthenen,  is 
the  great  wood  of  Sortlack,  extending  down  to  the  village  of 
the  same  name,  at  the  head  of  a  re-entrant  angle  of  the  Alle, 
which  here  flows  between  high  and  steep  banks.  A  mile  and 
a  quarter  to  the  left  (north)  of  Posthenen  is  the  village  of 
Heinrichsdorf.  Two-thirds  of  the  distance,  in  a  direction 
but  slightly  north  of  east,  from  Heinrichsdorf  to  the  Alle,  is 
the  small  wood  of  Damerau.  Behind  the  line  joining 
Posthenen  and  Heinrichsdorf  are  large  woods. 

The  whole  space,  between  the  left  bank  of  the  river  and 
the  points  which  have  just  been  denoted,  is  a  gently  undu- 
lating, open  plain,  with  no  gradients  sufficient  to  impede  the 
free  movement  of  troops  of  all  arms. 

*  The  chief  materials  for  this  account  of  the  battle  of  Friedland  are  the 
narratives  of  Dumas,  Hcepfner,  Savary,  Victor  {Arch.  Higt.),  Jomini,  Wilson, 
Marbot,  Kausler  (atlas  and  text),  etc. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  FR1EDLAND.  305 

On  the  14th  June,  the  whole  of  this  plain  was  one  sheet 
of  crops,  rye  and  wheat. 

Open  as  the  plain  generally  was,  there  was  one  feature  in 
it  the  supreme  importance  of  which  was  at  once  recognised 
by  Napoleon.  Rising  west  of  Posthenen,  a  small  stream, 
known  as  the  Millstream,  flowing  through  the  village,  thence 
takes  a  course  direct  for  Friedland.  It  divides  the  plain  into 
two  portions,  the  greater  extending  northwards  to  the 
Damerau  wood,  the  lesser  southwards  to  that  of  Sortlack. 
In  its  passage  from  in  front  of  Posthenen  till  it  reaches  the 
outskirts  of  Friedland,  the  brook  flows  between  steep  banks, 
and,  though  narrow,  is  a  serious  military  obstacle,  entirely 
obstructing  the  free  passage  of  troops.  At  Friedland,  it 
expands  into  a  semicircular  pond,  covering  the  greater  part 
of  the  north  side  of  the  town.  On  the  south  side  is  the  Alle, 
flowing  at  this  point  from  west  to  east,  and  then  turning 
north  after  passing  the  town.  Friedland  is  thus  built  at  the 
end  of  a  peninsula,  of  which  the  north  and  south  sides, 
respectively,  are  closed  by  the  Millstream  and  by  the  Alle. 

On  the  opposite  bank  of  the  Alle  there  is  a  plain  similar 
to  that  on  the  left  bank,  backed  by  a  great  wood  on  the  Allen- 
burg  road.  The  large  village  of  Allenau  stands  back  from  the 
river,  opposite  Sortlack ;  a  smaller  village,  Kloschenen,  is  on 
the  brink  of  the  high  right  bank,  2000  paces  below  Friedland. 

It  was  6  p.m.  on  the  13th  June  when  the  head  of 
Bennigsen's  army,  under  Gallitzin,  began  to  reach  the 
neighbourhood  of  Friedland.  Lannes'  cavalry  had  already 
ejected  from  the  town  the  few  Ptussian  troops  guarding  the 
magazines  there.  A  French  patrol  was  surrounded  and 
captured  on  the  right  bank  of  the  river.  Passing  into  Fried- 
land, Gallitzin  captured  60  cavalry  in  it ;  beyond  the  town, 
on  the  west,  he  found  the  French  9th  Hussars,  which  he 
forced  back  on  Lannes'  corps  at  Domnau,  taking  post  with 
his  cavalry  at  Posthenen. 

Kologribow  detached  small  bodies  to  Wohnsdorf,  Allen- 
burg,  and  Wehlau,  to  watch  the  lower  passages  of  the  Alle„ 

x 


MM  I  tUJW  //  WXi 

filn    communication    with  Lestocq.     There  then 
remained  at  Midland,  28  squadrons,  and  J  7  Minn. 
Toward*  8  p.m.,  Bennigsen  himself  reached  Fried  1 

r  of  Lannes'  corps,  he  orders)  the 
feOOps  which  arrived  to  croff  the  river  in 
mmirft  nd  Abutted  tlm'on  inmiionof  three  pontoon  brides* 
on  above  nd  Nno  below  the  permanent  \>n<\y<-     r.    ,   noi 

'ill    II    p.m.    thai    the    head    of  Mm-    f>      ■!    infantry    column 

'lion  was  sent  over  at  once  to 

Ifeffni'!""1-  ol   the  raval/y,  and    Ihree    moo-    o/omentS   If   day 

dawned  (eboot  B.-'a  and  the  treneh  began  to  appear,  it 
was  0  i  n  ,  befeN  the  first  battalions  ot  the  main  Russian 
body  came  up 

A h  soon  as  Lannes  had  heard,  from  his  retirin,  i    rejj 
the  Russian  passage  at  Friedland,  he  despatched    Ruffln's 

l.rre.d.-  and  pari  ol  Ondinot's  f/rena/liei  divi  ion,  toward-,  that 

point    Scarcely  had  they  started,  when  a  despai  i<  bom 

.'.'apoleon   Warned    Lanne",   I.lia.t   I'.enni," -en   appeared    l.o   inh-nd 

.  /or  n.  I  riedland,  and    m;u«  lun;;   direel.  on    I 

Tim    I'.mperor    had    promptly    ordered    Orouchy,   from    Kylail, 

villi  Inn  own  i  'h/i  ion  and  Nansouty's  cuirassici  ,  to 

|om    Lame  •-'  I ,  inn'-  .  \'A\'>  .v<  'I    :lioi  I.I  v , 

•  ill,   I.Ik-   re    I    ol   OudnioL'  •.  and    Verdi* r' 

1        ::>:       I  1 1 1     nij/ht    when     Olldinot,    hotwce/i     X    u.ml      ',   a  m 

dohnm  hod    on    1,1k:  I'  i  ied lan<l  plain,  to    find   l.'uilm    in    front  ol 

In tii .    a«l  /are  ii  Ik-     J.'u      ian     <  avail  /  lie    pu  ilmd 

el    i  wo   liattalion  i   into   tlm  Northe  i     rvood,  and  held  hi  i 

main  hody  in  front  ol    !'</  thenen,  on  tlm  nnai    haul    ol  a    ima.ll 

bfOOl   .    WhUh    iMftlief   from    the  W00d     toward:    Hi-     Mill    loam 

In  front,  he  plaeed    '.    ha  I  .tenea,  and  hehind   them  wore  5  or  • 

l.iillalion -,.  and   I  .'"in.    omewhat  lo  l.lm  lelt,  with  then    harks  to 

*  Chrr,  I2/i7H.    To  Unni*,  <UUd  Kyi  nj   Iftfe  tai   a  p  n      ri,<»  Kmptror 
)*,  h«  nay*.  uriiwrtMin  wl.<  o,.  boll  KijmIiui  army  <<»  only  s4#U<  l»i»i<nl 

I  I.  II'      |.f'/MH     '         l<.       •  I  Vlf   l«ll 

a  Dimin    I  b     10  ll<    |»r<   mi         I  II     nlw 

mil     I  )},<  ■  •  In  r«ire4  thm 


li  i  rii  i    <>r    i 

ll,..    I'-Miliknim    wood         I'm, i,  til.     Ifll      i. Mi     ii|r  ;.!    .,,      I. linn    I,,  i 
were  ruiil.  niln  l.lio  Soil  luck    worn  I,  wlniv  liny  mr|.  llm  I'Yolirli 
Mil     I   n|  i    ,    mill     ill  ill.   I  y   III.     I.lul.f    mil    ;i||    lilnll"    Mir    1  1 1 M  V        'II  i<  • 
!  I    ll  mi    In-l         Urn-     III  Mil     I  I     llll.illll  V,    win-   li 

li.nl    Ihtii  i     In    lin-    left     Of    III''    '  ■•  •   'li  \  I  li'".      '.'i. 

'  III. il.  Ii      U  llli. Mil      rilHi,       illlil      lll<\       W.ir 

i;'Im ir.-iiil    "I    Mi''  "ii. mill 

\i    ::    .1  in.,   ( ; i .mi.  i  ,.n.  i.   mid 

\l       Mil.      I M  Ml  I       LlllllHM      ll.-dl     nil       III"'      "inllli.l      '.M)(MI 

ml. mil  \     .in. I     1000  .    i\  ,ih  y  * 

Thr   in       I     In   ill  i  im-    \\  .I.-    <  hnlifml        .hi  lin    |(»()k    |IOMl 

lii'liiml  lii     ri.'lil ,  ..ii  I  lie     .mill  limit.  ..I  l  lin  Mill   1 1.  miii 

Till  in....  .1    ..ill  ,    li.'l  Wi'rll      .   .ili.l     li    .1   in.,   IK  in  !M    I  In- 

hlllr   l.rniil,    ...     I'm.. I    nf  I.I,.-   .nil,,,   .,■-,.,,    I    II,.      I 

i.      n.. I     ,i        ',  .  I        I  inn;'     riiniiyli     In     IhmiI      Kn|nj;i  llmu  '  . 

"...nilieri  rogagod  at  Frlodland  arn,  m  In  llm  cano  of  ovary  ...i... 
mpaigi i    ...  lou  i     tat  -I  thiu  i— 

:     0,000  I  , 

'■      H" if I.  ...   MiHI  ill  ,m.|   II,.     UliMUUW  it  flfl,0<M I...I... 

1 

1 1. mi. .     |nil     Hi.    I  .ii.l  nun 

ll'.|.li...  gftffl  Unillii;  K,  nn.i  ,,,,  ll,,     l.-li    I....I     ■■!    II,,-    AIL      I-.      li'H  Old 

I  (Hi    ill  ,|.      mm    ll..     i  ij-l.l     I, .ml,      .iii.I     ll,.     .1.  i.i.  I I      ... 

Mli  nli 

Pl0th0(pp    I'-*    16  I         |    ll"     I.    I ..I    .'Minn  .„    mo  ono,  »io/H 

ft*  ii.  ii  bi       i  ,.    till  i, .-i  7U.1MJ0      <»i  ii"  -    i"   id  i"  li.'.l  imhmi 

""'I'  .    K.iiii-  ii  I "I    i.oon   ...     \n,  ,,.,,,,,-     -.  I,,,  I,    u.,.,1  : 

I-. il,   i.ii.l     ..I   ll,,    All,    ..i    I  ,,-  ill  ,  flo.000  ».  i  ■  'I  "i.   il" 

II  "  ll  "'I'        (  '■■>.   iil«  mill.    "I.'.l.i.  1 1. hi   I     I...  \,    ...    I.,     n, .i-l.     foi      I 

ii,.  I,,,,,-  i,,.,,.  i,  from  ii,  ,i  i- 

U     '    -I     |  ...  I' ■ 'm    AIIom   ilm    I'l  I  lot  attic*,    |t0.| 

I  -liiii«  nn.i  h:,  000  i  I  >"i> 

M.,,l.,,l  .,11.,  v     '-...i,.,!,,,.,  i.i) I 

>l'i .'  -.     I"  il"    I  I"  I"  Ii  moiil  i    «  ill  i",l    I-     I  H 

i  ii"  marl  1.....11  ll ho.ooo     a-  foi   r.- .,.,,..- Itriflf  ill  thl 

,1     ,  ,  in,   . I.. ul, II11I  il   In     11,, ml..  .  ,    II, .,1,  11,,    , 

<)„  II..    Ml    Ki.nl-   ..I   II.,     All.  4COOO 

<»,,  .,,-1,1  I,,,, I  .,  000 

I),  lui  Ion,  .,1     lii   All.  ,,!.,,,,-    i-li-,  ...        11,00(1 

:,M,nno 


308  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

horsemen.  As  they  were  being  driven  back,  they  received 
timely  succour  by  the  arrival,  at  6  o'clock,  of  Fresia's  Dutch 
cavalry  (of  Mortier's  corps),  who  made  a  fresh  addition  to 
the  strength  of  the  French  right,  and  forced  Kologribow  to 
retire.  Whilst  these  cavalry  combats  were  in  progress, 
Grouchy  had  observed  that  the  Eussians,  who  were  now 
rapidly  crossing  the  river,  were  advancing  in  force  on  Hein- 
richsdorf  by  the  road  to  Koenigsberg.  From  that  village 
they  would  be  in  a  position  to  gain  the  French  rear  through 
the  Georgenau  wood. 

Sending  Xansouty  forward  from  the  Domnau  road, 
Grouchy  followed  towards  Heinrichsdorf,  direct  from  Pos- 
thenen.  Nansouty,  passing  through  the  Georgenau  wood, 
drove  out  of  it,  through  Heinrichsdorf,  the  advanced  troops  of 
the  Kussians,  until  he  was  stopped  by  infantry  and  artillery. 
Ordering  Nansouty  to  form  front  towards  the  enemy  at  the 
village,  Grouchy  himself  charged  their  guns  as  they  entered 
it ;  whilst  Nansouty,  aided  by  Albert's  dragoons,  now  sent  up 
by  Lannes,  attacked  in  front.  Disordered  by  a  successful 
onslaught,  the  French  were,  in  turn,  charged  by  Eussian 
cavalry,  who,  however,  only  succeeded  in  facilitating  the 
withdrawal  of  most  of  their  own  guns  before  they  were 
beaten  off.  Grouchy  then  drew  up  his  men  on  either  side  of 
Heinrichsdorf  at  its  eastern  entrance. 

All  this  time  a  desultory  combat,  without  any  decisive 
result  on  either  side,  had  been  in  progress  along  Lannes' 
whole  front.  That  marshal  found  himself  in  a  position  in 
some  ways  similar  to  that  which  he  had  held  at  Pultusk.  As 
at  Pultusk,  he  was  facing  a  very  superior  force,  for  the 
Eussians  were  now  hurrying  across  the  Friedland  bridges, 
Bennigsen  hoping  and  believing  that  only  Lannes  was  at 
hand.  But  there  was  this  great  difference  between  the  two 
cases,  that,  at  Pultusk,  Lannes  felt  he  had  nothing  to  fall 
back  on,  whilst,  at  Friedland,  he  knew  that  the  Emperor  was 
hurrying  up  an  overwhelming  force  to  his  aid. 

It  was  now  9  a.m.,  and   there  were  on  the  field  9000 


THE  BATTLE   OF  FXIEDLAND.  309 

French  infantry  and  8000  cavalry.  Lannes  had  made  the 
most  of  his  small  force.  He  covered  the  whole  of  his 
front  with  an  unusually  dense  line  of  skirmishers ;  the 
troops  behind  them  were  able  to  give  the  impression  of 
larger  numbers,  owing  to  the  detached  groups  of  trees,  the 
inequalities  of  the  ground,  and  the  high  crops.  Lannes  also, 
by  moving  them  about  and  deploying  them  in  different 
positions,  conveyed  the  impression  of  the  arrival  of  more 
troops.  Their  business  was  to  fight  a  delaying  action,  to 
keep  Bennigsen  occupied,  and  to  induce  him  to  bring  across 
the  river  his  whole  army,  very  inferior  in  numbers  to  the 
corps  which  Napoleon,  in  a  few  hours,  would  be  able  to 
collect  against  it.  By  9  o'clock,  Bennigsen  had  passed 
across  the  river  46,000  men,  a  force  amply  sufficient  to  over- 
whelm Lannes,  with  whom  alone  he  still  believed  he  would 
have  to  deal.* 

Six  divisions  of  infantry,  and  most  of  the  cavalry,  had 
crossed. 

As  his  troops  arrived,  the  Eussian  commander  drew  them 
up  on  the  plain  between  Sortlack  and  the  Damerau  wood. 
On  the  northern  half  of  this  space,  between  Damerau  and  the 
Millstream,  the  8th,  7th,  6th,  and  3rd  divisions,  under 
Gortchakow,  stood,  whilst  the  smaller  southern  portion,  from 
the  Millstream  to  Sortlack,  was  occupied  by  the  1st  and  2nd 
divisions,  the  advanced  guard,  and  part  of  the  cavalry  under 
Kologribow.  The  greater  part  of  the  cavalry  was  in  the 
northern  portion,  under  Uwarow  and  Gallitzin. 

The  infantry  were  drawn  up  in  two  lines ;  in  the  first 
the  regiments  stood  with  their  first  and  third  battalions 
deployed,  the  2nd  battalion  in  column  behind.  The  second 
line  consisted  of  entire  regiments  in  columns  of  battalions, 
behind  the  3rd  battalions  of  the  front  line. 

The  greater  part  of  the  cossacks  were  about  the  Damerau 

*  At  9  a.m.  all  the  divisions  had  passed  except  one.  The  6000  men 
detached  towards  Allenburg  were  sent  back  from  the  left  bank  (Wilson, 
p.  155). 


310  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

wood.  In  the  Sortlack  wood  were  about  3000  picked  jagers, 
who  had  been  driven  back  into  it,  and  were  fighting  there. 
In  support  of  them,  at  Sortlack,  stood  two  battalions,  five 
squadrons,  and  four  guns. 

To  obliterate,  as  far  as  possible,  the  separation  of  his  left 
from  his  centre  and  right,  Bennigsen  threw  four  small 
bridges  across  the  Millstream.  On  the  right  bank  of  the 
Alle  remained  the  14th  division  and  20  squadrons,  on  the 
Schippenbeil  road,  as  well  as  Platow's  flying  column,  and  a 
large  part  of  the  artillery.  The  detachments  which  Kolo- 
gribow  had  made  to  Wohnsdorf  and  Allenburg,  were 
reinforced  by  a  guard  infantry  regiment,  3  cavalry  regiments, 
some  cossacks,  and  a  part  of  the  guard  artillery.*  Some  of 
the  guns  covered  the  pontoon  bridges,  a  battery  at  Kloschenen 
supported  the  right  wing  across  the  river,  another  fired  on  the 
French  issuing,  from  Sortlack  wood,  against  the  left  flank. 

The  fight  in  that  wood  had  oscillated  backwards  and 
forwards  :  at  one  moment  the  Eussian  jagers  had  driven  the 
Trench  out  of  it ;  a  few  moments  later  the  latter  had  returned, 
and  again  made  their  way  deep  into  the  covert,  only  once 
more  to  be  driven  back  to  its  edge.  So  the  fight  swayed 
backwards  and  forwards. 

About  9  o'clock,  the  whole  Eussian  army  moved  forward, 
bringing  its  left  into  line  with  the  front  then  held  by  the 
jagers  in  Sortlack  wood,  whilst  the  right  wing  stood  500 
or  600  paces  short  of  Henrichsdorf. 

The  cossacks,  pushing  into  and  through  that  village, 
arrived  on  the  rear  of  the  French  line  towards  Schwonau, 
as  the  Eussian  cavalry  of  the  right  wing  attacked  it  in  front. 
Beaumont  and  Colbert,  with  2500  cavalry  of  the  1st  and  6th 
corps,  quickly  drove  off  the  cossacks,  and  then,  joining  in 
the  severe  cavalry  fight  which  was  in  progress,  they  turned 
the  balance  in  favour  of  the  French. 

*  Hcepfner,  iii.  656.  Wilson  (p.  155)  says  Benuigsen  detached  6000  men 
to  guard  the  lower  passages  of  the  Alle  at  Allenburg.  This  number  may 
perhaps  fairly  represent  the  detachments  made  and  thus  reinforced. 


TEE  BATTLE  OF  FR1EDLAND.  311 

Mortier's  corps*  was  now  beginning  to  appear  on  the 
scene,  Dupas'  division  of  it  reaching  Huinrichsdorf  just  in 
time  to  arrest  the  progress  of  the  Russian  infantry.  Dupas 
then  took  his  stand  on  the  right  of  the  village,  which 
was  still  occupied  by  3  battalions  of  grenadiers.  The 
remainder  of  the  grenadiers  returned  to  their  own  division, 
on  the  right,  whilst  3  Polish  regiments,  of  Dombrowski's 
division,  placed  themselves  behind  the  battery  in  front  of 
Posthenen.  The  French  now  had  23,000  infantry  and  10,500 
cavalry  present  when,  at  10  a.m.,  Verdier's  division,  the  rear 
of  Lannes'  corps,  at  last  put  in  an  appearance,  raising  the 
French  to  40,000  against  46,000  Prussians.  Bennigsen  at  last 
began  to  see  that  he  was  likely  to  have  more  on  his  hands 
than  he  could  manage.  He  could  only  hope  that  Napoleon 
would  not  be  able  to  overwhelm  him  before  night  should 
afford  him  an  opportunity  of  retrieving  the  error  which  he 
had  committed  in  crossing  the  river.  Meanwhile,  officer 
after  officer  had  been  despatched  to  inform  Napoleon  of  the 
position  of  affairs. 

(b)  napoleon's  arrival  on  the  scene. 

He  reached  the  field  about  noon,f  and,  from  the  height 
in  rear  of  Posthenen,  scanned  the  battlefield.  A  very 
different  sight  was  before  him  on  this  bright  summer  morning 
from  that  which  he  had  witnessed  under  the  wintry  sky  of 
Eylau,  and  he  was  in  very  different  spirits.  To  his  staff 
he  had  remarked  at  Domnau,  "  The  enemy  appears  to  wish 
to  give  battle  to-day;  so  much  the  better,  it  is  the  anni- 
versary of  Marengo."  His  wonderful  power  of  grasping  the 
points  of  a  battlefield  at  once  showed  him  the  faultiness  of 
Bennigsen's  position,  split  in  two  by  the  Millstream,  with 

*  The  return  for  the  15th  June  (Arch.  Hist.)  shows  this  corps  as  com- 
prising only  one  weak  French  division  of  3976  men,  besides  cavalry  and  artillery. 
The  other  two  divisions,  the  numbers  of  which  are  not  stated,  were  Poles. 

t  Hoepfner,  iii.  659.  Marbot  (i.  282)  says  11  a.m.  Jomini  (Vie  de 
Napoleon,  ii.  413)  gives  1  p.m.  as  the  hour. 


312  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

his  left  wing  across  the  opening  of  the  triangular  peninsular 
ending  at  Friedland,  bounded  on  one  side  by  the  Millstream, 
on  the  other  by  the  Alle.  He  saw  that  this  wing  was  cut 
off  from  the  support  of  the  rest  of  the  army  by  the  stream, 
and  that  the  four  bridges,  by  which  Bennigsen  had  attempted 
to  remedy  this  fatal  defect,  were  almost  useless.  He  saw 
that,  as  the  left  wing  was  forced  back,  it  would  be  driven 
closer  and  closer  together,  until  it  was  enclosed  in  Friedland, 
where  its  defeat,  with  the  capture  of  the  town,  must  infallibly 
bring  disaster  upon  the  centre  and  right,  if  they  attempted 
to  maintain  their  position,  with  the  river,  unfordable  as  he 
believed  it  to  be,  close  behind  them.  He  felt  that  Bennigsen 
had  lost  his  only  chance  of  escape  by  neglecting  to  fall  upon 
Lannes  with  far  greater  vigour,  and  to  destroy  him  before  the 
rest  of  the  army  could  arrive. 

By  this  time,  Napoleon  had  sufficient  strength  to  hold 
back  the  wearied  Eussians  until  the  arrival  of  Ney,  Victor, 
and  the  Guard.  Till  then,  he  was  not  anxious  to  press  the 
fight,  in  which  a  lull  now  occurred.  By  2  p.m.  the  orders 
for  the  battle  were  dictated  and  issued.  They  were  as 
follows :  * 

"  Marshal  Key  will  take  the  right  from  Posthenen  towards 
Sortlack,  and  will  rest  on  the  present  position  of  General 
Oudinot.  Marshal  Lannes  will  form  the  centre,  commencing 
from  the  left  of  Marshal  Ney,  up  to  Posthenen ;  the  grena- 
diers of  General  Oudinot,  at  present  forming  the  right  of 
Marshal  Lannes,  will  lean  insensibly  to  the  left,  drawing 
upon  themselves  the  attention  and  the  forces  of  the  enemy.  » 

"  Marshal  Lannes  will  close  in  his  divisions  as  much  as 
possible,  by  this  closure  enabling  himself  to  form  two  lines. 

"The  left  will  be  formed  by  Marshal  Mortier,  holding 
Heinrichsdorf  and  the  Koenigsberg  road,  and  thence  extend- 
ing opposite  the  Eussian  right  wing.  Marshal  Mortier 
will  never  advance,  as  the  movement  will  be  by  our  right, 
pivoting  on  the  left. 

*  Corr.  12,756,  dated  "  Bivouac  behind  Posthenen,  14th  June." 


THE  BATTLE  OF  FBIEDLAND.  313 

"  The  cavalry  of  General  Espagne,  and  General  Grouchy's 
dragoons,  united  to  the  cavalry  of  the  left  wing,  will  manoeuvre 
so  as  to  cause  as  much  harm  as  possible  to  the  enemy  when 
he,  pressed  by  the  vigorous  attack  of  our  right,  shall  feel  the 
necessity  of  retreat. 

"  General  Victor  and  the  Imperial  Guard,  horse  and  foot, 
will  form  the  reserve,  and  will  be  placed  at  Grunhof  and  at 
and  behind  Posthenen. 

"  Lahoussaye's  division  of  dragoons  will  be  under  the 
orders  of  General  Victor ;  that  of  General  Latour-Maubourg 
will  obey  Marshal  Ney.  Nansouty's  division  of  heavy  cavalry 
will  be  at  the  disposal  of  Marshal  Lannes,  and  will  fight 
alongside  the  cavalry  of  the  reserve. 

"  The  Emperor  will  be  with  the  reserve  in  the  centre. 

"  The  advance  must  be  always  from  the  right,  and  the 
initiative  of  the  movement  must  be  left  to  Marshal  Ney, 
who  will  await  the  Emperor's  orders  to  begin. 

"As  soon  as  the  right  advances  against  the  enemy,  all 
the  artillery  of  the  line  will  redouble  its  fire  in  the  direction 
most  useful  for  the  protection  of  the  attack  on  the  right." 

But  the  Emperor  was  still  in  some  doubt  as  to  what 
force  was  in  front  of  him.  On  the  previous  evening,  his 
cavalry  had  not  been  able  to  give  him  any  precise  information 
as  to  the  enemy's  movements.*  Murat,  according  to  Savary,t 
had  informed  him,  on  the  morning  of  the  13  th,  that  the  bulk 
of  the  Eussian  army  was  marching  direct  on  Koenigsberg. 
The  cavalry  had,  apparently,  over-estimated  Kamenskoi's  9000 
men.  The  fact  of  his  detaching  two  entire  corps  and  three 
cavalry  divisions  to  deal  with  the  enemy  at  Koenigsberg  shows 
that  Napoleon  believed  the  Kussians  to  be  in  much  greater 
strength  in  that  direction  than  they  really  were.  When  he 
reached  the  front,  at  Posthenen,  Oudinot  had  told  him  there 
were  80,000  men  in  front  of  him.     Savary,  sent  out  to  see 

*  Savary,  iii.  84 :    "  Our  cavalry  could  give  no  precise  account  of  the 
enemy's  march." 
t  Loc.  cit. 


314  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

if  the  enemy  were,  as  Napoleon  could  hardly  believe  possible, 
determined  to  fight  a  great  battle  with  the  river  close  behind 
them,  reported  that  they  were  still  crossing  the  bridges  in 
great  numbers.*  The  Emperor's  doubts  are  clearly  exhibited 
by  a  despatch  dated,  "  Before  Friedland,  3  p.m.,  June  14th,"  t 
which  is  worth  quoting  in  full. 

"  The  cannonade  has  been  in  progress  since  3  a.m. ;  the 
enemy  appears  to  be  here  in  order  of  battle  with  his  army  ; 
at  first  he  wished  to  debouch  towards  Koenigsberg ;  now  he 
appears  to  be  seriously  meditating  the  battle  which  is  about 
to  commence.  His  Majesty  hopes  that  you  are  already  in 
Koenigsberg  (a  division  of  dragoons  and  Marshal  Soult  are 
sufficient  to  enter  that  town),  and  that,  with  two  cuirassier 
divisions  and  Marshal  Davout,  you  will  have  marched  for 
Friedland ;  for  it  is  possible  the  battle  may  last  over  to-mwrow. 
Endeavour,  therefore,  to  arrive  by  1  a.m.  We  have  not,  as 
yet,  any  news  of  you  to-day.  Should  the  Emperor  be  led  to 
suppose  that  the  enemy  is  in  very  great  force,  it  is  possible  he 
may  rest  satisfied  to-day  with  bombarding  him,  and  wait  for 
you.  Communicate  part  of  this  letter  to  Marshals  Soult  and 
Davout." 

From  noon  till  5  p.m.  the  action  was  maintained  in  a 
desultory  fashion,  chiefly  by  the  artillery  of  both  sides.  The 
Eussians  who  had  been  marching  all  night,  and  most  of 
the  previous  day,  were  exhausted.  At  4  p.m.,  Victor's  corps 
and  the  French  Guard  arrived. 

As  Bennigsen  saw  column  upon  column  arriving  on  the 
edge  of  the  woods  behind  Posthenen,  moving  into  line,  and 
forming  a  "  deep  girdle  of  glittering  steel,"  %  on  the  horizon, 
he  bitterly  repented  his  passage  of  the  river,  and  had  already 
given  orders  to  attempt  a  retreat.  They  had  scarcely  been 
issued  when  they  had  to  be  cancelled. 

*  Savary,  iii.  87.  t  Dumas,  xix.  327. 

\   Wihon,  p.  157. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  FlilEDLAND.  315 


(c)   THE   RENEWED   BATTLE. 

At  5  o'clock,*  the  comparative  silence  was  broken  by 
three  salvoes  of  20  guns,  the  signal  for  the  advance.  The 
echo  of  the  last  had  not  died  away  before,  from  the  whole 
line  of  French  artillery,  there  burst  forth  a  furious  fire.  At 
the  same  moment,  Ney's  corps,  already  collected  in  the 
clearings  of  the  nearer  portion  of  the  Sortlack  wood,f  dashed 
forward  with  loud  cheers,  driving  the  jagers  slowly  back. 
By  6  o'clock  the  wood  was  cleared,  and  Ney's  columns  began 
to  debouch  on  the  farther  side.  The  supporting  Russian 
troops,  at  Sortlack,  were  powerless  to  stop  their  movement, 
but  a  battery  on  the  farther  bank  of  the  Alle  caused  them 
some  annoyance. 

In  mass  of  divisions,  Marchand  leading  on  the  right, 
Bisson  on  the  left,  Latour-Maubourg  behind,  Ney  pushed  on. 
Marchand,  overwhelming  the  retiring  Eussians  at  Sortlack, 
drove  them  in  wild  confusion  into  the  Alle  below  the  village. 
To  accomplish  this  he  had  to  diverge  to  his  right,  into  the 
eastward  bend  of  the  river,  thus  leaving  an  open  space 
between  himself  and  Bisson.  Into  this  space  dashed  Kolo- 
gribow  at  the  head  of  his  cavalry ;  but  he  was  promptly  met 
by  Latour-Maubourg,  moving  up  to  fill  the  gap.  Charged  by 
this  force  in  front,  fired  into  by  Marchand  and  Bisson  on  his 
flanks,  Kologribow's  attempt  to  split  Ney's  infantry  failed. 
Marchand,  as  the  Eussians  retired  again,  moving  westwards 
along  the  river,  effected,  once  more,  his  union  with  Bisson, 
and  the  two  ranged  themselves  across  the  neck  of  the  Fried- 
land  peninsula,  from  the  re-entrant  angle  of  the  Alle  to  the 
Millstream.  The  Eussians  in  the  peninsula,  now  bent  back 
at  an  obtuse  angle  from  the  line  north  of  the  brook,  were 

*  5.30  according  to  Wihon,  p.  159. 

t  Ney  formed  his  columns  in  the  wood.  Only  the  artillery  were  on  the 
roads  through  it;  but,  fortunately,  there  were  three  broad  clearings,  each 
sufficiently  wide  to  allow  of  a  column  of  infantry  and  one  of  cavalry,  as  well  as 
the  artillery,  standing  in  them  (Savary,  iii.  87-88). 


316  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

gradually  being  compressed  by  the  narrowing  space  into 
compact  masses  on  which  the  French  artillery  wrought 
fearful  havoc. 

As  Ney  advanced,  Napoleon  had  moved  up  Victor's 
corps,  on  the  right  of  the  Eylau  road,  in  two  lines,  with 
Lahoussaye's  dragoons  in  3rd  line.  Durosnel's  cavalry 
followed.  Key's  corps,  with  a  cloud  of  skirmishers  in  front, 
again  moved  forward  towards  Friedland,  Latour-Maubourg 
following  some  way  behind.  Marchand,  on  the  ground 
sloping  towards  Friedland  and  the  Alle,  was  suffering  heavily 
by  case  fronr  the  Kussian  batteries  beyond  it,  to  silence  which 
Ney  moved  his  corps  artillery  to  the  bank.  Bisson,  pro- 
tected by  the  slope  towards  the  Mills tream,  was  less  exposed. 

Both  divisions,  however,  lost  heavily  from  this  artillery 
fire,  as  well  as  from  the  infantry  and  artillery  fire,  against 
their  front.  They  were  already  wavering  when  Bennigsen's 
reserve  cavalry,  standing  beyond  the  brook,  crossed  it  and 
fell  upon  their  left  flank.  It  wanted  but  this  blow  to  com- 
plete the  repulse  of  Ney.  His  troops  were  retreating  in 
considerable  disorder  when  help  reached  them.  Dupont, 
with  his  division  of  Victor's  corps,  had  pushed  forward  his 
guns,  which  had  barely  time  to  fire  a  round  of  case  before 
the  Bussian  cavalry  was  upon  them.  Dupont,  with  great 
promptitude,  for  which  he  earned  the  special  approval  of 
Napoleon,*  changing  direction  to  the  right,  hurried  up  his 
infantry  at  the  double  into  the  gap,  on  Ney's  left,  cut  by  the 
cavalry.  This  division  was  specially  enthusiastic  in  its 
attack,  for,  up  to  the  surrender  of  Ulm,  it  had  belonged  to 
Ney's  command.t  The  men  felt,  therefore,  that  on  them 
depended  the  safety  of  old  friends  and  comrades  in  the 
glorious  fields  of  1805.  Latour-Maubourg  and  Durosnel  also 
galloped  forward  against  the  Bussian  cavalry,  which  was  now 
carried  back  on  the  infantry  across  the  neck  of  the  peninsula, 
spreading  disorder  in  its  ranks.  The  confusion  was  still 
further  increased  by  the  fire  of  38  guns,  which  Senarmont, 
*  Savary,  iii.  89.  t  Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  419. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  FR1EDLAND.  317 

holding  6  more  in  reserve,*  and  escorted  by  Lahoussaye's 
cavalry  and  a  battalion  of  infantry,  moved  steadily  forward, 
opening  fire  first  at  600  paces,  then  at  300,  at  150,  and, 
finally,  at  60.  The  Russian  cavalry  made  a  desperate  effort 
against  this  battery,  but  the  French  gunners,  calmly  await- 
ing their  approach,  mowed  them  down  with  a  volley  of 
grape.t 

The  Eussian  left,  in  the  peninsula,  was  now,  in  hopeless 
confusion,  making  the  best  of  its  way  into  Friedland,  pur- 
sued hotly  by  Ney's  rallied  troops,  as  well  as  by  Dupont  and 
the  fire  of  Senarmont's  guns.J 

Dupont,  having  restored  the  fight  here  and  completed  the 
Russian  disaster,  wheeled  to  his  left,  across  the  Millstream,  a 
movement  which  brought  him  upon  the  left  flank  and  rear  of 
the  Russian  centre,  still  maintaining  its  forward  position. 

Ney,  pressing  on  into  Friedland,  and  engaging  in  a  fierce 
fight  in  the  streets,  was  in  possession  of  the  town  by  8  p.m. 
The  Russian  cavalry  and  infantry  in  front  of  him  streamed 
towards  the  now  burning  bridges.  At  7.30,  the  Russian 
artillery,  beyond  the  river,  had  set  fire  to  the  houses  nearest 
the  bridges,  and  the  flames  had  spread  to  the  bridges  them- 
selves. §  The  river  was  too  deep  to  ford  with  safety ;  great 
numbers  of  the  Russians,  failing  to  reach  the  bridges  whilst 
they  were  still  passable,  were  drowned  in  the  attempt  to 
cross  by  swimming.  Their  heavy  accoutrements  dragged 
down  the  infantry.  || 

*  Victor,  Arch.  Hist.  At  60  yards  Senarmont  used  nothing  but  grape, 
which  told  with  awful  effect  on  the  crowded  Russians. 

t  Ibid.  He  says  that  when  Senarmont  had  dispersed  this  cavalry,  he- 
was  supported  by  a  battalion  of  Frere's  brigade  andthe  4th  division  of  dragoons. 
Dupont  lost  649  killed  and  wounded  altogether. 

\  "  Senarmont's  and  Ney's  artillery  sowed  terror  and  death  amongst  the 
battalions  and  squadrons  of  the  enemy,  which,  with  their  backs  to  the  town,  to 
the  river,  or  to  the  brook,  knew  not  by  which  way  to  escape  from  destruction  " 
(Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  419). 

§  Hcepfner,  iii.  667.  Jomini  says,  "  Bagrationt  having  withdrawn,  fired  the 
bridges  to  stop  our  pursuit  "(Fie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  419).  "  During  this  contest 
the  bridges  were  ordered  to  be  fired"  (Wilson,  p.  160). 

||  Savary,  iii.  91. 


318  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

The  battle,  as  designed  by  Napoleon,  was  as  good  as  won 
when  Friedland  was  captured. 

Lannes  and  Mortier  had  intelligently  carried  out  their 
orders  by  fighting  a  waiting  action,*  merely  detaining 
Gortchakow  north  of  the  Millstream,  though  harassing  him 
with  a  terrible  artillery  fire,  to  which  he  could  but  feebly 
respond. f  It  was  only  when  he  saw  the  thick  smoke  rising 
from  the  houses  and  the  bridges  of  Friedland,  that  he  realised 
that  his  retreat  in  that  direction  was  cut  off.  He  had  already 
fallen  back  to  the  position  of  the  early  morning  before  the 
overwhelming  fire  of  the  artillery  of  the  1st  and  6th  corps. 
Dupont  was  north  of  the  pond,  at  Friedland,  on  his  left  flank. 

Leaving  his  cavalry  to  hold  in  check,  as  far  as  possible, 
the  corps  of  Lannes  and  Mortier,  he  sent  his  two  nearest 
divisions  of  infantry  to  the  recapture  of  Friedland.  These 
brave  men,  charging  with  the  bayonet  Dupont' s  and  Key's 
troops,  carried  them  back  into  the  town,  and  re-occupied  the 
part  of  it  nearest  the  lower  pontoon  bridge,  only  to  find 
the  bridge  burning  and  impossible  to  cross. 

Some  sought  to  cross  to  the  right  bank  there,  the  majority 
wended  their  way,  still  fighting,  down  the  river  to  Kloschenen, 
where,  fortunately  for  Bennigsen,  late  in  the  evening,  there 
had  been  discovered  a  deep  ford,  the  existence  of  which  had 
previously  been  unknown.  Bad,  and  deep,  as  it  was,  it 
proved  the  salvation  of  the  Russian  army ;  for  it  not  only  gave 
a  chance  of  crossing  to  its  infantry  and  cavalry,  but  also 
enabled  Bennigsen,  with  infinite  difficulty,  to  get  back  many 

*  Lannes  and  Mortier  had  even  allowed  Gortchakow  to  gain  some  success, 
to  draw  him  farther  into  the  trap  (Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  420). 

t  The  fire  was  tremendous.  Victor  alone  had  48  guns  in  one  great  hattery. 
Bennigsen,  trying  to  make  the  best  of  his  bad  position,  formed  squares  flanking 
one  another;  in  doing  so,  he  lost  a  great  part  of  his  front  of  infantry  fire 
(Bavary,  iii.  90). 

The  French,  until  the  battle  recommenced  in  the  evening,  had  been  con- 
cealed from  the  view  and  the  fire  of  the  Russians  by  the  trees,  the  high  crops 
and  grass,  and  the  inequalities  of  the  ground,  of  which  they  took  every 
advantage.  The  Russians,  on  the  contrary,  were  fully  exposed,  standing  in 
lines  and  columns  on  the  open  plain  {Wilson,  p.  150). 


TEE  BATTLE  OF  FRIED  LAND.  319 

of  his  guns.  These  he  managed  to  get  up  the  steep  right 
bank,  and  range  there  as  a  cover  to  the  retreat,  though  it 
was  for  long  impossible  for  them  to  fire  on  the  confused 
throng  of  friends  and  foes.  Much  of  the  ammunition  was 
rendered  useless  by  water  in  the  deep  ford.* 

Instant  retreat  was  now  the  only  course  open  to  Gort- 
chakow,  with  his  remaining  two  divisions  of  infantry,  his 
artillery,  and  his  cavalry.  The  last  he  still  left,  to  cover  him 
against  Mortier  and  Lannes.  First  he  withdrew  his  guns, 
then  his  infantry.  The  latter  slowly  retired  in  great  masses, 
through  which  the  French  artillery  tore  wide  lanes,  marking 
every  halting-place  with  heaps  and  lines  of  dead  and 
wounded. 

It  was  now  the  moment  for  Napoleon  to  slip  the  leash  in 
which  he  had,  so  far,  held  his  centre  and  left.  Eejoicing  to 
be  at  last  allowed  to  take  an  active  part,  the  infantry  of 
Lannes  and  Mortier  poured  over  the  plain  towards  the  Alle,  to 
complete  the  destruction  which  the  artillery  had  begun. 
They  found  their  enemy  in  no  mood  for  surrender;  the 
brave  Kussian  infantry  preferred  death  by  the  bayonets  of 
their  opponents,  or  to  take  their  chance  of  drowning  in  the 
river,  to  yielding  themselves  prisoners ;  few  were  taken. 
Part  of  the  cavalry  crossed  with  the  broken  infantry  near 
Kloschenen;  the  majority  retreated  down  the  left  bank,  to 
Allenburg.  Had  Napoleon's  cavalry,  beyond  Heinrichsdorf, 
shown  the  energy  which  might  have  been  expected  from  them, 
this  retreat  by  the  left  should  have  been  impossible.  There 
were  40  French  squadrons  in  this  direction,  opposed  to  but 
22  Kussian.  Even  Savary,  no  friend  of  Murat,  deplores  his 
absence.*  He  would  have  seen  the  opportunity  and  have 
rolled  up  the  Eussian  right,  so  that  scarcely  a  man  could 
have  escaped.  As  it  was,  the  French  squadrons  remained 
dismounted  during  the  greater  part  of  the  renewed  battle, 
content  with  what  they  had  accomplished  in  the  morning, 
doing  nothing.     The  reason  given,   forsooth,  was  that  they 

*  Wilson,  p.  161.  t  Savary,  iii.  92. 


320  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

had  no  orders.*  Murat  at  least  would  not  have  waited  for 
orders  with  such  a  chance  before  him. 

The  defeated  Russians  who  succeeded  in  crossing  the  river, 
united  with  the  reserve  in  the  Gnatten  wood.  Thence,  in 
two  columns,  they  marched  for  Wehlau,  their  rear  covered  by 
Platow's  flying  column,  which,  during  the  day,  had  made  a 
futile  attempt  to  cross  the  river  behind  Key's  right,  but  had 
been  easily  beaten  off.f 

At  Allenburg,  the  retreat  was  joined  by  the  cavalry,  which 
had  followed  the  left  bank.  At  noon,  on  the  15th,  Bennigsen 
had  got  together,  at  Wehlau,  his  broken  army.  Pursuit,  there 
was  none  worth  mentioning.  A  French  general  is  said  to 
have  remarked  that  Friedland  was  "  a  battle  gained  and  a 
victory  lost.t 

During  the  night,  the  French  corps  occupied  the  following 
positions  when  the  battle  at  last,  about  11  p.m.,  ceased. 
Lannes  on  the  Koenigsberg  road,  between  Friedland  and 
Heinrichsdorf.  Mortier  beyond  Friedland,  on  both  banks  of 
the  river.  Victor  at  Posthenen.  Ney  in  and  behind  Fried- 
land. The  Guard,  surrounding  their  victorious  Emperor, 
slept  on  the  plain  where  had  stood  the  Eussian  centre. 

The  permanent  bridge  at  Friedland  was  quickly  rendered 
serviceable ;  for  the  flames  had  failed  to  destroy  the  strong 
buttresses  built  to  protect  it  against  floating  ice  in  the  winter. 
Over  it,  early  on  the  15th,  part  of  the  cavalry  set  out  to 
follow  the  Eussians,  whilst  the  rest  went  down  the  left  bank. 
Before  it  could  reach  Bennigsen,  he  had  passed  his  troops 


*  This  was  not  even  correct,  for  Napoleon's  orders  had  directed  Grouchy, 
Espagne,  and  the  cavalry  of  the  left  wing,  to  "  manoeuvre  so  as  to  cause  as  much 
harm  as  possible  to  the  enemy  when  he,  pressed  by  the  vigorous  attack  of  our 
right,  shall  feel  the  necessity  of  retreat."  Their  inaction  was  certainly  no  com- 
pliance with  this  order. 

The  cavalry  reserve  engaged  at  Friedland,  according  to  Murat  {Arch.  Hist.), 
consisted  of  the  1st,  2nd,  and  3rd  heavy  divisions,  the  1st,  2nd,  and  4th  dragoon 
divisions.     The  last-named  was  with  Victor. 

t   Wilson,  p.  159,  note. 

X   Wilson,  p.  162. 


TEE  BATTLE   OF  FRIEDLAND.  321 

across  the  Pregel  at  Wehlau,  and  was,  for  the  time  being, 
safe. 

The  battlefield  of  Friedland  *  presented,  on  the  morning  of 
the  15th,  a  ghastly  spectacle.  The  French  had  lost  consider- 
ably, though  less  than  they  had  at  Heilsberg.  On  the 
Kussian  side  the  destruction  had  been  fearful.  Friedland 
was  filled  with  dead  and  wounded ;  but  the  most  terrible 
spectacle  was  on  the  plain,  north  of  the  Mills tream.  There, 
long  lines  of  corpses  marked  where  the  troops  had  been 
mown  down  by  artillery  fire,  as  they  patiently  stood  for  hours, 
unable  to  advance,  unwilling  to  retire.  Farther  to  their  rear, 
the  positions  where  their  squares  had  halted  in  their  retreat, 
to  resist  the  pursuing  French,  were  outlined  by  dead ;  between 
these  places  a  broad  trail  of  blood  and  bodies  marked  their 
line  of  movement.! 

Before  Friedland,  about  the  Eylau  road,  the  dead,  lying 
thick  and  close,  marked  where  Senarmont's  and  Ney's 
batteries  had  ploughed  great  furrows  through  the  masses  of 
fleeing  Russians,  crowded  together  in  the  narrow  peninsula, 
or  where  Bennigsen's  cavalry  had  temporarily  arrested  Ney's 
victorious  advance. 

(d)  Tactics  at  Friedland,  and  Strategy  of  the 
Campaign. 

Bennigsen's  object  in  crossing  the  Alle  at  Friedland  is 
the  first  point  requiring  notice  in  dealing  with  this  battle. 
It  has  been  said  that  he  proposed  to  attempt  a  direct  march 
on  Koenigsberg,  instead  of,  as  he  certainly  intended  when  he 
wrote  to  Lestocq  on  the  11th  June,J  after  Heilsberg,  crossing 
the  Pregel  first.      Napoleon   himself   was   evidently  under 

*  The  respective  losses  of  the  armies  in  this  battle  are,  as  usual,  very 
variously  stated,  and  it  is  only  possible,  by  a  comparison  of  the  different 
authorities,  to  arrive  at  an  approximation  to  the  truth. 

The  French  losses  were  probably  about  7000  er  8000.  Plotho  (p.  168)  puts 
that  of  the  Russians  at  18,000  to  20,000.     The  French  claim  that  it  was  25,000. 

t  See  Savary's  description  of  the  field  (iii.  92). 

X  Wilson,  p.  150. 

Y 


322  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

this  impression,  when  he  wrote  from  Posthenen,  at  3  p.m.  on 
the  14th,  to  Murat.*  This  view  seems  to  be  erroneous.  What 
Bennigsen  really  appears  to  have  meant  was  to  crush  Lannes, 
whom  alone  he  believed  to  be  within  reach  of  Friedland, 
and  then  to  continue  his  march  on  Wehlau.  A  general  action 
on  a  favourable  field  was  what  Napoleon  desired  above  all 
things.  At  Friedland,  Bennigsen  gave  him  precisely  what 
he  wanted.f  Though  it  was  absolutely  necessary  for  Ben- 
nigsen to  stop  any  French  passage  of  the  Alle  in  force  at 
Friedland,  he  would  have  been  wiser  to  content  himself  with 
holding  that  point  strongly,  whilst  his  army  defiled  past  it, 
en  route  for  Wehlau.  To  stop  and  attack  Lannes,  even  had 
he  alone  been  there,  was  to  waste  valuable  time.     Moreover, 

*  Vide  supra,  p.  314. 

f  Bennigsen  himself  wrote :  "  I  freely  admit  that  I  should  have  done  better 
not  to  undertake  the  affair  of  Friedland ;  I  had  the  power,  and  I  should  have 
been  safer  to  maintain  my  resolution,  not  to  undertake  a  serious  battle,  since  it 
was  not  necessary  for  the  safety  of  the  march  of  my  army ;  but  false  reports, 
with  which  every  general  is  often  beset,  had  raised  in  me  the  erroneous  view, 
which  was  confirmed  by  all  my  intelligence,  that  Napoleon  had,  with  the 
greater  part  of  his  army,  taken  the  road  towards  Koenigsberg ';  (Hwpfner, 
iii.  656). 

Wilson  fairly  describes  the  action  as  "  a  battle  undertaken  from  an  error  of 
information,  persevered  in  from  an  apprehension  of  retreat,  but  whose  catastrophe 
was  alleviated  by  the  extraordinary  valour  of  the  officers  and  troops  "  (pp.  161, 
162). 

"  The  weakness  of  the  French  column  suggested  to  Bennigsen  the  idea  of 
fighting  a  fortunate  battle  en  passant "  (Bustow,  i.  322). 

Adams  (Great  Campaigns,  p.  154)  puts  very  clearly  the  object  of  Napoleon. 
"Hoepfner  blames  him  (Napoleon)  for  not  continuing  the  battle  of  Heilsberg  on 
the  11th  June  instead  of  manoeuvring  ;  but  his  abstention  is  a  proof  of  his  sense 
of  the  precarious  nature  of  his  position,  and  he  was,  moreover,  anxious  to 
economise  force. 

"  Without  Bennigsen's  blunder,  the  Russians  would  have  arrived  safely  on 
the  Pregel,  whilst  Napoleon's  line,  already  extended,  would  have  been  still 
further  stretched.  The  point  had  been  reached  when  the  occupation  of 
territory  was  of  no  further  value,  but  in  this  poor  district  rather  the  contrary, 
and  a  general  action  was  the  sole  object  worth  striving  for.  This  object  was 
attained  at  Friedland  by  good  fortune,  which,  according  to  Bennigsen,  was 
owing  to  his  misinformation  as  to  Napoleon's  movements  on  Koenigsberg." 

It  may  be  said  Napoleon  had  his  chance  of  a  general  action  at  Heilsberg. 
True  !  but  Heilsberg  was  a  very  unfavourable  field  for  him.  Friedland  was  all 
that  he  could  desire. 


THE  BATTLE   OF  FRIEDLAND.  323 

Bennigsen's  men,  exhausted  by  a  march  of  34  miles*  in 
48  hours,  in  oppressively  hot  weather,!  were  hardly  fit  to 
undertake  a  day  of  fighting. 

If  Bennigsen  was  badly  informed  as  to  the  French  move- 
ments, Napoleon  was  equally  in  doubt  as  to  the  distribution 
of  the  two  Kussian  forces,  towards  Koenigsberg,  and  on  the 
Alle. 

Bennigsen's  position  at  Friedland,  with  a  considerable 
river  close  behind  his  back,  with  his  only  line  of  retreat,  so 
far  as  he  knew,  behind  his  left  wing,  and  with  his  front  split 
in  two  by  a  serious  obstacle  to  the  free  movement  of  troops, 
was  as  bad  as  it  could  be4  It  is  true  he  had  another  line  of 
escape  by  the  Allenburg  road,  on  the  left  bank  of  the  Alle  ; 
but  that,  again,  led  from  a  wing  parallel  to  his  line,  and  was 
close  against  the  river.  His  one  chance  was  to  overpower 
Lannes,  whilst  that  officer  was  still  in  very  inferior  force  in 
the  early  morning,  and  thus  clear  for  himself  space  for  a  less 
unfavourable  field  of  battle. 

Napoleon  had,  perhaps,  rarely  been  more  happy  in 
appreciating,  at  the  first  glance,  the  features  of  a  battlefield. 
His  orders  for  the  renewal  of  the  attack  show,  by  their 
reiteration  of  the  caution  to  his  left  not  to  press  forward, 

*  Left  Heilsberg  midnight,  12th — 

Miles. 

Reached  Bartenstein  noon,  12th        13 

Reached  Schippenbeil 8 

Schippenbeil  to  Friedland      13 

34 

t  The  day  of  Friedland  was  oppressively  hot  (Marbot,  i.  279). 

%  Wilson  (p.  153)  says  of  it :  "  His  (Bennigsen's)  own  feeble  army  was  lodged" 
in  a  position  that  was  untenable,  from  which  progress  could  not  be  made  against 
an  equal  force,  nor  retreat  be  effected  without  great  hazard,  and  where  no  mili- 
tary object  would  be  attained  for  the  interests  or  reputation  of  the  Russian 
army,  whose  courage  had  been  sufficiently  established,  without  tilting  for  fame 
as  adventurers  who  have  nothing  to  lose  and  everything  to  win." 

"  There  was  in  his  (Bennigsen's)  conduct  a  mixture  of  rash  imprudence  and 
of  irresolution  quite  irreconcilable"  (Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  421). 

"  Benningsen,  ill  at  the  time,  seemed  to  have  forgotten  that  he  had  come  to. 
the  left  bank  to  fight"  (Rustoic,  i.  323). 


324  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

how  completely  he  had  estimated  the  vital  importance  to 
Bennigsen  of  Friedland,  and  the  tongue  of  land  on  which  it 
stood.  Yet  he  failed  at  first,  as  is  shown  by  his  letter  to 
Murat,  to  value  correctly  the  strength  of  the  force  to  which 
he  was  opposed.  It  was  not  till  the  action  recommenced 
that  he  saw  that  Bennigsen  had  delivered  himself  into  his 
hands.  Could  he  have  been  certain  of  the  Kussians  remain- 
ing another  24  hours  on  the  hither  side  of  the  river,  he 
might,  even  as  it  was,  have  preferred  waiting  till  the  arrival 
of  Murat  and  Davout  gave  him  a  still  greater  preponderance 
of  numbers,*  and  until  his  own  troops,  many  of  whom 
(Victor's  corps  especially)  had  had  much  fatiguing  marching, 
were  rested.  But  he  had  too  often  experienced  the  Eussian 
general's  capacity  for  slipping  away  during  the  night  from 
the  most  dangerous  positions  to  risk  a  repetition  of  these 
tactics.  When,  therefore,  Key's  advance  had  shown  him  his 
great  superiority  of  force,  he  had  no  longer  any  hesitation  in 
pressing  home  his  assault. 

Dupont's  action  in  support  of  Ney,  without  any  orders 
from  Victor,f  reflected  credit  on  that  unfortunate  general, 
whose  great  reputation  was  afterwards  destroyed  at  Baylen. 

The  inaction  of  the  French  cavalry  at  Heinrichsdorf,  in 
the  evening,  is  almost  inexplicable.  All  that  can  be  said 
is  that  Napoleon  seems  to  have  been  so  busy  with  the 
operations  of  his  infantry,  as  to  neglect  to  insist  on  com- 
pliance with  his  orders.  Murat  would  have  acted  even  with- 
out orders.  Grouchy,  possibly,  did  not  consider  he  was  in  a 
position  to  warrant  his  doing  so  ;  though,  as  already  pointed 
out,  he  had  orders. 

The  failure  to  pursue  during  the  night  is,  on  the  face  of  it, 

*  "  Perhaps  I  should  have  done  better  to  wait  for  Davout  and  Murat.  I 
should  not  have  hesitated  had  I  thought  Bennigsen  would  dare  to  continue  his 
march  towards  Koenigsberg  via  Abschwang.  Keinforced  by  40,000  men, 
including  my  cavalry,  I  should  have  driven  him  on  the  marshy  forests  of  Zehlau 
and  Frischind,  from  which  he  could  never  have  emerged  "  (Jomini,  Vie  de 
Napoleon,  ii  413). 

t  Savary,  iii.  89. 


TEE  BATTLE   OF  FRIEDLAND.  325 

still  more  difficult  of  explanation.  No  general  ever  was  more 
alive  than  Napoleon  to  the  advantages  of  pursuing  a  defeated 
enemy,  "  Tepee  dans  les  reins,"  to  use  the  forcible  French 
expression.  If  his  infantry  were  tired,  his  cavalry  had  no 
reason  for  being  so.  They  had  neither  marched  an  excessive 
distance,  nor  had  any  very  heavy  fighting. 

Is  it  possible  that  the  Emperor's  slackness,  in  this  respect, 
was  due  to  political  considerations  ?  He  felt  that  Bennigsen 
was  badly  beaten,  and  could  not  again  face  him  short  of  the 
Niemen.  The  Eussian  army  was  worn  out  by  marching  and 
fighting.  A  pursuit,  such  as  that  of  the  Prussians  after  Jena, 
must  have  caused  the  enemy  much  loss,  and  given  rise  to 
very  bitter  feelings  towards  the  French  in  the  breasts  of  the 
leaders,  as  well  as  of  the  Kussian  soldiery.  At  this  period 
Napoleon  did  not  yet  contemplate  the  invasion  which  he 
attempted  in  1812,  with  such  disastrous  results.  He  still 
had  doubts  as  to  Austria,  and  it  would  have  ill  suited  him  to 
be  involved  in  a  fresh  campaign  beyond  the  Niemen.  A 
murderous  pursuit  might  have  so  incensed  the  Czar  as  to 
induce  him  to  continue  the  struggle  which,  he  must  have 
known,  would  eventually  be  stopped  by  winter,  and  to  adopt 
the  Fabian  tactics,  afterwards  so  successfully  employed  in 
1812. 

Napoleon  did  not  wish  to  make  a  permanent  enemy  of 
Eussia.  He  had  already  written  to  Talleyrand*  that  he 
would  prefer  the  Kussian  to  the  Austrian  alliance,  if  he  had 
to  choose  between  the  two.  He  wanted  Eussia,  as  a  sea 
power  with  a  large  seaboard  and  a  great  trade  with  England, 
to  join  him  in  his  campaign  against  the  commerce  of  his 
detested  enemy.  In  these  conditions,  is  it  not  probable  that 
the  Emperor  thought  that  the  destruction  of  a  few  thousand 
Eussians,  in  a  night  pursuit,  was  not  worth  the  risk  of  a 
continuation  of  the  war  ? 

The  strategy  of  the  first  few  days  of  the  campaign 
requires  but  little  comment.     Napoleon  had  left  Ney  in  a 

*  Corr.  12,028,  dated  14th  March,  1807. 


"326  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

somewhat  exposed  position,  according  to  some  authorities,* 
as  a  bait  to  the  Russians.  That  marshal  was  the  best  man 
to  be  placed  thus ;  for  he  could  always  be  relied  on  to  make 
the  most  of  a  rear-guard  action,  to  hold  the  enemy  and 
•  delay  him  to  the  utmost,  without  compromising  himself.  He 
showed  his  mastery  of  such  tactics  on  the  5th  and  6th  of 
•June.  Davout's  position  enabled  him  to  support  Ney's  right, 
and  to  threaten  the  left  flank  and  rear  of  the  Russians  as  they 
advanced  to  the  Passarge. 

Napoleon  did  not  expect  Bennigsen  to  assume  the  offen- 
sive. The  Russian  general  had,  he  considered,  lost  his 
opportunity,  if  he  ever  had  one,  in  failing  to  make  a  general 
advance  in  support  of  Kamenskoi's  attempt  to  relieve  Danzig. 
If  he  was  going  to  attempt  the  offensive  at  all,  then  was  his 
chance.  He  was,  but  for  the  absence  of  Kamenskoi's  7000 
or  8000  men,  as  strong  on  the  15th  May  as  he  was  on  the  5th 
June.  Napoleon,  on  the  other  hand,  was  weaker  by  the 
corps  of  Lannes,  Mortier,  and  all  of  Lefebvre's  except  what 
was  required  for  the  garrison  of  Danzig  after  its  fall — quite 
40,000  men  in  all.  In  June,  Napoleon  had  an  enormous  pre- 
ponderance of  numbers  over  his  adversary,  and  if  he  began 
to  concentrate  rearwards  towards  Osterode,  "  il  ne  reculait 
que  pour  mieux  sauter."  If  Bennigsen's  forward  move  had 
not  stopped  at  the  Passarge,  it  must  inevitably  have  done  so 
before  the  lakes  at  Osterode. 

When  the  tide  turned,  Napoleon's  movement  was  a 
simple  one  to  the  front  with  the  bulk  of  his  army,  whilst  he 
endeavoured,  by  holding  Lestocq  and  Kamenskoi  on  the 
Lower  Passarge  with  the  1st  corps,  to  separate  them  from 
the  rest  of  Bennigsen's  army.  Lestocq  had  been  dealt  with 
in  a  precisely  similar  manner  in  the  two  earlier  phases  of  the 
campaign,  before  Pultusk  and  before  Eylau.f 

*  Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  ii.  406. 

t  Adams  (Great  Campaigns,  pp.  153,  154)  says,  "It  is  difficult  to  see, 
moreover,  the  object  the  allies  had  in  assigning  a  detached  sphere  of  action  to 
the  Prussian  contingents.  The  German  authorities  agree  that,  in  spite  of 
constant  defeat,  the  individual  German  soldier  retained  the  confident  feeling  of 


TEE  BATTLE   OF  FR1EDLAND.  327 

When  the  French  reached  the  bend  of  the  Alle  at 
Guttstadt,  there  were,  according  to  Joraini,  two  courses  open 
to  the  Emperor,  between  which  he  hesitated  for  a  moment. 
Napoleon  himself  has  nowhere  indicated  that  he  had  any 
such  doubts.  He  might,  says  Jomini,  have  pushed  forward, 
establishing  his  line  with  its  left  at  Guttstadt,  and  his  right 
towards  Bischofstein.  "  It  would  have  been  absolutely  the 
same  movement  as  that  of  Jena  and  Naumburg  against  the 
Prussians,  with  better  chances  of  success ;  for  the  Kussian 
army,  beaten  on  its  left  and  driven  back  on  the  Lower 
Passarge  and  the  Frisches-Haff,  would  have  been  thrown  into 
the  sea.  Koenigsberg,  no  doubt,  offered  it  a  refuge ;  but  that 
place  itself,  with  the  Baltic  behind  it  on  the  west,  and  the 
Curisches-Haff  on  the  north,  would  have  offered  no  issue  to 
this  beaten  army ;  for  I  should  have  forestalled  it  at  Wehlau, 
as  soon  as  it  began  to  retreat. 

"  The  second  course  to  take  was  to  advance  direct  against 
the  entrenched  camp  of  Heilsberg,  whilst  50,000  men 
manoeuvred  by  my  left  on  Eylau,  to  menace  the  line  of 
operations  of  the  allies,  to  force  them  to  abandon  their 
redoubts  without  fighting,  to  press  them  vigorously  in  their 
retreat,  and  to  strike  them  heavily  at  the  passages  of  the 
Pregel  and  the  Memen.  This  last  course  was  less  advan- 
tageous ;  it  was  even  contrary  to  the  rules  of  strategy,  which 
do  not  allow  of  compromising  a  considerable  corps  by 
passing  it  between  the  enemy  and  the  sea.  I  preferred  it, 
because  my  left  was  already  in  that  direction,  and,  in  order 
to  manoeuvre  by  my  right,  I  should  have  to  describe  a  long 
circle  round  the  Kussian  army,  to  uncover  the  roads  which 
served  for  communication  with  Thorn  and  Warsaw,  and  to 
throw  myself  into  the  wooded  country  on  the  right  bank  of 


physical  superiority ;  but  the  cause  may  probably  be  found  in  a  superannuated 
system,  by  which  the  Prussian  leaders  were  first  of  all  punctiliously  unwilling  to 
serve  other  than  independently,  fearful  lest  such  a  course  would  imply 
inferiority ;  and  next,  showed  a  reluctance  to  adopt  anything  new  after  a  long 
period  of  peace." 


328  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

the  Alle.  However,  I  must  admit  I  should  have  acted  in  a 
better  military  spirit  in  adopting  the  first  course. 

"  One  of  the  motives  which  contributed  most  to  determine 
me  in  favour  of  the  second  was  that  I  had  already  remarked, 
at  the  time  of  the  battle  of  Eylau,  that  Bennigsen  showed  a 
pusillanimous  anxiety  for  Koenigsberg ;  but,  as  it  was  not 
a  military  point,  I  thought  that  he  had  special  motives, 
whether  of  policy  towards  Prussia,  or  of  consideration  for  the 
great  magazines.  In  depriving  the  enemy  of  his  magazines, 
I  should  procure  them  for  my  own  troops,  which,  in  a  distant 
country,  is  essential ;  I  should  overturn  the  enemy's  system 
of  operations.  On  the  other  hand,  it  was  possible  that  the 
march  of  Soult  on  Koenigsberg  might  decide  the  Eussians  to 
retreat  to  their  right,  to  cover  that  city,  and  I  was  always 
master  of  the  power  to  throw  forces  on  their  left  flank, 
threatening  to  cut  them  from  Tilsit.  For  these  sub- 
sidiary reasons  I  disregarded  strategical  principles,  and 
decided  to  advance  on  Heilsberg  by  the  left  bank  of  the 
Alle."  * 

The  arguments  in  favour  of  the  course  actually  adopted 
are,  no  doubt,  valid ;  but  it  may  be  doubted  if  Napoleon  ever 
hesitated  in  his  choice,  or  if  the  first  course  really  was  the 
best  strategically.  His  lines  of  communication  were  not  at 
this  period  with  Warsaw  primarily,  or  even  with  Thorn. 
They  were  by  Marienwerder,  Marienburg,  and  Danzig.  The 
proposed  movement  to  the  right  would  have  laid  them  all 
open,  that  to  the  left  covered  completely  the  Marienwerder, 
Marienburg,  and  Danzig  lines. 

Moreover,  Bennigsen,  if  he  were  not  bold  enough  to 
attack  the  lines  of  communication,  would  probably  have 
taken  fright  and  retreated  down  the  Alle  long  before  the 
extended  movement  round  his  left  could  have  been  completed. 
He  would  then  have  had  the  advantage  of  the  shorter  line  to 
the  Pregel,  and  would  have  been  joined  on  it  by  the 
Prussians.      As    has  already  been  said,  Bennigsen    could 

*  Jomini,  Vie  de  Napoleon,  pp.  406-408. 


TEE  BATTLE  OF  FRIEDLAND.  329 

probably  have  been  manoeuvred  out  of  Heilsberg,  without  the 
bloody  battle  of  the  10th  June. 

When  Napoleon  divided  his  army  at  Eylau,  marching 
partly  on  Koenigsberg,  partly  on  Friedland,  it  seems  almost 
impossible  to  doubt  that,  as  before  at  Pultusk,  he  was  under 
an  entirely  erroneous  impression  as  to  the  distribution  of  the 
two  portions  of  the  enemy.  His  cavalry  could  give  no 
precise  account  of  the  enemy's  march,*  and  probably 
exaggerated  the  strength  of  Kamenskoi's  9000  men  marching 
past  Eylau  on  the  12th.  It  is  difficult  to  believe  that  the 
Emperor  would  have  deliberately  detached  60,000  men  to 
deal  with  less  than  half  their  number.  His  despatch  to 
Murat  from  Posthenen,  seems  to  show  that  he  recognised  his 
mistake.  With  Murat,  and  half  the  cavalry  he  had  at 
Koenigsberg,  on  the  field  at  Friedland,  it  is  likely  that  that 
battle  would  have  resulted  in  a  still  greater  disaster  for  the 
Eussians.  Soult's  corps,  with  a  cavalry  division,  and, 
perhaps,  the  addition  of  one  division  of  Davout's  infantry, 
could  easily  have  dealt  with  Lestocq  and  Kamenskoi,  had  the 
Emperor  known  how  small  their  force  was.  Had  he  detached 
30,000  or  35,000,  under  Soult  or  Davout,  against  Koenigs- 
berg, he  would  have  been  quite  safe  in  that  direction,  and 
would  have  disposed  of  an  additional  25,000  or  30,000  men 
at  Friedland,  not  to  mention  the  advantage  of  having  Murat 
to  lead  the  cavalry  of  the  left  wing. 

*  Savary,  iii.  84. 


CHAPTER  IV. 

KOENIGSBERG  AND   TlLSIT. 

A  GLANCE  back  must  now  be  given  to  the  movements 
of  the  detached  forces  in  the  direction  of  Koenigsberg. 
Lestocq  and  Kamenskoi  were  last  mentioned  when,  about 
3  p.m.  on  the  13th,  they  met  at  Gollau.  Between  them 
they  mustered  about  25,000  men,  all  that  were  available  to 
oppose  9000  of  Murat's  cavalry,  22,000  of  Soult's  corps,*  and 
29,000  of  Davout's ;  in  all  60,000.  Of  the  allied  forces, 
Lestocq  took  command.  They  had  been  in  touch  with 
Murat's  cavalry,  and  fighting  with  them,  on  the  evening  of 
the  13th,  on  the  direct  road  from  Eylau  to  Koenigsberg. 

On  the  14th,  Soult's  advanced  guard,  moving  on  the 
Kreuzburg-Koenigsberg  road,  first  encountered  the  enemy  at 
Bergau.  Lestocq  was  at  Gollau,  opposing  the  progress  of 
Murat,  when  Soult's  arrival  on  his  right  flank  forced  him  to 
retreat  on  the  city.  A  battalion  of  his  infantry  was  cut  off 
and  captured  by  Milhaud's  dragoons  with  Soult. 

*  Soult,  at  the  opening  of  the  campaign,  had  30,000  men ;  but  he  had  lost 
6600  at  Heilsberg  alone,  and,  including  the  losses  on  the  Passarge,  he  cannot 
have  lost  less  than  8000  since  the  5th  June. 

The  cavalry  employed  began  the  campaign  at  the  following  strength : — 

Lasalle         5703 

St.  Sulpice 1967 

Milhand       1859 

9529 
Davout,  at  the  same  time,  had  29,560. 


KOENIQSBERG  AND   TILSIT.  331 

Another  attempt  to  make  a  stand  against  the  now  united 
corps  of  Soult  and  Murat,  1000  paces  from  the  works  of 
Koenigsberg,  was  found  to  be  hopeless.  Outflanked  and 
severely  pressed,  the  allies  shut  themselves  into  Koenigsberg. 
The  French  force  was  now  supplemented  by  the  arrival  of 
Davout.  Gudin's  division  joined  Murat's  right,  and  extended 
towards  the  Pregel,  above  the  city.  A  battery,  which  Davout 
established  in  this  direction  to  test  the  possibility  of  an 
assault,  was  silenced  by.  the  superior  fire  of  the  defenders. 
Davout  then  ordered  Friant,  supported  by  Morand,  to  make 
preparations  for  the  passage  of  the  river,  but  only  passed 
over  one  regiment. 

About  mid-day,  a  brigade  of  about  1200  men,  which 
Lestocq  had  left  behind  to  watch  the  direction  of  Branden- 
burg, appeared  behind  Soult's  left,  attempting  to  rejoin  the 
Prussians. 

It  made  a  brave  struggle  for  liberty,  but,  surrounded  in  a 
village,  it  was  forced  to  lay  down  its  arms. 

All  this  time,  Lestocq  and  Kamenskoi,  ignorant  of 
Bennigsen's  movements,  were  buoyed  by  the  hope  that  a 
bold  defence  of  the  city  could  not  fail  to  be  supported  by 
him  in  the  course  of  a  few  hours. 

Setting  fire  to  the  Brandenburg  suburb,  on  the  left  bank 
of  the  river,  Lestocq  withdrew  most  of  his  troops  within  the 
fortifications.  Those  which  remained  were  attacked  in  the 
suburb  by  Legrand's  division,  which  inflicted  heavy  loss  on 
them,  and  took  a  number  of  prisoners.  The  works  of  the 
place  were  strong  enough  to  render  an  assault  out  of  the 
question.  Soult  refused  to  listen  to  the  rash  counsels  of 
Murat  in  favour  of  it. 

In  the  evening,  Murat  receiving  Napoleon's  order,  dated 
3  p.m.  on  the  same  afternoon  before  Friedland,  at  once  started 
with  Davout's  corps  in  the  direction  of  Friedland.  Soult, 
now  left  alone  before  Koenigsberg,  was  in  strength  inferior 
to  that  of  the  enemy.  He  therefore  contented  himself  with 
taking  up  a  position  of  observation  in  front  of  the  fortress. 


332  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

Lestocq  endeavoured  to  send,  through  Soult's  lines,  a  small 
body  of  cavalry  with  a  despatch  for  Bennigsen,  of  whom  he 
had  still  heard  no  news.  The  party  was  surrounded  and  the 
despatch  captured,  as  was  the  cavalry  belonging  to  the  brigade 
which  had  been  cut  off  in  the  afternoon. 

On  the  15th,  Soult  began  preparations  for  an  attack  on 
the  fortress,  which  he  bombarded. 

At  10  p.m.,  it  was  ascertained,  from  deserters,  that 
Kamenskoi's  corps  had  left  as  soon  as  the  news  of  the  battle 
of  Friedland  had  arrived,  and  that  the  Prussians  were  pre- 
paring to  follow.  On  the  morning  of  the  16th,  Soult  entered 
the  fortress,  where  he  captured  the  single  battalion  which 
Lestocq  had  left  to  cover  his  evacuation.  A  large  number  of 
wounded  Kussians  and  Prussians  were  found  in  the  town, 
and  very  large  magazines  and  stores  of  every  sort,  as  well  as 
of  artillery.* 

To  return  to  Bennigsen  and  Napoleon :  the  former,  passing 
the  Pregel,  at  Wehlau,  on  the  15  th,  by  a  single  bridge,  burnt 
it  behind  him,  and,  at  Petersdorf,  on  the  farther  bank  opposite 
the  mouth  of  the  Alle,  gave  his  troops  a  few  hours  of  much- 
needed  rest. 

On  the  16th,  he  marched  18  miles  to  a  position  between 
Mehlauken  and  Popliken.  On  the  17th  he  made  another 
march  of  18  miles,  across  the  little  river  Schillup,  where 
he  was  rejoined  by  Lestocq  and  Kamenskoi. 

On  the  18th,  the  allied  army,  passing  through  Tilsit, 
crossed  the  Niemen  on  boat  bridges,  which  were  immediately 
afterwards  burnt  by  Bagration,  who,  as  before,  commanded 
the  rear-guard  in  this  last  retreat. 

Napoleon,  meanwhile,  had  moved  thus : — 

After  the  victory  of  Friedland,  the  march  of  Murat  and 
Davout,  towards  that  point,  ceased  to  be  necessary.  They 
were  diverted,  therefore,  from  Abschwangen,  across  the  Pregel, 
at  Tapiau.     Murat,   sending  his  light  cavalry  to  Wehlau, 

*  Soult's  report  (Arch.  Hist.)  says  he  took,  in  Koenigsberg,  3000  sick  and 
wounded  Russians,  and  4000  Prussians. 


KOENIGSBERG  AND    TILSIT.  333 

reached  Tapiau  with  St.  Sulpice's  dragoons  and  Davout's 
corps,  on  the  morning  of  the  16th. 

It  was  not  till  24  hours  later  that  Davout  succeeded  in 
getting  across  the  river.  With  his  light  cavalry  he  set  out 
in  pursuit  of  the  enemy  in  the  directions  of  Koenigsberg  and 
Labiau,  whilst  Napoleon  also  manoeuvred  to  his  left,  in  the 
hope  of  driving  the  Prussians  on  the  Curisches-Haff.  It 
was  too  late.  Marulaz  alone  reached  the  Prussian  rear-guard, 
with  which  he  engaged  in  small  combats. 

Murat,  after  passing  the  Pregel  on  the  16th,  rejoined  the 
main  army,  with  St.  Sulpice's  dragoons,  at  Wehlau. 

The  army  which  had  fought  at  Friedland  marched,  on  the 
15th,  to  Wehlau,  except  the  corps  of  Ney,  which  remained  at 
Friedland. 

On  the  16  th  and  17th,  Victor,  followed  by  Lannes, 
Mortier,  and  the  .Guard,  in  the  order  named,  passed  the 
Pregel.  He  was  at  Petersdorf  on  the  evening  of  the  16th. 
On  the  17th  the  cavalry,  supported  by  part  of  Victor's  corps, 
had  a  slight  engagement  with  Bagration  at  Mehlauken.  He 
was  again  seen  on  the  18th  near  Niemen. 

On  the  morning  of  the  19th,  Murat  entered  Tilsit ;  Victor 
was  halted  on  the  left  bank  of  the  river  below  Tilsit,  Davout 
above  it. 

Ney,  meanwhile,  moved,  on  the  17th  and  18th,  to  Gum- 
binnen,  covering  the  right  flank  of  the  army.  Soult  remained 
on  the  left,  at  Koenigsberg,  sending  St.  Hilaire  to  invest 
Pillau  on  the  east,  whilst  Eapp's  detachment,  on  the 
Nehrung,  invested  it  on  that  side  and  from  the  sea.  It 
shortly  capitulated. 

There  remain  to  be  narrated  the  operations  of  Massena 
on  the  Narew.  On- the  11th  June,  the  Eussians,  having 
advanced  between  the  Narew  and  the  Bug,  attacked,  with 
6000  or  8000  men,  Drenzewo  and  the  French  entrenched 
camp  at  Borki,  a  little  below  Ostrolenka  on  the  right  bank 
of  the  Narew.     Claparede,  defending  it,  was  at  the  same  time 


334  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

bombarded  by  batteries  on  the  left  bank.*  He  was  finally 
forced  out,  f  and  the  Eussians  entrenched  themselves  in  it. 

Suchet  had  reached  Rozan  with  the  rest  of  his  division. 
On  the  12th,  at  10  a.m.,  Massena  in  person  directed  an  attack 
on  the  Russian  lines.  Overwhelmed  by  superior  numbers, 
they  were  forced,  under  the  protection  of  their  batteries, 
partly  across  the  Omulew,  and  partly  across  the  Narew,  at 
Ostrolenka. 

No  further  movement  of  importance  took  place  till  the 
22nd,  when  Massena,  already  informed  of  the  result  of  the 
battle  of  Friedland,  marched  on  Ostrolenka  which  he  reached 
on  the  evening  of  the  23rd,  to  find  the  Russians  gone  in  the 
direction  of  Tykoczin. 

He  followed  them  by  Nowogrod,  Lomza,  and  Sniadow 
towards  Bialystok,  as  ordered  by  the  Emperor. 

On  the  19th  June,  Bennigsen,  now  on  the  right  bank  of 
the  Niemen,  received  orders  from  the  allied  sovereigns  to 
demand  an  armistice.  About  mid-day  the  demand  J  was 
transmitted  to  Murat  in  Tilsit,  and  was  passed  on  to 
Napoleon,  who  shortly  afterwards  reached  the  town,  and  who 
at  once  accepted  the  proposal  to  negotiate. 

On  the  21st,  the  armistice  was  signed  on  the  following 
conditions : — 

(a)  Armistice  to  be  for  the  purpose  of  negotiating  a 
peace. 


*  According  to  memoirs  of  Massena  (v.  331).  there  were  8000  Russians,  and 
Tutchkow  had  covered  his  real  attack  by  threatening  a  passage  at  Rozan.  An 
attack  by  cavalry  was  also  made  on  Gazan  at  Zawady  on  the  Omulew. 

t  Back  to  Nozewo  (Masufna,  v.  331). 

X  The  terms  of  Bennigsen's  letter  to  Bagration  for  communication  to  Murat 
were  as  follows :  "  After  the  torrents  of  blood  which  have  lately  flowed  in 
battles  as  sanguinary  as  frequent,  I  should  desire  to  assuage  the  evils  of  this 
destructive  war,  by  proposing  an  armistice  before  we  enter  upon  a  conflict,  a 
fresh  war,  perhaps  more  terrible  than  the  first.  I  request  you,  Prince,  to  convey 
to  the  chiefs  of  the  French  army  this  my  intention,  of  which  the  consequences 
may  produce  all  the  more  salutary  results,  seeing  that  there  is  already  question 
of  a  general  congress,  and  which  may  prevent  an  useless  effusion  of  blood. 
Kindly  inform  me  of  the  result  of  your  action  "  (Wihon,  p.  170,  note). 


KOENIQSBERG  AND    TILSIT.  335 

(b)  Either  party  proposing  to  terminate  it  to  give  one 
month's  notice  of  his  intention, 

(c)  A  separate  armistice  to  be  concluded  between  the 
French  and  Prussian  armies. 

(d)  The  line  of  delimitation  between  the  armies  was 
fixed. 

(e)  Plenipotentiaries,  for  the  negotiation  of  peace,  to  be 
at  once  appointed,  and  commissions  for  the  exchange  of 
prisoners. 

Napoleon  had  spoken  the  prologue  to  the  great  drama  in 
his  proclamation  of  the  2nd  December,  1806 ;  on  the  22nd 
June,  he  delivered  the  epilogue.  "  Soldiers,  on  the  5th  June, 
we  were  attacked  in  our  cantonments  by  the  Kussian  army, 
which  misconstrued  the  causes  of  our  inactivity.  It  per- 
ceived, too  late,  that  our  repose  was  that  of  the  lion ;  now  it 
does  penance  for  its  mistake.  In  the  days  of  Guttstadt,  of 
Heilsberg,  in  the  ever-memorable  day  of  Friedland,  in  10  days 
campaigning  we  have  taken  120  guns,  and  seven  standards ; 
we  have  killed,  wounded,  or  captured  60,000  Eussians  ;  torn 
from  the  enemy's  army  all  its  magazines,  its  hospitals,  its 
ambulances,  the  fortress  of  Koenigsberg,  the  300  vessels 
which  were  in  the  port,  laden  with  every  kind  of  supplies,  and 
160,000  muskets,*  which  England  was  sending  to  arm  our 
enemies. 

"  From  the  shores  of  the  Vistula,  we  have  reached  those 
of  the  Niemen,  with  the  rapidity  of  the  eagle.  At  Austerlitz 
you  celebrated  the  anniversary  of  the  coronation ;  you  have 
this  year  worthily  celebrated  that  of  the  battle  of  Marengo, 
which  put  an  end  to  the  war  of  the  second  coalition.  French- 
men, you  have  been  worthy  of  yourselves,  and  of  me ;  you 
will  return  to  France  covered  with  laurels,  after  having 
acquired  a  peace  which,  guarantees  its  own  durability.     It  is 

*  Wilson  (p.  166,  note)  denies  the  capture  of  these  muskets,  which,  he  says, 
were  landed  at  Riga.  He  also  affirms  that  there  was  very  little  left  in  Koenigs- 
berg of  supplies  or  artillery,  most  of  them  having  been  removed  by  Lestocq. 
It  is  hardly  probable  that  that  officer  had  time  to  make  considerable  removals. 


* 

336  NAPOLEON'S   CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

time  for  our  country  to  live  in  repose,  sheltered  from  the 
malign  influence  of  England. 

"  My  rewards  will  prove  to  you  my  gratitude  and  the 
greatness  of  the  love  I  bear  you." 

The  positions  taken  by  the  armies,  pending  the  com- 
pletion of  the  peace  negotiations,  of  the  result  of  which  there 
could  be  no  doubt,  were  the  following : — 

French : — 

Headquarters  of  Guard  at  Koenigsberg,  with  detachments 
at  Tilsit  guarding  the  Emperor's  person.     Soult  at  Labiau. 

Davout,  Lahoussaye,  and  Lasalle  at  Tilsit. 

Ney,  and  Latour-Maubourg  at  Marienpol,  east  of 
Gumbinnen. 

Mortier  and  the  Polish  divisions  at  Augustowo.  Olitta, 
and  Nsobra,  on  Ney's  right. 

Victor  at  Wehlau.  Lannes  at  Koenigsberg,  Tapiau,  and 
Brandenburg. 

Espagne,  Saint  Sulpice,  Nansouty,  Grouchy,  and  Mil- 
haud,  the  cavalry  reserve,  in  cantonments  on  the  Pregel  and 
AUe. 

Murat,  fixing  his  headquarters  at  Koenigsberg,  himself 
remained  with  the  Emperor  at  Tilsit. 

Massena's  corps  was  at  Nowogrod. 

Russians  and  Prussians : — 

Imperial  headquarters  at  Pickupponen,  opposite  Tilsit. 

Gortchakow,  with  two  divisions,  the  cavalry  of  the  right 
wing,  that  of  the  advanced  guard,  and  all  the  cossacks  and 
bashkirs,  at  Willkischken,  Limspohnen,  and  Bennigskeiten. 

Essen,  with  four  divisions  and  the  cavalry  of  the  left 
wing,  at  and  about  Georgenburg. 

Lestocq  and  Kamenskoi's  two  divisions,  in  cantonments, 
between  the  Gilge  and  Euss  rivers. 

Labanow,  with  two  divisions,  about  Kanen. 

Tolstoi,  with  three  divisions,  near  Bialystock,  with  out- 
posts on  the  upper  Narew,  facing  Massena. 

Kologribow,  with  the  Guard,  except  one  battalion,  one 


K0ENIG8BERG  AND   TILSIT.  337 

cavalry  regiment,  and  one  squadron  of  another,  the  Czar's 
personal  guard,  retired  to  cantonments  in  Lithuania.* 

With  the  armies  thus  posted,  Napoleon  proceeded  to 
enact  the  transformation  scene  which  was  to  mark  his  new 
position  as  the  arbiter  of  the  destinies  of  Europe. 

Prussia  he  had  crushed,  and  was  determined  to  humiliate 
to  the  lowest  depths.  Kussia  he  had  defeated,  not  conquered. 
He  required  her  aid  in  the  struggle  with  the  one  enemy 
whom  he  had  been  unable  to  cripple.  He  proposed  a  per- 
sonal meeting,  to  settle  the  bases  of  peace,  between  himself 
and  the  Czar  Alexander.  There  was  no  mention  of  the  King 
of  Prussia.  Alexander,  flattered  by  the  recognition  of  the 
pre-eminence  of  his  own  power,  accepted  the  proposal. 

An  enormous  raft  was  constructed  by  the  French 
engineers,  and  moored  in  midstream.  It  bore  a  magni- 
ficently decorated  pavilion,  worthy  of  the  memorable  scene 
which  was  to  take  place  within  it. 

On  the  25th  June,  towards  1  p.m.,  Napoleon,  accom- 
panied by  Berthier,  Bessieres,  Duroc,  and  Caulaincourt,  left 
the  southern  bank  at  the  same  moment  as  Alexander,  with 
the  Grand  Duke  Constantine,  Bennigsen,  Labanow,  Uvarow, 
and  Count  Lieven,  set  out  from  the  northern.  Eeaching  the 
raft  simultaneously,  the  two  Emperors  embraced,  and  then, 
alone,  entered  on  a  discussion  lasting  two  hours,  the  purport 
of  which  can  be  guessed  only  from  its  results.  It  has  been 
said  that  Alexander's  first  words  were,  "  I  hate  the  English 
as  much  as  you  do  yourself."  To  which  Napoleon  replied, 
"  If  that  is  the  case,  peace  is  already  made."  It  is  unneces- 
sary to  put  any  great  faith  in  this  story.  The  Czar  may 
have  thought  he  had  not  received  so  much  support,  in  men 
and  money,  as  he  had  a  right  to  expect  from  Great  Britain ; 
but  her  conduct  had  certainly  not  been  such  as  to  warrant  so 
complete  a  revulsion  of  feeling  towards  her. 

The  King  of  Prussia  was  contemptuously  left  out  of  this 

*  Some  of  the  places  named  above  are  not  marked  on  the  map,  being 
beyond  its  limits. 

Z 


338  NAPOLEON'S  CAMPAIGN  IN  POLAND. 

meeting,  at  which,  presumably,  his  spoliation  was  decided  on. 
He  was  only  admitted  to  the  second  interview,  on  the  suc- 
ceeding day,  after  which  the  Czar  and  the  King  occupied 
quarters  in  Tilsit,  which  had  been  neutralised  for  their 
accommodation.  It  was  only  on  this  day  that  the  armistice 
with  the  Prussians  was  signed  and  ratified. 

The  beautiful  and  noble  Queen  of  Prussia  accompanied 
her  husband.  She  it  was  who  had  been  the  spirit  of  the 
war.  Napoleon  had  not  the  magnanimity  to  forgive  her 
conduct,  now  that  her  power  had  been  broken.  His  whole 
treatment  of  her  and  the  King  was  such  as  to  show  that  he 
regarded  them,  and  Prussia,  as  unworthy  of  his  considera- 
tion. With  the  unpleasant  history  of  these  days  we  need  not 
deal  fully. 

Napoleon,  determined  to  treat  entirely  separately  with 
Eussia  and  Prussia,  insisted  on  distinct  treaties.  That 
between  Eussia  and  France  was  executed  on  the  7th  July, 
and  ratified  two  days  later. 

The  Prussian  treaty  was  executed  only  on  the  day  on 
which  that  with  Eussia  was  ratified,  and  it  was  not  ratified 
till  the  12th  July. 

Of  the  complicated  provisions  of  the  treaties  a  short 
resume  is  all  that  seems  necessary. 

Napoleon,  bent  on  passing  every  possible  insult  upon  the 
unfortunate  Prussians,  attributed  such  poor  terms  as  he 
granted  them  to  the  intercession  of  Alexander. 

Of  the  conquered  territories,  he  restored  to  Prussia  that  part 
of  the  Duchy  of  Magdeburg  which  was  situated  on  the  right 
bank  of  the  Elbe,  thereby  excluding  the  fortress  itself,  which 
he  knew  the  Queen  specially  cherished.  Also  he  surren- 
dered Pomerania,  Silesia,  and  other  territories  constituting 
approximately  the  kingdom  as  it  was  before  the  1st  January, 
1772.  From  that  portion  of  the  ancient  kingdom  of  Poland 
which  had  been  acquired  by  Prussia  in  and  after  1772  he 
constituted  the  Grand  Duchy  of  Warsaw,  which  he  presented 
to  the  King  of  Saxony,  together  with  a  military  right  of  way 


KOENIGSBERQ   AND    TILSIT.  339 

across  the  intervening  Prussian  territory.  He  excepted  a 
considerable  area  in  the  direction  of  Bialystock,  which  was 
made  over  to  Kussia.  Danzig  he  made  a  free  city,  under  the 
protection  of  Prussia  and  Saxony.  The  recognition  of  the 
Napoleonic  Kings  of  Naples  and  Holland,  of  the  Confedera- 
tion of  the  Ehine,  of  the  new  kingdom  of  Westphalia,  now 
carved  out  of  Prussian  territory  west  of  the  Elbe  and 
bestowed  on  Jerome  Bonaparte,  was  stipulated  for. 

Turkey,  which  had  so  materially  helped  him,  was 
abandoned  by  Napoleon,  anxious  in  every  way  to  conciliate 
Kussia.  He  merely  offered  his  mediation  between  the  two 
powers,  whilst  agreeing  to  accept  that  of  the  Czar  between 
England  and  himself.  Prussia,  as  well  as  Kussia,  was  bound 
to  aid  his  campaign  against  the  commerce  of  Great  Britain. 

Such  were  the  more  important  provisions  of  the  treaties, 
the  full  details  of  which  can  be  studied  in  the  documents 
themselves.*  Their  result  was  aggrandisement  of  the  power 
of  Napoleon  to  an  enormous,  of  Kussia  to  a  small  extent,  at 
the  expense  of  Prussia. 

Prussia  was  hedged  round  with  states  subservient  to 
French  interests — the  Khenish  Confederation,  Saxony,  West- 
phalia, the  Grand  Duchy  of  Warsaw,  Holland,  and  Danzig. 
England's  last  allies  on  the  Continent,  with  the  exception  of 
Sweden,  which  was  soon  to  follow,  were  torn  from  her. 

With  the  gradual  withdrawal  of  the  French  armies  it  is 
not  proposed  to  deal.  Napoleon's  grasp  on  continental 
Europe  was  now  assured,  and  it  was  not  till  his  own  action 
in  the  Peninsula  of  Spain  sowed  the  germs  of  the  "  Spanish 
ulcer,"  and  until  Austria,  in  1809,  made  another  struggle  for 
liberty,  that  his  almost  universal  power  was  challenged. 

*  Printed  in  full  by  Wilson  (pp.  263-271). 
THE  END. 


PRINTED  BT  WILLIAM  CLOWES  AND  bON8,   LIMITED,   LONDON  AND  BECCLKS. 


1 


PLEASE  DO  NOT  REMOVE 
CARDS  OR  SLIPS  FROM  THIS  POCKET 

UNIVERSITY  OF  TORONTO  LIBRARY 


DC 
229 
PM6 
1901 

C.l 
ROBA